العثمانية الجاحظ
العثمانية الجاحظ
العثمانية الجاحظ
ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻟﻒ :ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﺍﻟﺠﺰﺀ:
ﺍﻟﻮﻓﺎﺓ٢٥٥ :
ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻤﻮﻋﺔ :ﻣﺼﺎﺩﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺭﻳﺦ
ﺗﺤﻘﻴﻖ :ﺗﺤﻘﻴﻖ ﻭﺷﺮﺡ :ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ
ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻌﺔ:
ﺳﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻊ:
ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺒﻌﺔ :ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺑﻲ -ﻣﺼﺮ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺷﺮ :ﻣﻜﺘﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﺭﺩﻣﻚ:
ﻣﻼﺣﻈﺎﺕ:
ﻣﻜﺘﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺑﺤﺮ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﺑﺘﺤﻘﻴﻖ ﻭﺷﺮﺡ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ
ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻟﺚ
ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
١٣٧٤ﻩ = ١٩٥٥ﻡ
ﻣﻄﺎﺑﻊ
ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺑﻲ ﺑﻤﺼﺮ
ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺣﻠﻤﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻴﺎﻭﻱ
)(١
ﺑﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻴﻢ
ﻋﻮﻧﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ
ﺛﻢ ﺇﻧﺎ ﻣﺨﺒﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻧﺴﺘﻬﺪﻯ ﻭﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﻧﺴﺘﻌﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻧﺘﻮﻛﻞ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺗﻮﻓﻴﻘﻨﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻪ.
ﺭﻭﻭﺍ ) (١ﺃﻥ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻭﺃﻭﻻﻫﺎ ﺑﺎﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ،
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﺎ ﺩﻟﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ﻭﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻗﻪ،
ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﻟﻤﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ،
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺁﺧﺮﻭﻥ :ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻧﻔﺮ :ﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺭﺕ.
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﻔﻘﺪﻧﺎ ﺃﺧﺒﺎﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺼﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﺣﺎﺩﻳﺜﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﺪﺩ ﺭﺟﺎﻟﻬﻢ )،(٢
ﻭ ]ﻧﻈﺮﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ) [(٣ﺻﺤﺔ ﺃﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪﻫﻢ .ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻋﻢ،
ﻭﺭﺟﺎﻟﻪ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ،ﻭﺇﺳﻨﺎﺩﻩ ﺃﺻﺢ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ،ﻣﻊ
ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﻀﺔ ) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻊ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﺠﻴﺌﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﺻﻞ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺎﻋﺪ ) (٥ﻭﺍﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻮﺍﻃﺆ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﻧﺪﻉ ﻫﺬﺍ
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺡ " :ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ".
) (٢ﺏ ،ﺡ " :ﻭﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎ ﺭﺟﺎﻟﻬﻢ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺡ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻭ ﺏ " :ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺜﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﻀﺔ " ،ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺡ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻭ ﺏ " :ﺍﻟﺘﺸﺎﻋﺮ " ﻭﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺡ.
)(٣
ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻫﺐ ]ﺟﺎﻧﺒﺎ ) ،[(١ﻭﻧﻀﺮﺏ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺻﻔﺤﺎ ،ﺍﻗﺘﺪﺍﺭﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﺛﻘﺔ
ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻠﺞ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻧﻘﺘﺼﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻧﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻢ
ﻣﻊ ﺳﺮﻓﻪ ﻭﻣﻴﻄﻪ ) (٢ﻓﻨﻘﻮﻝ:
ﻟﻤﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺧﺒﺎﺑﺎ ﻭﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ﻓﺄﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﺃﻋﺪﻟﻬﺎ
ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺤﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻭﺭﺿﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﺩﻝ ) (٣ﺃﻥ ﻧﺠﻌﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﺎ ،ﺇﺫ ﺍﺩﻋﻮﺍ
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺘﻜﺎﻓﺌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻣﺘﺪﺍﻓﻌﺔ] ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺩﻻﻟﺔ،
ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﺜﺎﻝ ﺣﺠﺔ ) ،[(٤ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺘﻴﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺔ
ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﺧﺮﻯ ).(٥
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺡ.
) (٢ﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﺳﺮﻓﻪ " ﻏﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﺿﺤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻭﺗﺒﻴﻴﻨﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺏ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻴﻂ :ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ.
) (٣ﺏ ،ﺡ " :ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻟﻒ ".
) (٤ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٥ﺑﻌﺪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺮﺡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " :ﺛﻢ ﻧﺴﺘﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻭﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﺎﻧﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻤﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺣﺪﺙ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻬﺪﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻦ
ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﻳﺮﻱ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻫﺮﻳﺮﺓ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﺣﻘﻜﻢ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ -ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ -
ﺃﻟﺴﺖ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﺎﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺻﻬﻴﺐ ﻋﻦ ﻳﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻴﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻜﺪﺭ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺜﻨﻲ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﺪﻯ ﻭﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ .ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﺬﺑﺖ،
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺻﺪﻗﺖ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻳﻌﻠﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺟﺎﺀ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﺴﺄﻟﻪ :ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ؟
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ:
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺬﻛﺮﺕ ﺷﺠﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﻲ ﺛﻘﺔ * ﻓﺎﺫﻛﺮ ﺃﺧﺎﻙ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻓﻌﻼ
ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻤﻮﺩ ﻣﺸﻬﺪﻩ * ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺻﺪﻕ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻼ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﺤﺠﻦ:
ﺳﺒﻘﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ * ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺣﺒﻴﺒﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻣﺸﻬﺮﺍ =
)(٤
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(١ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻢ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺬﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻘﺔ
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻣﻘﺪﻣﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻷﻧﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻤﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﺪﺙ
ﻏﺮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﻏﻼﻡ ﺻﻐﻴﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻧﻜﺬﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺴﺘﻄﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻨﺰﻝ ) (٢ﺃﻥ
ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻﺣﻘﺎ ﺑﺈﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻐﻴﻦ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﻠﻞ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﺧﻤﺲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺜﺮ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﺆﺧﺬ ﺑﺄﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻷﻣﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ]ﺣﻖ )[(٣
--------------------
= ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻛﻌﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ:
ﺳﺒﻘﺖ ﺃﺧﺎ ﺗﻴﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺃﺣﻤﺪ * ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﻟﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﺮﺍﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻬﻒ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺩﺭﻳﺲ ﻭﻭﻛﻴﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺨﻌﻲ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻫﻴﺜﻢ ﻋﻦ ﻳﻌﻠﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻨﺒﺴﺔ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺗﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺑﻌﻜﺎﻅ ﻓﻘﻠﺖ :ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻨﻲ ﺣﺮ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ! ﻓﻠﻘﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻨﻲ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ
ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺭﺍﺑﻊ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ :ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺑﻼﻻ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﺚ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻠﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺃﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ
ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻨﺒﺴﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺳﺄﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺑﻌﻜﺎﻅ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻣﻦ ﺗﺒﻌﻚ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺗﺒﻌﻨﻲ ﺣﺮ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺑﻼﻝ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻬﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻴﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺳﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺻﻔﻮﺍﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺒﺾ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺭﺣﻤﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﺎﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺩﻳﻨﺎﺭ ﻋﻦ ﺑﺸﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻜﺮﻣﺔ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻬﺎﺷﻤﻴﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ".
) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻻ ﻭﺟﻮﺩ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺡ .ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﺁﺛﺮﻧﺎ ﺇﺛﺒﺎﺗﻬﺎ ﺣﺮﺻﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺩﺍﺀ
ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺔ ،ﻣﻊ ﻣﻴﻠﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩ ﺑﺄﻧﻬﺎ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ.
) (٢ﺏ " :ﺃﻥ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ".
) (٣ﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
)(٥
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻃﻠﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺗﺤﺼﻰ ﺳﻨﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺩﻋﺎ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﺎﻟﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺗﻨﻈﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻗﺎﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﻠﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺜﺮ ،ﻓﺘﺄﺧﺬ ﺃﻭﺳﻄﻬﺎ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻋﺪﻟﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺗﻄﺮﺡ
ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺼﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺎﻟﻲ ،ﺛﻢ ﺗﻄﺮﺡ ﻣﺎ ﺣﺼﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻳﺪﻳﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﺳﻂ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﻦ
ﻋﻤﺮﻩ ]ﻭ[ ﺳﻨﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻡ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻭﻗﺖ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺟﺪﺕ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻓﺴﺮﻧﺎ.
ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺭﻳﺨﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻷﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺔ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺟﻬﻠﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺭﻳﺦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺘﻤﺪﻭﺍ ) (١ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﺾ،
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻊ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻋﻨﺪﻙ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ
ﺃﻭﺿﺤﻨﺎ ﻭﺷﺮﺣﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺃﻗﻞ ﺑﺴﻨﺔ ﺃﻭ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﺑﺴﻨﺔ ،ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺴﻨﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﺛﻼﺙ
ﻭﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻧﻘﺼﺎﻥ
ﻣﺎ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻨﻪ.
- ٥ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺎﺭﻳﺦ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻬﺮ ﺭﻣﻀﺎﻥ *(.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ *) :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻠﻌﻠﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺛﻤﺎﻥ ) (٢ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻗﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ
ﻓﻄﻨﺘﻪ ﻭﺫﻛﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﻟﺒﻪ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﺣﺴﻪ ﻭﺍﻧﻜﺸﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻗﺐ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺭﻳﺦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﻤﺪﻭﺍ ".
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺒﺪﺃ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﻣﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ )(١
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻠﺤﻘﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ.
) (٢ﺡ " :ﺃﻭ ﺛﻤﺎﻥ ".
)(٦
ﺟﺮﺏ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﺎﺗﺢ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﺎﺯﻉ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ ،ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻎ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻧﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﺍﻻﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺷﺎﻫﺪﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻃﺒﺎﻉ ﺍﻷﻃﻔﺎﻝ.
ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺛﻤﺎﻥ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺮﺃﻧﺎﻩ ).(١
ﻭﺑﻠﻐﻨﺎ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ -ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻐﻴﺐ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﻪ -ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻷﻃﻔﺎﻝ،
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺰﻳﻞ ) (٢ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻜﻠﻪ ) (٣ﺑﻠﻌﻞ
ﻭﻋﺴﻰ ،ﻷﻧﺎ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺪﺭﻱ ﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻄﻨﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻌﻠﻪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻧﻘﺺ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ .ﺃﺟﺎﺏ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺏ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺐ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻎ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭ ،ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺠﺮﻯ ﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﺃﺷﻜﺎﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺿﻦ ،ﻭﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﻢ ،ﻭﺭﻳﺎﺿﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺋﺲ.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(٤ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﺀ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﻭﻣﺘﻜﻠﻤﻮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ،
ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺖ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺛﻤﺎﻥ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ
ﻭﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻓﺼﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻬﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺤﺮﺓ
ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺠﻢ ) (٥ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ،ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ ) ،(٦ﻭﻗﻬﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻩ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻥ ﻧﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻧﺰﻳﻞ " .ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﻧﺘﻜﻠﻢ " ﻣﻘﺤﻤﺔ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻔﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺏ ،ﺡ.
) (٣ﺡ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻨﺎﺀ ﺟﻨﺴﻪ ".
) (٤ﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﻓﺼﻞ " ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺒﻴﻪ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺠﻤﻴﻦ " ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺏ ،ﺡ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻠﻪ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(٧
ﺍﻟﻐﻠﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻛﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻳﺐ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻏﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻨﺒﻲ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ
ﻳﻠﺒﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻼﺀ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻤﻴﻞ ﻋﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﻤﺎﺀ ) ،(١ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺎﺋﻊ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ﺑﺎﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ) (٢ﺑﺎﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻑ
ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻯ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺒﻠﻎ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻣﻨﺘﻬﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺶ ،ﻭﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﺇﺣﺪﺍﺛﻪ ﺇﻻ
ﺍﻟﺨﺎﻟﻖ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻮﺣﻴﺪﻩ ﻭﻋﺪﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﻔﻆ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻬﻮﻯ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺮﺍﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺩﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ -ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻧﻪ
ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ ﻣﻊ ﻓﺮﻁ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﺍﺛﺔ ،ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺎﺭﺏ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻤﺎﺭﺳﺔ ،ﺧﺮﻭﺟﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺸﻮﺀ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺗﺮﻛﻴﺐ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ).(٣
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﻴﺔ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ،
ﻭﺁﻳﺔ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﺨﺼﻪ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻭﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ
ﺍﻷﻋﺠﻮﺑﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺠﻌﻠﻬﺎ
ﻗﺎﻃﻌﺔ ﻟﻌﺬﺭ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻫﺪ ،ﻭﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺋﺐ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻀﻴﻌﻬﺎ ﻫﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻳﻜﺘﻤﻬﺎ ) (٤ﺑﺎﻃﻼ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺷﻬﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﺎ ﻭﻛﺸﻒ ﻗﻨﺎﻋﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺣﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺳﺨﺮ ﺍﻷﻟﺴﻨﺔ ﻟﻨﻘﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ ﻻﺩﺭﺍﻛﻬﺎ ،ﻟﺌﻼ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻟﻐﻮﺍ ﺳﺎﻗﻄﺎ ،ﻭﻧﺴﻴﺎ ﻣﻨﺴﻴﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺒﺘﺪﻉ ﺃﻋﺠﻮﺑﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺨﺘﺮﻉ ﺁﻳﺔ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻘﺾ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ﺇﻻ ﻟﻠﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ ﻭﺍﻻﻋﺬﺍﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺼﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﺒﺼﺎﺭ ) .(٥ﻭﻟﻮﻻ
--------------------
) (١ﺩﻫﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺘﻬﻢ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺗﻬﻢ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺪﻫﻢ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ،ﺡ.
) (٢ﺏ ،ﺡ " :ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ".
) (٣ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ،ﺡ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺗﺮﻛﺒﺖ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ".
) (٤ﺏ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﺘﺒﻬﺎ ".
) (٥ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻷﺷﺒﻪ ﺑﻠﻐﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻻﺳﺘﻨﻔﺎﺫ ".
)(٨
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻔﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ،ﻭﻻ ﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺘﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺘﻌﺎﻟﻰ ) (١ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺮﻙ
ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺳﺪﻯ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﻧﺸﺮﺍ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺼﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺻﺪﻕ ﻧﺒﻲ
ﻭﻛﺬﺏ ﻣﺘﻨﺒﺊ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ،ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ
ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻓﺼﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﺧﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻳﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻛﺮﻳﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ) (٢ﺁﺗﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ
ﺻﺒﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻧﻄﻖ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺪ ﺭﺿﻴﻌﺎ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺐ
ﺇﻻ ﻛﺴﺎﺋﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻃﺒﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ ).(٣
ﻓﺈﺫ ) (٤ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻄﻖ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺮﺁﻥ .ﻭﻻ ﺟﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ
ﺍﻟﻘﺎﻃﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺩﻗﺔ ،ﻓﺎﻟﻤﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺐ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ
ﺃﻥ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﻪ ﻛﻄﺒﺎﻉ ﻋﻤﻴﻪ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ) (٥ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺲ ﺑﻤﻌﺪﻥ ﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮ
ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻛﻄﺒﺎﻉ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻭﻋﻘﻴﻞ ﺃﺧﻮﻳﻪ ،ﻭﻛﻄﺒﺎﻉ ﺃﺑﻮﻳﻪ ﻭﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ
ﻭﺳﺎﺩﺓ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻧﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﺧﻴﻪ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺃﻭ ﻟﻌﻤﻪ
ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﺃﻭ ﻟﻌﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﻠﻴﻢ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ -ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ
ﺇﻻ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ *(.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) *) :(٦ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﺗﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻭﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﺫ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ،ﺡ.
) (٣ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻃﺒﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ ،ﺳﺎﻗﻂ ﻣﻦ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺡ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﺡ " :ﻓﺈﺫﺍ " ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٥ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺡ ،ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻃﺒﺎﻉ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻋﻤﻴﻪ ".
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ " ﺹ ٦ﺹ ١٧ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺩ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ
ﺭﻗﻢ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﻧﺼﻮﺻﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﺤﻘﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ.
) (٦ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(٩
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﻯ ،ﻭﻓﺴﺎﺩ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺻﺪﻗﺖ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﻠﺪ ﺭﺟﺎﻟﻬﺎ،
ﻭﺗﺤﻔﻈﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻬﻮﻯ ﻭﺁﺛﺮﺕ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻮﻯ] ،ﺇﻻ ﺑﺘﺮﻙ ) [(١ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺩﻫﺮﻩ ،ﻣﻨﺬ ﻧﺎﺯﻉ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ،
ﻭﺧﺎﺻﻢ ) (٢ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺟﺎﻣﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﺪ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺮﻳﻊ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺍﺩ ) (٣ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺭﺷﺎﺩ ،ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺩﺓ .ﻭﻏﻔﻞ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﻳﺘﺎﺑﻊ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻻﻣﺎﺭﺍﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻻﻻﺕ ) (٤ﻣﻊ ﺣﺎﺟﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﻣﻌﺪﻥ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﺢ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺩﻫﺮﻩ ،ﻓﻬﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺃﻋﺠﺰ ،ﻭﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﺿﻌﻒ.
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻞ ﻧﺎﻗﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ،ﻭﻻ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﺠﻠﺲ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺩﻟﻰ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺍﺛﻘﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻫﻤﺲ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﻣﻮﺍﻓﻖ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺨﺎﻟﻒ.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(٥ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ ﻭﻓﺨﺮ ﺑﻘﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻘﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﺛﺮ ﺑﻤﺤﺎﺳﻨﻪ
ﻭﻣﻮﺍﻗﻔﻪ ،ﻣﻨﺬ ﺟﺎﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﻧﺎﺿﻠﻬﻢ .ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺑﺘﻠﻰ ﺑﻤﺴﺎﻭﺭﺓ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ
ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻃﻤﻌﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺟﻠﻮﺱ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻮﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻀﺪﻩ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ :ﻟﻘﺪ ﻭﻗﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻋﺸﺮﻭﻥ
ﺃﻟﻔﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻣﺎ ﺧﻒ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٢ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺧﺎﻳﺮ ".
) (٣ﺏ " :ﻭﻣﺮﺗﺎﺩ ".
) (٤ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ".
) (٥ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(١٠
ﻋﺸﺮﻭﻥ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ
ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺬﺏ .ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻖ .ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻖ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻟﻒ ﻭﺗﺸﺠﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻓﻖ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﺼﺐ
ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻟﻠﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻠﺨﺎﺫﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﻱ ) ،(١ﻭﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺤﻞ ) (٢ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ
ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻻﻋﺬﺍﺭ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ .ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺘﺎﻟﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﺼﺒﻪ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻣﻔﺰﻋﺎ ﻭﻣﻌﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻧﺺ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻭﺟﺐ
ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(٣ﻭﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻉ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮﻩ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺪﻋﻪ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺴﻜﺮﻩ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺩﻋﺎﻩ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻜﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺪﻳﻖ ) (٤ﻗﺒﻞ ﺑﻠﻮﻏﻪ ﻭﺇﺩﺭﺍﻛﻪ ،ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺁﻳﺔ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺣﺠﺔ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻟﻮﻟﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ
ﺑﺎﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻉ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﺣﺠﺠﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻜﻠﻪ،
ﻭﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺃﺻﻐﺮ ﺣﺠﺠﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺸﺎﺭﻛﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺴﻜﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ
ﻻ ﻳﺄﻟﻮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻓﺮﺍﻁ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻳﺤﺴﺐ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻓﺮﺍﻁ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﻟﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ،ﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻒ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ
ﻭﻳﻮﻡ ﺻﻔﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﻬﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺪﻭﻩ ﺑﻤﺮﺃﻯ ﻭﻣﺴﻤﻊ،
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﻭﻟﻠﻤﻮﻟﻰ ﻭﻟﻠﻤﻌﺎﺩﻱ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺤﻤﻞ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻛﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺪﻳﻖ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(١١
ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺗﺒﺎ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻭﺗﻌﺴﺎ ،ﻛﻴﻒ ﺗﻘﺎﺗﻠﻮﻧﻲ ﻭﺗﺠﺤﺪﻭﻥ ﻓﻀﻠﻰ ) (١ﻭﻗﺪ
ﺧﺼﺼﺖ ﺑﺂﻳﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻛﻴﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻛﺮﻳﺎ ﻭﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ " ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻭﻳﻤﻮﺟﻮﺍ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻣﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﺗﻜﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭ ﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ،
ﻭﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻔﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﺸﺐ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻮﺩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻓﺮﻗﺔ ،ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﺍﻛﺮ ﻗﺪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﺎﺳﻴﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻧﺎﺯﻉ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺼﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻛﻢ ﻣﺘﺮﻧﺢ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﺎﻟﻄﺎ،
ﻣﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺸﻴﻊ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﻓﺎﻕ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻔﻴﺾ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻃﺮﺍﻑ،
ﻭﻳﺤﺘﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﻛﺒﺎﻥ ﻭﻳﺘﻬﺎﺩﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻟﺲ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ *( ﻭﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ
ﻭﻫﺐ ،ﻣﻦ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺃﻟﻒ ﺳﻨﺎﻥ ﻃﺮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﺳﻴﻒ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(٣ﻭﻣﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻭﻱ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺮﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﻓﻴﻦ ﺑﻄﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻻﺗﺒﺎﻉ ).(٤
ﻭﻋﻠﻞ ﺍﻷﺟﻨﺎﺩ ،ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﺎﻛﺮ ﺗﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﻣﺮﺍﺋﺮﻫﺎ ﻭﻳﻨﺘﺸﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺗﻨﻘﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻗﺎﺩﺗﻬﺎ ) (٥ﺑﺄﻳﺴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ .ﻭﺃﺧﻔﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ.
ﻓﺼﻞ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﺎﺣﻒ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﺣﻴﻦ
ﺭﻓﻌﻬﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺳﺘﺒﺼﺎﺭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﺎﻟﻬﻢ،
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻲ ".
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ " ﺱ ١٥ﻣﻦ ﺹ ٩ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ
ﻣﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻧﻲ ﺳﺘﺄﺗﻲ ﺑﺮﻗﻢ ) (٣ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻘﻞ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﻋﺒﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻮﺟﺰﺓ ﻣﺘﺼﺮﻓﺎ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ.
ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ٢٦٣ :٣
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ".
) (٣ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﺼﻨﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻻﺗﺒﺎﻉ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٥ﺏ " :ﻗﺎﺋﺪﻫﺎ ".
)(١٢
ﻧﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪﺓ ،ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ
ﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﻧﺲ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺼﻴﺮﺓ ).(١
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺤﻮﻝ ﺷﻄﺮ ﻋﺴﻜﺮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺍﻋﺘﺰﻟﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ
ﻓﺮﻭﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﻓﻞ ،ﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺳﻤﻌﻮﻫﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﺐ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺿﻌﻒ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺒﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻫﻦ ) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﻣﻊ ﻇﻬﻮﺭﻩ ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺃﻥ ﻧﺤﺸﻮﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻨﺎ.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(٣ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﺪﺙ ﻏﺮﻳﺮ ﻭﻏﻼﻡ ﺻﻐﻴﺮ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ
ﻧﺪﻓﻌﻪ ،ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺗﺄﺩﻳﺐ ﻭﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ .ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ
ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺘﺤﺎﻥ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﻓﺮﻕ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻭﻣﺤﺠﺔ ﻭﺍﺿﺤﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( :ﺇﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﺘﻢ،
ﻭﻻ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻫﻴﺄﺗﻤﻮﻩ ﻷﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ ،ﺑﻞ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺻﺒﺎﻩ
ﻭﺣﺪﺍﺛﺘﻪ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻓﻄﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺰﻳﺔ ) (٥ﺫﻛﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻗﺪﺭ
ﺍﻷﻋﺠﻮﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻵﻳﺔ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺫﻫﺒﺘﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻻﺑﺪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻭﺟﻬﻴﻦ:
ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺰﺍﻝ ﻳﻮﺟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻄﻨﺔ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﺪ ٣٥١ :٤ﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻟﻴﻒ ﺏ " ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺱ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻫﻢ " ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٣ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٤ﺏ " :ﻫﻨﺎﻟﻚ ".
) (٥ﺏ " :ﻭﻣﺰﻳﺪ ".
)(١٣
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻛﺎﺀ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﺰﻳﺰﺍ ﻗﻠﻴﻼ ،ﺃﻭ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺟﻮﺩ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻤﺘﻨﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ
ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺎ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ) (١ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﺟﺪ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺰﺗﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺘﻪ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ
ﻛﺒﻌﺾ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻳﺘﻌﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺴﻪ ﻭﻓﻄﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺣﻔﻈﻪ ﻭﺣﻜﺎﻳﺘﻪ
ﻭﺳﺮﻋﺔ ﻗﺒﻮﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﻐﺮ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺗﺠﺮﻳﺒﻪ ) .(٢ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ،
ﻭﻃﺒﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﺎﻝ ،ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ) (٣ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺻﺒﻴﺎ ﻗﻂ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻓﺮﻁ ﻛﻴﺴﻪ
ﻭﺣﺴﻨﺖ ﻓﻄﻨﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻋﺠﺐ ]ﺑﻪ ) [(٤ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻭﻻﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻤﻴﻴﺰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺟﺎﺀﻧﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺻﺢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﺎ
ﺑﺨﺒﺮ ﺻﺎﺩﻕ ،ﻭﻻ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﻧﺎﻃﻖ ،ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺻﺒﺎﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺗﻘﺎﻥ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻭﺟﻮﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﺭﺝ ،ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻻﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺧﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﺃﻋﻤﺎﻣﻪ ﻭﺁﺑﺎﺋﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻛﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ
ﻟﻪ ]ﻓﻴﻪ ) [(٤ﻣﺜﻼ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻟﻪ ﺷﻜﻼ -ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﻳﻊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻪ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻜﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻳﻔﻠﺞ ) (٥ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﺿﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻳﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﺘﺮﺷﺪﻳﻦ -ﻓﻬﺬﺍ
ﺑﺎﺏ ﻗﺪ ﻓﺮﻏﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺮﺓ.
ﻓﺼﻞ :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ) (٦ﻟﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺠﺔ
ﻟﻠﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺳﺎﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ .ﻭﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻟﻠﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻥ " ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٢ﺏ " :ﺗﺠﺮﺑﺘﻪ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻧﺎ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
)(٤
) (٥ﻓﻠﺞ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻓﻠﺞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﻓﻠﺞ :ﻓﺎﺯ ﻭﻇﻔﺮ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﻳﻔﻠﺢ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٦ﺏ " :ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ".
)(١٤
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ﻟﻬﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﻭﺿﻮﺡ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ) (١ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻼﻣﺎﻡ
ﻭﻳﺰﻳﺪﻩ ﺇﺷﺮﺍﻗﺎ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻨﺎﺭﺓ ) (٢ﻭﺑﻴﺎﻧﺎ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﻋﺼﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺪﺍﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻭﻥ ﺛﻢ ﻳﺴﻘﻂ ).(٣
ﺣﺠﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻼ ﺗﺨﻠﻮ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻭﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺿﺮﺑﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ
ﺿﺎﻋﺖ ﻭﺿﻠﺖ ،ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﻭﻇﻬﺮﺕ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻗﺪ ﺿﺎﻋﺖ ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻗﺪ ﺿﺎﻉ ﻣﻌﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻗﻲ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻤﺎﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻗﻂ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﻗﻂ
ﻣﻦ ﺷﻜﻞ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﺑﺖ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻗﻂ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﺑﺖ ﻷﻧﻪ
ﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﻴﺌﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺎﺑﺖ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻗﻂ ﻣﻦ
ﺿﺮﺑﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺩ ﺗﻤﺎﻣﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻩ.
ﻭﺃﻱ ﺫﻳﻦ ]ﻛﺎﻥ ) [(٤ﻓﻔﺴﺎﺩﻩ ﻭﺍﺿﺢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻗﺎﺭﺉ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺗﻤﺖ ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ
ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ )] (٥ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ) [(٦ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻧﻲ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻳﻜﺎﺑﺮ ﻋﻘﻠﻪ ﻭﻳﺠﺤﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﺇﻧﺎ ﻟﻨﺠﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻮ ﻟﻘﻨﺘﻪ ﻭﺳﺪﺩﺗﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻟﻪ
ﺃﻏﻤﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻧﻲ ﻭﺃﻟﻄﻔﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻏﻮﺹ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺞ ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﺎ ﻟﻔﻈﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﻳﺮﻯ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﺳﺘﺜﺎﺭﺓ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﺏ " :ﺃﺳﻘﻂ ".
) (٤ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ
) (٦ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ
)(١٥
ﻭﺃﻟﻄﻔﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻃﻮﻟﻬﺎ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺬﺗﻪ ﺑﺪﺭﺳﻪ ﻭﺣﻔﻈﻪ ﻟﺤﻔﻈﻪ ﺣﻔﻈﺎ ﻋﺠﻴﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻬﺬﻩ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺫﻟﻴﻘﺎ ) .(١ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻘﻴﻤﻪ ،ﻭﺣﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻃﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻓﺼﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﺮﺍﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻳﺆﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺪﻭﻋﻮﻥ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺤﻔﻆ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺩﻋﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺗﺄﺗﻰ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺭﻓﻖ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺣﺮ .ﻭﺧﻼﺑﺔ
ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻨﺒﺊ ،ﻭﺯﺟﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻫﻦ ) (٣ﻭﺇﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻧﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ
ﻭﺗﺄﻟﻴﻔﻪ ﻭﻧﻈﻢ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺗﺄﻟﻴﻔﻪ -ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻓﺮﻭﻕ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ
ﺍﻟﺒﺤﺚ ) (٤ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﻴﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺟﺮ ) ،(٥ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺨﻤﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﺳﺠﺎﻉ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺰﺍﻭﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺜﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﺋﻞ ،ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﺽ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺍﺭﺗﻔﺎﻋﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﻮ ﺻﻔﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺬﺍﺕ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺻﻨﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻟﻴﻒ ﻋﺮﻑ ﻣﺒﺎﻳﻨﺔ ﻧﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻟﺴﺎﺋﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ،
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﺘﻒ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻋﺠﺰﻩ ﻭﻋﺠﺰ ﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ ﺣﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻴﻌﻲ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺗﻔﺎﻭﺗﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﺽ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﻮﺟﺪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺻﺒﻲ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺛﻤﺎﻥ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ
ﺃﺑﺪﺍ ،ﻋﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﺎﺭﻑ ﺃﻭ ﺟﻬﻠﻪ ﺟﺎﻫﻞ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻋﺎﺭﻑ
ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﻍ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﻩ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﺟﺎﻋﻞ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺬﻟﻴﻖ :ﺍﻟﻔﺼﻴﺢ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﻟﻬﺪﻩ ﻫﺪﺍ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻫﺬﺍ :ﺳﺮﺩﻩ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺭﺟﻞ :ﻗﺮﺃﺕ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺼﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻠﺔ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﺃﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻬﺬ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﺎﻧﻰ " ﺑﺈﻫﻤﺎﻝ ﺃﻭﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺏ " ﻭﻳﺄﺗﻲ " ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ .ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﻷﺻﻤﻌﻲ :ﺗﺄﺗﻰ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻟﺤﺎﺟﺘﻪ .ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺮﻓﻖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﺗﺎﻫﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺟﻬﻬﺎ.
) (٣ﺏ " :ﺍﻟﻜﻬﺎﻥ ".
) (٤ﺏ " :ﻓﺮﻭﻕ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﻢ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﺍﻟﺒﺤﺚ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺜﺮ ".
) (٥ﺍﻟﺰﺟﺮ ،ﻭﺍﺿﺤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ .ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺯﺟﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻫﻦ ،ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻃﺮﻓﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ .ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺟﺮ ﻳﻠﺘﺒﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﻌﺮ.
)(١٦
ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻠﻴﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺸﻮ ﻭﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻵﺑﺎﺀ ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮﺍﺀ ،ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﻳﻘﻴﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻘﻴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺏ ﻭﺩﺧﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﺝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻭﺭﻭﺩ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻲ ﻟﻌﻞ ﻭﻋﺴﻰ ،ﻭﻣﺎ
ﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ ﺗﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻴﻦ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﻮﻳﺰ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﻋﻴﺎﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺹ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ
ﺍﻟﻜﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺩﺏ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺑﺎﻟﻄﻔﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﻐﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﺙ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﻳﺮ؟! ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻚ
ﻟﻮ ﺃﺩﺭﺕ ) (٢ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﺖ ﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺫﻛﻰ ﺻﺒﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ
ﻭﺃﺳﺮﻋﻪ ﻗﺒﻮﻻ ﻭﺃﺣﺴﻨﻪ ﺣﻜﺎﻳﺔ ﻭﺑﻴﺎﻧﺎ ) ،(٣ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻮﻳﺘﻪ ]ﻟﻪ ) [(٤ﻭﺩﻟﻠﺘﻪ،
ﻭﻗﺮﺑﺘﻪ ]ﻣﻨﻪ[ ﻭﻛﻔﻴﺘﻪ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻳﺔ ﻭﻭﺣﺸﺔ ) (٥ﺍﻟﻔﻜﺮﺓ .ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ
ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻓﺼﻞ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻃﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ﻭﺷﺒﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻟﻰ ﻟﺘﺠﺮﺑﺘﻪ ) (٦ﻭﺣﻞ ﻋﻘﺪﻩ،
ﻭﺗﺨﻠﻴﺺ ﻣﺘﺸﺎﺑﻬﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺜﺎﺭﺗﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﺪﻧﻪ؟!
ﻭﻛﻞ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺭﺟﻴﻊ ﺑﻬﺮﺝ ،ﻭﻟﻐﻮ ﺳﺎﻗﻂ.
ﻓﺼﻞ ) :(٧ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻛﻲ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻭﺽ ﻭﺟﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺤﻮ
ﺻﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺋﺾ ﺃﺑﻮﺍﺑﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﺃﺻﻮﺍﺗﺎ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﺄﺻﻮﻝ
ﺍﻷﺩﻳﺎﻥ ﻭﻣﺨﺎﺭﺝ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻞ ،ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺤﻔﻆ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﻉ ،ﻭﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﻮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻜﺮ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﺏ " :ﺃﺭﺩﺕ " ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻣﺒﻬﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻭﺗﻮﺿﻴﺤﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺣﺜﺒﺘﻪ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﺤﺮﺛﻪ " ﻭﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٧ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(١٧
ﺍﻻﺷﻜﺎﻝ ) (١ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻮﺟﻮﺩﺍ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺤﺸﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻐﺎﻡ )(٢
ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻢ ﺃﺩﺍﺓ ﻟﻠﻘﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺟﻮﺍﺭﺡ ﻟﻠﺴﺎﺩﺓ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ
ﺃﺻﻮﻝ ﺍﻷﺩﻳﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻋﺠﻤﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻚ ) (٣ﻓﻲ ﻣﻀﺎﻳﻘﻪ ،ﻭﺟﺎﺛﻲ
ﺍﻷﺿﺪﺍﺩ ) ،(٤ﻭﻧﺎﺯﻉ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ ).(٥
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ( :ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍ ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻨﺎ ،ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ) (٦ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻹﺟﺎﺑﺔ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻣﺠﻴﺐ ﻟﻠﺪﻋﺎﺀ .ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻜﻴﻢ ﻟﻤﺪﻋﻮ )(٧
ﻻ ﻳﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﻭﻻ ﺗﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻓﻄﺮﺗﻪ ﺗﻤﻴﻴﺰ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
ﻣﺎ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ :ﺩﻋﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻓﻼﻧﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ) (٨ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ :ﻛﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻼﻧﺎ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﺮﻕ .ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ :ﺩﻋﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻛﻘﻮﻟﻬﻢ (٩) :ﺩﻋﺎ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻓﻤﻦ ﻣﺠﻴﺐ ﻃﺎﺋﻊ ﻛﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻣﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻋﺎﺹ
ﻛﻔﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺗﻘﺮﻳﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻜﺎﻝ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٢ﺣﺸﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻀﻢ :ﺭﺫﺍﻟﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻄﻐﺎﻡ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﺢ.
) (٣ﺏ " :ﻭﺳﺎﻝ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﺏ " :ﻭﺣﺎﺛﻰ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﺟﺎﺛﺎﻩ :ﺟﻠﺲ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﻛﺒﺘﻴﻪ ﻟﻠﺨﺼﻮﻣﺔ.
) (٥ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻳﻨﺘﻬﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ ﺏ ﻭﺗﻨﻔﺮﺩ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻧﻨﺒﻪ
ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻥ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ".
) (٧ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﺪﻋﻮ ".
) (٨ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ :ﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﻓﺮﻕ " ﻭﻫﻰ ﻣﻘﺤﻤﺔ.
) (٩ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ....ﻛﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
)(١٨
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ :ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻧﻘﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ .ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﺍﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻓﺮﻕ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﻔﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻓﺴﺮ
ﻣﻊ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﺨﺮﺝ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ﺃﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻧﺮ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻴﺰ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻭﻻ ﻓﺮﻗﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ .ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺪﻉ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ﻭﺗﻤﻴﻴﺰ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﻧﻈﺮﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺭﻳﺦ ﻓﻌﺮﻓﻨﺎ
ﻋﻤﺮﻩ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﻓﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻋﻬﻢ،
ﻓﺄﺧﺬﻧﺎ ﺃﻭﺳﻄﻪ ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﺪﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻘﻄﻨﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺜﺮ ﻭﻗﻠﻞ،
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻟﻘﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺳﻨﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﺎﻡ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻓﻮﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻮﺟﺐ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﺳﺒﻊ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﺧﺬﻧﺎ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺜﺮ ﻓﺠﻌﻠﻨﺎﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ،ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻨﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﻠﻞ ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﺼﺪ ،ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ
ﻭﺗﺄﺩﻳﺐ ﻭﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺄﺧﺬﻭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻭﻻﺩﻫﻢ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﻟﻠﻌﻠﻮﻳﺔ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺪﻉ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ
ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺒﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻔﺴﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺗﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﺴﺘﻨﺒﻂ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﺒﺎﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻣﺴﺘﺨﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺁﺛﺎﺭﻫﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺑﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ .ﻭﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺮﺟﻞ :ﺧﺬ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ
ﻛﻘﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺧﺬ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ " ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺳﻤﺎﻫﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﺎ ﺑﻠﺴﺎﻧﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻨﺎ ﺍﻻﺧﺬ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺴﻂ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺪﻝ ﻷﺧﺬﻧﺎ
ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮﻩ ﻭﺑﻘﻮﻝ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻴﻦ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﻭﻥ :ﺑﻞ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺛﻤﺎﻥ
)(١٩
ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻴﻦ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ) (١ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﻭﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﺧﻤﺲ ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺖ .ﻭﻫﻢ ﻻ ﻳﺄﻟﻮﻥ ،ﻣﺎ ﻧﻘﺼﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻩ ﻭﺻﻐﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ
ﺳﻨﻪ ﻟﻜﻲ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺁﻳﺔ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ ﺧﺒﺮﻫﻢ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻫﺒﺘﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺍﻋﺘﺼﻤﺘﻢ
ﺑﻪ ﻣﺘﻌﻠﻘﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﺣﺎﻣﻞ ﺧﺒﺮ ) (٢ﻭﻻ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺃﺛﺮ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺘﻠﻘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﻣﺴﺘﺨﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ( :ﺑﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻨﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻓﻨﻔﺲ
ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻫﻮ ﻛﻘﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻔﺮ
ﻓﻼﻥ :ﻓﻬﻮ ﻛﻘﻮﻟﻬﻢ :ﻋﺼﺎ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺴﺮﻭﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻛﻔﺮ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻓﺮﻕ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺩﻕ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻛﻔﺮ ﻓﻼﻥ
ﻓﺤﻜﻤﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ) (٣ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ
ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺒﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻻﻳﺔ :ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺣﻜﻢ " ﺃﺳﻠﻢ " ﻳﺜﺒﺖ
ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻭﺇﺟﺎﺑﺔ ﺍﻟﻮﻻﻳﺔ .ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻠﻘﻴﻦ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ .ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﻣﻄﻴﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ .ﻣﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻔﺮ ﻓﻼﻥ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺻﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﺣﺘﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ".
)(٢٠
ﻳﺠﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺇﻛﺮﺍﻩ ﺃﻭ ﻏﻠﻂ ﺃﻭ ﻫﻴﺞ ﻣﺮﺓ ،ﺃﻭ ﻫﺠﺮ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺋﻢ ) (١ﺃﻭ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺩﺏ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻗﻴﺎﺳﺎ ﻣﻮﺟﺒﺎ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻻﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺑﻬﺎ
ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻃﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ.
ﻓﻴﺠﺐ ﺃﻻ ﻧﺰﻳﻞ ﺣﻜﻢ " ﺃﺳﻠﻢ " ﺇﻻ ﺑﺈﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ
ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻟﻌﻤﺮﻱ ﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﺎ ﻫﻨﺎ ﺇﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﻧﺸﻮ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻜﻢ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ،ﻻ ﺗﺠﺤﺪﻭﻥ
ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺗﻈﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ ﻛﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﺄﺧﺬﻧﺎ ﺑﺄﻭﺳﻄﻬﺎ ﻧﻘﺼﻮﺍ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﺳﻨﻴﻪ ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﺧﺬﻧﺎ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺜﺮ ﻭﺑﺨﺴﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﺣﻈﻪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ .ﻓﺒﻬﻢ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ
ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﺑﻬﻢ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺻﻐﺮ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻭﺣﺪﺍﺛﺘﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻰ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﺘﺎﺏ ﺇﻥ ﻛﻔﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻼﻡ
ﺇﻥ ﺟﻬﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﺬﺏ ﺇﻥ ﺿﻴﻊ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﺃﻭ ﺳﺖ ﺃﻭ ﺛﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻭ ﺳﺒﻊ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﻓﻮﺍﻫﻬﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ﺇﻥ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﻛﻔﺮ
ﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ -ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻩ ] -ﺣﻜﻢ ) [(٣ﺑﺎﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﺛﻤﺎﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺠﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺋﻢ ﻫﺠﺮﺍ :ﺣﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﺬﻯ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﻔﻠﻮﺍ ".
) (٣ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻭﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﻘﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
)(٢١
ﺃﻭ ﺗﺴﻊ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺇﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻩ ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﺘﻔﻮﻩ ﺑﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ،ﺣﺬﻭ ﺍﻟﻘﺬﺓ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺬﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻌﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻌﻞ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺃﻥ
ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﻓﺈﺳﻼﻡ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﻀﺐ ) (١ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻐﺬ ﺑﻪ ) (٢ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻮﺩﻩ ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﻤﺮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺷﺊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺪ ﺭﺑﻰ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻧﺸﺄ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺣﺒﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺧﺒﺎﺑﺎ ﻭﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻳﻌﺎﻧﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻜﺮ ﻭﻳﺘﺨﻠﺼﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ،
ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻘﻂ ﺇﻟﻔﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺭ
ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻬﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻭﺭﺛﻪ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻛﻔﺎﻩ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﺝ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ )،(٣
ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻭﺟﻮﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ.
ﻓﺼﻞ *) :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﺘﻀﺒﺎ ) (٤ﻛﺰﻳﺪ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻟﻴﺒﻠﻎ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﻳﻜﻔﻲ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻴﻦ:
ﺇﺣﺪﺍﻫﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻐﺮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺮﻯ ﺷﺪﺓ ﻓﺮﺍﻕ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﺑﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ،
ﻭﻧﺰﺍﻉ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻴﻌﺔ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺓ ﺍﻻﻋﻼﻡ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ،
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺭﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ ﻓﺎﻻﻋﻼﻡ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻧﻜﺸﺎﻓﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﻃﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﺃﻗﻞ
ﺍﻋﺘﻼﺟﺎ .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻔﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﺒﻬﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﺨﻼﻑ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻃﺮﺓ ﺑﺎﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻳﻌﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﺍﻻﺟﺮ *(.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﻀﺐ :ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻬﺊ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺪ ﻟﻠﺸﺊ.
) (٢ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻂ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺗﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺘﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﻦ ﻓﻘﻂ.
) (٣ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﺝ :ﺍﻻﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺨﻼﺝ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺡ " ﻋﻼﺝ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ ".
) (٤ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺷﻴﺔ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻰ.
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ " ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﻣﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺳﺘﺄﺗﻲ
ﺑﺮﻗﻢ ).(٤
)(٢٢
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ ﻣﺪﺭﻛﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺇﺩﺭﺍﻛﻪ ﻭﺑﻠﻮﻏﻪ
ﻛﻬﻼ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﻛﻬﻮﻟﺘﻪ ﻣﻘﺘﻀﺒﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻇﻬﺮﺍ ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﺭﺩﺀﺍ
ﻛﺒﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻌﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻛﺎﻟﺤﻠﻴﻒ ﻭﻻ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻟﻰ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺰﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺽ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ) (١ﻭﻗﺎﻃﻨﻲ
ﻣﻜﺔ] .ﺃ[ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﺭﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﺫﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺣﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ؟! ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻣﻨﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻷﺳﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺰﻭﻣﻲ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﺭﺕ
ﺑﻨﻮ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﻣﻊ ﺧﻴﻼﺋﻬﺎ ) (٢ﻭﻋﺮﺍﻡ ﺷﺒﺎﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻊ ﻋﺰﻫﺎ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻬﺎ
ﺃﻥ ﺗﺤﺺ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺷﻌﺮﺓ ) (٣ﻭﻻ ﺗﺴﻤﻌﻪ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻣﺸﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﺎ،
ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ) (٤ﺗﺮﻯ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﻟﻪ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻴﻚ
ﻗﺪ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺘﻨﺎ ﻭﺳﻔﻪ ﺃﺣﻼﻣﻨﺎ ﻭﺷﺘﻢ ﺁﻟﻬﺘﻨﺎ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻣﻨﻌﺘﻪ ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻝ
ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻨﺎ )(٥؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻨﻊ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﺘﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻨﻊ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻴﻪ!
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻻ ﻳﻘﺪﺭﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﺘﻪ
ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﺃﻋﺠﺰ ،ﻭﻋﻨﻪ ﺃﻗﻌﺪ ،ﻭﻟﻪ ﺃﻋﻔﻰ ) ،(٦ﻭﻫﻮ ﻻﺑﻨﻪ ﺃﺣﻀﺮ
ﻧﺼﺮﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﻏﻀﺒﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺣﻤﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻨﻮﻉ ﻛﺎﻟﻤﺨﺬﻭﻝ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻒ
--------------------
) (١ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺿﻬﻢ .ﺃﻱ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﻈﻤﻬﻢ ﻭﺟﻤﻬﻮﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺁﺳﺔ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﺨﻴﻼﺀ :ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮ .ﻭﺑﻨﻮ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﻮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻴﻪ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ ،٧٠ :٦
.٧٢ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺣﻴﻼﺗﻬﺎ "؟؟ ﺑﺈﻫﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻓﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ.
) (٣ﺣﺺ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮ :ﺃﺫﻫﺒﻪ ﺃﻭ ﺣﻠﻘﻪ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻫﺎ ﺑﺎﻝ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻨﺎ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :٢٤٤ﻓﻤﺎ ﻟﻚ ﻭﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻨﺎ ﺗﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﻣﻨﺎ ".
) (٦ﺭﺳﻤﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﺍﻋﻔﺎ ".
)(٢٣
ﻛﺎﻟﻘﻮﻯ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﻵﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻟﺨﺎﺋﻒ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻘﺎﺕ .ﻭﺭﺗﺒﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻝ،
ﻭﻧﺰﻟﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻻﺕ ،ﻓﺈﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺳﻘﻄﺖ
ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻋﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺭﺗﻔﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻣﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻬﻢ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻨﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻨﻊ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﻆ
ﺑﺼﺤﺒﺘﻨﺎ ،ﻟﻔﺮﻁ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺎﻳﻦ ﻭﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻕ.
ﻓﺼﻞ :ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺯﻳﺪ
ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺬﻛﻮﺭ ﺑﻌﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﺰﻥ ﺑﻤﺎﻝ ) (١ﻭﻻ ﻣﻐﺸﻰ
ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻠﺲ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﺰﻭﺭ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻞ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﺒﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ
ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﺭﻭﺍﻫﺎ ﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﺒﻬﺎ ﻭﻣﺜﺎﻟﺒﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻋﺮﻓﻬﺎ
ﺑﺨﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﻭﺷﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﺤﺴﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺳﻦ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ
ﻭﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﺗﺤﺎﻛﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮﺍﺀ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻬﺠﻮ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ،ﻭﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ " :ﺍﻫﺠﻬﻢ ﻭﻣﻌﻚ ﺭﻭﺡ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺱ ".
ﻭﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻫﻴﺞ ﺍﻟﻐﻄﺎﺭﻳﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ -ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺯﻳﻬﺮ )- (٢
ﻭﺍﻟﻖ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻬﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﺤﻴﺎﻧﻲ :ﺃﺯﻧﻨﺘﻪ ﺑﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺑﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺑﺨﻴﺮ ،ﺃﻱ ﻇﻨﻨﺘﻪ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﻐﻄﺎﺭﻳﻒ " :ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻻﺷﺮﺍﻑ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻧﺴﺦ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ):(٢٧٣ :١
" ﺍﻫﺞ ﺍﻟﻐﻄﺎﺭﻳﻒ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﺎ ﻭﻫﻰ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ )ﻩ( ﻣﻄﺎﺑﻖ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻫﻨﺎ .ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﺪﺓ " ١٢ :١ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺤﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ :ﺍﻫﺠﻬﻢ -ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ -ﻓﻮﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﺠﺎﺅﻙ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ
ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻗﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﺎﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻠﺲ ﺍﻟﻈﻼﻡ ،ﺍﻫﺠﻬﻢ ﻭﻣﻌﻚ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﺭﻭﺡ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺱ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻖ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻚ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻬﻨﺎﺕ ".
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺯﻳﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻭﺳﻲ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺰﻭﺝ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ،ﺛﻢ
ﺃﻣﺴﻜﻬﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﺯﻳﻬﺮ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﻮﺕ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻄﻠﺒﻮﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺃﺯﻳﻬﺮ ﺑﻌﻘﺮﻩ -ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻘﺮ :ﺩﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺼﻮﺏ -ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻨﺘﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺰﻭﺟﻬﺎ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ،ﻓﻌﺪﺍ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ =
)(٢٤
ﻓﺼﻞ :ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻄﻌﻢ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻟﻰ ﻟﺘﺄﺩﻳﺒﻪ ﻭﺗﺜﻘﻴﻔﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻰ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻟﻪ ).(١
ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺃﺛﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
)* ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ،ﺫﺍ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﻋﺮﻳﺾ ) ،(٢ﻭﺗﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﺳﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻼ ﻋﺘﻴﻘﺎ ) ،(٣ﻭﻣﺰﻭﺭﺍ ﻣﻐﺸﻴﺎ،
ﻭﻣﺤﺒﺒﺎ ﺃﺩﻳﺒﺎ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺿﻴﺎﻓﺎﺕ ) ،(٤ﻭﻳﻌﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﺎﻻﺕ ،ﻭﻳﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺠﻠﺴﻪ
ﻛﺒﺮﺍﺀ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﻳﺠﺪﻭﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺮﻳﻒ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﻏﺮﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮ،
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻭﺷﻴﺒﺔ ) (٥ﻳﺠﻠﺴﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻌﺠﺒﺎﻥ ﺑﺤﺪﻳﺜﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻳﺘﺨﺬ
ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﺤﺪﺛﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻄﻮﻝ ﻣﺠﻠﺴﻬﻢ ﺑﻪ ،ﻣﻦ ﺷﺮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺐ
--------------------
= ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺯﻳﻬﺮ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺑﺴﻮﻕ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﺯ ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻪ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٢٧٥ - ٢٧٣ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ
ﻗﺪ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻓﺠﻤﻊ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻟﻴﺜﺄﺭ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺃﺯﺑﻬﺮ ﺟﺎﺭ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ .ﻓﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﺿﺮﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻌﻴﺮ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ،
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﻬﺰﺓ ﻟﺤﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﻳﺤﺮﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺯﻳﻬﺮ ﻭﻳﻌﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺧﻔﺮﺗﻪ ﻭﺗﺠﺒﻨﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻏﺪﺍ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺿﻮﺟﻰ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﺯ ﻛﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ * ﻭﺟﺎﺭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻐﻤﺲ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻐﺪﻭ
ﻛﺴﺎﻙ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺛﻴﺎﺑﻪ * ﻓﺄﺑﻞ ﻭﺃﺧﻠﻖ ﻣﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﺟﺪﺩﺍ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﻗﻀﻰ ﻭﻃﺮﺍ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻓﺄﺻﺒﺢ ﻣﺎﺟﺪﺍ * ﻭﺃﺻﺒﺤﺖ ﺭﺧﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺨﺐ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﺪﻭ
ﻓﻠﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺷﻴﺎﺧﺎ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ﺗﺸﺎﻫﺪﻭﺍ * ﻟﺒﻞ ﻧﻌﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﻌﺘﺒﻂ ﻭﺭﺩ
ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﻧﺴﺐ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ .٣٢٣
) (١ﺃﻱ ﺳﻤﺎﻫﺎ ﻟﺘﻜﻮﻥ ﺯﻭﺟﺔ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻋﺪﻩ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٧٠١ﻗﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ:
" ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﺬﻛﺮ ﻟﺠﺒﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻄﻌﻢ ﻭﺗﺴﻤﻰ ﻟﻪ " ﻭ " ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﻋﻄﻴﺘﻬﺎ ﻣﻄﻌﻤﺎ
ﻻﺑﻨﻪ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ :ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻮﺟﻪ ﻭﻭﺟﻴﻪ :ﺫﻭ ﺟﺎﻩ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﻌﺘﻴﻖ :ﺍﻟﻜﺮﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺋﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﺷﺊ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺻﺎﻓﺎﺕ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٥ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻭﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﺍﺑﻨﺎ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ .ﺃﻣﺎ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻓﻘﺘﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻗﺘﻠﻪ
ﺣﻤﺰﺓ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻪ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ .ﻭﺫﻓﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ .ﻣﻐﺎﺯﻯ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﺪﻱ .١١٣
)(٢٥
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺒﻦ ) ،(١ﻓﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻣﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺗﺮﻳﺪ
ﺗﻨﻔﻴﺮ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺠﻠﺴﻪ ﻭﺇﻳﺤﺎﺷﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻣﺨﺎﻓﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﻤﻴﻠﻪ ﺑﺤﺴﻦ
ﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﺗﺄﺗﻴﻪ ﻭﺭﻓﻘﻪ ،ﻭﺭﻗﺔ ﺩﻣﻮﻋﻪ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺧﺸﻮﻋﻪ ﻓﺘﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺇﻧﻚ
ﻣﺎ ﺗﺄﺗﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻟﻄﻴﺐ ﻋﺴﻠﻪ ﻭﺇﻻ ﻟﻤﺬﻗﺘﻪ ) ،(٢ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻧﻔﺮﻭﻩ
ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻋﻴﺎﻝ ﻣﻤﻠﻘﺎ ﺛﻘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻭﻧﺔ ،ﺧﻔﻴﻒ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻴﺪ،
ﻣﻊ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻭﺳﺆﺩﺩﻩ ﻭﺣﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﺭﺃﻳﻪ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﻴﺴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺪﺛﺮ ،ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻔﻖ ﺣﺮﻳﺮﺓ ﻛﺴﺒﻪ ﻭﻋﻘﻴﻠﺔ
ﻣﻠﻜﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻔﺮﻕ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺟﻤﻌﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺣﺶ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺃﻧﻴﺴﻪ .ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺭﺝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ
ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺔ ﻭﻋﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﻗﺔ ،ﻭﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻻ ﺣﺮﺍﻙ ﺑﻪ
ﻭﻻ ﺟﺪﺍ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﺗﺎﺑﻊ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺘﺒﻮﻉ ،ﻭﻣﺴﺘﺠﺪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺠﺪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺷﺪ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺒﺘﻠﻰ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺮﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﺐ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﻴﺒﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺴﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻴﺴﺮ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﺍﻷﺩﻳﺐ ﺍﻷﺭﻳﺐ ،ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﺴﺪﻳﺪ،
ﻭﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺩﺍﻋﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻋﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻣﻘﺒﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ،ﻣﺘﺒﻮﻉ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ .ﻭﻣﻦ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺎﻟﺨﻮﻑ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺷﺪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺳﺮﻉ ،ﻷﻧﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻬﺮﻫﺎ ﻋﺪﻭ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺘﻠﻮﻩ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻜﻠﻒ .ﻭﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻳﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﻳﻜﻠﻒ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻦ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺷﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻴﺔ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻗﺔ :ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻔﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﺒﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﺑﻖ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﺰﻭﺝ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺎﺀ.
)(٢٦
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻜﻬﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺤﺴﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻣﻄﺎﻟﺒﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻃﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺜﺄﺭ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﺙ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﻔﻲ ﺑﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﻠﺔ،
ﻭﻻ ﺗﺴﺘﺠﻴﺰ ﻣﺠﺎﺯﺍﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻴﺔ *(.
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻠﻘﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺑﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻉ ) (١ﺁﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺮﺏ ﺭﺧﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻝ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺩﻋﺎ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﻓﺄﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻣﻀﻰ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺧﺬﻟﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﺗﻴﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺧﺬﻫﻤﺎ ﻧﻮﻓﻞ ﺑﻦ
ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﺪ ) - (٢ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ) (٣ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻴﺎﻃﻴﻦ
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﺪﻱ ) (٤ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻠﻘﺐ ﺃﺳﺪ ) (٥ﻗﺮﻳﺶ،
--------------------
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ " ﺹ ٢٥ﺱ ٤ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺩ
ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﺑﺮﻗﻢ ) (٥ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﺼﺮﻑ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺑﺎﻻﻳﺠﺎﺯ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﻳﺪ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ .٢٦٦ :٣
) (٢ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻉ :ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻝ ،ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺬﺭﻉ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٢ﻧﻮﻓﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ ﺑﻦ ﻗﺼﻲ .ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ:
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻟﻘﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺒﻴﻊ ﻭﻧﻮﻓﻞ * ﻭﻛﻞ ﺗﻮﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﺿﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺎﻣﻞ
ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .١٧٧ - ١٧٥ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺸﺮﻛﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻭﻗﻌﺔ ﺑﺪﺭ .ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ.
ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ،٥٠٨ﻭﻣﻐﺎﺯﻱ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﺪﻱ .١١٤ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺰﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻬﺮﺓ " :١١١ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ".
) (٣ﻫﻮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺷﻴﺦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﺯﻱ .ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .١٥١ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ
ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ﻻﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .١٧ - ٨ :١
) (٤ﻫﻮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻭﺍﻗﺪ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﺪﻱ .ﻭﻟﺪ ﺳﻨﺔ ١٣٠ﻭﻭﻻﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﻣﻮﻥ
ﺍﻟﻘﻀﺎﺀ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺴﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ ٢٠٧ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ ،ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ .٢١ - ١٧ :١
) (٥ﻟﻢ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﻭﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﺃﺳﻨﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺇﺛﺒﺎﺗﻬﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻬﺮﺓ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻻﺑﻦ ﺣﺰﻡ ،١١١ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻨﻮﻓﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ :ﺃﺳﺪ
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﺒﻴﻦ .ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ
ﺃﻛﻔﻨﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭﻳﺔ! ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻧﻮﻓﻼ ".
)(٢٧
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭﻳﺔ -ﻓﻘﺮﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺒﻞ .ﻭﻓﺘﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻤﺎ
ﻭﻋﺬﺑﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﺳﻤﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ " ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻳﻨﻴﻦ ".
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﻋﺘﻮﺭﻩ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺟﺌﺘﻜﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﺑﺢ!! ) " (١ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻳﻠﻜﻢ ،ﺃﺗﻘﺘﻠﻮﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺭﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ! ﻓﺼﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﻓﻮﺩﻯ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ.
)* * ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﺎﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺟﻤﺢ،
ﻭﺣﻴﺚ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ﺃﺭﻳﺪ ﺟﺎﺭﺍ ﺳﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﺍ
ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻟﻪ ﺻﻮﺕ ﺭﻗﻴﻖ ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﻋﺘﻴﻖ،
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺮﺃ ﻭﺑﻜﻰ ،ﻭﻗﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﻴﺪ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﻭﺫﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺑﻠﻎ ﺟﻬﺪﻩ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ،
ﻓﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻪ ،ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻓﺘﻠﻘﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﺎﻧﻲ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻷﺣﺎﺑﻴﺶ ) ،(٣ﻓﻌﻘﺪ ﻟﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﺇﻧﺬﺍﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻼﻙ .ﺟﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ١٨٣ﻓﻲ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ:
" ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺍﺳﺘﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻛﻦ ﺛﻢ ﻣﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻃﺎﺋﻔﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻴﺖ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻣﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻏﻤﺰﻭﻩ ﺑﺒﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻌﺮﻓﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺛﻢ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻣﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻏﻤﺰﻭﻩ ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﻓﻌﺮﻓﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﺛﻢ ﻣﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻟﺜﺔ ﻓﻐﻤﺰﻭﻩ
ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻮﻗﻒ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺗﺴﻤﻌﻮﻥ ﻳﺎ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺟﺌﺘﻜﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﺑﺢ!
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺄﺧﺬﺕ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻛﻠﻤﺘﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺇﻻ ﻟﻜﺄﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﻃﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻗﻊ ".
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ١٠٤ :١ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺎﺑﻪ ﻟﻠﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ:
" ﺃﺑﺸﺮﻭﺍ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺰ ﻭﺟﻞ ﻣﻈﻬﺮ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺘﻢ ﻛﻠﻤﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺻﺮ ﻧﺒﻴﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺗﺮﻭﻥ
ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺬﺑﺢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺄﻳﺪﻳﻜﻢ ﻋﺎﺟﻼ " .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ " :ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﺼﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻴﻮﺗﻨﺎ ،ﻓﻮﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻘﺪ
ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺫﺑﺤﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺄﻳﺪﻳﻨﺎ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻭﻗﻌﺖ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﻜﻨﺎﻧﻲ ﻫﻮ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻏﻨﺔ ،ﺃﺣﺪ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻨﺎﻧﺔ.
ﻭﺍﻷﺣﺎﺑﻴﺶ .ﻫﻢ ﺑﻨﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﺓ .ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻮﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺧﺰﻳﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺪﺭﻛﺔ .ﻭﺑﻨﻮ =
)(٢٨
ﺟﻮﺍﺭﺍ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﺃﺩﻉ ﻣﺜﻠﻚ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺧﺸﺒﻲ ﻣﻜﺔ .ﻓﺮﺟﻊ ﻭﻗﺪ
ﻋﻘﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﺎﻧﻲ ﺟﻮﺍﺭﺍ .ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺭﻏﺒﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻋﺎﺩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ ﻭﺻﻨﻴﻌﻪ .ﻓﻤﺸﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﺎﺭﻩ ﻭﻋﻈﻤﻮﺍ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻭﺃﺟﻠﺒﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﺃﻓﺴﺪ ﺃﺣﺪﺍﺛﻨﺎ .ﻭﻋﺒﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﺇﻣﺎﺀﻧﺎ
ﻭﻧﺴﺎﺀﻧﺎ .ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻟﻨﺎ!! ﻓﻤﺸﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﺎﻧﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻋﻄﻴﺘﻚ
ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭ ،ﺍﺩﺧﻞ ﺑﻴﺘﻚ ﻭﺍﺻﻨﻊ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺑﺪﺍ ﻟﻚ * *(! ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺃﻭ ﺃﺭﺩ
ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﺟﻮﺍﺭﻙ ﻭﺃﺭﺿﻰ ﺑﺠﻮﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭ ﻭﺗﺮﺍﺩﺍ ﺍﻟﻌﻬﺪ ﻭﺗﺒﺎﺭﻳﺎ )(١
ﻟﻘﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﺫﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﺨﻔﺎﻑ
ﻣﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﻚ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻣﻮﺟﻮﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺘﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻟﻮﺍﺩﻉ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ " .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻗﺪ
ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﺘﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻦ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻌﺬﻳﺐ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻳﺴﻴﺮ،
ﻗﺪ ﺧﺬﻟﺘﻬﻢ ﻋﺸﺎﺋﺮﻫﻢ .ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻤﺘﻬﻢ ﺃﻫﻠﻮﻫﻢ .ﻓﺄﻟﻘﻮﺍ ﺧﺒﺎﺑﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﻒ ).(٢
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻣﺎﺀ ﻣﺘﻨﻪ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ ﺣﻠﻴﻔﺎ ﻣﺴﺘﻀﻌﻔﺎ ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻬﺎﺭ
ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻝ ﺃﺳﺘﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﻌﺒﺔ ﻭﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻴﻞ ﻣﺴﺘﺨﻔﻴﺎ .ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻨﻮ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﺗﻌﺬﺏ
ﻋﻤﺎﺭﺍ ﻭﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﻭﺃﻣﻪ ﺑﺮﻣﻀﺎﺀ ﻣﻜﺔ ،ﻓﻴﻤﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ:
--------------------
= ﺍﻟﻤﺼﻄﻠﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺰﺍﻋﺔ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٢٤٥ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻭﺽ ﺍﻻﻧﻒ .٢٣١ :١
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻳﺴﻤﻰ " ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻏﻨﺔ " ﻭﻫﻮ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﻓﻴﻊ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻫﺒﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﻌﻠﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ
ﺑﻦ ﻳﺮﺑﻮﻉ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٨٥٢
* *( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ " ﺹ ٢٨ﺱ ٦ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺩ
ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﺑﺮﻗﻢ ).(٧
) (٢ﺗﺒﺎﺭﻳﺎ :ﺻﻨﻊ ﻛﻞ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﺴﻬﻞ " ﺗﺒﺎﺭﺀﺍ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺮﺿﻒ :ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺃﺣﻤﻴﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﻤﺲ ﺃﻭ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ .ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺗﻬﺎ ﺭﺿﻔﺔ.
)(٢٩
" ﺻﺒﺮﺍ ﺁﻝ ﻳﺎﺳﺮ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻣﻮﻋﺪﻛﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ! " ﻓﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻴﺎﺫ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﺒﻼﻝ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﺃﻋﺘﻖ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﺟﺰﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﺩﻳﻨﻪ * ﻋﺘﻴﻘﺎ ﻭﺃﺧﺰﻯ ﻓﺎﻛﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﺟﻬﻞ )(١
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ :ﻗﻠﺖ ﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ :ﺃﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ
ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺬﺭﻭﻥ ﺑﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻢ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻟﻴﻀﺮﺑﻮﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻢ ﻭﻳﻌﻄﺸﻮﻧﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻻ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﻮﻯ ﺟﺎﻟﺴﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻢ ﻟﻴﻌﻄﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﺳﺄﻟﻮﻩ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺍﻟﻼﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ ﺇﻟﻬﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟
ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ ،ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻌﻞ ﻟﻴﻤﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ) (٢ﻟﻪ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺇﻟﻬﻚ؟
ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻗﺪ ﺳﺎﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺪﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺘﻮﻧﻴﻦ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ .ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ]ﻟﻮ ) [(٣ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﺤﺎﻗﻪ ﻋﺴﻴﺮﺍ ) ،(٤ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ،
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ
ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﺘﺠﺮﻋﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺭ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﺩﻉ ﺭﺍﻓﻪ ،ﻏﻴﺮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻄﻠﻮﺏ
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﻪ ) (٥ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻏﺮﻳﺰﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻤﺎﻳﺔ،
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ " ،ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﻭﻋﺘﻴﻖ :ﻟﻘﺐ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ ".
) (٣ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٤ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﺤﺎﻗﻪ ﻋﺴﻴﺮﺍ ﻭﺑﻠﻮﻍ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻪ
ﺷﺪﻳﺪﺍ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻤﻦ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﺎﻉ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ .٢٦٧ :٢
)(٣٠
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﻛﺮﻡ ﻋﻨﺼﺮ ﻭﺃﻃﻴﺐ ﻣﻐﺮﺱ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﺗﻤﺖ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺩﺍﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ
ﺗﺴﺘﺠﻤﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻗﻮﺍﻩ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺘﻜﺎﻣﻞ ﺁﺩﺍﺑﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﻣﻐﺮﺯﻩ ﻭﺛﺒﺘﺖ
ﺃﻭﺍﺧﻴﻪ ﻭﺟﺎﺩ ﻧﺤﺘﻪ ) (١ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﺩﺭﻙ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻳﺔ ،ﺩﻭﻥ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﻉ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﺮﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻄﻠﺐ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺜﺄﺭ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﻳﻐﻤﻄﻮﻥ
ﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﺍﺛﺔ ،ﻭﻳﺰﺭﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ]ﺫﻱ ) [(٢ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺮﺍﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻠﺤﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ
ﻳﺼﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ *( * *) .ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺁﺧﺮ ) (٣ﻣﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻃﻠﺒﺘﻪ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺟﻌﻠﺖ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺟﻌﻠﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻓﻠﻘﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ -ﻭﻫﻰ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﻄﺎﻗﻴﻦ -
ﻣﻨﺼﺮﻓﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻓﺴﺄﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻜﺘﻤﺘﻪ ﻓﻠﻄﻤﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ :ﻟﻘﺪ ﻟﻄﻤﻨﻲ
ﻟﻄﻤﺔ ﺃﻧﺪﺭ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻗﺮﻃﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺫﻧﻲ * *(.
ﻓﺼﻞ * * *) :ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﻪ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺳﺎﻋﺔ
ﻣﺎ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ * * *( .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺄﻟﻔﺎ ،ﻷﺩﺑﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﺭﺣﺐ ﻋﻄﻨﻪ.
)* * * * ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ " :ﻣﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﺖ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺪﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻘﺪ
ﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﺪﻋﺎﻧﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻤﺎ ﺭﻣﻨﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﺟﻠﺴﺎﺋﻪ " ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻤﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻨﺤﺖ :ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " :ﻭﻳﺰﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺑﺬﻯ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺎ ".
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻠﻘﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻻﻳﺠﺎﺯ ﻭﺇﻓﺮﺍﺩ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺍﺕ
ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ) (٧ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺩ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٦
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺣﺮ " ،ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺡ.
* *( ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٨
* * *( ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٩
)(٣١
ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻫﺒﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﺑﻞ ﻋﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ،
ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ ﺧﻤﺴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ،ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻳﻔﻲ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻢ
ﺃﻛﻔﺎﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﻨﺎﺯﻋﻮﻩ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻭﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﻦ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻻﻥ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ * * * *(.
ﻓﺼﻞ :ﻭﻣﻤﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ ﺑﻼﻝ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ
ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ " :ﺑﻼﻝ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ " .ﻭﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﺑﻼﻝ
ﺳﺎﺑﻖ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺶ ،ﻭﺑﻼﻝ " ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺕ .ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ
ﻓﺄﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ .ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻔﺘﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﻮﺩﻳﺔ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺑﻼﻝ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﺟﻤﺢ ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻲ ﺟﻤﺢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻣﺴﺠﺪ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻊ
ﺩﻋﺎﺀ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ) (١ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻊ ) (٢ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻒ ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻪ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺣﻤﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻈﻬﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﻴﻄﺮﺣﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻬﺮﻩ ﺑﺒﻄﺤﺎﺀ ﻣﻜﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﻳﻀﻊ ﺻﺨﺮﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﺛﻢ ﻳﺤﻠﻒ ﺑﺈﻟﻬﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺰﻋﻬﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻔﺮ ﺑﻤﺤﻤﺪ ﻭﺇﻟﻬﻪ ﻭﻳﺆﻣﻦ
ﺑﺎﻟﻼﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ! ﻭﺑﻼﻝ ﻳﺄﺑﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ! ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺭﻗﺔ
ﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﻓﻞ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ ﻳﺎ ﺑﻼﻝ ،ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ!! ﻓﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ
ﺩﺍﺭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺟﻤﺢ .ﻓﺮﺃﻯ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﺑﻼﻝ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻻ ﺗﺘﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟
--------------------
* * * *( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ " ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١٠
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ".
) (٢ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " ﻭﺳﻤﻊ ".
)(٣٢
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺘﻰ ﺗﻌﺬﺏ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻜﻴﻦ؟! ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﻓﺴﺪﺗﻪ! ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺃﻧﺖ
ﺩﻋﻮﺗﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ -ﻓﺄﻧﻘﺬﻩ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻋﻨﺪﻱ ﻏﻼﻡ ﺃﺳﻮﺩ ﺟﻠﺪ ،ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺩﻳﻨﻚ ،ﺃﻋﻄﻴﻜﻪ ﻭﺁﺧﺬﻩ .ﻓﺄﻋﺘﻘﻪ .ﻓﻬﻮ ﻋﺘﻴﻘﻪ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺕ ).(١
)* ﺛﻢ ﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺬﺑﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺖ ﺭﻗﺎﺏ ،ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ
ﻓﻬﻴﺮﺓ ،ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻭﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ .ﺣﻴﺚ ﺧﺮﺟﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﻫﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻣﺘﻮﺟﻬﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ .ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺌﺮ ﻣﻌﻮﻧﺔ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺯﻧﻴﺮﺓ ) (٢ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺕ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﺷﺘﺮﺍﻫﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻘﻬﺎ ﺫﻫﺐ ﺑﺼﺮﻫﺎ،
ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﻌﺬﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﻳﻌﺬﺏ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ :ﻣﺎ ﺃﺫﻫﺐ ﺑﺼﺮﻫﺎ
ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻼﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ! ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻛﺬﺑﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻀﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻌﺎﻥ! ﻓﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ
ﺑﺼﺮﻫﺎ .ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺮﻱ ) (٣ﺃﻥ ﻣﻮﻟﻴﻴﻦ ﻻﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﻄﻠﺔ ) (٤ﺃﺳﻠﻤﺎ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺼﺮﻫﺎ .ﻭﻗﺎﻻ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﻼ ﺷﻚ ) (٥ﻣﻦ ﺇﻟﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ!
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺍﻟﻨﻬﺪﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﺑﻨﺘﻬﺎ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺘﺎ ﺗﻌﺬﺑﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺘﺎ ﻻﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ .ﻭﻣﺮ ﺑﻬﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﻌﺜﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺪﺭﻳﺔ ) (٦ﻣﻌﻬﻤﺎ ﺑﻄﺤﻴﻦ ﻭﻫﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﺇﺷﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ
ﺍﻟﻌﺒﻮﺩﻳﺔ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٣٢ﺱ .١٠ - ٩
) (٢ﺯﻧﻴﺮﺓ ،ﺑﻜﺴﺮ ﺍﻟﺰﺍﻱ ﻭﺗﺸﺪﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺴﻮﺭﺓ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﺿﺒﻂ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻓﻆ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ٣٦٣
ﻗﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻬﻴﻠﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺽ ﺍﻷﻧﻒ .٢٠٣ :١ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺭﻭﻣﻴﺔ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺮﻓﻰ ".
) (٤ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﻄﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ -ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻴﻄﻠﺔ ﺃﻣﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻛﺎﻫﻨﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺳﻬﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ -ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺪﻱ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﻤﻲ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ
ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ ٢٢ :١ﻭﺣﻮﺍﺷﻴﻪ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﻚ ﺷﻚ ".
) (٦ﻫﻲ ﻣﻮﻻﺗﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻧﺴﺒﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ.
)(٣٣
ﺗﻘﻮﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﺃﻋﺘﻘﻜﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺣﻼ ) (١ﻳﺎ ﺃﻡ ﻓﻼﻥ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ:
ﺣﻼ! ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﻓﺴﺪﺗﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﺄﻋﺘﻘﻬﻤﺎ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺒﻜﺄﻳﻦ ﻫﻤﺎ ) (٢ﻳﺎ ﺃﻡ ﻓﻼﻥ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ:
ﺑﻜﺬﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺍ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺧﺬﺗﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﺣﺮﺗﺎﻥ .ﺃﺭﺟﻌﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﻃﺤﻴﻨﻬﺎ.
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺃﻭ ﻧﻔﺮﻍ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ )(٣؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺫﺍﻙ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺌﺘﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻣﺮ ﺑﺠﺎﺭﻳﺔ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻣﺆﻣﻞ -ﺣﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺪﻯ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻌﺐ -ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ
ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻳﻌﺬﺑﻬﺎ ﻟﺘﺘﺮﻙ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻀﺮﺑﻬﺎ ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻣﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻋﺘﺬﺭ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ
ﺇﻧﻲ ﻟﻢ ﺃﺗﺮﻛﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻼﻟﺔ ) !(٤ﻓﺎﺑﺘﺎﻋﻬﺎ ﻓﺄﻋﺘﻘﻬﺎ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﻴﺲ ).(٥
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ :ﺃﻱ ﺑﻨﻰ ،ﺃﺭﺍﻙ ﺗﻌﺘﻖ ﺭﻗﺎﺑﺎ ﺿﻌﺎﻓﺎ ،ﻓﻠﻮ ﺃﻧﻚ
ﺇﺫ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ ﺃﻋﺘﻘﺖ ﺭﺟﺎﻻ ﺟﻠﺪﺍ ) (٦ﻣﻨﻌﻮﻙ ﻭﻗﺎﻣﻮﺍ ﺩﻭﻧﻚ؟! ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺖ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٢٠٦ﺟﻮﺗﻨﺠﻦ ﻭﻫﺎﻣﺶ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺽ " :٢٠٣ :١ﺣﻞ " ﺑﺎﻟﺮﻓﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻌﻴﻦ
ﻭﻟﻜﻞ ﻭﺟﻪ .ﺣﻼ ،ﺃﻱ ﺗﺤﻠﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻚ ،ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ .٨٩ :١
) (٢ﺃﻱ ﺑﻜﻢ ﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :ﻓﺒﻜﻢ ﻫﻤﺎ " ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻨﻰ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ
" ﻛﺄﻳﻦ " " :ﻻ ﺗﻘﻊ ﻣﺠﺮﻭﺭﺓ " ﺧﻼﻓﺎ ﻻﺑﻦ ﻗﺘﻴﺒﺔ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺼﻔﻮﺭ ،ﺃﺟﺎﺯﺍ :ﺑﻜﺄﻳﻦ ﺗﺒﻴﻊ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺏ " ﻓﻤﺎ ﺃﻭﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ﻟﻤﺬﻫﺒﻬﻤﺎ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :ﺃﻭ ﻧﻔﺮﻍ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺛﻢ ﻧﺮﺩﻩ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ " ﻛﺄﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﺗﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺘﺨﻔﻔﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺛﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻞ.
) (٤ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :ﻓﺘﻘﻮﻝ :ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻚ!! ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻡ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .١٩ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ
ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ " ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺲ " ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻓﺘﺎﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻛﺮﻳﺰ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ.
) (٦ﺍﻟﺠﻠﺪ ،ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻚ :ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺟﻠﺪ ﻭﺟﻠﻴﺪ ،ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻼﺩ ﻭﺟﻠﺪﺍﺀ
ﻭﺟﻼﺩ ﻭﺟﻠﺪ.
)(٣٤
ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺬﺑﻴﻦ! ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻰ ) .(١ﻭﺻﺪﻕ
ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺴﻨﻰ " ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻻﺣﺪ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻌﻤﺔ ﺗﺠﺰﻯ .ﺇﻻ ﺍﺑﺘﻐﺎﺀ ﻭﺟﻪ
ﺭﺑﻪ ﺍﻻﻋﻠﻰ .ﻭﻟﺴﻮﻑ ﻳﺮﺿﻰ *( " .ﻓﺘﻔﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻻﺣﺪ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻌﻤﺔ
ﺗﺠﺰﻯ .ﺇﻻ ﺍﺑﺘﻐﺎﺀ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺭﺑﻪ ﺍﻻﻋﻠﻰ " ﻭﺗﻔﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻟﺴﻮﻑ ﻳﺮﺿﻰ ".
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺧﺎﻃﺐ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﺫﻛﺮ
ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺍﻝ ﻭﻋﻈﻢ ﻗﺪﺭﻫﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻴﻮﻧﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺇﺧﺮﺍﺟﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﻠﻔﻬﻢ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﺧﺮﺟﻬﻢ ﺛﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﻞ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺢ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ .ﻭﺍﻻﻳﺜﺎﺭ
ﻟﺤﺒﺴﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻻ ﺗﻬﻨﻮﺍ ) (٣ﻭﺗﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺍﻷﻋﻠﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻜﻢ ﻭﻟﻦ
ﻳﺘﺮﻛﻢ ﺃﻋﻤﺎﻟﻜﻢ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻟﻌﺐ ﻭﻟﻬﻮ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺗﺆﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﻭﺗﺘﻘﻮﺍ
ﻳﺆﺗﻜﻢ ﺃﺟﻮﺭﻛﻢ " ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺄﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻜﻢ .ﺇﻥ ﻳﺴﺄﻟﻜﻤﻮﻫﺎ
ﻓﻴﺤﻔﻜﻢ ﺗﺒﺨﻠﻮﺍ ﻭﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺃﺿﻐﺎﻧﻜﻢ " .ﻓﺘﻔﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻟﻪ ﻋﺒﺜﺎ ) .(٤ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻫﺎﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺗﺪﻋﻮﻥ ﻟﺘﻨﻔﻘﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻤﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺒﺨﻞ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻳﺒﺨﻞ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺒﺨﻞ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ
ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺍﺀ " ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﺍﻩ ﺧﺎﻃﺐ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺄﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻜﻢ
ﺇﻥ ﻳﺴﺄﻟﻜﻤﻮﻫﺎ ﻓﻴﺤﻔﻜﻢ ﺗﺒﺨﻠﻮﺍ ﻭﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺃﺻﻐﺎﻧﻜﻢ )." (٥
)* ﺛﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻤﺎﻟﻪ ) ،(٦ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﺃﻟﻔﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻼﻭﺓ " :ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻰ " .ﻭﺣﺬﻑ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻭ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺎﺀ ﻭﻧﺤﻮﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ
ﺍﻻﻗﺘﺒﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﺍﻟﻜﺮﻳﻢ ﺟﺎﺋﺰ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ .٥٧ :٤
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻊ ﺇﻳﺠﺎﺯ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺛﻢ ﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺬﺑﻴﻦ " ﺹ ٣٣ﺱ ٤
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺩ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ،ﻭﺳﻴﺄﺗﻰ ﺑﺮﻗﻢ ).(١١
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻼﻭﺓ " :ﻓﻼ ﺗﻬﻨﻮﺍ " .ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ .٣٥ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺒﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻖ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺘﺒﺎ ".
) (٥ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻳﺒﺪﺃ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺤﻒ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﻄﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻣﻮﺯ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﻣﺰ )ﺏ(.
) (٦ﺏ " :ﻓﻲ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ ".
)(٣٥
ﻓﺄﻧﻔﻘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻮﺍﺋﺐ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺣﻘﻮﻗﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﻴﺮﺍﺛﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﺪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﻬﻮ
ﻏﺰﻳﺮ ) (١ﻻ ﻳﺸﻌﺮ ﺑﻌﺴﺮ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻋﻪ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻣﺘﻨﺎﻉ ﺭﺟﻮﻋﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺒﺔ ﻣﻠﻚ
ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺳﻤﺢ ﻟﻄﺒﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻕ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ ،ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺛﻤﺮﺓ ﻛﺪﻩ ﻭﻛﺴﺐ
ﺟﻮﻻﻧﻪ ﻭﺗﻌﺮﺿﻪ .ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺧﻔﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻈﻬﺮ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﻞ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻝ،
ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻴﺴﺎﺭﻳﻦ] ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺋﺮ :ﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻝ ﺃﺣﺪ
ﺍﻟﻴﺴﺎﺭﻳﻦ ) [!(٣ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﺑﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺑﻨﺎﺕ ﻭﺯﻭﺟﺔ ﻭﺧﺪﻡ ﻭﺃﺣﺸﺎﻡ ) ،(٤ﻳﻌﻮﻝ
ﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺑﻮﻳﻪ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﺘﻰ ﺣﺪﺛﺎ ﻓﺘﻬﺰﻩ ﺃﺭﻳﺤﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﺒﺎﺏ
ﻭﻏﺮﺍﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﺍﺛﺔ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﺤﺬﺍﺀ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ ﻃﻤﻊ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﻏﺒﺔ ﺗﺤﺪﻭﻩ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻠﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻳﺪ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ ﻓﻴﺨﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭ
ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﻙ ﻣﻮﺍﺳﺎﺗﻪ ) (٥ﻭﺇﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ ) (٦ﻓﻴﺴﺐ
ﺑﺘﺮﻙ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻔﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﻌﺎﻭﻧﺘﻪ ﻭﺇﺭﻓﺎﻗﻪ .ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ]ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ ) [(٧ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻻ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺃﺑﻠﻎ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ *( ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻕ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺼﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﻨﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﻋﺰﻳﺰ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻟﻪ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٤ﺃﺣﺸﺎﻡ :ﺟﻤﻊ ﺣﺸﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻐﻀﺒﻮﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺃﻭ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺃﻭ ﺟﻴﺮﺓ.
ﺏ " :ﻭﺣﺸﻢ ".
) (٥ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻮﺍﺳﺎﺗﻪ ﻛﻌﻠﻰ " ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻷﺧﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﻘﺤﻤﺔ.
) (٦ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ ،ﺑﻜﺴﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﻝ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﻮﻳﻦ ﻭﻋﺪﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺑﻀﻤﻬﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻻﺟﺮﺍﺀ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻟﺤﺎ ﻻﺻﻖ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺐ.
) (٧ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﺛﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺻﻨﻊ " ﺹ ٣٥ﺱ ١٦ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ
ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١٢
)(٣٦
)* ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻠﻘﻰ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ،ﻛﺼﻨﻴﻊ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺿﺮﺏ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺑﻘﻮﺳﻪ ،ﻓﺒﻠﻎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺎﻣﺘﻪ .ﻓﻲ ﻧﺼﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻬﻞ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺃﻣﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺭﺃﺱ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ.
ﺛﻢ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ ) (١ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺮﺍ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ! " ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻮﺗﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ " :ﻣﺎ ﺻﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﻳﻦ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ )." (٢
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﺛﻢ ﻣﻀﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻮﺭﻩ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻘﺮﻉ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺣﺲ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻣﺮﺣﺒﺎ ﺑﺎﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﺘﻨﺎ -ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺃﻣﻪ ﺣﻨﺘﻤﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﺮﻣﺤﻴﻦ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ -ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺗﺪﺭﻯ ﻣﺎ ﺻﺮﺕ ﺑﻌﺪﻙ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ! ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺧﻴﺮ،
ﻓﻠﻴﻜﻦ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ .ﺇﻧﻲ ﺁﻣﻨﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺑﺮﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺧﻠﻌﺖ ﺍﻷﻧﺪﺍﺩ،
ﻭﺟﻌﻠﺖ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻼﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ ،ﻭﺻﺪﻗﺖ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻼ ﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻚ!!
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﺓ ) (٤ﺷﻬﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺟﻠﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﻧﻴﺘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺸﻒ ﺍﻟﻘﻨﺎﻉ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺩﺃﺓ ﻟﺮﺃﺱ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﻭﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺤﺎﺀ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺭﻫﻄﻪ.
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺪ ) (٥ﺻﺮﻧﺎ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﻟﺘﺮﻛﺘﻤﻮﻫﺎ
ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻭ ﺗﺮﻛﻨﺎﻫﺎ ﻟﻜﻢ -ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻣﻜﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﻻ ﻧﻌﺒﺪ " ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻮﻥ.
) (٢ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻳﻨﺘﻬﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺏ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﺪﺃ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٣٥ﺱ .١٦
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻘﺪ ".
)(٣٧
ﺛﻢ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ]ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ) [(١ﻓﻲ ﺳﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﺷﺎﺩﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﻳﺮﻳﺪ
ﺧﺒﻂ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻘﻴﻪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻓﺘﻠﻘﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻘﺒﻼ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎﻟﻚ
ﻳﺎ ﺯﺑﻴﺮ؟! ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ ،ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻗﺎﺋﻼ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﻭﺃﻭﺫﻯ! ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻬﺮ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ.
ﺛﻢ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺳﻌﺪ ) (٢ﻭﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻤﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻡ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﺑﻠﺤﻰ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ،
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﻕ ﺩﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﺮﺳﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﺃﺗﻮﻩ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻧﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ :ﺛﻜﻠﺘﻨﻲ ﺃﻣﻲ ،ﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺳﺎﺩﺱ ﺳﺘﺔ ) (٣ﻣﺎ ﻟﻨﺎ ﻃﻌﺎﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺎﻡ .ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀﻧﻲ ﺃﻋﺮﺍﺏ
ﺍﻷﻭﺱ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻨﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟!.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻟﻚ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﺘﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻘﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻄﺮﺍﺩ ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺴﻤﻊ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺫﻛﺮﺍ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺳﻨﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ،
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻻ ﻳﻠﺤﻖ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﺭﻙ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺋﺖ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻮﻯ
ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ﻭﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﺃﻭﻟﺌﻚ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺩﺭﺟﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﻘﻮﺍ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻗﺎﺗﻠﻮﺍ ﻭﻛﻼ ﻭﻋﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻨﻰ )." (٤
--------------------
) (١ﺗﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻳﻘﺘﻀﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺎﻕ .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٢٧٨٣
) (٢ﻫﻮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﻭﺁﺧﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻮﺗﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ
ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٣١٨٧ﻭﻓﻴﻬﺎ " :ﻓﺒﻴﻨﺎ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻌﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻌﺎﺏ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﺇﺫ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ ﻓﻨﺎﻓﺮﻭﻫﻢ ﻭﻋﺎﺑﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻢ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﺗﻠﻮﻫﻢ .ﻓﻀﺮﺏ ﺳﻌﺪ
ﺭﺟﻼ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﺑﻠﺤﻰ ﺟﻤﻞ ﻓﺸﺠﻪ " .ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ١٦٦ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﺼﻠﻮﻥ ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ :ﻭﻗﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﺎﺭﻱ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻟﻘﺪ ﻣﻜﺜﺖ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻭﺇﻧﻲ
ﻟﺜﺎﻟﺚ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻓﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﻱ .٦٧ - ٦٦ :٧
) (٤ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ١٠ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ.
)(٣٨
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﻭﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺩﺭﺟﺔ .ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻻ ﻫﺠﺮﺓ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ " ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﻤﻦ ﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻭﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﻗﺒﻞ
ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﻟﺪﻥ ) (١ﻣﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻡ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ]ﻭ[ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻡ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﺮﻓﻪ
ﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ .ﻓﻘﺘﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ.
* )ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺮﺍﺭﺍ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ
ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ .ﻭﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ
ﺳﻨﺔ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﻗﺘﻠﺔ ).(٢
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ ﻣﻤﻜﻨﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺛﻮﺏ ﻣﻄﻤﻌﺎ ﻟﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻧﻬﺾ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻬﺾ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ]ﻗﺪ )[(٣
ﺃﻗﺮﻥ ]ﻓﻴﻪ ) [(٣ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻷﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ) ،(٤ﻓﻄﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺇﺫﻥ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺡ .٢٧٥ :٣
*( ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺡ " :ﻭﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ " .ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻠﻘﻰ " ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٣٧ﺱ ١ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١٣
) (٢ﻳﺒﺪﺃ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﺍﻗﺘﺒﺎﺱ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ )ﺏ( ﺳﻨﻨﺒﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺘﻪ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٤ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﺃﻗﺮﻥ ﻟﻪ ،ﺃﻱ ﺃﻃﺎﻗﻪ ﻭﻗﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻗﺮﻧﺖ ﻓﻼﻧﺎ ،ﺃﻱ ﺻﺮﺕ ﻟﻪ ﻗﺮﻧﺎ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺡ " :ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﻯ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ " .ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺼﻮﺹ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺡ
ﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺮﻑ.
)(٣٩
ﺳﺠﺎﻻ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻠﻤﺘﻘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻔﺘﻮﻥ ﻣﻔﺮﺩ )(١
]ﻭﻣﻄﺮﻭﺩ ﻣﺸﺮﺩ ،ﻭﻣﻀﺮﻭﺏ ﻣﻌﺬﺏ ) [(٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺎﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻧﻬﻮﺽ ﻭﻻ ﺣﺮﻛﺔ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺳﺘﻔﺎﺽ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﻭﺿﺮﺏ ﺑﺠﺮﺍﻧﻪ ﻭﻇﻬﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ " :ﻃﻮﺑﻰ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺄﻧﺄﺓ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ " ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺿﻌﻔﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺘﻪ *( ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ .ﻟﻔﺮﻁ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻼﺀ ﺃﻏﻠﻆ ،ﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻛﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻭﺃﺩﻭﻡ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ
ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻣﻔﺘﻮﻥ ﻣﺸﺮﺩ ﻻ ﺣﻴﻠﺔ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻣﻀﺮﻭﺏ ﻣﻌﺬﺏ ﻻ ﺍﻧﺘﺼﺎﺭ
ﺑﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺩﻓﻊ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻣﺒﺎﻃﺶ ﻣﻘﺮﻥ )] (٣ﻳﺸﻔﻰ ﻏﻴﻈﻪ ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﻏﻠﻴﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻪ
ﻣﻘﺪﻡ ﻳﻜﻨﻔﻪ ﻭﻳﺸﺠﻌﻪ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻣﻘﻬﻮﺭ ) [(٤ﻻ ﻳﻐﺎﺙ ) ،(٥ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺑﻈﻔﺮﻩ،
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻘﺘﻮﻝ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﺑﺪﻝ " ﻣﻔﺮﺩ " ﻓﻲ ﺏ " ﻣﻌﺬﺏ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ .ﻭ " ﻣﻌﺬﺏ " ﻫﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﻠﻬﺎ ﻫﻨﺎ " ﻭﻣﻐﺮﺏ ".
*( ﺳﺎﻕ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﺹ ٣٩ﺱ ٩ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ " :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻭﻻﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﺮﺍﺗﺐ ﻻ ﻳﺸﺮﻛﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻻ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ
ﻓﻘﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﺍﻧﺘﺸﺮ ﺻﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻣﺘﺤﻦ ﻭﻟﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻕ ﻣﻨﺬ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﻯ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ﻭﻃﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻥ
ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﺳﺠﺎﻻ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻠﻤﺘﻘﻴﻦ .ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ
ﻣﻌﺬﺑﺎ ﻭﻣﻄﺮﻭﺩﺍ ﻣﺸﺮﺩﺍ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺎﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻧﻬﻮﺽ ﻭﻻ ﺣﺮﻛﺔ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ :ﻃﻮﺑﻰ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺄﻧﺄﺓ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ .ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻓﻲ ﺿﻌﻔﻪ " ﺛﻢ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ
ﺭﻗﻢ ) (١٤ﻓﻲ ﻣﻠﺤﻘﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﻃﺸﺔ :ﻣﻔﺎﻋﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺶ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺴﻄﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺬ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻨﻒ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺮﻥ :ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﻖ
ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺭ .ﺏ " :ﻣﻔﺮﻕ ".
) (٤ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻻ ﻳﻌﺎﺏ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(٤٠
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻫﺘﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﺄﺱ ﻟﻄﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺣﺠﺎﺏ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ .ﻭﻧﻘﺾ ﻗﻮﻯ ﻃﻤﻌﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺑﻘﻰ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﺣﺘﺴﺎﺑﻪ .ﻭﻣﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺴﻜﺮ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﺀ ) (١ﻭﻗﻮﺓ
ﺍﻟﻄﻤﻊ ،ﻭﻃﻴﺐ ﻧﻔﺲ ﺍﻵﻣﻞ ).(٢
ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻗﻒ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻻﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻗﻒ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﻻﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻮﺍﻗﻒ ﻻ ﻳﺸﺮﻛﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻻ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻣﺤﺺ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﻣﺘﺤﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻟﺪﻥ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻏﺰﻭﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ )* ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻘﺮﻧﻴﻦ ﻷﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻭﻣﺸﺮﻛﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻳﺜﺮﺏ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ
ﺍﻟﻨﺨﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻵﻃﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺭﺏ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺪﺍﻡ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺳﺎﺓ .ﻭﺍﻻﻳﺜﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺎﻣﺎﺓ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﺪﺛﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﺰﻝ ،ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻳﻔﺘﻨﻮﻥ
ﻭﻳﺸﺘﻤﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻀﺮﺑﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﺸﺮﺩﻭﻥ ،ﻭﻳﺠﻮﻋﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻌﻄﺸﻮﻥ ،ﻣﻘﻬﻮﺭﻳﻦ ﻻ ﺣﺮﺍﻙ
ﺑﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﺫﻻﺀ ،ﻻ ﺩﻓﻊ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻓﻘﺮﺍﺀ ﻻ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻭﻣﻐﻴﻈﻴﻦ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﻬﺎﺀ ) ،(٣ﻭﻣﺴﺘﺨﻔﻴﻦ ﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻘﺎﺀ ) - (٤ﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﺖ ﻟﻮﻃﺎ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﻧﺒﻲ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ -ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻘﻮﻣﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ " :ﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻲ ﺑﻜﻢ
ﻗﻮﺓ ﺃﻭ ﺁﻭﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﻛﻦ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ "] .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ:
" ﻋﺠﺒﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﻲ ﻟﻮﻁ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭ ﺁﻭﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﻛﻦ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ) [(٥ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺄﻭﻯ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ!
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺏ " :ﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ " ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ.
) (٢ﻫﺬﺍ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﺪﺃ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٣٩ﺱ .١٢
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ .ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﺎ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺳﺎﻗﻄﺔ.
) (٤ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " :ﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺩﻋﻮﺗﻬﻢ ".
) (٥ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺡ.
)(٤١
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻮﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﺷﻬﺮﺍ ﻭﻻ ﺷﻬﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﻋﺎﻣﺎ
ﻭﻻ ﻋﺎﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻏﻠﻆ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﻭﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ،
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺪﺍﺭ ﻣﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺠﺮﺗﻪ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ :ﺧﻤﺲ
ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺁﺧﺮﻭﻥ :ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ :ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ،
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﺪﻝ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﺃﻗﺴﻄﻬﺎ ﻃﺮﺡ ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻓﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺬ ﺑﺄﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺎﺕ *(،
ﻛﻤﺎ ﺻﻨﻌﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
]ﻭ[ ﻫﻮ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ،ﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ
)ﻋﻠﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ( :ﻧﺤﻦ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻗﻂ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺛﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻴﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ،
ﺛﻢ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ
ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﺃﺧﺬﻧﺎ ﺑﺄﻭﺳﻂ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻄﺮﺣﻨﺎ ﺳﻨﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ،ﻓﺤﺼﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺛﺒﺘﻨﺎﻩ
ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ.
)* ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﺻﻨﻊ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻘﻰ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺃﻓﻀﻠﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﺎﺗﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻀﺠﻌﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ ﻳﺮﺻﺪﻭﻧﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻘﻂ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺗﺤﺰﻣﻮﺍ ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻭﻗﻠﺒﻮﺍ
--------------------
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ " ﺹ ٤١ﺱ ٧ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١٥
)(٤٢
ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻓﺮﺃﻭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻴﺘﻮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ " :ﻧﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻲ ﻭﺗﻐﺶ ﺑﺒﺮﺩﻯ ﺍﻟﺤﻀﺮﻣﻲ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺭﺃﻭﺍ ﺣﺠﻤﻚ ﻓﻮﻕ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻭﺩﻭﻥ
ﺍﻟﺒﺮﺩ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺮﻳﺒﻮﺍ ،ﻭﺧﻔﻰ ﻟﻬﻢ ) (١ﺃﻣﺮﻯ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﺒﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﺛﺮﻯ " .ﻓﻨﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ﻳﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﻭﻗﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ،ﻭﻳﺘﻮﻗﻊ ﺭﺿﺦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ،ﺑﺎﺫﻻ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻣﺼﻄﺒﺮﺍ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻮﻕ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺩﺭﺟﺔ ﻳﻠﺘﻤﺴﻬﺎ ﺻﺎﺑﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻬﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺮﻭﺟﻪ ﻭﻫﺠﺮﺗﻪ ﻭﺻﺤﺒﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺮﺑﻪ
ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺨﻔﺎﺋﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻦ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ ،ﻗﺪﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻃﻤﻊ
ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺭﺟﻰ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﻓﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻢ ﺻﺮﻑ
ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ) (٢ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﺸﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻣﻦ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻻﻧﻔﺎﻕ ،ﻭﺇﻳﺜﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﺪﺓ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻧﺴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻮﺍﻥ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﺮﺍﻣﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻻﻣﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ
ﻭﺍﻻﻓﺘﺘﺎﻥ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻻﻛﺮﺍﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻣﻊ ﻋﺘﻖ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺬﺑﻴﻦ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻦ،
ﻭﻣﻊ ﺻﺮﻑ ﻭﺯﻥ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻻﻥ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﻳﺮ ﺃﻭ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﺙ
ﺍﻟﺼﻐﻴﺮ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺰ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻋﺰﻩ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻛﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺘﻨﻚ ﺍﻷﺭﻳﺐ،
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﺮﺟﻊ ﺗﺴﻮﻳﺪﻩ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺳﻮﺩﻩ ]ﻭ[ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ *(.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻲ ".
) (٢ﺻﺮﻑ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ،ﺃﻱ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ .ﻳﻘﺎﻝ :ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﺭﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺻﺮﻑ ،ﺃﻱ ﻓﻀﻞ،
ﻟﺠﻮﺩﺓ ﻓﻀﺔ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ.
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻗﺪ ﺻﻨﻊ " ﺹ ٤٢ﺱ ١٧ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺭﺩ ﻟﻺﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ
ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﺑﺮﻗﻢ ).(١٦
)(٤٣
* )ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻥ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﻭﻗﺼﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺻﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻛﻮﻧﻪ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻧﻄﻖ ]ﺑﻪ[ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻭﺻﺢ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ،ﻛﺎﻟﺼﻠﻮﺍﺕ
ﺍﻟﺨﻤﺲ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺮﻭﺿﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺴﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺎﺑﺔ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻜﺮ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻣﺠﻨﻮﻥ ﺃﻭ ﻛﺎﻓﺮ .ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻧﻮﻣﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﺃﻧﻤﺎ ﺟﺎﺀ
ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺠﺊ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﺷﻌﺎﺭﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻻ ﻳﻮﺍﺯﻥ
ﺫﺍ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﺎﻳﻠﻪ *(.
ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﺮﺍﺗﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﺿﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺑﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﻘﻮﺹ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﺎﻭﻯ،
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﺳﺎﻁ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺷﻜﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﺒﻴﺘﻪ،
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻲ ﻣﺸﻔﻖ ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ) (١ﺃﻋﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﻛﺎﺫﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ ،ﻭﺗﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺣﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺩﺭﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ،
ﻟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﺇﺫ ﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ " ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ،
ﻟﻮﺟﺪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﻜﻴﺮ.
)* ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺵ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﺠﺊ ﻛﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ
ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﺎﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺒﺮﺯ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ -
ﻛﺎﺫﺑﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻭ ﺻﺎﺩﻗﻴﻦ -ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﺎﺕ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ،ﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺗﻐﺶ ﺑﺒﺮﺩﻯ،
--------------------
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ " ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ
ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١٧
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ".
)(٤٤
ﻭﻧﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻀﺠﻌﻲ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻦ ﻳﺨﻠﺺ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﺷﺊ ﺗﻜﺮﻫﻪ " ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻟﻔﻆ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻻ ﻳﺸﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺣﺪ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﻞ ،ﻭﻟﻦ ﺗﻌﻄﺐ ﻭﻟﻦ ﻳﺼﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﻣﻜﺮﻭﻩ *(.
)* ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺪﺛﺎ -ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ -ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ
ﻟﺤﻖ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻖ ﻟﻪ ﺛﻢ ﺑﺮﺯ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺼﻨﻴﻌﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﺃﺣﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ،ﻭﻳﻮﻡ ﺧﻴﺒﺮ،
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺒﻀﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﻨﺒﻪ،
ﻓﺠﻤﻊ ﺃﻣﺮﻳﻦ :ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﺽ ﻟﻠﻤﻨﺎﻳﺎ ،ﻭﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﺑﻘﺘﻞ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﺳﺎﻥ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻻﻧﺠﺎﺩ ﻭﺍﻷﻣﺠﺎﺩ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻩ،
ﻓﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﺽ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﺴﺎﺏ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻦ
ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ ) ،(١ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ) ،(٢ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻢ
ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻠﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ،
--------------------
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻭﻓﺮﻕ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ " ﺹ ٤٤ﺱ ١٤ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ
ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(١٨
) (١ﺑﻀﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﻝ .ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﺳﻤﺎﻙ ﺑﻦ ﺧﺮﺷﺔ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٣٧١ﻣﻦ ﻗﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﻰ.
) (٢ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻌﻨﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ :ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺎﺫ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻮﺫ،
ﺑﻨﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﺭﻓﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻣﻬﻢ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﻌﻠﺒﺔ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٥٠٣ﻭﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ،
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﻮﻑ ﻭﻣﻌﻮﺫ ﺍﺑﻨﺎ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ،ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٥٠٧ﻭﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٨١٥٧ ،٦٠٨٧
ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٩١ﻭﺷﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﺒﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٨٠٣٤ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮﻫﻢ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭﺏ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ " :ﻭﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﻋﺎﺻﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻗﺘﺎﺩﺓ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻮﻑ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻣﺎ ﻳﻀﺤﻚ ﺍﻟﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﺪﻩ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻏﻤﺴﻪ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ
ﺣﺎﺳﺮﺍ ،ﻓﻨﺰﻉ ﺩﺭﻋﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺬﻓﻬﺎ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺘﻞ " .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٤٤٥
)(٤٥
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ) ،(١ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﺣﺪ
ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﺳﺎﻥ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﻓﻊ
ﻃﺮﻓﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﻜﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ
ﻭﻻ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ،ﻟﻤﻌﺎﻥ ﻫﻲ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺸﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ،
ﻭﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻟﻘﺮﻧﻪ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺋﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺛﺒﺘﺖ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺤﻘﻮﺍ
ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺷﺮﺓ ،ﺛﺒﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ .ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻛﺘﺮﺍﺙ ﻭﺍﻻﻫﺘﻤﺎﻡ ﻭﺷﻐﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻝ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻨﺎﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﻘﺪ ،ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻩ .ﻷﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺼﻮﺹ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻄﺎﻟﺒﺔ .ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺪﺍﺭ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻭﺑﻪ ﻳﺴﺘﻨﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻭﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ ﻳﻨﻬﺰﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ،ﻭﺑﺘﻌﺒﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺭﺍﻳﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ
ﻳﻔﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺪ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻃﺒﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻘﻼﻝ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ،
ﻭﻻﻥ ﻓﺮﺗﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻋﺮﺩﺗﻪ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﺛﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺩﺓ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻓﺮﺓ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ).(٢
]ﻭ[ ﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻠﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﻣﺎ ﻣﺤﺺ ﺑﻪ ) (٣ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻟﻮ ﺿﻴﻌﻮﺍ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻒ .ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ.
ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ،٥٧٥ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ١٥ - ١٤ :٢ :ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ ،١٣٩ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺰﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﺤﻲ
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﺘﻠﻪ ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ،ﺑﻞ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﺎﺻﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺘﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻀﺮﺏ ﻋﻨﻘﻪ ﻭﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺻﺒﺮﺍ ،ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ ١٦٠
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻﻥ ﻗﺮﺑﺔ ﺃﻭ ﻋﻮﺭﺗﻪ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﺛﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻮﺭﺓ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﺮﻩ
ﻏﻴﺮﻩ " ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺩﺓ :ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺓ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻫﺮﺏ ،ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﻋﺮﺩ .(٢٧٩
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻤﺤﻴﺺ :ﺍﻻﺑﺘﻼﺀ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺮﻓﺔ :ﻟﻤﺤﻴﺺ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ،ﺃﻱ ﻟﻴﺒﺘﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ
)ﻣﺤﺺ( .ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺘﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺘﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٤٦
ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﻭﺣﻔﻆ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺿﻴﻔﺖ ﺍﻟﻬﺰﻳﻤﺔ ﺇﻻ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ *( ،ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﻮﺏ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻟﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﻟﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ،
ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ،ﻷﻧﻚ ]ﻟﻮ[ ﻗﺬﻓﺖ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺻﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺼﺎﻟﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺠﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺛﺮﺍ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺤﺲ ﻟﻪ ﺣﺴﺎ ).(١
)* ﻭﺍﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﻮﻫﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻐﻤﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺪﻳﺪﺍ ﻓﺎﺿﻼ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻈﻨﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﺘﻮﻫﻤﻮﻥ
ﻣﺎ ﺍﻧﻘﺎﺩﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺳﺘﺼﺤﺒﺖ ﻟﻠﻘﺘﺎﻝ * *) ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻄﻴﻌﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ
ﻗﺘﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﻓﺮﺍﺭﻫﺎ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺪﻟﺖ ﻛﺎﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺎﻣﺔ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﻛﻔﺘﻴﻪ،
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﺤﺬﺍﺀ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻭﻣﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺄﺗﻲ ﺑﻪ ،ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺎﺩﻟﻪ ﻭﻳﻮﺍﺯﻧﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﺍﻻﻗﺪﺍﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻒ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻭﻗﺖ ﻣﺸﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺗﻨﻔﺤﻪ ﻣﺸﺠﻌﺔ ) ،(٢ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﺼﺮﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻗﻀﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ
ﻣﺎ ﺃﺑﺼﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻗﺪﺍﻡ .ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺠﻊ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻐﻀﺐ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﺸﺮﺍﺏ ) ،(٣ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﺍﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﺍﺛﺔ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﺣﺮﺍﺝ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺔ ﻭﺣﺐ ﺍﻷﺣﺪﻭﺛﺔ ) ،(٤ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ
ﻛﻄﺒﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺣﻴﻢ .ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺨﻲ *( ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺨﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺰﻭﻉ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻗﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻮﻁ
--------------------
*( ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺡ " :ﻓﻀﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻤﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ
ﺟﻬﺎﺩ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻭﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺍﻻﺑﻄﺎﻝ " .ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ " ﺹ ٤٥
ﺱ ٤ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ).(١٩
) (١ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﺃﺿﻌﻒ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺗﻞ .ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﻗﺬﻓﺖ " ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﺗﻨﻔﺤﻪ :ﺗﺪﻓﻌﻪ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﺑﻌﺠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﻣﺸﺠﻌﺔ ".
ﺭﺳﻤﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﻠﻬﺎ " ﻣﺴﺤﺰ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺳﻴﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﺿﺤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٤ﺡ " :٢٧٨ :٣ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻤﺤﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺦ ﻭﺍﻷﺣﺪﻭﺛﺔ ".
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﺍﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ " ﺱ ٤ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٠
)(٤٧
ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﻘﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ
ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻴﻌﻪ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎﻩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ
ﻣﻜﺘﺴﺐ ﻣﺠﺘﻠﺐ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺄﺻﻠﻲ ﻭﻻ ﻃﺒﻴﻌﻲ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﺛﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻣﺆﺟﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺼﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎﻫﺎ ﻃﺒﻴﻌﻴﺔ ﺃﺻﻠﻴﺔ .ﻭﺛﻮﺍﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﻌﺠﻞ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﻣﺤﺬﺭﺓ ﻣﺠﺒﻨﺔ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺭﻛﻮﻧﻪ ) (١ﻭﺟﻠﻮﺳﻪ
ﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺠﻌﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺠﺒﻨﺎﺕ
ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﻠﻮﺳﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﻗﺘﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻓﻀﻠﺖ ﻗﻮﻯ
ﻣﺸﺠﻌﺎﺗﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻗﺪﺍﻣﻪ ﺃﺷﺮﺍ ﻭﻣﺮﺣﺎ .ﻭﺍﻫﺘﺰﺍﺯﺍ ﻭﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻦ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﻓﺮﻁ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﺮﺍﺭﻩ * *( .ﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺮﺩ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺗﻨﻘﺺ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺣﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺇﺧﺮﺍﺟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ
ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺮﺩ ﺗﻨﻘﺺ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﻠﻒ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺻﻲ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻻﻗﺪﺍﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺠﻌﺔ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻓﺎﺿﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺟﺒﻨﻪ ﻭﺟﻠﻮﺳﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﺟﻮﺭ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ
ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻣﺄﺟﻮﺭﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺭﻛﻮﺑﻪ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
* *( ﺃﻭﺟﺰ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﺤﺔ ٤٧ﺱ ٧ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ
" ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻄﻴﻌﺔ " ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺭﺓ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ - ٢٧٨ :٣
" :٢٧٩ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻓﺼﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺘﺪﻟﺔ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺘﺎﻟﻪ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﻓﺮﺍﺭﻩ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ.
ﻻﻥ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻣﻌﺘﺪﻟﺔ ﻛﺎﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺎﻣﺔ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﻛﻔﺘﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻗﺪﺍﻣﻪ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ
ﻭﻓﺮﺍﺭﻩ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ " ﺛﻢ ﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢١
)(٤٨
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺠﻌﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺯﻥ ﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺒﻨﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻄﻴﻌﺎ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﺿﻌﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺗﻮﻫﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ ﻣﺸﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ
ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻛﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺭﻓﻌﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻫﺎﻣﻬﻢ ﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻟﻮﻻﻫﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻪ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ).(١
)* ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻜﺜﺮﺓ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻭﺑﻘﺘﻠﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻣﺸﻘﺔ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻌﺔ ]ﺗﺰﻋﻢ ) [(٢ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﻠﻲ " :ﺇﻧﻚ
ﺳﺘﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺜﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻄﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﺭﻗﻴﻦ " .ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺜﻮﻥ " :ﻃﻠﺤﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻄﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﺭﻗﻮﻥ :ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ
ﻭﻫﺐ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻗﺪ ]ﺻﺪﻗﻮﺍ ﻭﻣﺎ ) [(٣ﻛﺬﺑﻮﺍ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﺴﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ
ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻘﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻘﺔ .ﻓﺎﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ
ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ﻣﻨﻪ،
ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﻣﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻳﺎ ﺷﺎﺭﻋﺔ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﺮﺟﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﺨﺎﻓﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻘﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻘﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﺳﻼﻣﺘﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻻ ﻗﺒﻴﻞ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ:
ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻜﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻌﻴﺪ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻗﺒﻴﻞ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ﺇﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺱ .٦
) (٢ﺗﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻳﻘﺘﻀﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺎﻕ ،ﻭﺑﻤﻮﺿﻌﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻋﻼﻣﺔ ﺇﻟﺤﺎﻕ.
) (٣ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﻘﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
)(٤٩
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﺑﻌﻴﺪ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻓﺄﻋﺪﻝ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﺃﻧﺼﻔﻬﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ
ﺗﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﻒ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺻﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ
ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ *( ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻟﺰﻣﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ
ﻗﺒﻞ ﻭﻗﻌﺔ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﻔﺨﺮﻭﻥ ﺑﻮﻗﻌﺔ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﻗﺘﺎﻟﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﺴﻰ
ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺘﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺛﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻘﺎﺀ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺜﻴﻦ
ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻄﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﺭﻗﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺪﻫﺮ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺋﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ،ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ،ﻓﺄﺷﺒﻪ
ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺣﺎﻻ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻴﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺜﻴﺮ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻲ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﻭﺯﻳﺮﺍ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ،
ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻧﻔﺎ ﻭﻣﻌﻴﻨﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﻦ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻟﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺑﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻇﻌﻨﻪ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺧﻠﻮﺍﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺮﺑﻪ
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺨﻔﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺘﺪﺉ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻔﺰﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺍﺋﺞ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ
ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺩﻳﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﺎﻝ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ،
--------------------
) (* (١ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ " ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٤٩ﺱ ٥ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻭﺟﺰﻩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ) " :(٢٧٩ :٣ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻘﺘﻞ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ
ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺳﺘﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺜﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻄﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﺭﻗﻴﻦ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻭﻋﺪﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻘﺎﺀ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻭﺛﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻨﺼﻮﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ
ﻭﻗﺎﺗﻠﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﻬﺎﺩ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ " ﻭﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٢
)(٥٠
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺰ ﻭﺟﻞ " :ﺇﻻ ﺗﻨﺼﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻧﺼﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﺫ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ
ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﺇﺫ ﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻻ ﺗﺤﺰﻥ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ ".
ﻓﺴﻤﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ﺛﻢ ﺳﻤﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﻢ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﻘﺒﻪ ﻭﻧﺴﺒﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ
ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ.
ﺛﻢ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﻴﺪﻩ
ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺩﺍﺭ ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﺼﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ "
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﺼﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﻣﻌﺎﻥ
ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻓﻬﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻡ ﺫﻫﺒﻮﺍ ﻋﻨﻪ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺫﺭ ﺷﺎﺭﻗﻪ ﻳﺄﺗﻲ ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻣﺎ ﺻﺒﺎﺣﺎ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻣﺴﺎﺀ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﺃﺫﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ .ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺗﺎﻩ ﻣﻬﺠﺮﺍ ) (١ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ:
ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ ،ﻛﻴﻒ ﺟﺌﺖ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ؟! ﻭﻧﺰﻝ ﻋﻦ ﺳﺮﻳﺮﻩ
ﻭﺟﻠﺲ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺟﻠﺲ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ:
ﻫﻞ ﻋﻨﺪﻙ ﺃﺣﺪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ،ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ .ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﻓﺈﻥ ﺭﺑﻰ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺫﻥ ﻟﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ " .ﻓﺼﺎﻥ ﺻﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﺨﺮﻭﺟﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻴﻪ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ،ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻒ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺘﺠﺴﺲ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻭﻳﺄﺗﻲ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻷﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻔﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻠﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺠﻴﺮ :ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺎﺟﺮﺓ .ﻭﻫﻰ ﻧﺼﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﻬﺎﺭ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺯﻭﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ.
)(٥١
ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻓﻬﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺑﺪﺭﻱ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺌﺮ ﻣﻌﻮﻧﺔ،
ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺆﻧﺴﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﻳﺤﺪﺛﻬﺎ ﻭﻳﺨﺪﻣﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﺮﺓ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ .ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ
ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺗﺄﺗﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﺄﻗﻮﺍﺗﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺮﻳﻘﻪ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻬﺮﻩ ﺭﻛﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ) ،(١ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﺛﻲ
ﺃﺟﻴﺮﻩ ) (٢ﻭﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻓﻬﻴﺮﺓ ﺧﺎﺩﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻣﺆﻧﺴﻪ ﻋﺘﻴﻘﻪ ﺛﻼﺙ
ﻣﺮﺍﺕ ) (٣ﻭﻣﻮﻻﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻈﻬﺮ ﻇﻬﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺆﻭﻧﺔ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺻﺤﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭﺓ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻣﺤﺒﻮﺳﺔ ﻟﻪ .ﻣﺼﻮﻧﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ ،ﻳﻄﻠﺒﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﺎ،
ﻭﺗﺠﻌﻞ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻟﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻤﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻗﺪﻭﻣﻪ
ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﺨﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﺣﺮﺗﻨﺎ ﻧﻨﺘﻈﺮﻩ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻇﻼ ﺩﺧﻠﻨﺎ،
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺣﺎﺭﺓ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺪﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻌﻠﻨﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺛﻢ ﺩﺧﻠﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻟﻨﺎ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﺼﺮﻩ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻬﻮﺩ ،ﻓﺼﺎﺡ :ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻗﻴﻠﺔ ) !!(٤ﻓﺨﺮﺟﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺎﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺭﺍﺣﻠﺘﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻟﻠﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﺭﻛﺐ ﺇﺣﺪﺍﻫﻤﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ:
" ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﺮﺏ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺣﻠﺘﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺪﻡ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻓﻀﻠﻬﻤﺎ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ:
ﺍﺭﻛﺐ ،ﻓﺪﺍﻙ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻻ ﺃﺭﻛﺐ ﺑﻌﻴﺮﺍ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻲ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻬﻲ ﻟﻚ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺜﻤﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺑﺘﻌﺘﻬﺎ ﺑﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺍ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺧﺬﺗﻬﺎ ﺑﻪ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﻲ ﻟﻚ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٣٢٩
) (٢ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﺛﻲ :ﻧﺴﺒﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻔﺎﺛﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺪﻱ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﻳﻘﻂ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﺸﺮﻛﺎ ﻳﺪﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻳﻖ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ " :٤٥١٧ﻭﻟﻢ ﺃﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺬﻫﺒﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺮﻳﺪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺰﻡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺳﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺄﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ
ﻟﻪ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ ".
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٣٢ﺱ ١٠ - ٩ﻭﺹ ٣٣ﺱ .٣
) (٤ﻗﺒﻠﺔ ﻫﻲ ﺃﻡ ﺍﻷﻭﺱ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺰﺭﺝ .ﻭﻫﻰ ﻗﻴﻠﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻛﺎﻫﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺬﺭﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ
ﺑﻦ ﻟﻴﺚ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻮﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻑ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻀﺎﻋﺔ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .١٤٠ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :٣٣٤ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻗﻴﻠﺔ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺟﺪﻛﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﺀ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ " :٤٥ﻫﺬﺍ ﺟﺪﻛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﻨﺘﻈﺮﻭﻥ ".
)(٥٢
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻇﻞ ﻧﺨﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻭﻫﻴﺌﺘﻪ،
ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺭﺁﻩ ،ﻭﺭﻛﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻧﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺯﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﻈﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺄﻇﻠﻪ ﺑﺮﺩﺍﺋﻪ ،ﻓﻌﺮﻓﻨﺎﻩ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ .ﻭﺩﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻟﻤﺎ ﻋﺰﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺔ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺳﻌﺪ :ﻳﺎ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻟﻨﺒﻨﻲ ﻟﻚ ﻋﺮﻳﺸﺎ
ﻓﺘﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻧﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻳﻚ ،ﻓﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﺒﻨﻮﻩ ﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻌﺪﻝ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﺃﻥ ﻋﺒﺄﻫﻢ ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻣﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺼﺎﻓﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺮﺍﺗﺒﻬﻢ .ﻓﺪﺧﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺩﺧﻞ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﻨﺎﺷﺪﺗﻚ
ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ) (١ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻨﺠﺰ ﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻭﻋﺪﻙ .ﻓﺨﻔﻖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺧﻔﻘﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﺎﻧﺘﺒﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﺑﺸﺮ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﺃﺗﺎﻙ ﻧﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﺁﺧﺬ ﺑﻌﻨﺎﻥ ﻓﺮﺳﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﺩﻩ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻨﺎﻳﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﻘﻊ )!(٢
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻮﻗﻮﻓﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺮﺍﺗﺒﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﺮﺗﺒﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﺭﺗﺐ ﻟﺴﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻣﺘﻮﺷﺤﺎ
ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻳﺤﺮﺳﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺨﺎﻓﺔ ﻛﺮ
ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻮﻟﺔ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎﺵ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :٤٤٤ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﻨﺎﺷﺪﺗﻚ ﺭﺑﻚ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﻨﻘﻊ :ﺍﻟﻐﺒﺎﺭ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺽ ﺍﻷﻧﻒ " :٦٩ :٢ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺱ ﻟﻪ ﺷﻘﺮﺍﺀ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻤﺎﻣﺔ ﺣﻤﺮﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﺼﻢ ﺑﺜﻨﻴﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﻐﺒﺎﺭ ".
)(٥٣
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻭﺻﺪﻳﻘﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺃﻓﻀﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺏ
ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻋﺮﻑ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ
ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺧﺼﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻮﻩ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺷﺒﻬﻬﻢ ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﻓﻴﻌﺔ،
ﻣﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﺗﺒﺎﻉ ،ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﺷﺒﺎﻩ
ﻟﻬﺬﺍ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ
ﺳﻮﺍﻩ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﺘﻢ.
ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﺫﺍﻛﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻟﻴﺰﻳﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻭﻳﻜﺸﻒ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ.
ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ]ﻣﻦ ﻟﻪ )[(١
ﻣﺜﻞ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻧﺒﺎﻫﺘﻪ ﻭﻛﺮﻡ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ .ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺑﻼﻝ ،ﻭﻣﺴﻄﺢ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺛﺎﺛﺔ ،ﻭﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻓﻬﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻓﻼ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻳﻌﺪﻟﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﺎﻫﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻓﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
ﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﺻﻨﺎﻑ :ﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻭﺑﺪﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﺷﺮﺣﻪ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺳﺒﺐ
ﺣﻀﻮﺭﻩ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺑﻼﺋﻪ ،ﻭﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻕ
ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻭﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﻮﺩﻳﺔ ﻭﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻭﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻤﺆﻭﻧﺘﻪ ﻭﻛﻠﻔﺘﻪ .ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺭﺑﻴﺐ
--------------------
) (١ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﻠﺘﺌﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
)(٥٤
ﻭﻧﺴﻴﺐ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺔ ﻛﻤﺴﻄﺢ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺛﺎﺛﺔ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺑﻴﺒﻪ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺘﻪ ) (١ﻭﻋﻠﻰ
ﻳﺪﻩ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺑﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﺒﺼﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻳﺎﻣﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺣﻠﻒ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻘﺮﺑﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻄﺄ ﺭﺣﻠﻪ ،ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺒﺮ ) (٢ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻣﻊ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ،ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺑﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻻﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺴﻄﺢ
ﻭﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻌﻔﻮ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻴﺪﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺣﻠﻪ ﻭﺗﺤﺖ ﺟﻨﺎﺣﻪ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﺤﻜﻢ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﺒﻴﻪ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ -ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ) (٣ﻳﻔﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻵﻯ
ﻭﻳﺨﺼﻪ ﺑﻤﺨﺎﻃﺒﺘﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﻳﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻬﻮﺭ ﻓﺮﻕ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﺛﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ -ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺄﺗﻞ ﺃﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ
ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻌﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﺍ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺑﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﻛﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﻟﻴﻌﻔﻮﺍ ﻟﻴﺼﻔﺤﻮﺍ ﺃﻻ ﺗﺤﺒﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻐﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻜﻢ " .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ:
ﺑﻠﻰ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺏ .ﻓﺮﺩﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺣﻠﻪ ﻭﻋﻔﺎ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺟﺮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ
ﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺠﺮﻳﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺑﻰ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺘﻪ ).(٤
ﻭﺟﻌﻞ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻭﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﺴﺎﻛﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ
ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ) ،(٥ﻭﺷﺄﻧﻪ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﺤﻘﻴﻖ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺧﺎﻟﺘﻪ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٧٩٢٩ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٧٣٣ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٢٠٧
ﻭﻣﺴﻄﺢ ﻟﻘﺐ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻋﻮﻑ.
) (٢ﻛﺒﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺴﺮ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻻﺛﻢ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻜﺮﻳﻢ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﻮﻟﻰ
ﻛﺒﺮﻩ " ﻗﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮ ﺍﻻﺛﻢ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ " :ﺃﻥ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻛﺒﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ " .ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ
)ﻛﺒﺮ( ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺜﺮ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ".
) (٤ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺷﻴﺔ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻰ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ٣٣ﻭﺍﻻﻧﺒﺎﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺒﺎﺋﻞ
ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﺓ ٧٠ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٧٣٣
)(٥٥
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ﻭﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻣﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺗﺒﺎﻋﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻫﻢ ﺃﻛﻔﺎﺀ
ﺿﺪﻩ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻗﻮﻥ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺨﺎﻳﺮﻫﻢ ﻭﻳﻮﺍﺯ ]ﻧﻬﻢ[ ﻓﻴﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺃﻓﻀﻠﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻓﻠﻢ
ﻳﻌﺎﺭﺿﻪ ،ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﻣﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ) (١ﻣﺜﻞ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻪ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺠﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﻕ ﺩﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ،
ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻣﻰ ﺑﺴﻬﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻟﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ:
" ﺃﺭﻡ ﻓﺪﺍﻙ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ " ،ﻓﺠﻤﻊ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮﻳﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻤﻌﻬﻤﺎ ﻻﺣﺪ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺧﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﺎﻫﻰ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﻠﻴﺄﺕ ﻛﻞ ﺍﻣﺮﺉ
ﺑﺨﺎﻟﻪ ) " (٢ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺯﺍﻝ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺼﺮﻩ ﻭﻣﻠﻜﻪ ﻭﻋﻦ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﺮﻩ -ﻭﻣﺜﻞ
ﺣﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺘﻪ ) ،(٣ﻣﻊ ﻓﺮﻭﺳﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ
ﺑﺄﺳﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻳﻪ ،ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ
ﻋﻤﺎﺋﻢ ﺻﻔﺮ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ
ﺑﻤﺴﻴﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻓﺎﺳﺘﺸﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ،
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﻣﺬﻱ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺟﺎﺑﺮ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺧﺎﻟﻰ ﻓﻠﻴﺮﻧﻲ ﺍﻣﺮﺅ ﺧﺎﻟﻪ " .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ
٣١٨٧ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﺟﻤﺔ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ .ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺧﺆﻭﻟﺘﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﻴﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ
ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻡ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻮﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺁﻣﻨﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻗﺘﻴﺒﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ " :٥٧ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻵﻣﻨﺔ ﺃﺥ ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻧﺤﻦ ﺃﺧﻮﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻻﻥ ﺁﻣﻨﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ".
) (٣ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ،ﺃﻣﻪ ﺻﻔﻴﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٢٧٨٣
)(٥٦
ﻓﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻭﺣﺚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺓ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ) (١ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺍﻣﺾ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﻙ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻮﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻚ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺑﻨﻮ ﺇﺳﺮﺍﺋﻴﻞ
ﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ " :ﺍﺫﻫﺐ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺭﺑﻚ ﻓﻘﺎﺗﻼ ﺇﻧﺎ ﻫﺎ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻗﺎﻋﺪﻭﻥ " ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﺫﻫﺐ
ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺭﺑﻚ ﻓﻘﺎﺗﻼ ﺇﻧﺎ ﻣﻌﻜﻢ ﻣﻘﺎﺗﻠﻮﻥ .ﻓﻮﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻌﺜﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻖ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﺳﺮﺕ
ﺑﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﺮﻙ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻐﻤﺎﺩ ) (٢ﻟﺠﺎﻟﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻧﺒﻠﻐﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ]ﻟﻪ[ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻛﺎﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻻﻥ
ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺍﺩﻉ ﺭﺍﻓﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﺩﻭﻧﻪ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺱ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻛﺎﺏ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻨﺎﺧﺔ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﻃﻌﻨﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﺄﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ
ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﺎ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺤﺘﻤﻼ ﺻﺎﺑﺮﺍ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻗﺪ
ﻓﺮﻏﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺮﺓ ).(٣
ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻮﺍﺀ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺒﺎﺭﺯ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﻋﻮﺭﺗﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻗﺒﺎﻝ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﺎ ﻭﺇﺩﺑﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ
ﻣﻊ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﻴﻘﻈﺔ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺒﺎﺕ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﻟﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٣٣٤ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺛﻌﻠﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ،ﺗﺒﻨﺎﻩ ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻳﻐﻮﺙ
ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺮﻱ ﻓﻨﺴﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ " :ﺍﺩﻋﻮﻫﻢ ﻵﺑﺎﺋﻬﻢ " ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻦ
ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ،ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٨١٧٩
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﺑﺮﻙ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﺎﺩ " ،ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﻭﺑﺮﻙ ﺑﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻛﺜﺮ ﻭﻛﺴﺮﻫﺎ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻤﺎﺩ ﺑﻜﺴﺮ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻛﺜﺮ ﻭﺿﻤﻬﺎ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ .ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﺫﺍﺕ " ﻭ " ﺫﻭ " ﺗﺰﺍﺩ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ
ﺃﻋﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺍﻥ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺫﻭ ﺃﺛﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺫﻭ ﺣﺴﻢ .ﻭﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺟﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻨﺪﻯ ،ﻭﺫﺍﺕ
ﺍﻷﺻﺎﺩ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺟﺒﺎﻝ ﺗﻬﺎﻣﺔ ،٣١ﻭﺑﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻐﻤﺎﺩ :ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻗﺎﺻﻲ ﻫﺠﺮ .ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﻙ:
ﺣﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺣﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺓ ﺧﺸﻨﺔ ﺑﺼﻌﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻋﺮﺓ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻳﺎﻗﻮﺕ.
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٤٦ - ٤٥
)(٥٧
ﺑﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻻﻧﺤﻴﺎﺯ ) (١ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺭﺯ ،ﻻﻥ ﺣﻔﻆ
ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺣﺪ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﻛﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﻳﻄﺎﻟﺒﻪ ﻭﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺧﺘﻠﻪ،
ﻭﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﻋﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺧﻄﺄﻩ ﻭﺿﻌﻔﻪ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻠﻜﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﻦ
ﺿﻌﻒ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺭﺯ ﻭﺧﻄﺌﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺳﻘﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺻﻐﺮ
ﺣﻈﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻗﻞ ﺃﺟﺮﺍ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﺍﻷﻋﻈﻢ ) (٢ﻟﺒﻌﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺑﻼﺩ ﻋﺪﻭﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻼﺩﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﻣﻠﻪ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ.
)* ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﺗﺰﻳﺪﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻠﻰ ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻤﻮﻥ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﺘﻌﻈﻤﻮﺍ ﺑﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻛﺼﻨﻴﻌﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﺮﺣﺐ .ﺣﻴﺚ ﻓﺨﻤﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﺑﺎﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ
ﻭﻧﻔﺨﺘﻤﻮﻩ ) (٣ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻼﻏﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺳﻜﺘﻢ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ .ﻭﻣﺮﺣﺐ
ﻭﻳﺎﺳﺮ ﺃﺧﻮﺍﻥ ﺷﻬﺪﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﺎﻫﺔ ﻟﻴﺎﺳﺮ ) .(٤ﻓﻘﺼﺪﺗﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﺧﻤﻞ
ﻓﺮﻓﻌﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﻭﺷﻬﺮﺗﻤﻮﻩ ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻗﺼﺪﺗﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺭﻓﻊ ﻓﺄﺧﻤﻠﺘﻤﻮﻩ )(٥
ﻭﺃﺧﻔﻴﺘﻤﻮﻩ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ .ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻳﺎﺳﺮﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺎ
ﻓﺎﺿﻄﺮﺑﺎ ﺑﺄﺳﻴﺎﻓﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻐﻨﻴﺎ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻣﺮﺍﺭﺍ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﺤﺠﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ) (٦ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺮﺿﺖ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻻﻧﺤﻴﺎﺩ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻧﺤﻴﺎﺯ :ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺪﻝ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻥ ﻭﻳﺘﺮﻛﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺁﺧﺮ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " :ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻸﻭﻟﻴﺎﺀ ﺍﻧﺤﺎﺯﻭﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﻭﺣﺎﺻﻮﺍ .ﻭﻟﻸﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻧﻬﺰﻣﻮﺍ
ﻭﻭﻟﻮﺍ ﻣﺪﺑﺮﻳﻦ ".
) (٢ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻗﻞ ﺃﺟﺮﺍ ﻭﺃﺻﻐﺮ ﺣﻈﺎ " ﻭﻫﻮ ﺗﻜﺮﺍﺭ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺗﻔﺨﺘﻤﻮﻩ ".
) (٤ﻣﺮﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻴﻬﻮﺩﻱ ﻭﺃﺧﻮﻩ ﻳﺎﺳﺮ ،ﻗﺘﻼ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﻭﺓ ﺧﻴﺒﺮ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ.٧٦١ - ٧٦٠ .
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺮﺣﺒﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :١٣٤ :٢
" ﻫﺬﻩ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺮﺣﺐ .ﻭﺭﻭﻳﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﻛﻮﻉ
ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺎﺣﺘﻤﻠﺘﻤﻮﻩ ".
) (٦ﻟﺤﺞ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ :ﻧﺸﺐ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﺰﻣﻪ.
)(٥٨
ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﺷﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻓﺠﺬﺑﺎﻫﺎ ) (١ﺿﺮﺑﺎ ﻭﺧﺒﻄﺎ ،ﺛﻢ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻣﻜﻦ
ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻓﻀﺮﺏ ﺭﺃﺱ ﻳﺎﺳﺮ ﺿﺮﺑﺔ ﻗﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﻀﺔ ﻭﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻋﺾ
ﺛﻨﻴﺘﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻣﺎ ﺃﺟﻮﺩ ﺳﻴﻔﻚ! ﻓﻐﻀﺐ ).(٢
ﻭﻗﺼﺪﺗﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ،ﻓﺘﺮﻛﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻴﻞ،
ﻭﻋﺘﻴﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ،ﻭﺑﺴﻄﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﺄﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ ﺣﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﻔﺠﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﺒﻴﻦ
ﻭﺍﻻﺣﻼﻑ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺩﻭﺱ ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﺧﺰﺍﻋﺔ ﻭﺣﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻮﻝ.
ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻭﺷﺮ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻟﻌﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ
ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺫﻛﺮﺍ *(.
)* * ﻭﻛﺬﺍ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ) (٣ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺣﻀﺮ
ﺣﺮﺑﺎ ﻗﻂ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺑﻌﺪﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﻄﺎﺋﻞ * *(.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﺫﻫﺒﺘﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﺭﺯ ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﻞ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
--------------------
) (١ﺟﺬﺏ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ ﻭﺟﺬﻣﻪ :ﻗﻄﻌﻪ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :٧٦١ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻴﻔﻚ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻟﺼﺎﺭﻣﺎ ﻋﻀﺒﺎ،
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺎﺭﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻲ ﺃﻛﺮﻫﺘﻪ ".
*( ﺃﻭﺟﺰ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ -ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ﻓﻲ - ٢٧٩ :٤ﻋﺒﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻦ
ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﺗﺰﻳﺪﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻠﻰ " ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٥٨ﺱ ٨ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺭﺓ
" ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﺛﻢ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺻﺮﻭﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻠﻮﻥ ﺑﺘﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺘﻠﻬﻢ ﻓﺄﻃﺮﻭﻫﻢ
ﻭﻏﻠﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﻟﻴﺴﻮﺍ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ،ﻓﻤﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ،ﺯﻛﻮﻩ ﺃﺷﺠﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻋﺘﻴﺒﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ،ﻭﺑﺴﻄﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﺄﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ ﺣﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﻔﺠﺎﺭ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺩﻭﺱ
ﻭﺣﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻮﻝ ﻓﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻟﻌﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ﺫﻛﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ " .ﻭﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٣
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﻴﻞ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ .ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " :٢٨١ :٤ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﻭﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻗﺘﻴﻠﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ".
* *( ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺓ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٤
)(٥٩
ﺟﻤﻴﻼ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺼﺪﺍ ﻣﻘﺒﻮﻻ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺎﻋﺔ،
ﻭﻇﻨﻨﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺮﻑ ﺃﻣﺜﻞ ﻭﺃﺟﻞ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ) (١ﻣﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻨﺎﺀﻫﺎ ﻭﺇﺧﻮﺗﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﻤﺎﻣﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺗﺴﻤﻊ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ
ﻭﺗﺮﻯ ﻟﻪ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﺃﻭ ﺃﺧﺎﻩ ،ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ
ﺣﺮﺏ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﺔ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻔﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ
ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ " ﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﺸﺮ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻠﻲ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻛﻢ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺑﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ " ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻛﺮﺍﻫﻴﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺣﻮﻟﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ ﻭﻗﻠﺒﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ؟!
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺧﺎﻩ .ﻗﻴﻞ :ﺃﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﺔ .ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻓﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ
ﻭﺃﺧﺎﻩ ﻭﻋﻤﻪ .ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﻠﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻋﺰﻣﻪ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﻴﻊ ﺛﻢ ﻳﺠﺰﻉ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺎﺩﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺒﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﻭﻣﻮﺕ
ﺍﻷﺣﻘﺎﺩ؟! ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻫﺪ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ،
ﻭﻗﺒﺾ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺭﺍﺽ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻣﺔ
ﻭﻟﻮﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻳﺪﻩ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
)(٦٠
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻈﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻭ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺮﺍﻫﻴﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺮﻑ
ﻗﻂ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺒﺾ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺗﻌﺠﺒﺎ؟!
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻈﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﺪﺭﻳﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻭﻣﻨﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻡ
ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻛﻔﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ
ﻳﻀﻄﻐﻦ ﺍﻣﺮﺅ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ؟! ﻷﻧﻪ ﺇﻥ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﺘﺪ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻧﺒﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺣﻘﺪﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﻔﺮﺩ ) (١ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ
ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺫﻧﺒﺎ ﻭﺃﺟﺪﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﺣﻘﺪﺍ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻓﺨﺶ ﻗﺒﺤﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﻄﺄ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻮﺟﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ) (٢ﻛﺸﻔﻪ ﻭﺗﺒﻴﻴﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ
ﺣﻤﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﺃﺳﻤﺢ ﻧﻔﺴﺎ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻭﺍﻓﻖ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ
ﻣﻦ ﺇﺧﻼﺻﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﺥ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ .ﻭﺣﺒﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺑﻐﻀﺘﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻃﺮﺡ
ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ ،ﻭﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻭﺝ ﺃﺧﺘﻪ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ) ،(٣ﻣﻦ ﺳﺎﻟﻢ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻲ
ﻷﺯﻭﺟﻜﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻚ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ!! ﻓﻌﺎﺗﺒﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻜﺮﻩ
ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻓﻰ ﺳﺎﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﺎﺗﺒﻨﻲ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻳﺤﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻜﻞ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻓﻠﻴﻨﻈﺮ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺳﺎﻟﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻠﻰ ".
) (٣ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﺧﺘﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺐ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻲ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺧﻄﺄ ﺗﺎﺭﻳﺨﻴﺎ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺯﻭﺝ ﺳﺎﻟﻤﺎ ﺍﺑﻨﺔ ﺃﺧﻴﻪ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ،ﻛﻤﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﺟﻤﺔ ﺳﺎﻟﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٣٠٤٦ﻭﺗﺮﺟﻤﺔ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٨٥٢ﻣﻦ ﻗﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺒﻨﻰ ﺳﺎﻟﻤﺎ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺃﺧﺖ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻓﻬﻲ ﻋﻤﺘﻬﺎ.
)(٦١
)*( ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻭﺗﺠﺮﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﺣﺪ.
)*( ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻟﻴﺒﺎﺭﺯﻩ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻃﻠﻊ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺱ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻜﻔﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﺡ ﻻ ﻳﺮﻯ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻴﻨﺎﻩ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ] :ﻫﻞ ) [(١ﻣﻦ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯ!!
ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ،ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﻴﻖ .ﻓﻨﻬﺾ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺴﻌﻰ
ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻏﻀﺒﻪ ﻭﺣﺪﺗﻪ،
ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ " :ﺷﻢ ﺳﻴﻔﻚ ﻭﺍﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻚ ﻭﻣﺘﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻚ *( ".
)* * ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻓﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻼ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ * *(.
ﻓﺎﺟﺘﻤﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻣﺮﺍﻥ :ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ
ﺻﻴﺎﻧﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺇﺷﻔﺎﻗﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
--------------------
ﻧﻘﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ﻓﻲ ٢٨١ :٣ﻧﺼﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻟﻌﻞ ﻣﻮﻗﻌﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ .ﻭﻫﻮ:
" ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻓﻼ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻷﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ".
ﺛﻢ ﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٥
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ .٢٨١ :٣
*( ﺷﺎﻡ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻳﺸﻴﻤﻪ :ﺭﺩﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﻪ .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺓ ﻓﻲ
ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٦
* *( ﺃﻭﺭﺩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺭﺓ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " .٢٨١ :٣ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﺁﺛﺎﺭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻛﺂﺛﺎﺭ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻌﻪ ﻭﺗﺒﻠﻐﻪ ﻗﻮﺗﻪ .ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻬﻮﺩ ﻓﻼ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ".
ﺛﻢ ﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ ﺭﻗﻢ ).(٢٧
)(٦٢
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺍﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻚ ﻭﻣﺘﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻚ " ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ
ﺷﺮﻳﻒ ﻓﺎﺿﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺭﻣﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ
ﻳﺴﻌﻰ ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻕ ﻳﻄﻴﺮ ﻃﻴﺮﺍﻧﺎ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺁﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ! ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﺍﻓﻴﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ،ﻓﺒﺪﺭﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺳﺄﻟﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻻ ﺗﺮﻛﺘﻨﻲ
ﻓﻮﻟﻴﺘﻨﻲ ﻧﺰﻋﻬﺎ -ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺣﺪﺍﺋﺪ ﺍﻟﺰﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻮﺍﺗﻲ ﻧﺸﺒﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ]ﻭ[ ﺟﺒﻴﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻔﺮ -
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻜﻢ! ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ.
ﻭﺛﺮﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺰﻉ ﺣﻠﻘﺔ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻟﺼﻨﻴﻊ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻣﻮﻗﻔﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ " :ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ! " ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺻﺒﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻴﻢ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ
.ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﺳﺪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ " ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ " ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﻗﺒﻴﻠﺔ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺭﺟﻼﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ :ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺎﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺬﺭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻮﺡ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ،
ﻭﻋﺎﺻﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻷﻗﻠﺢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ
ﻭﺃﺳﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻀﻴﺮ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﺣﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ " :ﻛﻴﻒ ﺗﺮﻭﻥ
)(٦٣
ﻳﺎ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺪ ) ...(١ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻃﺎﻋﻬﻢ ﻟﻴﺼﺪﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ " ﻗﺎﻡ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻧﺮﻯ -ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ -ﺃﻥ
ﻧﻤﻀﻰ ﻟﻮﺟﻬﻨﺎ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﺻﺪﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ ﻗﺘﻠﻨﺎﻩ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺑﺪﻳﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻭﺭﻗﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺨﺰﺍﻋﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ .ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﺍﻏﺘﺮﺭﺕ
ﺑﻘﺘﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻣﻚ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﺳﺘﻘﺎﺗﻠﻜﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺫﺭﺍﺭﻳﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻗﺪ ﺍﺳﺘﻨﻔﺮﻭﺍ
ﺍﻷﺣﺎﺑﻴﺶ ﻭﺧﺮﺟﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻠﺪﺡ ) ،(٢ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺫ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺎﻓﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﻯ ﻣﻌﻚ
ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺟﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻰ ﺃﺭﺍﻛﻢ ﻗﻮﻣﺎ ﻻ ﺳﻼﺡ ﻟﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺾ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﻮﻛﻢ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻋﻀﻀﺖ ﺑﺒﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻼﺕ ،ﺃﻧﺤﻦ ﻧﺴﻠﻤﻪ؟!
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺪﻳﻞ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻮﻻ ﻳﺪ ﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻱ ﻷﺟﺒﺘﻚ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻲ ﻭﻗﻮﻣﻲ
ﻟﻨﺤﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ!
ﻭﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻧﺎﺥ ﺭﺍﺣﻠﺘﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﺗﺮﻛﺖ ﻛﻌﺒﺎ ﻭﻋﺎﻣﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ )(٣
ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺫ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺎﻓﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﻯ ﻣﻌﻚ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺃﻋﺮﻑ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻭﻧﺴﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻬﻢ
ﻟﺨﻠﻘﺎﺀ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺬﻟﻮﻙ -ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺳﻜﻮﺕ -ﻓﻐﻀﺐ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺍﻣﺼﺺ
ﺑﺒﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻼﺕ ) ،(٤ﺃﻧﺤﻦ ﻧﺨﺬﻟﻪ؟! ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻮﻻ ﻳﺪ ﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻱ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﺑﻠﺪﺡ :ﻭﺍﺩ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٢٨٠ - ٢٧٩
) (٣ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺩ :ﺟﻤﻊ ﻋﺪ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺴﺮ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " :ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ :ﻧﺰﻟﻮﺍ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺩ ﻣﻴﺎﻩ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ ،ﺃﻱ ﺫﻭﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺩﺓ ﻛﺎﻟﻌﻴﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﻵﺑﺎﺭ " .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺪﺍﺩ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٧٤٤ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ " :١١٦ :٢ﺑﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻼﺕ ".
)(٦٤
ﻷﺟﺒﺘﻚ! ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻤﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻳﻌﻴﻨﻪ
ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺮﻳﻀﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻼﺙ ،ﻓﻤﺸﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺄﻋﻄﺎﻩ ﻋﺸﺮ ﻓﺮﺍﺋﺾ ).(١
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺃﻳﺎﺩﻳﻪ ﻭﻧﺒﻠﻪ ﻭﺍﻣﻨﻌﺎ ) ،(٢ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻭﺷﻬﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺭﻳﺎﺳﺘﻪ؟!
ﻓﺒﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺪﺓ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻭﺻﻮﺍﺏ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﻭﺣﺸﺘﻪ
ﻭﻳﻤﻦ ﺑﺮﻛﺘﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻛﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ .ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﻭﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻔﻴﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻊ
ﻛﺜﻴﻒ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ :ﻳﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ
ﻗﺪ ﺍﻧﺘﻘﻀﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻚ ﻟﻦ ﺗﺼﻨﻊ ﺑﺘﻔﺮﻳﻖ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺘﺸﺮ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ،
ﺍﺟﻌﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﺪﺓ ﻷﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ﺗﺮﻣﻰ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻧﺤﻮﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺄﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻐﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﺭﺍﺭﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ،ﻓﻠﻮ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﻧﻴﺖ ﺑﻐﺰﻭ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻀﺮﺏ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﺠﺮﺍﻧﻪ ﻭﻳﻌﻮﺩ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺧﺮﺟﻮﺍ ﻣﻨﻪ
]ﺃ[ ﻭﻳﻔﻨﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﺛﻢ ﺗﺒﻌﺚ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ ،ﻓﺘﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻧﻔﺬﺕ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺩﻓﻌﺖ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻻﻧﺎ ﻧﺨﺎﻑ
ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺰﺣﻒ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻳﻮﻣﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﻋﺐ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﻼﻣﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﻞ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺷﻴﺌﺎ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺘﻨﺎ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ﻟﻮ ﻇﻨﻨﺖ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺎﻉ ﺗﺄﻛﻠﻨﻲ ﻷﻧﻔﺬﺕ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﺚ ،ﻭﻻ ﺑﺪﺃﺕ ﺑﺄﻭﻟﻰ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﻔﺬﻭﺍ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﺃﺻﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻳﻀﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﺧﻮﺫ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ،ﺛﻢ ﺍﺗﺴﻊ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﺴﻤﻰ ﻛﻞ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻓﺮﻳﻀﺔ.
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ.
)(٦٥
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺇﺑﻄﺎﺀﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺗﻠﻜﺆﻫﻢ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻣﻐﻀﺒﺎ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﺤﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺗﻜﻔﻰ ﻳﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻧﻨﻔﺬ ﻷﻣﺮﻙ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺪﺓ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻉ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﻭﺣﺸﺘﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻓﻴﺎ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻭﻻﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺣﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﻴﻤﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻭﻟﻰ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻴﺴﺮﺗﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻴﺴﺘﻜﻔﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺃﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ
ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻔﻴﺎﻧﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺍﻧﻜﺸﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺛﺒﺘﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻌﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ -ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻﺑﺪ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﻤﻨﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻴﺴﺮﺓ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ -ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ،
ﻭﺃﻳﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ) (١ﺃﺧﻮ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻻﻣﻪ ﻭﺻﺒﺮ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﻭﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﻭﺛﻼﺛﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺳﺒﻌﺔ
ﻭﺳﺘﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺷﻜﻴﻤﺘﻪ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﻭﺻﺮﺍﻣﺔ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ
ﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻣﻨﺎﻓﻘﻮﻥ
ﻻ ﻳﺄﻟﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﺧﺒﺎﻻ ﻳﻌﻀﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻷﻧﺎﻣﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﻆ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﻧﺘﻘﺾ ﻣﺎ ﺣﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ :ﺃﻳﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ،ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٨٤٥ﻭﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٣٩١
ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٤٠٧ﻭﻳﺴﻤﻰ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ " ﺃﻳﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﺃﻳﻤﻦ ".
)(٦٦
ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻲ ﻻ ﻳﻤﻮﺕ ،ﻓﻠﻴﻌﺒﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ
ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺮﺍﻩ ﺇﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻫﻠﻚ ﺇﻟﻬﻪ ،ﻓﺎﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺼﻤﻮﺍ
ﺑﺪﻳﻨﻜﻢ ،ﻭﺗﻮﻛﻠﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺑﻜﻢ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ ،ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺔ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻧﺎﺻﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺼﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺰ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻇﻬﺮﻛﻢ،
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺑﻪ ﻫﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﺣﻼﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺣﺮﺍﻣﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻧﺒﺎﻟﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﺳﻴﻮﻑ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻮﻟﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺿﻌﻨﺎﻫﺎ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻮﺍﺗﻘﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻨﺠﺎﻫﺪﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﻔﻨﺎ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺟﺎﻫﺪﻧﺎ
ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻼ ﻳﺒﻘﻴﻦ ﻣﺒﻖ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺮﺍﻩ ﺇﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻫﻠﻚ ﺇﻟﻬﻪ " ﻷﻧﻪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻤﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﻼﻣﺎ ﻗﺒﻴﺤﺎ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﻓﻌﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻓﻊ
ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ ،ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺳﻨﺬﻛﺮﻩ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ).(١
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻟﻔﻀﻠﻪ،
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻛﻔﺎﺭ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺑﻪ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻓﺰﻋﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﺳﺎﺭﻯ
ﺑﺪﺭ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺣﺒﺴﻮﺍ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ﻭﺍﻗﺘﺮﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻃﻤﻌﻮﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺎﺓ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ :ﻟﻮ ﺑﻌﺜﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺃﻭﺻﻞ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ
ﻷﺭﺣﺎﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺁﺛﺮ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻣﻨﻪ! ﻓﺒﻌﺜﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺄﺗﺎﻫﻢ
ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﺇﻥ ﻓﻴﻨﺎ ﺍﻵﺑﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻷﺑﻨﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺧﻮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻤﻮﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺑﻨﻰ
ﺍﻟﻌﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪﻧﺎ ﻗﺮﻳﺐ ،ﻓﻜﻠﻢ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻚ ﻳﻤﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻔﺎﺩﻳﻨﺎ ،ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ
ﻻ ﺁﻟﻮ ﻛﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ! ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﺼﺮﻑ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺹ .٨١ - ٧٩
)(٦٧
ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻟﻮ ﺑﻌﺜﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺄﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﺴﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ،ﻓﻠﻌﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻜﻒ ﻋﻨﺎ ﺷﺮﻩ! ﻓﺄﺭﺳﻠﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﺠﺎﺀﻫﻢ .ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻻ ﺁﻟﻮﻛﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﺮﺍ! ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﺼﺮﻑ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﻔﺜﺆﻩ ) (١ﻭﻳﻠﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ ،ﻗﻮﻣﻚ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻵﺑﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻷﺑﻨﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻤﻮﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﻮﺍﻥ،
ﻭﺑﻨﻮ ﺍﻟﻌﻢ .ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪﻫﻢ ﻣﻨﻚ ﻗﺮﻳﺐ ،ﻓﺎﻣﻨﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ،ﺃﻭ ﻓﺎﺩﻫﻢ
ﻳﺴﺘﻨﻘﺬﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺬﺕ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﻬﻮ ﻗﻮﺓ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ،
ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﺑﻘﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ!! ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻓﺘﻨﺤﻰ ﻧﺎﺣﻴﺔ ﻭﺳﻜﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺟﺎﺀ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﺠﻠﺲ ﻣﺠﻠﺲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻫﻢ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺀ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﺬﺑﻮﻙ ﻭﻗﺎﺗﻠﻮﻙ ﻭﺃﺧﺮﺟﻮﻙ ،ﺍﺿﺮﺏ ﺃﻋﻨﺎﻗﻬﻢ ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ ﺭﺅﻭﺱ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ،
ﻭﺃﺋﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻀﻼﻟﺔ ،ﻳﻌﺰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻳﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ!! ﻓﺴﻜﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻋﺎﺩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺠﻠﺴﻪ ﻭﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ،
ﺛﻢ ﺗﻨﺤﻰ ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﺠﻠﺲ ﻣﺠﻠﺴﻪ ﻭﺃﻋﺎﺩ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ،ﺛﻢ ﺗﻨﺤﻰ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺟﻠﺲ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺕ .ﻓﺴﻜﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ،
ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻓﺪﺧﻞ ﻗﺒﺘﻪ ﻓﻤﻜﺚ ﺳﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺧﺮﺝ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﺨﻮﺿﻮﻥ ،ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ :ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻴﻜﻢ؟ ﺩﻋﻮﻫﻤﺎ
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺜﻼ :ﻣﺜﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻴﻜﺎﺋﻴﻞ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺿﺎ
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻔﻮ ،ﻭﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻟﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﻞ،
ﺃﻭﻗﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ ﻓﻄﺮﺣﻮﻩ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺯﺍﺩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻑ ﻟﻜﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﻳﻔﺜﺆﻩ :ﻳﺴﻜﻦ ﻏﻀﺒﻪ .ﻭﺭﺳﻤﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﺑﻔﺘﺎﺅﻩ ".
)(٦٨
ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﺒﺪﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻓﻼ ﺗﻌﻘﻠﻮﻥ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻓﻤﻦ ﺗﺒﻌﻨﻲ
ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻣﻨﻰ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻋﺼﺎﻧﻲ ﻓﺈﻧﻚ ﻏﻔﻮﺭ ﺭﺣﻴﻢ " ﻭﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻛﻤﺜﻞ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
" ﺇﻥ ﺗﻌﺬﺑﻬﻢ ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﻙ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺗﻐﻔﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﺈﻧﻚ ﺃﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻴﻢ ".
ﻭﻣﺜﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺨﻂ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻘﻤﺔ.
ﻭﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻧﻮﺡ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
" ﺭﺏ ﻻ ﺗﺬﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ ﺩﻳﺎﺭﺍ " ﻓﺪﻋﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺩﻋﻮﺓ
ﺃﻏﺮﻕ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ .ﻭﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺭﺑﻨﺎ
ﺍﻃﻤﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﺷﺪﺩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ ﻓﻼ ﻳﺆﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ
ﺍﻷﻟﻴﻢ " .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺰﻉ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻔﻴﻊ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ
ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺺ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻛﻴﻒ
ﺃﺳﺮﻯ ﺑﻪ ،ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﺬﻳﺐ ﻟﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺮ
ﻟﺘﻄﺮﺩ ﺷﻬﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ﺛﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻗﺒﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﺷﻬﺮﺍ ) ،(١ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻀﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺱ ﻭﺭﺟﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻴﻠﺘﻪ!! ﻓﺄﺗﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻟﻴﺤﺘﺠﻮﺍ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﻴﻌﺮﻓﻮﻩ ﺧﻄﺄﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺗﺒﺎﻋﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻇﻨﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻓﺄﺗﻮﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﻫﻠﻚ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻚ! -ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻛﻮﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ،
ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺘﺪﺃ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻔﺰﻉ -ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺱ ﻓﻲ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻏﺪﺍ
ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ!! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺇﻧﻜﻢ ﺗﻜﺬﺑﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺻﺪﻕ،
ﻓﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﺠﺒﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ؟! ﻓﻮﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺨﺒﺮﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻳﺄﺗﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :٢٦٤ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺮ ﻟﺘﻄﺮﺩ ﺷﻬﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ﻣﺪﺑﺮﺓ ﻭﺷﻬﺮﺍ ﻣﻘﺒﻠﺔ ".
)(٦٩
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻭ ﻧﻬﺎﺭ ﻓﺄﺻﺪﻗﻪ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺼﺮ ).(١
ﺛﻢ ﻧﻬﺾ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻴﺴﺄﻟﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﺼﻒ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺻﺪﻗﺖ ﺻﺪﻗﺖ! ﺃﺷﻬﺪ
ﺃﻧﻚ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ! ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﻃﺮﻗﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻗﻠﺒﻬﺎ ﻭﻋﺮﻑ
ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻀﻴﺔ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺘﺒﻮﺍ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﺎ:
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺻﻄﻠﺢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ .ﺍﺻﻄﻠﺤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻭﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺣﺠﺞ ﻳﺄﻣﻦ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻳﻜﻒ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻌﺾ.
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﺇﺳﻼﻝ ﻭﻻ ﺇﻏﻼﻝ ) ،(٢ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﺪ
ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻭﻋﻬﺪﻩ ﻓﻌﻞ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﺪ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﻋﻬﺪﻫﺎ ﻓﻌﻞ،
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺇﺫﻥ ﺭﺩﻩ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﺩﻩ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻳﺮﺟﻊ ﻋﺎﻣﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺄﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﺑﻼ ).(٣
ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻴﻘﻴﻢ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ،ﻻ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﺡ ﺇﻻ ﺳﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﻓﺮ ،ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺏ .ﺷﻬﺪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ،ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ) .(٤ﻭﺷﻬﺪ ﺣﻮﻳﻄﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ
ﻭﻣﻜﺮﺯ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻔﺺ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺧﻴﻒ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻧﻔﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺼﺮ " .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﺠﺒﻮﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ".
) (٢ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻝ " :ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻫﺮﺓ ﺑﺴﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ .ﻭﺍﻷﻏﻼﻝ :ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺪﺭ.
) (٣ﺃﻱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺑﻞ.
) (٤ﻭﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٢٩٨ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٧٤٩ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ " ١٢٠ :٢ﻣﺤﻤﻮﺩ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ " ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﻮﺍﻥ.
)(٧٠
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻧﺤﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ ) .(١ﻓﺄﻭﻝ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺳﻤﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﺛﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﺛﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ ﺛﻢ ﻓﻼﻥ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﺤﺎﺟﺰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻭﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺮﺍﻑ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ
ﻳﺴﻴﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺱ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻧﺜﻰ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺮﺽ
ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻞ ﻳﻨﺎﺩﻯ ﺑﺄﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﻮﺗﻪ :ﺃﻳﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻛﺒﺸﺔ؟ ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ .ﺃﻳﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ؟ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﻴﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ.
ﺃﻻ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ ﺩﻭﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﺳﺠﺎﻝ .ﻭﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ ﺑﺤﻨﻈﻠﺔ!! ) (٢ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ:
ﺃﻻ ﺃﺟﻴﺒﻪ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ :ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﻠﻰ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ :ﺃﻋﻞ ﻫﺒﻞ )!(٣
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺃﺟﻞ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ :ﻟﻨﺎ ﻋﺰﻯ ﻭﻻ ﻋﺰﻯ ﻟﻜﻢ!
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻮﻻﻧﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﻟﻜﻢ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻭﺃﻧﺒﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﺃﻏﻴﻆ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﻣﺎ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﺭﺋﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ -ﺛﺎﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻳﺘﻠﻮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺪﺍﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻃﺒﺔ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻳﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻛﺒﺸﺔ؟
ﺛﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻳﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﻫﻮ ﺟﻤﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻏﻨﻤﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ .ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ ،٢٧٥
٣٠٠ - ٢٩٩ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٧٤٩ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ .١٢١ :٢
) (٢ﻳﺸﻴﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻘﺘﻞ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻭﻗﻌﺔ ﺑﺪﺭ .ﻭﻣﺼﺮﻉ ﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﻏﺴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻟﻘﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﺍﺓ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﻼﻩ ﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﻟﻤﺤﻪ ﺷﺪﺍﺩ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ ﻓﻀﺮﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺍﺩ ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺛﺄﺭﻩ ﻟﻮﻟﺪﻩ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٥٦٧ ،٥٠٧
٥٦٨ -ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .١٤٩ ،١٥٨
) (٣ﻫﺒﻞ :ﺻﻨﻢ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ .ﺃﻋﻞ ﻫﺒﻞ .ﺃﻱ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺩﻳﻨﻚ ،ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٥٨٢ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻴﺴﺮ ﻭﺍﻷﺯﻻﻡ
ﻟﻤﺤﻘﻖ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﺹ .٦٨
)(٧١
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻧﺰﻭﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺒﺮ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻛﻞ ﻧﺎﺯﻝ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﺎﻫﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺯﺍﺭﺓ.
ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ،
ﺇﻧﻲ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻏﺎﺋﺒﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻠﺢ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ ﻓﺎﺷﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﻌﻬﺪ ﻭﺯﺩﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺓ .ﻗﺎﻝ.
ﺃﻭ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺪﻣﺖ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻬﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﺙ؟
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﻓﻨﺤﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺪﺗﻨﺎ ﻭﺻﻠﺤﻨﺎ،
ﻻ ﻧﺒﺪﻝ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻐﺪﺭ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺑﺪﺃ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ) (١ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻫﻞ ﻟﻚ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺠﻴﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺟﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻮﺍﺭ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻓﺄﺗﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻜﻠﻤﻪ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻟﻮ ﻭﺟﺪﺕ
ﺍﻟﺬﺭ ﺗﻘﺎﺗﻠﻜﻢ ﻻﻋﻨﺘﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ :ﺟﺰﻳﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻱ ﺭﺣﻢ ﺷﺮﺍ!
ﺛﻢ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ.
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻛﻴﻒ ﺟﻌﻠﻮﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺼﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺘﻤﺪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻓﻮﻕ ﻛﻞ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻣﺎ ﺑﺪﺃ ﺑﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺰﻉ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺮﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻭﺇﻛﺮﺍﻣﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻓﺘﺢ
ﻣﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺧﺮﺟﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻫﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻌﺎ ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻌﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﺁﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﻌﺎ،
ﻳﺘﺴﺎﻳﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﻳﺘﺤﺪﺛﺎﻥ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻃﻠﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﺳﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻀﻴﺮ ،ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻋﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ .ﻭﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻳﻖ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ،ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ﺃﻡ ﺣﺒﻴﺒﺔ ﺯﻭﺝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻟﻴﺠﻠﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺵ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻃﻮﺗﻪ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ .ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٣٥٨ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٨٠٧
ﺃﻧﻪ ﺩﺧﻞ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻷﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺛﻨﻰ ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﺛﻢ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ.
)(٧٢
ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻳﺴﺎﺭﻩ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺭﺕ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﻞ ﺑﺬﻯ ﻃﻮﻯ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻣﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﻮﻥ،
ﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺴﺎﻳﺮﻩ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺑﻨﺎﺕ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺣﻴﺤﺔ
ﻗﺪ ﻧﺸﺮﻥ ﺷﻌﻮﺭﻫﻦ ﻳﻠﻄﻤﻦ ﻭﺟﻮﻩ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻤﺮ ،ﻓﻨﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺗﺒﺴﻢ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ:
* ﻳﻠﻄﻤﻬﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ *
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ:
* ﺗﻈﻞ ﺟﻴﺎﺩﻧﺎ ﻣﺘﻤﻄﺮﺍﺕ *
ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺍﺭﺗﻔﺎﻉ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﺍﻫﻤﺎ ﺧﺮﺟﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ
ﻫﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺴﺘﺨﻔﻴﻴﻦ ﻣﺼﻄﺤﺒﻴﻦ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻌﺎ ﺁﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﻇﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ ﻣﻌﻠﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﺼﻄﺤﺒﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺻﻌﺪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻞ ﺑﺼﻐﺮﻯ ﺑﻨﺎﺗﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻣﻜﻔﻮﻑ ،ﻓﺒﻜﺖ
ﺑﻨﺘﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﺎ :ﻻ ﺗﺨﺎﻓﻲ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺧﺎﻙ ﻋﺘﻴﻘﺎ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ! ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ
ﻣﻜﺔ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺄﺑﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺷﻴﺦ ﻣﻜﻔﻮﻑ ﻟﻪ ﻏﺪﻳﺮﺗﺎﻥ ،ﻛﺄﻥ
ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﺛﻐﺎﻣﺔ ) (١ﺣﺘﻰ ﻫﺠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺗﻴﺘﻚ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ
ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﺴﻠﻢ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﻫﻼ ﺗﺮﻛﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺦ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺣﻠﻪ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺁﺗﻴﻪ .ﻓﻤﺴﺢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﺄﺳﻠﻢ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻪ.
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺑﻌﺲ ﻣﻦ ﻟﺒﻦ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻳﺴﺎﺭﻩ ﻭﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺏ ﻋﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ
ﻗﺪ ﺃﺣﺒﻮﺍ ﺳﺆﺭﻩ ) ،(٢ﻓﺸﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺃﻫﻮﻯ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺪﺡ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺑﻰ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ:
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻐﺪﻳﺮﺓ :ﺍﻟﺬﺅﺍﺑﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻐﺎﻡ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﺢ :ﻧﺒﺖ ﺃﺑﻴﺾ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺐ.
) (٢ﺭﺳﻤﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺪ ﺃﺣﺒﻮ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ".
)(٧٣
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﺍﻷﻳﻤﻦ ﻓﺎﻷﻳﻤﻦ ).(١
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻴﺨﺒﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺮﺏ
ﻣﻘﻌﺪﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻋﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ
ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺬﻛﻴﺮ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺒﺮﻭﺍ
ﻋﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻴﺴﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ ﻟﺤﺮﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻠﺲ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺼﺪﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺇﻻ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻴﺴﺎﺭ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻼﻝ
ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻣﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍﺗﻪ ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻭﻳﻠﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ .ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻼﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ .ﻭﺃﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺘﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻣﻊ
ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻨﺪﺓ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺴﺄﻝ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺄﻝ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺟﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺷﺊ ﻗﻂ
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻟﻪ ﺭﺟﻌﺔ ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻔﺘﻴﺎ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺭﺃﺱ
ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻭﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ،ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻓﻘﻬﻬﻤﺎ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻻﻥ
ﻋﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻪ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺑﺪﻳﻨﻬﻢ،
ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻬﻞ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻣﻴﺎﺳﺮﺓ ﺃﻭ ﺷﺒﻴﻪ
ﺑﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺎﺳﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻣﺴﺘﻨﺒﻂ ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ﻏﺎﻣﺾ.
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺴﻂ ﻓﺄﻥ ﻧﻨﻈﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻴﺎﻥ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻗﺪﺭﻫﻤﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﺎﺭﻱ ﻓﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﻱ .٧٥ ،٦٦ :١٠
)(٧٤
ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﻠﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻤﻞ .ﻓﻠﻌﻤﺮﻱ ﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ
ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﻉ ﻭﻣﻔﺎﻭﺿﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻻ ]ﻣﺮ[ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻻﺭﺷﺎﺩ ﻟﻸﻣﺔ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ
ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻓﺰﻋﺎ ]ﻭ[ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻪ ﻭﺣﺎﺟﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻓﻘﻬﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ
ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ،ﺇﻧﻪ
ﻻﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺄﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ.
]ﻭ[ ﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻋﺎﺵ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ ﺗﺤﺪﺙ،
ﻭﺑﻘﻰ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﻔﺘﻰ ﻭﻳﻔﺘﻰ ﻭﻳﺴﺄﻝ ﻭﻳﺠﻴﺐ ،ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻯ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﻔﺘﻰ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻫﺮﻳﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ،
ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻫﻰ ﺳﻨﺘﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﻫﻰ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻫﻰ ﺍﺛﻨﺘﺎ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻫﻰ
ﺧﻤﺲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻷﻧﻚ ﺗﺤﺼﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﻄﻮﻳﻞ ﻣﻊ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ
ﺍﻟﻘﺼﻴﺮ ﻣﻊ ﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻨﻈﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻋﺮﻑ ﺑﺎﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺃﺻﻮﺏ
ﺭﺃﻳﺎ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ ،ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺮ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻟﻠﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ
ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻋﺎﺵ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺩﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺯﺩﺍﺩ ﻓﻘﻬﺎ ﻭﻋﻠﻤﺎ
ﻭﺗﺠﺮﺑﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ) (١ﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ،
ﻭﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻗﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ .ﻓﻠﺌﻦ ﺻﺢ ) (٢ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﺍ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﻌﺪ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺻﺢ ".
)(٧٥
ﺣﺪﺛﺖ ،ﻭﺑﻼﻳﺎ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﻣﻦ ﺣﻼﻝ ﻭﺣﺮﺍﻡ ﺃﻭ ﺳﻴﺎﺳﺔ ﺟﻨﺪ ﺃﻭ ﺳﺪ ﺛﻐﺮ ﺃﻭ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺣﺮﺏ ،ﺃﻭ ﺍﺳﺘﺼﻼﺡ
ﻋﻮﺍﻡ ،ﺃﻭ ﺗﺮﺗﻴﺐ ﺧﻮﺍﺹ ،ﻓﻈﻬﺮ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ
ﻧﻈﺮﻩ ﻭﺇﺭﺷﺎﺩﻩ ﻣﺎﻟﻢ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ -ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﻓﻠﺢ ﻣﻦ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻓﻘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺻﻮﺏ ﺭﺃﻳﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﻟﻸﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻻ! ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻧﺠﺪ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻗﺎﺋﻖ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻴﺎ ﻭﻏﺎﻣﻀﻪ ﻭﻋﻮﻳﺼﻪ ) (١ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﺘﻞ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺒﺘﻠﻰ ﺑﻪ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ .ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻻ ﻳﺼﺎﺏ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﺃﺻﻮﻟﻬﺎ،
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻮ ﺩﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﺪﻭ ،ﺃﻭ ﺣﺰﺑﻬﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ ،ﺃﻭ ﺃﻋﻀﻞ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻣﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺎﺗﻖ
ﻳﺨﺘﻄﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺑﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻗﺪ ﺯﺧﺮﻓﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻧﺘﺸﺎﺭ ) (٢ﺟﻨﺪ ﺃﻭ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ
ﻋﻮﺍﻡ ،ﺃﻭ ﺑﺪﻋﺔ ﺷﺎﻣﻠﺔ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ
ﺑﻌﻼﺝ ﺃﺩﻭﺍﺋﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﺗﻲ ﻻﺳﺘﺼﻼﺣﻬﺎ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﻭﻛﺜﻴﺮ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻣﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﺻﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻭﺍﺗﺴﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻡ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻳﻔﻀﻞ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻧﺴﺘﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﻮﺍﺏ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﺍﺗﺴﺎﻉ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺰﻉ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺷﺪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻀﻼﺕ ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﺒﻬﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺴﺘﻤﻊ ﻣﺮﺷﺪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺴﺘﻤﻊ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻄﺮﻕ ﻭﺍﺟﻢ
ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﺎﺋﺾ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻧﺤﻪ ) (٣ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺩﺛﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺒﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ،ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺍﺻﻄﻠﺤﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ
ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺗﺮﺍﺿﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻱ ﻏﺎﻣﺾ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻋﻮﻳﺼﻪ.
) (٢ﺃﻥ ﺗﻔﺮﻗﻬﻢ ﻭﺧﺮﻭﺟﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﺍﺩ ،ﻭﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺑﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺘﻔﺮﻕ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺰﺓ ﻣﻦ
ﺭﺍﻋﻴﻬﺎ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﺳﺘﺸﺎﺭ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺹ ٦٥ﺱ .١٠
) (٣ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺧﺎﻟﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﻘﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﺭﻧﺤﺘﻪ :ﺩﺍﺭﺕ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻣﻴﻠﺘﻪ.
)(٧٦
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﺘﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ " :ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ]ﺃﻥ[ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺩﻳﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺇﺫﻥ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﺩﻩ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ " ﻓﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺩﺧﻞ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺑﺖ ﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻷﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ
ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻧﺼﺮﺍﻑ ﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ " :ﻗﻮﻣﻮﺍ ﻓﺎﻧﺤﺮﻭﺍ ﻭﺃﺣﻠﻮﺍ ﻭﺍﺣﻠﻘﻮﺍ ".
ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ،ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻨﻈﺮﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﻤﻌﻮﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻄﻴﻌﻮﻥ
ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻏﻀﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﺪﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻡ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ
ﻓﺄﺧﺒﺮﻫﺎ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺘﻌﺠﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﺮﺓ ،ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺃﻡ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ:
" ﺍﻧﻄﻠﻖ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻬﺪﻯ ﻓﺎﻧﺤﺮﻩ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ ﺳﻴﻘﺘﺪﻭﻥ
ﺑﻚ " .ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺛﺐ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺃﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﺑﻠﻰ .ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻓﻌﻼﻡ ﻧﻌﻄﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻨﻨﺎ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻦ ﺃﺧﺎﻟﻒ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ " .ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ،
ﺍﻟﺰﻡ ﻏﺮﺯﻩ ) (١ﻓﺈﻧﻲ ﺃﺷﻬﺪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻣﺮ ]ﺑﻪ )،[(٢
ﻭﻟﻦ ﻳﻀﻴﻌﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ!
ﺛﻢ ﺇﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻋﺎﺩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺴﺄﻟﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺳﻠﻢ
ﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﺮﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﺗﻬﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﻚ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ :ﻻ ﻧﻌﻄﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺔ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻳﺎ ﻋﻢ ﺇﻧﻬﺎ
ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﺑﺪﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺩﻧﻴﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻋﻄﺎﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺗﺄﺑﺎﻫﺎ ﺃﻧﺖ،
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﺮﺿﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ.
--------------------
) (١ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺍﻋﺘﻠﻖ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺃﻣﺴﻜﻪ ﻭﺍﺗﺒﻊ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﻓﻌﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺨﺎﻟﻔﻪ .ﻭﺃﺻﻞ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﺯ ﻟﻠﺠﻤﻞ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﺍﻟﺮﻛﺎﺏ ﻟﻠﻔﺮﺱ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٢٩٣
)(٧٧
ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ!؟ ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﺗﺐ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺘﺐ " ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﺿﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ:
ﻟﻮ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻚ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺣﺎﺭﺑﻨﺎﻙ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻛﺘﺐ " :ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ "،
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ :ﺍﻣﺤﻬﺎ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻣﺤﻮﺗﻬﺎ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ! ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﺃﺭﻧﻰ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻬﺎ .ﻓﺄﺭﺍﻫﺎ ﻓﻤﺤﺎﻫﺎ ﻭﻛﺘﺐ " ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ
ﺣﺪﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻏﻀﺐ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻠﻌﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ
ﻣﺎ ﺗﻄﻠﻌﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻈﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺧﺮﺟﻮﺍ
ﻻ ﻳﺸﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ،ﻟﺮﺅﻳﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺣﻠﻖ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﻭﺩﺧﻞ
ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﻭﺃﺧﺬ ﻣﻔﺘﺎﺡ ﺍﻟﻜﻌﺒﺔ ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﻴﻦ ) ،(١ﺛﻢ ﺗﺠﻬﺰ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﻼ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ " :ﻟﺘﺪﺧﻠﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ
ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺁﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﺤﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺭﺀﻭﺳﻜﻢ " ﺍﻵﻳﺔ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺃﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻠﺢ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺮﻁ،
ﻭﻋﺎﻳﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻮﻉ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺑﻮﺍ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ،ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ:
" ﺇﻥ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻳﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﺩﻩ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ
ﻣﻤﻦ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻳﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺭﺩﻩ " .ﻓﺄﺧﺮﺟﻬﻢ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻗﺒﻞ.
ﻭﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺃﻟﻴﺲ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺗﻼ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ " :ﻟﺘﺪﺧﻠﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ
ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺁﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﺤﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺭﺅﺳﻜﻢ ﻭﻣﻘﺼﺮﻳﻦ "؟ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻧﻌﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ :ﺍﻟﻮﻗﻮﻑ ﺑﻌﺮﻓﺎﺕ.
)(٧٨
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻪ ﺭﺟﻊ ﺑﻨﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺪﺧﻠﻬﺎ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻭﻫﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻚ
ﻣﺘﻰ؟ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﺘﺪﺧﻠﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺩﺍﺧﻠﻮﻫﺎ ﻻ ﻣﺤﺎﻟﺔ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻚ
ﻣﻘﺎﻻ ﻟﻮ ﺿﺮﺏ ﻟﻚ ﺃﺟﻼ ﻓﺮﺃﻳﺖ ﺧﻼﻓﻪ .ﻭﺍﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻭﺻﻨﻊ.
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺐ ﻣﺨﻠﺺ ﺟﻬﻼ ﺑﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺐ
ﻣﺴﺘﺮﻳﺐ ﺩﺧﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺻﻠﺤﻪ .ﻓﺒﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﺇﺧﻼﺹ
ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﻗﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺔ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ ،ﺃﻧﻘﺬ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻀﻼﻟﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﺎﻛﺖ ﻻﻏﻨﺎﺀ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﺃﻭ ﺧﺎﺋﺾ ﻣﺴﺘﺮﻳﺐ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ .ﺃﻭ ﻣﻮﻗﻦ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻗﺘﺤﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻧﻈﺮﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻣﺴﺠﻰ ﺩﺧﻠﻬﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺃﺫﻫﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺣﻴﺮ
ﻋﺎﻣﺘﻬﻢ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻤﻮﺕ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﻧﺤﻦ
ﺷﻬﺪﺍﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ؟! ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻤﻮﺕ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻟﻴﻈﻬﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻛﻠﻪ "
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ؟!
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻳﺮﺩﺩﺍﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺗﻮﻋﺪﺍ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﻣﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻣﺎﺕ .ﻭﺛﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺮﺓ
ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ :ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ!
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺁﻩ ﻣﺴﺠﻰ ﻓﺄﻧﻜﺮ ﻣﻮﺗﻪ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻣﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﻓﻌﻪ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻓﻊ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ! ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺴﻤﻊ
ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺎﺕ ﺇﻻ ﻗﻄﻌﻨﺎ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ!
ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻣﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
)(٧٩
ﻻ ﺃﺳﻤﻌﻦ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻣﺎﺕ! ﻭﺇﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﻓﻌﻪ .ﺃﺭﺳﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺳﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻠﺒﺚ ﻋﻨﺪ
ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ) .(١ﻭﺇﻧﻲ ﻷﺭﺟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻳﺪﻱ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﻭﺃﺭﺟﻠﻬﻢ
ﻳﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻣﺎﺕ!
ﻓﺒﻴﻨﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﺇﺫ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺱ ﻟﻪ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺢ ) (٢ﻓﺴﻤﻊ
ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺧﺎﺿﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺒﺪﺃ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻓﺪﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺴﺠﻰ ،ﻓﻜﺸﻒ ﻋﻦ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻓﻘﺒﻠﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ...ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻟﻒ ) (٣ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻠﻚ! ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺁﻩ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻗﻌﺪ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺟﻠﺴﻮﺍ ﻭﺃﻧﺼﺘﻮﺍ ،ﺛﻢ ﺣﻤﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺛﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻧﻌﻰ ﻧﺒﻴﻜﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﻲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻇﻬﺮﻛﻢ
ﻭﻧﻌﺎﻛﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻘﻰ ﺃﺣﺪ .ﺃﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ
" ﺇﻧﻚ ﻣﻴﺖ ﻭﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻣﻴﺘﻮﻥ ".
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ! ﻓﺴﻜﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ،
ﻭﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺑﻜﻮﺍ ،ﻛﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﺳﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻗﻂ.
ﺛﻢ ﺗﻼ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﻗﺪ ﺧﻠﺖ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ ﺃﻓﺈﻥ
ﻣﺎﺕ ﺃﻭ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻧﻘﻠﺒﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﻘﺎﺑﻜﻢ " ﺛﻢ ﺗﻼ " :ﻛﻞ ﻧﻔﺲ ﺫﺍﺋﻘﺔ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ " :١٠١٢ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﺫﻫﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺑﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﺍﻥ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻏﺎﺏ
ﻋﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻗﺪ ﻣﺎﺕ " .ﻭﻧﺤﻮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
.٣٣٩ :٢
) (٢ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺢ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻀﻢ :ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻣﺤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻃﺮﺍﻓﻬﺎ .ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺗﺰﻭﺝ ﻣﻠﻴﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺣﺒﻴﺒﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺔ.
) (٣ﺑﻴﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻘﺘﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺑﻴﺎﺽ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " ﺃﻳﻬﺎﺫﺍ ".
)(٨٠
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ " ﺛﻢ ﺗﻼ " :ﻛﻞ ﺷﺊ ﻫﺎﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ " ﺛﻢ ﻣﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻓﺔ ) .(١ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎﻛﻢ
ﺃﻣﺔ ﻭﺳﻄﺎ ﻟﺘﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﺷﻬﺪﺍﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ
ﺷﻬﻴﺪﺍ " ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻜﻢ ﺷﻬﺪﺍﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﻮﻥ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺷﻬﻴﺪﺍ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ:
" ﻟﻴﻈﻬﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻛﻠﻪ " ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺘﻢ ﻧﻮﺭﻩ
ﻭﻣﻈﻬﺮ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﻇﻬﺮﻩ ).(٢
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻭﻓﻬﻤﻪ ﻭﺣﺎﺟﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺸﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻭﻛﻼﻣﻬﻢ ﻟﻪ ،ﻟﻴﻘﺒﻞ
ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻳﺘﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺪ ﺻﻠﻮﺍ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺯﻛﻮﺍ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻣﻨﻌﻮﻧﻲ ﻋﻘﺎﻻ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﻄﻮﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﺠﺎﻫﺪﻧﻬﻢ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﺃﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ:
" ﺃﻣﺮﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻻ ﺇﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﻫﺎ ﺣﻘﻨﻮﺍ
ﺑﻬﺎ ﺩﻣﺎﺀﻫﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ " ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺇﻥ ﻓﺒﻬﺎ " ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﻘﻬﺎ ) " (٣ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﺻﺪﻗﺖ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﺍ ،ﺃﻭ ﺻﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ
ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻟﻔﺔ ﻟﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺧﻄﺒﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ١٠١٣ - ١٠١٢ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ٥٤ :٢ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ
١٩٨ :٣ﻭﺯﻫﺮ ﺍﻵﺩﺍﺏ (٢) .٣٥ :١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﻻ ﻟﺤﻘﻬﺎ " ﻳﺸﻴﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺘﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ
ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺐ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ٩٨ :١ﻭﻧﺼﻪ " :ﻓﻤﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻻ ﺇﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺼﻢ ﻣﻨﻰ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ
ﻭﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﻘﻪ ﻭﺣﺴﺎﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ".
)(٨١
ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻳﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﺃﻟﻴﺲ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺃﻣﺮﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻻ ﺇﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ،
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﻫﺎ ﺣﺠﺒﻮﺍ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺩﻣﺎﺀﻫﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﻘﻬﺎ ﻭﺣﺴﺎﺑﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ "
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻭﺣﺪﻯ ﻟﺠﺎﻫﺪﺗﻬﻢ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺃﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﻳﺰﻫﻖ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺯﻫﻮﻗﺎ.
ﺛﻢ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ﻳﺮﻳﺪﻫﻢ ﻣﻐﻀﺒﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﺤﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ،
ﻓﻤﻨﻌﻮﻩ ﻭﻛﻔﻮﻩ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻣﻮﺍ ﺃﻣﺎﻣﻪ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺧﺒﺮ ﻧﻘﻠﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻣﺮﺟﺌﻬﻢ ﻭﺷﻴﻌﻴﻬﻢ ) (١ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ،
ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ ﻻ ﻳﻄﺎﻗﻮﻥ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺠﺤﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﺾ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺋﻊ ﺑﺎﻷﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﻠﻔﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻔﺎﻭﺕ ،ﻭﻳﻮﺟﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺫ ) (٢ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﻋﻴﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ،ﻣﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻧﺐ ،ﻋﺴﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ،
ﻻ ﻳﻄﺎﻕ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﺎﺭﻯ.
ﺛﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻳﺮﻭﻯ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺰﻛﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻔﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺴﻤﻌﻪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ
ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺯﻛﺎﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻓﺎﺿﻼ ﻋﺎﻟﻴﺎ،
ﻋﺎﻟﻤﺎ ﻭﺟﻴﻬﺎ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﺰﻥ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﺰﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﺰﻧﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻳﻌﺰﻳﻪ ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻓﺪﺣﻪ ﻭﻏﻤﺮﻩ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ :ﻣﺎ ﺁﺳﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺷﺊ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺁﺳﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻨﻲ ﻟﻢ ﺃﺳﺄﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻤﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻧﺠﺎﺓ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﺮﺣﺒﻬﻢ ﻭﺳﻔﻴﻬﻢ؟؟ " ﺑﺪﻭﻥ ﻧﻘﻂ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺩ ".
)(٨٢
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻗﺪ ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ:
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻋﺮﺿﺘﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﻰ ﻓﺄﺑﺎﻫﺎ ".
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﺎﺟﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻐﻨﺎﺋﻪ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻠﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺷﺎﺭﻭﺍ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻗﺎﻣﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻵﺗﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺇﻥ ﺗﻤﻴﻤﺎ ﺇﻥ ﺃﺫﻥ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻘﺾ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﺽ
ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻪ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻭﺍﺋﻞ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻋﻄﻴﺖ ﻛﻨﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﺃﻟﻔﺎﻓﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﺣﺎﺑﻴﺸﻬﺎ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﻟﻢ
ﺗﺮﺽ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﺰﺩﺍﺩ ،ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﻷﻧﻘﻀﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺸﻴﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﺧﻴﺮ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻳﺸﻴﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺘﺒﻨﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ) ،(١ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻟﻮ ﺑﻘﻴﺖ ﻭﺣﺪﻯ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﺄﻛﻠﻨﻲ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﺏ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺧﺮﺕ ﺟﻴﺸﺎ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺈﻧﻔﺎﺫﻩ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ
ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " ﻓﻠﺌﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻮﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻡ
ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺮﺍﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﻛﺔ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ
ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﻧﻘﺼﻪ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺰﻉ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ
ﻋﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺩﻓﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ :ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺍﻓﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻘﻴﻊ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﻐﻔﺮ
ﻷﻫﻠﻪ ) .(٢ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺁﺧﺮﻭﻥ :ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﻣﺼﻼﻩ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺁﺧﺮﻭﻥ:
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻱ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺗﺨﺘﻠﻔﻮﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﻓﻘﻞ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٦٥
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ١٠٠٠ - ٩٩٩ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٥٤١ :١
)(٨٣
ﻧﺒﻲ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﺩﻓﻦ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻳﻘﺒﺾ " ﻓﺨﻄﻮﺍ ﺣﻮﻝ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ﺛﻢ ﺣﻮﻟﻮﺍ
ﺭﺃﺱ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺎﺣﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ .ﻓﻠﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺣﺘﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺘﻠﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺭﺟﻼﻥ.
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻗﺮﻳﺐ ﻭﻻ ﺑﻌﻴﺪ .ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻝ
ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺟﺮ ﻣﻨﻔﻌﺔ ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻔﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﺛﺮﺓ
ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻤﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺮﻑ ﺍﻻﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻓﻤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﻭﻣﻊ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺒﻠﺖ
ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺗﻪ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﻟﺠﺪﻳﺮ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺘﻘﺪﻣﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻢ .ﻭﺍﻷﻣﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺪﻕ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺛﺎﺑﺘﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ
ﻭﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻨﺖ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺣﺪﻳﺜﺎ ﻳﻨﻔﻌﻨﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺷﺎﺀ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ
ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻠﻔﺘﻪ ) ،(١ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺣﻠﻒ ﻟﻲ ﺻﺪﻗﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ -ﻭﺻﺪﻕ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ -ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻳﺬﻧﺐ ﺫﻧﺒﺎ
ﻓﻴﺘﻮﺿﺄ ﻓﻴﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺿﻮﺀ ﺛﻢ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺭﻛﻌﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻐﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻏﻔﺮ ﻟﻪ )." (٢
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺮﺍﺩ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ .ﻭﻗﺪ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻟﻠﻌﻮﺍﻡ ) ،(٣ﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ
ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ؟ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﺪﻕ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ
ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ) (٤ﺃﻭ ﻳﺆﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﻼﻕ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ " :١٤٣ :١ﻳﻨﻔﻌﻨﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺷﺎﺀ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻠﻔﺘﻪ ".
) (٢ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺐ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ " :ﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺋﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﻓﻆ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺍﻧﻴﺔ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻠﻐﺮﺍﻡ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ".
)(٨٤
ﻟﻤﻮﺟﻮﺩ :ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻛﻰ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺑﻌﻀﺎ ﻭﻳﻔﻀﻞ .ﻓﻨﺮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻳﺤﻤﻞ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻯ
ﻋﻨﻪ ﻭﻳﺰﻛﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻔﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺮﻩ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺑﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺒﻄﻨﻪ ) (١ﻷﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻟﻤﺎ ﺣﺎﺻﺮ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻒ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻷﺑﻲ ﻣﺤﺠﻦ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺖ ﺛﻌﻠﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺟﺤﺮ
ﻳﻮﺷﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﺤﺠﻦ :ﻫﻞ ﻫﻮ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻄﻌﺘﻢ ﺣﺒﻼﺕ ﻋﻨﺐ )،(٢
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺍﺏ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﻴﺪﻩ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﻻ ﺗﻘﺪﺭ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺨﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎﺀ ﻭﺗﺮﺍﺏ،
ﻭﻻ ﺗﺒﺮﺡ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺟﺤﺮﻙ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻤﻮﺕ ﺟﻮﻋﺎ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻳﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻻ ﺗﻘﻞ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺫﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻒ .ﻓﺴﺄﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺫﻥ ﻟﻲ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ
ﺷﻬﻮﺩ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻜﻼﻣﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺼﻮﺹ ﺑﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ .ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺪﺭﺍﻳﺔ.
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ،ﺇﻥ ﻟﻘﺎﺋﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺽ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻋﺔ " .ﺛﻢ ﺗﺸﻬﺪ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﻀﻰ
ﺗﺸﻬﺪﻩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺳﺘﻐﻔﺮ ﻟﻠﺸﻬﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺘﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺣﺪ،
ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻥ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ ﻓﺎﺧﺘﺎﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ".
ﻓﺒﻜﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺘﻌﺠﺒﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻜﺎﺋﻪ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ ﻭﺑﺂﺑﺎﺋﻨﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " :ﺗﺒﻄﻨﺖ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ :ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺑﺎﻃﻨﻪ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺤﺒﻠﺔ ،ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻚ ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﺢ :ﺷﺠﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﻨﺐ ..ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﺑﻘﻄﻊ ﺃﻋﻨﺎﺏ ﺛﻘﻴﻒ .ﻓﻮﻗﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻳﻘﻄﻌﻮﻥ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٨٧٣ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ .٢٠١ :٢
)(٨٥
ﻭﺃﻣﻬﺎﺗﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﻧﻔﺴﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻨﺎ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺘﻌﺠﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺑﻜﺎﺋﻪ
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ!
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ) (١ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻮﺍﺏ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﻓﺮﺍﺳﺘﻪ .ﻭﺗﻮﻓﻴﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺗﻮﻟﻴﺘﻪ
ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺣﺮﺏ ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻮﺗﺐ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﻛﻞ ﺟﺎﻧﺐ -ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺗﻨﺎﻭﻟﻪ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻻ ﺃﺷﻴﻢ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ ﺳﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺋﻪ
ﺛﻢ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻓﺮﺍﺳﺘﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﺟﻌﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻋﻮﺗﺐ
ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻧﻮﺯﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
" ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻷﻣﺘﻲ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺿﻰ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ،ﻭﻛﺮﻫﺖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺮﻩ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ " ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻓﺮﺱ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ :ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻴﺎﺀ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﻷﺑﻴﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺖ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺟﺮﻩ ﺇﻥ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺟﺮﺕ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻯ
ﺍﻷﻣﻴﻦ " ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻓﻬﻞ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻪ ﺿﺎﻡ ﻗﻮﻣﺎ ﻗﻂ ﻭﺟﺎﻣﻌﻬﻢ ) (٢ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻞ
ﻋﻮﺗﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻤﻞ ﺑﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺗﺐ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﻫﻞ ﺃﺷﻴﺮ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺮﺃﻱ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﻴﺐ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻴﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ!؟
ﻓﺄﻱ ﻓﻘﻪ ﻭﺃﻱ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﺻﻠﺢ ﻭﺃﻱ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﺃﺣﻤﺪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﻧﺎ.
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻻ ﺗﺴﺘﻄﻴﻌﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺨﺒﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺑﻤﻮﻗﻒ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ
ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﺭﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ " .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﻮﺓ .٩١ :١
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ".
)(٨٦
ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ،
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺭﺟﻼ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺽ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺨﻴﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﻄﻌﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺪﺍﺛﺔ ﺳﻨﻪ،
ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ﻟﻠﻤﺸﻴﺨﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺷﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻜﺬﺍ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻛﺬﺍ
ﻭﻛﺬﺍ :ﻛﺬﺍ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺪ ﺻﺮﻧﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻋﻨﻬﻤﺎ
ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻨﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻜﻢ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻣﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺤﺔ ﻓﻜﺮﻩ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﻇﻨﻪ ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ﺣﺴﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻈﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻓﻴﻘﻊ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻗﺮﻳﺒﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺇﻧﻚ ﻟﻦ ﺗﻨﺘﻔﻊ ﺑﻌﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺀ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺗﻨﺘﻔﻊ ﺑﻈﻨﻪ.
ﻓﻤﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺪﻕ ﻇﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺣﺲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺩﺧﻠﺖ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻗﺒﻀﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﺃﻧﺸﺪﺕ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺷﻌﺮﺍ ﺗﺬﻛﺮ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻴﻬﺎ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻻ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﻴﺔ .ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻲ:
" ﻭﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﺳﻜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺗﺤﻴﺪ " ،ﺃﻱ ﺑﻨﻴﺔ
ﺇﻧﻲ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻧﺤﻠﺘﻚ ﺟﺪﺍﺩ ﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺳﻘﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻲ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺎﻟﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻚ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺤﻮﺯﻳﻪ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺒﻀﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺭﺙ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﻮﺍﻙ ﻭﺃﺧﺘﺎﻙ ،ﻗﺎﻟﺖ
ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻲ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ) !(١ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﻟﻘﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺭﻭﻋﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺫﺍ ) (٢ﺑﻄﻦ ﺑﻨﺖ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ " :٥١ - ٥٠ :٦ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻋﺮﻑ ﻟﻲ ﺃﺧﺘﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺭﺩﺍ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ.
)(٨٧
ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺔ ]ﺟﺎﺭﻳﺔ ) [(١ﻓﻮﺿﻌﺖ ﺟﺎﺭﻳﺔ ﻓﺴﻤﻴﺖ ﺃﻡ ﻛﻠﺜﻮﻡ.
ﻭﻟﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻠﺪﻩ ﻭﻳﺼﺪﻕ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻇﻨﻪ ﻭﺗﺼﺢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﺮﺍﺳﺘﻪ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻋﺠﻴﺒﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﺪﻻ ﻭﻗﺼﺪﺍ ،ﻭﺣﺴﻨﺎ ﺟﻤﻴﻼ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ :ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺘﺔ :ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ،
ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻌﺐ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺒﻞ ،ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﺍﺩ ﻗﻮﻡ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺍﻟﺪﺭﺩﺍﺀ ،ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻣﺴﺮﻭﻕ :ﺍﻧﺘﻬﻰ ﻋﻠﻢ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ :ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ،
ﻭﻣﻌﺎﺫ ،ﻭﺯﻳﺪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ :ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﺎﺓ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ :ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺍﻷﺷﻌﺮﻱ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﺮﺿﻮﻥ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﻭﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺮﻓﻮﺍ
ﻭﻗﺼﺪﻭﺍ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺼﺪﺍ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺗﻌﺪﻭﺍ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻗﻂ
ﻗﻮﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻻ ﻗﻂ ﻓﺮﺟﻊ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻪ
ﻏﻴﺮ ﺭﺟﻌﺔ .ﻻ ﺍﺛﻨﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﻻ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ) ،(٣ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻭﻳﻞ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯﻫﺎ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻴﺎ.
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺒﻌﺾ ﻓﻘﻬﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻬﻢ ﻭﻳﻘﻞ ﺧﻄﺎﺅﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ
ﺗﻜﻦ ﻟﺘﺠﻤﻊ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻫﻔﻮﺍﺕ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻭﺃﺧﻄﺎﺀﻩ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻘﺮﺃﻩ ) (٤ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻇﻨﻨﺖ ﺑﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ ،ﻭﺑﻨﺖ ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺔ ﻫﻲ ﺣﺒﻴﺒﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺔ ﺯﻭﺝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ
ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻖ .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ ١٢٩ :١ﻭﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﻮﺓ ،١٠١ :١
) (٢ﻫﻮ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺨﻌﻲ.
) (٣ﺃﻱ ﺑﻞ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﻻ ﺛﻼﺙ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻴﺠﻤﻊ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻫﻔﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻭﺧﻄﺄ ﻓﻴﻘﺮﺃﻩ ".
)(٨٨
ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ،ﻷﻧﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺬﻓﺖ ﺑﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻪ ﻟﺨﻔﻰ
ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻟﺼﻐﺮ ﺧﻄﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﺪﺭﻩ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺟﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﺍ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻭﺍ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻋﻴﺒﻬﻢ
ﻭﻧﻘﺼﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ ﻟﺨﻄﺄ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﻗﻊ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻄﺄ
ﻻ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ ) (١ﺃﻣﺮ ﻟﻜﻞ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺁﺩﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺣﻆ ﻭﻧﺼﻴﺐ،
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻭﻻ ﺻﺪﻳﻖ ﻭﻻ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﺮﺭﻫﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺣﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻮﻋﻪ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺘﻴﺎﻩ،
ﻗﻮﻟﻪ :ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺭﺃﻳﻲ ﻭﺭﺃﻯ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺘﻖ ﺃﻣﻬﺎﺕ ﺍﻷﻭﻻﺩ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺭﺑﻬﻦ ).(٢
ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻊ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺭﺟﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﻠﻲ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺤﺎﺟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺗﺐ:
ﺃﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺇﻥ ﺯﻧﻰ ﺃﻛﻨﺖ ﺭﺍﺟﻤﻪ ،ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺇﻥ ﺷﻬﺪ
ﺃﺗﻘﺒﻞ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺗﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺯﻳﺪ :ﻓﻬﻮ ﺇﺫﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻘﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺩﺭﻫﻢ.
ﻓﺴﻜﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻫﻨﺪ ) ،(٣ﻋﻦ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ،ﺃﻥ
ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺭﺟﻊ ﻋﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ ﺛﻼﺙ )." (٤
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺑﺔ ".
) (٢ﺭﺑﻪ ﻳﺮﺑﻪ ﺭﺑﺎ :ﻣﻠﻜﻪ ﻭﺻﺎﺭ ﺳﻴﺪﻩ .ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﺀ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٣ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻫﻨﺪ -ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﺩﻳﻨﺎﺭ -ﺑﻦ ﻋﺬﺍﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﺸﻴﺮﻱ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻱ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺛﻘﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺤﻔﺎﻅ .ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ ١٤٠ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٤ﻭﺭﺩ ﻧﺤﻮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﺣﺮﻡ( ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ ﻛﻔﺎﺭﺓ ﻳﻤﻴﻦ " .ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﻫﻮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺣﺮﺍﻡ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﺃﻓﻌﻞ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻳﻤﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﺃﻓﻌﻞ " .ﺛﻼﺙ ،ﺃﻱ ﺻﻴﺎﻡ
ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪ ﻓﺼﻴﺎﻡ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﻔﺎﺭﺓ ﺃﻳﻤﺎﻧﻜﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺣﻠﻔﺘﻢ ".
)(٨٩
ﻭﻛﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺠﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺍﺷﺘﺮﺍﻩ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ :ﺧﺬﻩ ﻓﺄﻧﺎ ﺷﺮﻳﻜﻚ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ
ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﺃﺣﺠﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﺷﺮﻳﻜﻪ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ؟! ﻓﺴﻜﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺗﺐ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺩﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺛﻤﻨﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻳﺴﺘﺮﻕ ﺑﺤﺴﺎﺏ
ﻭﻳﻌﺘﻖ ﺑﺤﺴﺎﺏ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺍﻧﻴﺔ ﺗﺴﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻰ ﺗﺤﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺍﻧﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﻖ ﺑﻬﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻻﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ " :ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻱ " ﻭﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﺗﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻱ " ﻓﺎﺧﺘﺎﺭﺗﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻟﺜﺔ " :ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻱ " ﻓﺎﺧﺘﺎﺭﺗﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺃﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ) (١ﺃﻧﺎ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺍ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻋﻮﺭ ﻓﻘﺄ ﻋﻴﻦ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ،ﻓﺄﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﻘﺄ ﻋﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻋﻮﺭ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﻘﺄ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ﻳﻔﻘﺆﻫﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺩﻯ ﻧﺼﻒ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺪ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺳﺎﺩﺱ ﺳﺘﺔ ،ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻊ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻛﺘﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺍﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺳﺎﺑﻌﺎ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺟﺎﺭﻳﺔ ﻭﺛﺒﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻏﺎﺋﺐ ﻓﺎﻗﺘﻀﺖ ﻋﺬﺭﺗﻬﺎ
ﺑﺈﺻﺒﻌﻬﺎ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺬﻓﺘﻬﺎ ﻟﺘﺴﻘﻄﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺧﺎﻓﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺰﻭﺟﻬﺎ،
ﻓﺮﻓﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﺑﻨﻴﻪ :ﻗﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺄﻟﺔ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ
ﺻﺪﺍﻕ ﻣﺜﻠﻬﺎ :ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻮ ﻛﻠﻔﺖ ﺍﻹﺑﻞ ﺍﻟﻄﺤﻦ ) (٢ﻃﺤﻨﺖ! ﻓﺎﺷﺘﺪ ﺗﻌﺠﺐ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻟﺔ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺣﻚ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺮﻗﻮﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ (٢) .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻄﺤﻴﻦ ".
)(٩٠
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﻡ ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﺐ ﻟﻴﻤﺸﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﻤﻘﻄﻮﻉ ،ﻭﻟﻴﻌﺘﻤﺪ ﺑﻪ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻴﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﻮﻝ ﺍﻷﺻﺎﺑﻊ
ﻭﻳﺪﻉ ﺍﻟﻜﻒ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ) (١ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻋﻦ ﺍﻷﻋﻤﺶ ،ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ
ﺃﻭ ﻋﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﺃﻧﻪ ﺳﺌﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻻﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻃﺎﻟﻖ ﺃﻟﻒ
ﺗﻄﻠﻴﻘﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻪ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻧﺴﻮﺓ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺗﺒﻴﻦ ﺑﺜﻼﺙ ﻭﺗﻘﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻗﻴﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﺴﺎﺋﻪ.
ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻫﻞ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺁﺩﻡ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻴﻴﻦ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
" ﻓﻨﺴﻰ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻋﺰﻣﺎ )." (٢
ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻭﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ .ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﻳﻮﻧﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺘﻰ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
" ﻭﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﻥ ﺇﺫ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻣﻐﺎﺿﺒﺎ ﻓﻈﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻦ ﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " .ﻓﺎﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻮﻧﺲ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻭﺃﺳﺎﺀ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻚ ﺇﻧﻲ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻟﻤﻴﻦ ".
ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻓﺎﻟﺘﻘﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺕ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻠﻴﻢ ".
ﻭﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﻭﺳﻠﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻀﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﻭﺃﺻﺎﺑﻬﺎ
ﺳﻠﻴﻤﺎﻥ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﻓﻬﻤﻨﺎﻫﺎ ﺳﻠﻴﻤﺎﻥ " ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻫﺎﺏ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ
ﺑﻤﺨﺮﺟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﺁﺗﻴﻨﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺔ ﻭﻓﺼﻞ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ " .ﻭﻗﺪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻜﻴﻦ ﻳﻜﻨﻴﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻳﺔ ﺍﻷﻓﻄﺲ .ﻳﺮﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻷﻋﻤﺶ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺜﻘﺔ.
ﻟﺴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﺓ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ -ﺑﻜﺴﺮ ﺍﻟﻼﻡ -ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺩﻱ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﻲ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ
ﺗﺎﺑﻌﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﺎﺕ .ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ١١٥ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻃﻪ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻠﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻟﻪ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ
ﺗﺤﻘﻴﻖ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﻮﺹ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺄﻟﻴﻔﻨﺎ ﺹ .٣٩ - ٣٨
)(٩١
ﻗﺼﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺰﻳﺪﺍﻥ ﻭﻋﻈﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺔ " :ﻭﻫﻞ ﺃﺗﺎﻙ ﻧﺒﺄ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻢ ﺇﺫ
ﺗﺴﻮﺭﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺮﺍﺏ ".
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﺎﺗﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺟﻞ ﺛﻨﺎﺅﻩ ﻧﺒﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻋﺒﺲ ﻭﺗﻮﻟﻰ "،
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺪﺕ ﺗﺮﻛﻦ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻗﻠﻴﻼ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻟﻴﻐﻔﺮ
ﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻧﺒﻚ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺗﺄﺧﺮ ".
ﻭﻋﺎﺗﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﺮﻯ ﻭﺃﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻃﻼﻗﻬﻢ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﻟﻮﻻ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻟﻤﺴﻜﻢ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺬﺗﻢ ﻋﺬﺍﺏ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ )." (١
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﻣﻮﺭﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﻬﻴﻴﻦ " :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﺬ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺴﺒﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺮﻙ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻬﺮﻫﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺩﺍﺑﺔ )." (٢
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻮﻣﻴﻦ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺘﺘﺒﻊ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﺧﻄﺎﻳﺎﻫﻢ ﻭﻫﻔﻮﺍﺗﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻠﻌﻤﺮﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻮﺩﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ؟!
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻬﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻂ ﻗﻂ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺺ ﻗﻂ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻀﻴﻊ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻗﻂ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺤﻜﻰ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺃﻧﺒﻴﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺬﻛﺮ
ﺃﺣﻮﺍﻝ ﺭﺳﻠﻪ؟! ﻭﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻧﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻮﻕ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻘﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻒ ﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻳﺨﺼﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ،
ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺄﻟﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻋﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﺨﺼﻮﺻﻴﻦ ﺑﺤﻔﻈﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻬﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٦٨ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻷﻧﻔﺎﻝ.
) (٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤٥ﻓﻲ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻓﺎﻃﺮ.
)(٩٢
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺯﻳﺪ ) ،(١ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺼﻮﺻﻴﻦ ﺑﺤﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ
ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺳﺄﻟﻨﺎﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭﻑ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺀﺍﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﻩ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺑﻘﺮﺍﺀﺗﻬﻢ
ﻳﻘﺮﺃ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﻓﻬﻢ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ
ﺑﻦ ﻛﻌﺐ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ .ﻷﻧﺎ ﺷﺎﻫﺪﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ) (٢ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﺤﻒ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﺃﺑﻰ ،ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﺤﻒ ﺃﺑﻰ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ
ﺯﻳﺪ ،ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﺤﻒ ﺯﻳﺪ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺮﻫﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﺤﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺳﺄﻟﻨﺎﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ .ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺳﺄﻟﻨﺎﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭﻳﻦ ﺑﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻻﺳﻨﺎﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ،ﻭﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻫﺮﻳﺮﺓ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺒﻮﻉ ﻓﻘﻪ ﺃﺗﺒﺎﻋﻪ ﻓﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ
ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺻﺎﺭ ﺃﻓﻘﻪ
ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺼﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺒﺄﻧﺎﻛﻢ ﻭﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻟﻜﻢ.
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻘﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﺎﻟﻤﺎ ،ﻗﺪ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺑﻨﺼﻴﺐ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٤٥٨ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﻰ " :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ،ﻭﻗﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ
ﺃﻧﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﺎﺭﻱ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺴﻤﻰ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﻧﺲ :ﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻋﻤﻮﻣﺘﻲ .ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ،ﻓﻘﻴﻞ:
ﺃﻭﺱ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻦ
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺟﺢ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٧١٧٥
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻌﺐ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ".
)(٩٣
ﻓﻴﻪ -ﺇﺫ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻭﻋﻤﺮﻳﺔ -ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ .ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ
ﻣﺴﺘﻔﻴﺾ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻗﺮﺅﻛﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ "؟! ﻓﺘﺮﻯ ﺃﺑﻴﺎ )(١
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻗﺮﺃ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻓﺮﺿﻜﻢ ﺯﻳﺪ " ﻓﺘﺮﻯ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﺮﺽ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻤﻜﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻼﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ " ﻓﺘﺮﻯ ﻣﻌﺎﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺃﻗﻀﺎﻛﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ " ﻓﻴﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﻗﻀﻰ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻻ ﺗﺮﺿﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺃﻓﺮﺽ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﻗﺮﺃ ﻣﻨﻪ،
ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ " ﺃﻗﻀﺎﻛﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ " ﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻳﻴﻦ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ
ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻳﻮﻥ ﻓﻬﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﻜﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ
ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻪ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺻﺮﺕ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺴﺄﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ .ﻭﺟﻮﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻄﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺒﻂ ﻟﻠﻌﺪﻭ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻮﺡ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺭﺩ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺼﺎﺑﻪ ﺑﺮﺩ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ،
ﻭﺃﺳﺮ ﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ ،ﻭﻏﺰﺍ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﻭﻣﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺯﺓ.
ﻭﻻﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻭﺍﻭﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﺍﻷﻋﻄﻴﺔ ﻭﺟﻨﺪ ﺍﻷﺟﻨﺎﺩ ،ﻭﻣﺼﺮ
ﺍﻷﻣﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺟﺒﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺊ ) ،(٣ﻭﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﺧﻴﻠﻪ ﺇﻓﺮﻳﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻃﺄ ﺧﻴﻠﻪ ﺧﺮﺍﺳﺎﻥ
ﻭﺃﻗﺼﻰ ﻛﺮﻣﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺃﺯﺍﻝ ﻣﻠﻚ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺳﺎﺳﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻻﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﻓﺘﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺜﻐﻮﺭ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ،ﺍﻓﺘﺘﺢ ﺇﺭﻣﻴﻨﻴﺔ ،ﺍﻓﺘﺘﺤﻬﺎ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ
ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﻬﺮﻱ ﻭﺍﻓﺘﺘﺢ ﺃﺫﺭﺑﻴﺠﺎﻥ ،ﺍﻓﺘﺘﺤﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺑﻰ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻋﺪﺍ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺣﺒﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﺊ " .ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺊ :ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻴﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺮﺍﺝ.
)(٩٤
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻷﺷﻌﺚ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻓﺘﺘﺢ ﺇﻓﺮﻳﻘﻴﺔ ،ﺍﻓﺘﺘﺤﻬﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﺳﺮﺡ .ﻭﺍﻓﺘﺘﺢ ﺳﺤﺴﺘﺎﻥ ،ﺍﻓﺘﺘﺤﻬﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻤﺮﺓ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺼﻮﺻﻴﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﻮﺡ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺎﺓ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻹﺭﺏ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻳﺪ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻋﻤﺮﻭ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺬﻛﺮ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﺍ
ﻻﻥ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﺍ ﻻ ﺻﺤﺒﺔ ﻟﻪ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺎﺓ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺒﻴﺼﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ ) (٢ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻼﻣﺔ ﺩﺍﻫﻴﺔ
ﺣﻜﻤﺎ ،ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻗﻂ ﺃﺧﻮﻑ ﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ
ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺻﺪﻕ ﺣﻴﺎﺀ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻭﺻﻞ ﻟﺮﺣﻢ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻼﺩ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ .ﻭﻻ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﺨﺎﺭﺝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﺣﻀﺮ ﺟﻮﺍﺑﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ " ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺮﻩ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﻤﻴﺲ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﺎ -ﻭﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻔﺎﺧﺮ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ ﺑﻨﻮﻫﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ:
ﺍﻗﻀﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ -ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺷﺎﺑﺎ ﺃﻃﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺷﻴﺨﺎ
ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﺧﺴﻬﻢ ﻟﻔﻀﻼﺀ.
ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﻗﻀﻴﺘﻬﺎ ) ،(٣ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻭ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻧﻜﺎﺭ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ .ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﺻﺪﻗﺘﻢ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ
ﺇﻻ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﻂ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﻫﻨﺎ ﻭﻫﺎﻫﻨﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻋﻬﺎ
ﺩﻟﻴﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ ﻣﻊ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﻼﺣﻪ ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻘﺘﻪ ﻭﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﺫﺍ ﺭﺃﻯ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻹﺭﺏ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺴﺮ :ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻜﺮ.
) (٢ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺧﺎ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎﻉ .ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ :ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻀﺎﺀ.
)(٩٥
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻐﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻣﻌﺘﺬﺭﺍ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ:
" ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ :ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺷﺠﺎﻉ ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻻ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺏ،
ﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﻮﻫﻢ! ﻭﻫﻞ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ) (١ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﺮﺍﺳﺎ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻃﻮﻝ ﺗﺠﺮﺑﺔ ﻣﻨﻰ .ﻟﻘﺪ ﻧﻬﻀﺖ
ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻓﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺍﻵﻥ ) (٢ﻗﺪ ﺫﺭﻓﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ
ﻻ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻻ ﻳﻄﺎﻉ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻷﺣﻨﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻡ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ) (٣ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ -ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ) (٤ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻓﺘﻨﺔ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺨﺮﺑﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺪﻱ ) :(٥ﻣﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪﻡ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻻﺑﺪ ﻓﺠﻨﺒﻮﻫﺎ ﺣﺴﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﺣﺴﻦ ،ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺏ .ﻭﻻ ﺇﻧﺎﻟﺔ ﻟﻠﻤﺎﻝ.
ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﺮﺯﺓ ﺍﻷﺳﻠﻤﻲ ) :(٦ﻟﻢ ﺁﺛﺮﺕ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺍﻕ؟
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺟﺪﺗﻪ ﺃﻃﻮﻯ ﻟﺴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻣﻠﻚ ﻟﻌﻨﺎﻥ ﺟﻴﺸﻪ ) ،(٧ﻭﺃﻧﻈﺮ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﻠﻴﻢ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ -ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻠﻴﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻫﻢ ﺍﻣﻨﻬﻢ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ٥٥ :٢ﺣﻴﺚ ﺗﺠﺪ ﻣﺮﺍﺟﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺒﺔ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ " :١٤١ :١ﻓﻬﺄﻧﺬﺍ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ١٥٣ :٧ / ٨٩ :٦ﻭﻣﻘﺎﺗﻞ
ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻟﺒﻴﻴﻦ ،٨٧ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻷﺑﻴﻪ ﺷﻴﻌﺔ .ﺃﻣﺎ ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺘﻠﻮﻩ
ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻧﻪ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺘﻞ ".
) (٥ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﻨﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺨﺮﺑﺔ .ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ٩٣ :٧ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﻣﻮﺱ )ﺧﺮﺏ(.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﺮﺩﺓ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻧﻀﻠﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﺮﺯﺓ ﺍﻷﺳﻠﻤﻲ،
ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ ٤٤٦ :١٠ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ .١٤٦ﻭﻓﻰ ﺗﺎﺭﻳﺦ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻟﻠﺬﻫﺒﻲ " :٣٢٨ :٢ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺎﻡ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﺷﻬﺪ ﺻﻔﻴﻦ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺭﺿﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ "
ﻭﻳﺒﺪﻭ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻲ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﻣﻊ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻭﻗﻌﺔ ﺻﻔﻴﻦ .٢٤٦
) (٧ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻫﻜﺬﺍ " :ﺣﺒﺴﻪ ".
)(٩٦
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺣﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻠﻢ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺟﺎﻣﻊ ﻟﻠﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺰﻡ -ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺒﺾ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﺻﻬﻴﺐ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻫﻞ ﺃﺣﺪﺛﺘﻢ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ؟
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻓﺎﺣﻔﻆ ﻋﻨﻰ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻲ ﻟﻢ ﺃﻗﺪﻣﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻚ ﻣﺴﺘﺄﺧﺮﺍ .ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺃﻧﻰ ﻗﻠﺖ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺛﻘﻴﻞ ) :(١ﺍﺩﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﺴﻠﻪ،
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻓﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮﻧﺎ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺑﻨﺎ.
ﻓﺘﺮﻛﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻣﻨﻴﺖ ) (٢ﺑﺪﻫﺎﺓ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺣﻴﻞ ﺩﻭﻧﻲ ،ﻓﻼ ﻳﻌﺮﺿﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ
ﺷﺊ ﺇﻻ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻻ ﻻ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺘﻲ ،ﺗﻘﺼﺮ ﻋﻴﻨﻴﻚ ﻭﺗﺤﻚ ﻗﻔﺎﻙ ،ﺑﻌﺪ
ﻓﻮﺕ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ.
ﻓﻔﻴﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺎﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﺎﺭﻳﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﺍﻧﻴﻪ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻘﺎﺭﺑﻪ .ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﻘﺔ ﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺯﻫﺪ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺗﻨﺎﺣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻﻥ
ﺃﺯﻫﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﺃﺭﻏﺒﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﺃﺭﻏﺒﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ
ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺑﺄﺣﻮﺍﻝ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﺻﺪﻗﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺪ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺯﻫﺪ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﺳﻨﺪﻟﻜﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﻋﺮﻳﺾ ،ﻭﺗﺠﺎﺭﺓ
ﻭﺍﺳﻌﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻧﻔﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻳﺜﺎﺭﺍ ﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﺮﺳﻮﻟﻪ،
ﻭﻃﻠﺐ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﻘﻰ )] (٣ﺍﻟﻠﻪ[ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺖ ﺗﺮﻛﺘﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻧﺎﺿﺢ .ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺻﻴﻘﻞ ) ،(٤ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻮﺡ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺋﻢ
ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺮﺝ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺪﻗﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻱ ﺃﺛﻘﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺽ ﻭﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﻓﺎﺓ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﻤﻴﺖ؟؟ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﻘﻰ " ﺑﺈﻫﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻑ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﺼﻴﻘﻞ :ﺷﺤﺎﺫ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﻭﺟﻼﺅﻫﺎ.
)(٩٧
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻣﻘﻼ ﻣﺨﻔﻘﺎ ) (١ﻳﻌﺎﻝ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﻮﻝ ،ﻓﺎﺳﺘﻔﺎﺩ
ﺍﻟﺮﺑﺎﻉ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺰﺍﺭﻉ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻴﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺨﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻣﺎﺕ ﺫﺍ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻭﺃﻭﻗﺎﻑ،
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺴﺐ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻭﻗﻔﻪ ﺑﻴﻨﺒﻊ ) (٣ﺇﻻ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻛﻞ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻠﻜﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﺬ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻓﺎﺭﻗﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺗﺰﻭﺝ ﻓﺄﻛﺜﺮ ،ﻭﻃﻠﻖ ﻓﺄﻛﺜﺮ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻋﺎﺑﻪ
ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻃﺮﻳﻘﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺗﻨﻘﺼﻪ ،ﻭﺳﺒﻴﻼ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻜﻨﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻭﻳﺮﻳﺪﻩ ،ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺳﺪ ﻟﺴﻬﻤﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻗﻊ ﻓﻲ ) (٤ﻗﻠﺐ
ﻣﻦ ﺳﻤﻌﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺑﻨﻜﺤﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻃﻠﻘﺔ ".
ﻭﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺭﺣﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺗﺴﻊ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﺮﻳﺔ
ﻣﻄﻬﻤﺔ ) (٥ﻭﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻧﺴﻮﺓ ﻋﻘﺎﺋﻞ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻓﺄﻧﻔﻘﻪ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﻼ ﻓﻜﺴﺒﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﺰﻭﺝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺗﺨﺬ ﺳﺮﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﻔﻜﻪ
ﺑﺸﺊ ،ﻭﻻ ﺁﺛﺮ ﻟﺬﺓ ) (٦ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻃﻠﻘﺎ ﻣﺒﺎﺣﺎ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺎﻟﺘﻪ ) :(٧ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﻠﻒ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ ﻭﻣﻦ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺃﻳﺎﺩﻳﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﺩﻭﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻟﻜﻲ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ
ﻋﻤﺎﻟﺘﻪ ﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﺣﺘﺬﻯ ﻋﻤﺮ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺄﺧﺬ ﻋﻤﺎﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﺨﺒﺮﻧﺎ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺭﺩﻫﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻻ ﻛﻠﻒ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﺧﻔﻖ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ :ﻗﻞ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﺮﺑﺎﻉ :ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻝ ،ﺟﻤﻊ ﺭﺑﻊ.
) (٣ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﻳﺒﻴﻊ؟؟ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﻌﺠﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺍﻥ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺄﻭﻗﻊ ﻣﻦ ".
) (٥ﺍﻟﺴﺮﻳﺔ :ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺭﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﺮﺍﺓ ،ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻬﻤﺔ :ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻨﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻠﺔ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﺑﺮﻟﺪﻩ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
) (٧ﺍﻟﻌﻤﺎﻟﺔ ﺑﺘﺜﻠﻴﺚ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﻦ :ﺃﺟﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﻞ.
)(٩٨
ﻓﻲ ﻭﺻﻴﺔ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺨﺘﻠﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺭﺟﻼﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ،
ﻭﺣﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻟﻘﻮﺣﺎ ﻭﺣﺒﺸﻴﺔ ﻟﺮﺿﺎﻉ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻓﺮﺩ ﺫﻟﻚ )(١
ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ.
ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻳﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻏﺪﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻮﻗﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻔﻌﻞ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﻓﻼﺑﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺠﻌﻞ ﻟﺨﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻪ ،ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﺑﺮﺩﻳﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺧﻠﻘﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺿﻌﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺃﺧﺬ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻇﻬﺮﻩ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺎﻓﺮ ،ﻭﻧﻔﻘﺘﻪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﻔﻖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺭﺿﻴﺖ .ﻓﺠﻤﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﻠﻪ
ﻭﺣﻔﻈﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ ﻓﺮﺩﻭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ .ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ
ﺧﻔﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻈﻬﺮ ،ﺧﻤﻴﺺ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﻦ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻓﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺭﺣﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﺷﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ!
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻨﻀﺢ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺟﻤﻌﺔ
ﻭﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺭﻛﻌﺘﻴﻦ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻷﻣﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻴﺎﻧﺔ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻳﺮﺗﻔﻌﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﺢ .ﻭﻋﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺜﻨﺎﺀ،
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺡ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻻﻳﺜﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻓﺾ ﻟﻠﻔﻀﻮﻝ،
ﻻﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻳﻌﻄﻰ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻌﻄﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﻄﻰ
ﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﺮﻕ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺣﺪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ".
)(٩٩
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺪﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺜﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺰﻛﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻌﻈﻤﻪ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻓﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﺍﻵﻯ ،ﻭﺃﻓﺮﺩﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻛﺮ ﻛﻤﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻬﻮﺭ
ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ.
ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﺂﻳﺔ ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺁﻳﺔ ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻼﻧﺎ ﺩﻭﻥ
ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻀﺮﺑﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻭﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻧﺴﺒﻪ ﻭﻧﻌﺘﻪ ) (١ﻣﺴﻄﻮﺭﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﺮﻋﻮﻥ ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﻟﻬﺐ ،ﻭﻓﻼﻧﺎ ﻭﻓﻼﻧﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺁﺩﻡ
ﻭﻧﻮﺣﺎ ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻭﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻭﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ.
ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺩ ﺑﺎﻵﻳﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻟﻘﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ).(٢
]ﻭﺯﻳﺪ[ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺐ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺩ ﺑﺎﻵﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺑﺸﻬﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺴﺒﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺗﻨﺎﺯﻉ ،ﻭﻻ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮﻧﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺄﻧﻪ ﻣﺴﻤﻰ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻢ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﺤﺪﺙ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻓﻴﻨﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻓﻴﻌﻠﻢ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺰﻳﻞ .ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻥ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻗﺮﻓﺖ ﺑﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺁﻳﺎ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺳﻤﻰ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻓﻬﺎ .ﻭﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﺰﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ
ﻭﻫﺠﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻫﺮﺑﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻧﺼﺮﺓ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﻭﺗﺰﻛﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻪ
ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ " :ﺇﻥ ﺗﻨﺼﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻧﺼﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﺫ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻌﻨﻪ ".
) (٢ﺃﻱ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺍﺳﻤﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺩﺍﻥ.
)(١٠٠
ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﺇﺫ ﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻻ ﺗﺤﺰﻥ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻣﻌﻨﺎ ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﻳﺪﻩ ﺑﺠﻨﻮﺩ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﻭﻫﺎ ﻭﺟﻌﻞ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﻠﻰ ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺰﻳﺰ ﺣﻜﻴﻢ )." (١
ﻓﻼ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻻ ﺗﻨﺼﺮﻭﻩ " ﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻭﺟﻮﻩ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺧﺎﻃﺐ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ .ﺃﻭ ﺧﺺ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻟﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻏﻴﻦ،
ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﺎﻃﺐ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺔ
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻠﻌﺪﻭ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺷﻒ
ﺑﻌﺪﺍﻭﺗﻪ .ﺍﻟﻤﻈﻬﺮ ﻟﻀﻐﻨﻪ ،ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺫﻝ ﻟﺮﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﻣﺎﻟﻪ ،ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻧﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻓﻌﻠﻪ :ﺇﻻ ﺗﻨﺼﺮﻧﻲ
ﻓﻘﺪ ﻧﺼﺮﻧﻲ ﻓﻼﻥ! ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮ ﻻ ﻳﻠﺘﻤﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺷﻒ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﻳﻠﺘﻤﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻲ ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻝ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻏﺎﻳﺘﻪ ﺍﻻﻧﺘﺼﺎﺭ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﻐﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺰ ﻭﺟﻞ " :ﺇﺫ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻃﺐ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺟﺤﺪﻭﻩ ﻭﺃﺧﺮﺟﻮﻩ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻟﻴﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﻣﺸﺮﻛﻲ ﻣﻜﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻟﻮﻥ
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﻴﻦ ،ﺑﺎﺋﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﺛﺒﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺩﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ.
ﺍﻟﻤﻈﻬﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻠﻤﺤﺎﺭﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﺻﻨﻔﻴﻦ ﻣﺘﻤﺎﻳﺰﻳﻦ،
]ﻭ[ ﻓﺮﻳﻘﻴﻦ ﻣﺘﺒﺎﻳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻞ ﺣﺰﺏ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺬﻻﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻄﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻄﻮﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺒﻘﺎﺕ:
ﻣﻦ ﻣﺠﺘﻬﺪ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻘﻰ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻔﺘﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺄﻡ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﺎﺋﻞ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺑﻀﻠﻌﻪ ).(٢
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤٠ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺑﺔ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﻀﻠﻊ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﺢ :ﺍﻟﻤﻴﻞ.
)(١٠١
ﻣﺒﺪ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﻟﻀﺮﻩ )ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻏﻠﻮ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﻭﺗﺼﻤﻴﻤﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺇﻏﻔﺎﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺧﺰﺍﻋﺔ ﻭﺛﻘﻴﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺑﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﺭﺣﺎﻣﻬﺎ ﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﺗﻘﻴﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻷﺭﺻﺎﺩ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺒﺎﺕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﻐﻰ،
ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻠﻐﻚ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻷﺧﻨﺲ ﺑﻦ ﺷﺮﻳﻖ ﻭﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ،ﻭﺑﺪﻳﻞ ﺑﻦ
ﻭﺭﻗﺎﺀ ،ﻣﻦ ﺭﻛﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﻠﺢ ﻭﺣﺒﻬﻢ ﻟﻠﺴﻼﻣﺔ ،ﻣﻊ ﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﺮﻉ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻮﺛﺐ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺟﻠﺒﻮﺍ ﻭﻃﻌﻨﻮﺍ .ﻭﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺑﻮﺍ ،ﺑﻌﺪ
ﺍﻻﻓﺼﺎﺡ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻹﺑﺎﻧﺔ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻟﻬﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺮﺑﻪ ﻭﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ،ﺷﺒﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺟﻬﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻈﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺴﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﺪﺭﻱ ) (٢ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺂﻣﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﺣﻴﺎ ﻣﻘﻴﻤﺎ ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺟﻞ
ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻋﻨﺎﻩ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﺃﻃﺎﻋﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﺎ
ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﺫﺑﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻧﺼﺮﺍ،
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻌﻮﻧﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺣﻤﺎﻳﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﻌﺮﻑ ﻗﻮﻣﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻘﺼﻴﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺍﻓﻌﺔ،
ﺇﻻ ﻭﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﻘﺮﻧﻴﻦ ) (٣ﻟﻤﻦ ﻧﺎﻭﺃﻫﻢ ،ﻣﻀﻄﻠﻌﻴﻦ ﺑﺪﻓﻊ ﻣﻦ
ﺷﺎﻗﻬﻢ ).(٤
ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﺔ ،ﻭﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺭﺟﻞ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﺒﺼﺮﻩ "
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﺪﺭﻱ :ﺍﻟﺨﺘﻞ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺮﻥ :ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﻖ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻘﺮﻧﻴﻦ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﺼﻠﻌﻴﻦ " ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻀﻄﻠﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺊ ،ﺃﻱ ﻗﻮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﺩﺭ.
)(١٠٢
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻣﻄﺎﻉ ﻣﺘﺒﻮﻉ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻠﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﺭﺍﻩ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻳﻨﻔﺬ ﻻﻣﺮﻩ:
" ﺇﻻ ﺗﻨﺼﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻧﺼﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﺸﻴﺨﺔ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻻ ﺃﻋﻮﺍﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ ) (١ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺮﺑﻬﻢ ﻭﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻋﻘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻣﻌﻴﻂ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺣﻴﺤﺔ ،ﻭﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺍﻧﻤﺎﺯﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﺤﻴﻴﻦ :ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ] .ﻭ[ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻠﻐﻚ.
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺩﻝ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﺎﻵﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ،
ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻣﺨﺎﻃﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺗﺄﻧﻴﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ
ﻭﺗﻘﺮﻳﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺗﻘﺼﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﺫ ﻇﻌﻨﻮﺍ
ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻡ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻨﻘﺺ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻛﺎﻟﻨﻘﺺ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺽ .ﻓﻜﺄﻧﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻭﻋﺰ
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﺻﺒﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻊ ﻧﺒﻴﻜﻢ .ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﻭﻗﺖ ﺍﻻﺫﻥ ) (٢ﻛﺼﺒﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺨﺮﺟﻮﺍ ﻫﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﺎﺯﻋﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﻧﺒﻴﻜﻢ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ
ﻟﺼﺒﺮﻛﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻛﻤﻞ ﻟﺮﻏﺒﺘﻜﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻢ ﻟﺘﻘﻴﺘﻜﻢ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﻋﺼﻴﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ
ﺧﺮﻭﺟﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺾ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺗﻄﻮﻋﻬﺎ ﻭﻓﺮﺿﻬﺎ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻼﻻ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺑﺎ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭﺍ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﻓﻀﻬﻢ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻢ ﺟﺰﻉ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻭﺃﻋﻄﺎﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ،ﻣﻊ ﺍﻧﻄﻮﺍﺀ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ .ﺃﻱ ﻟﺤﺎ (٢) .ﺃﻱ ﺍﻻﺫﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ.
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻣﻊ ﺷﺪﺓ ﻓﻮﻕ ﺍﻟﻀﺎﺩ .ﻭ " ﻓﺘﻨﻬﻢ " ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ.
)(١٠٣
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﻼﺹ ،ﻭﺛﻠﺞ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ﺑﺎﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻘﻮﺻﺎ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﻤﺎﻡ ،ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﺼﻴﺎﻧﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺧﻼﻓﺎ .ﻭﻳﺪﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ:
" ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻛﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻣﻄﻤﺌﻦ ﺑﺎﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ " .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺎﺭ " :ﺇﻥ ﻋﺎﺩﻭﺍ ﻓﻌﺪ " ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺳﻌﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺧﺼﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﻃﻼﻕ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﻏﻴﺐ.
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﻚ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺭﺩﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ .ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻷﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ :ﺃﺗﻌﻠﻢ
ﺃﻧﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻓﺘﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺄﻣﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻘﺘﻞ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻶﺧﺮ :ﺃﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ .ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻓﺘﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ .ﻓﺄﻣﺮ ﺑﺘﺨﻠﻴﺔ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺑﻠﻎ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ﻓﻤﻀﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ﻭﻳﻘﻴﻨﻪ ﻓﻬﻨﻴﺌﺎ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ
ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﻓﺄﺧﺬ ﺑﺮﺧﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻼ ﺗﺒﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﺎﻝ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﻘﺼﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ،ﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ.
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ،
ﻭﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ﻓﺎﻷﻭﻝ ،ﻓﺒﻌﺾ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺑﻌﺾ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ،
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﺀ ﻭﻃﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺬﻝ ﻭﻗﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺻﺮ ،ﻭﻗﻮﻳﺖ ﺍﻟﻀﻐﺎﺋﻦ،
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ،ﻳﺴﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻓﻴﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺣﻴﺪﺍ ﻻ ﺃﻧﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻴﻼ ﻻ ﻧﺎﺻﺮ ﻟﻪ،
ﻭﺧﺎﺋﻔﺎ ﻻ ﺃﻣﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻳﺰﺩﺍﺩﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﺓ ﻭﻳﺰﺩﺍﺩ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﺿﻌﻔﺎ
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺑﻠﺢ ) (١ﻭﺑﻠﻎ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻬﻮﺩ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﺍﻩ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻳﺴﺘﻌﻴﻦ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ،
ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻀﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﺧﻮﺍﻧﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺤﺎﻕ ﺑﻬﻢ،
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻭﺑﻠﺢ ﺗﺒﻠﻴﺤﺎ :ﺃﻋﻴﺎ.
)(١٠٤
ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻪ " :ﻟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﻟﻚ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ " ﻓﻴﺰﺩﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﻮﺓ،
ﻭﺗﺤﺪﺙ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻫﻤﺔ .ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻤﺴﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ،
ﻓﻴﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﺎﻩ ،ﻓﻴﺸﺠﻊ
ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺸﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻃﻤﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻛﺮﺍﻣﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ
ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﻓﻘﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ]ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ) [(١ﺑﺴﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ
ﺃﻭﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻷﺳﺪ ) ،(٢ﻭﺁﺧﺮﻫﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻟﻘﺮﺏ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻓﻜﺄﻧﻪ ﺧﺎﻃﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ
ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ) (٣ﺻﺒﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺒﺮﻫﻢ .ﻣﺸﺤﺬﺓ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ،
ﻭﺗﺮﻏﻴﺒﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﺣﻮﺍﺩﺙ ﺍﻻﻣﺘﺤﺎﻥ .ﻓﻜﺄﻧﻪ
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺴﺘﺘﻤﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺒﻠﻐﻮﺍ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﺒﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ،ﻓﻘﺪ
ﻧﺼﺮﺗﻪ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺇﺫ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﺘﻪ ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﻘﺮﻳﺶ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﺎﺩﺃﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ ،ﻭﻧﺼﺐ ﻟﻬﻢ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺲ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻠﺪ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺸﻜﻴﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﻤﺔ:
" ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺪ ﺻﺮﻧﺎ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﻟﺘﺮﻛﺘﻤﻮﻫﺎ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺇﻥ ﺗﺮﻛﻨﺎﻫﺎ ﻟﻜﻢ "
ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻣﻜﺔ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ ﻭﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻡ
--------------------
) (١ﺗﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻳﻔﺘﻘﺮ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
) (٢ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻷﺳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻫﻼﻝ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺰﻭﻣﻲ ،ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺃﻧﻔﺲ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺧﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎﻉ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٤٧٧٤
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ".
)(١٠٥
ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ،ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺫﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﻭﻭﺣﺸﺘﻪ ﺃﻗﻞ،
ﻭﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ﺃﻃﻴﺐ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻌﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻫﺎﺟﺮﻭﺍ
ﻭﻧﺰﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻨﺰﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﻛﺮﻡ ﻣﻨﺰﻭﻝ ﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺫﺭﺍﻩ
ﺁﻣﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺭﺍﻓﻬﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﻴﻦ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺎﻳﺔ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ.
ﻭﺇﺣﻤﺎﺵ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ﻭﺗﻬﻴﻴﺠﻪ ) .(١ﻓﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍﻙ ﺇﻻ ﺻﺪﺭ ﻧﻬﺎﺭ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺟﻌﻞ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻠﻤﺘﻘﻴﻦ .ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺣﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻔﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﺸﺔ،
ﻭﺧﻔﺔ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻴﺪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺐ ﻭﺍﻹﻫﺎﻧﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﺄﺗﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﻝ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺜﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻪ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺗﺴﻊ.
ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﺭﻭﻳﻨﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻀﺤﺎﻙ ﻭﻗﺘﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻬﺬﻟﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ
ﺍﻵﻳﺔ :ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺎﺗﺐ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ )(٢
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ،
ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﺷﺮﺣﻨﺎ ﻭﻓﺼﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻃﺒﺔ ﻭﻗﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻟﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﻳﻦ ،ﺃﻭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺫﻟﻴﻦ
ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﺣﺪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺑﻬﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻣﺎ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺳﺒﺒﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺣﻘﻴﻘﺔ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ
ﻭﺷﺮﺡ ﻟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺃﺭﺳﻠﺘﻬﻤﺎ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ﻟﻴﺮﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻴﻔﺘﻨﻮﻫﻢ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻓﺘﻨﻮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ .ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﻫﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ -ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺳﻌﻰ ﺳﻌﻴﺎ ﺣﺜﻴﺜﺎ ﻟﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺣﺎﻭﻝ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﺴﺪ ﻧﺠﺎﺣﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻋﻮﺓ
ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻬﻴﻴﺞ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ " :ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ
ﻣﺮﻳﻢ ﻗﻮﻻ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ " ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﺃﺧﻔﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺗﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ ،ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٢٢٥ - ٢١٥
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻜﻦ " ﻣﻊ ﺧﻂ ﻋﻠﻰ " ﻛﺎﻥ ".
)(١٠٦
ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ .ﻻﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ " ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ:
" ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ " ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻈﻤﺘﻢ ﻓﻌﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺑﻌﻀﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺇﻻ ﻟﻠﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ".
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺍﺳﺘﻜﺮﻫﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻭﺻﺮﻓﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻨﻨﻪ،
ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻜﻢ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺑﻜﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺒﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺍﺟﻌﺔ
ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺎﺀ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺑﻂ ﺍﻟﺠﺄﺵ ،ﺍﻟﺜﺎﺑﺖ
ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺎﻥ ،ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻛﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺰﻯ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻬﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺣﺰﻧﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﺐ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻜﻦ ﻟﺤﺮﻛﺔ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ) (١ﺭﺃﻯ ﻭﻋﺎﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻛﺘﺮﺍﺛﻪ
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻗﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻭﻓﺮﻗﻨﺎ ،ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺻﻠﺔ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺷﺎﺭﻙ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻀﻮﺭﻩ
ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺸﺪﺓ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ﻭﺳﻌﺔ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻟﻔﺼﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﻋﻬﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ) (٢ﺗﻌﺠﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻘﺺ
ﻓﻀﻼ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﺗﺄﺧﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺗﻢ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ.
)* ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻻ ﺗﺤﺰﻥ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﻬﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻓﻲ " ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " ﻣﻀﻤﺮ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ".
)(١٠٧
ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻻﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻬﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﺐ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺸﺮ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺼﺮ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
" ﻻ ﺗﺤﺰﻥ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ " .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﻳﺮ،
ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺎﻩ ،ﻋﻦ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ :ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ:
" ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ *(.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﺴﻖ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ " :ﻭﺃﻳﺪﻩ ﺑﺠﻨﻮﺩ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﻭﻫﺎ " ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺆﻳﺪ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻨﻮﺩ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻼﺋﻜﺘﻪ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻭﻣﺎ ﺗﻨﻜﺮﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻳﺪ ﺭﺟﻼ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ،ﺑﺸﻔﺎﻋﺔ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺑﺸﺎﺭﺗﻪ ﻭﺑﺤﻖ ﺻﺤﺒﺘﻪ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺑﺪﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ .ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻱ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﻳﺪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﻩ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻭﻣﻴﻜﺎﺋﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﻊ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ " ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ ﺱ .٩
*( ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﺹ ١٠٧ﺱ ١٧ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ )(٢٨
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ .ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ :٢٧١ :٣
" ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻭﻣﻦ ﺟﺤﺪ ﻛﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﻔﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺟﺤﺪ ﻧﺺ
ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ .ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ " ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺷﺮﻳﻚ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﺰﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ:
ﺇﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻣﺨﺼﻮﺹ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺤﺘﺎﺟﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﺪﺍﺧﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻗﺔ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮﻯ
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺤﺮﻭﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ،ﻓﻼ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ
ﻟﻨﺰﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺛﺎﻟﺜﺔ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ " .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﻤﻊ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ
ﺹ .٥١ - ٥٠ ،٤٤
)(١٠٨
ﻟﻴﻌﻠﻤﻪ ) (١ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺗﻪ ﻣﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺭﺳﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﻤﻨﻌﻮﻩ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻴﺴﻜﻦ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺭﻭﻋﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻬﺪﺃ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺜﻖ ﺑﺤﻀﻮﺭ
ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮ ﻭﺗﻌﺠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﻣﻊ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ﻣﻠﻜﻴﻦ ﻳﻜﺘﺒﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﺷﺮﻩ
ﺍﺳﺘﺬﻛﺎﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻦ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺷﻌﺮ ﺑﻤﻜﺎﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻗﻄﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺭﻛﻮﺏ ﺍﻷﺩﻧﺎﺱ،
ﻭﺃﺩﻋﻰ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺤﻴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻟﻴﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺟﺪ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻬﺰﻝ.
ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﺣﻀﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﺸﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺗﺴﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺠﻴﻼ ﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻖ ﺑﺎﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺳﺎﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﻞ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺟﻞ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺻﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻭﻣﺮﺍﻓﻘﺘﻪ ﻭﻛﻮﻧﻪ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﻣﻊ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻻﻗﺪﺍﻡ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺮﺃﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺗﻜﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻓﻌﻪ ﻭﺭﺩﻩ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﺋﻠﻮﻥ:
ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺧﻮﻓﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﻌﻰ ﺑﺄﻣﺮﻩ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺋﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﻣﻴﻘﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻋﺰﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺎﻃﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺇﻻ ﺗﻨﺼﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ
ﻧﺼﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﺫ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ " ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﺋﻨﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺑﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ) (٢ﻭﺃﺭﺑﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﺭ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﻕ
ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺮﻳﺢ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ".
) (٢ﺃﺑﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ :ﻏﻠﺒﻬﻢ .ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﺃﺑﺮ " ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(١٠٩
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﻨﺢ ﻓﻲ ﻓﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻠﻴﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺗﺼﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ .ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻴﺐ
ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﺍﻷﺧﺮﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻰ " :ﻭﺟﻌﻞ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﻠﻰ ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻴﺎ ".
ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻓﺮ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻛﻔﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻋﻨﻮﺩﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺛﺎﻧﻴﻪ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺭﻓﻴﻘﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻳﻖ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺰﻯ ﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﺣﺰﻧﻪ .ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻮﺍ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻓﻘﺔ ) (١ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻌﺘﻘﺪﺍ ﻟﺠﺤﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻪ
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻟﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﺍﺭﻩ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﻃﻊ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺑﺎﺩﺃﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ .ﻭﻧﺎﻭﺃﻩ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺒﻘﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺑﻨﻔﺎﻗﻪ .ﻭﺑﺘﺰﻣﻴﻞ ﺣﻘﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺇﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﺿﻐﻨﻪ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻘﻴﻢ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﻣﻔﺮﺩ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻴﻞ ﻣﻄﺮﺩ ،ﻭﺧﺎﺋﻒ ﻣﺸﺮﺩ ،ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻔﺎﺀ ﻳﻌﺪﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ،ﺃﻭ ﻫﺮﺏ ﻳﻘﻄﻊ ﺍﻷﺣﺸﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﺮﺏ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻣﻘﻬﻮﺭ
ﻣﺨﺬﻭﻝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺎﻟﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﺍﺭﻩ ﻋﺪﻭﻩ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻨﺎﻓﻘﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ؟!
ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻔﺴﺎﺩ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ﻭﻓﺤﺶ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻟﺬﻛﺮ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ.
ﻭﺍﻷﺛﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ،ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺤﺴﺎﻥ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ )(٢؟ ﻓﺄﻧﺸﺄ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻓﻘﻮﻥ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ٣٦١ :٣ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﺑﻴﺎﺕ ﺭﺛﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻴﻪ
ﻭﻛﺬﺍ ﺟﻤﻬﺮﺓ ﺃﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺹ ١٣ﻭﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﻮﺓ .٨٩ :١
)(١١٠
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺬﻛﺮﺕ ﺷﺠﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﻲ ﺛﻘﺔ * ﻓﺎﺫﻛﺮ ﺃﺧﺎﻙ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻓﻌﻼ
ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻲ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻤﻮﺩ ﻣﺸﻬﺪﻩ * ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺻﺪﻕ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻼ
ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻴﻒ ﻭﻗﺪ * ﻃﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﺓ ﺑﻪ ﺇﺫ ﺻﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻼ
ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﺔ ﺃﺗﻘﺎﻫﺎ ﻭﺃﻃﻬﺮﻫﺎ * ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺃﻭﻓﺎﻫﺎ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺣﻤﻼ
ﻓﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺗﺎﻟﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﺤﺠﻦ:
ﻭﺳﻤﻴﺖ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﺮ * ﺳﻮﺍﻙ ﻳﺴﻤﻰ ﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﺮ )(١
ﺳﺒﻘﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ * ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺟﻠﻴﺴﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﺮ
ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺇﺫ ﺳﻤﻴﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ * ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺭﻓﻴﻘﺎ ﻟﻠﻨﺒﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻬﺮ
ﻓﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺳﺎﺑﻘﺎ ﻭﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ،ﻭﺟﻠﻴﺴﺎ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻛﻌﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ:
ﺳﺒﻘﺖ ،ﺃﺧﺎ ﺗﻴﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺃﺣﻤﺪ * ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﻟﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﺮﺍﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻬﻒ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ
ﻓﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺳﺎﺑﻘﺎ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﺎ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﺷﻲ:
ﻏﺪﺍﺓ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻭﺣﺮ ﺟﻼﺩﻫﻢ * ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﻠﻴﺴﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻣﺆﺍﺯﺭﺍ )(٢
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻣﺄﺛﺮﺓ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﺩﻟﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻻ ﺷﺮﻑ
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻮﻗﻊ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ،ﻭﻧﺒﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﻓﻘﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺸﺎﻫﺪﻩ
ﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ ،ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻓﻮﻕ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻧﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺮﺍﻓﻘﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺑﻴﺎﺕ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻭ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻣﺤﺠﻦ.
) (٢ﺣﺮ ﻳﺤﺮ ،ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺿﺮﺏ ﻭﻗﻌﺪ ﻭﻋﻠﻢ :ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﺣﺮﻩ.
)(١١١
ﺳﻤﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﺍﻟﻬﺎﺗﻒ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺮﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻞ ) (١ﻭﻫﻮ ﺭﺍﻓﻊ ﻋﻘﻴﺮﺗﻪ ،ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
ﺟﺰﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺟﺰﺍﺋﻪ * ﺧﻠﻴﻠﻲ ﺻﻔﺎﺀ ﻃﺮﺩﺍ ﻛﻞ ﻣﻄﺮﺩ
ﻫﻤﺎ ﻧﺰﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺢ ﺛﻤﺖ ﻫﺠﺮﺍ * ﻭﺃﻓﻠﺢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺴﻰ ﺭﻓﻴﻖ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﻟﻴﻬﻨﺊ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻛﻌﺐ ﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﻓﺘﺎﺗﻬﻢ * ﻭﻣﻘﻌﺪﻫﺎ ﻟﻠﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺑﻤﺮﺻﺪ )(٢
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ:
ﺭﻓﻴﻘﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻴﺎ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﺿﻤﻨﺎ * ﺑﺄﻛﺮﻡ ﻣﺜﻮﻯ ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻥ
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺼﺔ ﻣﺴﻄﺢ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺛﺎﺛﺔ ﻭﻗﻀﻴﺘﻪ ) ،(٣ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺑﻴﺒﻪ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ
ﺧﺎﻟﺘﻪ ) (٤ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻪ ﻭﺗﺤﺖ ﺟﻨﺎﺣﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﺮﻓﺖ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺮﻓﺖ ﺑﻪ
ﻭﺑﻠﻐﻚ ،ﺁﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻨﻈﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻔﻠﻪ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﻮﻥ ﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺬﺭ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﺑﺮﺍﺀﺗﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺽ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻄﻬﺎﺭﺓ
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻔﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﻏﺎﻓﻠﺔ ،ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻄﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﺘﻨﻔﻴﻪ،
ﺇﻳﺜﺎﺭﺍ ﻟﻠﺤﻼﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ .ﻭﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺁﻳﺔ ) (٥ﻳﺄﻣﺮ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻔﺢ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺴﻄﺢ .ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﺎﻭﺯ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻧﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻐﻤﺪ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ
ﻳﻌﻴﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻨﻔﻪ ﻭﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺄﺗﻞ ﺃﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻌﺔ ".
ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﺈﻣﺮﺉ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ .ﻭﻳﺼﻔﻪ ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺄﺗﻞ ﺃﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻌﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﺍ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺑﻰ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﻛﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﻴﻌﻔﻮﺍ ﻭﻟﻴﺼﻔﺤﻮﺍ ﺃﻻ ﺗﺤﺒﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻐﻔﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﻮ ﺟﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻗﺒﻴﺲ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ .١٨٨ :١
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٣٣٠ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ١٨٩ - ١٨٧ :١ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ .٧٧ :١
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺘﺎﺓ ﻫﻲ ﺃﻡ ﻣﻌﺒﺪ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻛﻌﺐ ،ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻛﻌﺐ ﺑﻦ ﺧﺰﺍﻋﺔ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﺼﺘﻪ ".
) (٤ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺧﺎﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٧٣٣
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻦ ﺁﻳﺔ ".
)(١١٢
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻏﻔﻮﺭ ﺭﺣﻴﻢ ) " (١ﻓﺘﻼﻫﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﻧﺘﻬﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﻻ ﺗﺤﺒﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻐﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻜﻢ " ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺑﻠﻰ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺏ! ﻓﻌﻔﺎ ﻋﻨﻪ .ﻓﻮﺟﺒﺖ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻔﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻋﺎﺩﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻌﻤﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻞ
ﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺸﺎﻩ ﻭﺗﺤﺖ ﻇﻠﻪ.
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻗﺪﺭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻳﻔﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻵﻯ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻌﻈﻤﺎ ﻟﺸﺄﻧﻪ ،ﺫﺍﻛﺮﺍ
ﻟﻔﻀﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻟﺴﺎﻥ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﻟﻮﺍﻟﺪﻳﻪ ﺃﻑ ﻟﻜﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻌﺪﺍﻧﻨﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺧﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻠﻲ ﻭﻫﻤﺎ
ﻳﺴﺘﻐﻴﺜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻳﻠﻚ ﺁﻣﻦ ﺇﻥ ﻭﻋﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻖ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺳﺎﻃﻴﺮ
ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ) " (٢ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻣﻪ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺘﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ
ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮﺍﻩ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺑﻨﺎﺗﻪ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻗﺎﻃﺒﺔ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ
ﺍﻷﺑﻮﻳﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻒ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻣﻜﺔ ) ،(٣ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﻓﻬﻼ ﺗﺮﻛﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺦ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﻪ ﻓﺄﺗﻴﻨﺎﻩ! " .ﻭﻟﻪ ﺻﺤﺒﺔ.
ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻤﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﻓﻤﻦ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﻣﻜﺒﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٢٢ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﺭ.
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ١٧ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻷﺣﻘﺎﻑ.
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺧﺒﺮ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٨١٦ - ٨١٥
)(١١٣
ﺃﻫﺪﻯ ﺃﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﺳﻮﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺮﺍﻁ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﻴﻢ " ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺭﺃﺱ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﺮﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻮﺿﻊ
ﺑﺈﺯﺍﺋﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺃﺱ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻰ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺴﻨﻰ " ﺍﻵﻳﺔ،
ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﻗﺎﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺬﺑﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻛﺬﺏ
ﻭﺗﻮﻟﻰ " ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺟﻬﻞ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺧﺎﻟﻒ
ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻨﺎ ) (١ﻭﻻ ﺭﺩ ﻗﻮﻟﻨﺎ ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻗﻞ ﻟﻠﻤﺨﻠﻔﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺏ ﺳﺘﺪﻋﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻡ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ
ﺑﺄﺱ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﺗﻘﺎﺗﻠﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺗﻄﻴﻌﻮﺍ ﻳﺆﺗﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺟﺮﺍ ﺣﺴﻨﺎ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺗﺘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﻟﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻳﻌﺬﺑﻜﻢ ﻋﺬﺍﺑﺎ ﺃﻟﻴﻤﺎ ) ." (٢ﻓﺰﻋﻢ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﻢ ﺑﻨﻮ ﺣﻨﻴﻔﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﺳﺘﻨﻔﺮ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ
ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺿﻤﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻇﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ]ﺫﻟﻚ ) [(٣ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻨﻔﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﺘﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻟﻜﺴﺮﻯ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺭﺍﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺑﺘﺄﺳﻴﺴﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺟﻮﻳﺒﺮ ) (٤ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻀﺤﺎﻙ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻳﺎ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ
ﺍﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻛﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺩﻗﻴﻦ " ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻼ "
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ١٦ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ.
) (٣ﺯﺩﺗﻬﺎ ﻣﺴﺎﻭﻗﺔ ﻻﺳﻠﻮﺏ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻠﺘﺰﻡ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺒﻴﺮ
) (٤ﺟﻮﻳﺒﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﻌﺪ ﺍﻷﺯﺩﻱ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺨﻲ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ١٤٠ﻭ .١٥٠ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
)(١١٤
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﻭﻛﻴﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺩﻟﻬﻢ ) (١ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ:
" ﻓﺴﻮﻑ ﻳﺄﺗﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻘﻮﻡ ﻳﺤﺒﻬﻢ ﻭﻳﺤﺒﻮﻧﻪ " ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ.
ﻭﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺼﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺷﺪ،
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﻃﻌﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺟﻤﺎﻉ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺴﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎﻫﺎ
ﻗﺒﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﺼﺔ ﻣﺴﻄﺢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻔﻮ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻭﺍﻻﻧﻔﺎﻕ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﺼﺔ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﻮﻳﻪ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﺋﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺼﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( :ﻓﺈﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺁﻳﺎ
ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﻃﻴﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻃﻴﻌﻮﺍ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ) ." (٣ﻓﺄﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻭﻟﺪﻩ .ﻓﻠﻌﻤﺮﻱ
ﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻃﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻭﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺇﻥ
ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻬﻢ ﻟﻮﺍﺟﺒﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﻣﺘﻘﻮﻝ ،ﺃﻭ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺟﻪ
ﺿﻌﻴﻒ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﻣﻊ ﺿﻌﻔﻪ ﺷﺎﺫ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺣﺠﺔ .ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ
ﻗﺪ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺷﺎﺫﺍ ،ﻣﺎﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻣﺴﺘﻔﻴﻀﺎ ﺷﺎﺋﻌﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻧﻘﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﺾ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺋﻊ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ
ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻼﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺔ ﻭﻫﻢ ﺿﻌﻔﺎﺀ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺿﻌﻴﻔﺎ ﻟﻀﻌﻒ ﻧﺎﻗﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﻤﻮﻧﻪ ﺷﺎﺫﺍ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺩﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻱ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺼﺎﺑﺎ ﺷﺎﻋﺮﺍ ﻣﻌﺘﺰﻟﻴﺎ .ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﺟﻤﺎﻉ ".
) (٣ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٥٩ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ.
)(١١٥
ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻭﺟﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﺪ ﻭﺍﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺇﺟﻤﺎﻋﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ
ﻋﺪﺍﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻼﻗﻮﺍ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﺮﺍﺳﻠﻮﺍ
ﻭﻻ ﺗﺘﻔﻖ ﺃﻟﺴﻨﺘﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺒﺮ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ،ﻣﻊ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﻬﻢ،
ﺛﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺳﺎﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ،ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﻩ
ﻋﻦ ﻣﺜﻠﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻓﺮﻋﻪ ﻛﺄﺻﻠﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻮﺟﺒﺎ ﻟﻠﻴﻘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻧﺎﻓﻴﺎ ﻟﻌﺮﻭ
ﺍﻟﺸﻚ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻠﻴﺪ.
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﻨﺤﻮ ﻣﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻗﺼﺔ ﻣﺴﻄﺢ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﻃﻴﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻃﻴﻌﻮﺍ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ " ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ .ﻓﻠﻴﺲ
ﻣﻦ ﺷﻜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺷﺘﺮﻃﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻦ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ
ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻭﻻﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ،
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺳﺮﺍﻳﺎﻩ ﻭﺃﺟﻨﺎﺩﻫﻢ ﻛﺎﻟﻌﻼﺀ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻀﺮﻣﻲ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺍﻷﺷﻌﺮﻱ،
ﻭﻋﺘﺎﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﻴﺪ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺒﻞ ،ﻳﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻄﺎﻋﺔ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮﺍﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ ﻟﻮﻻﺓ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﻢ.
ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻳﻮﻧﺲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻴﻌﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻠﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ
ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﺃﻃﻴﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻃﻴﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ " ﻓﻘﻠﺖ:
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻫﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ .ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ.
)(١١٦
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻭﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻦ
ﺃﺣﺮﻯ ﻣﺎ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻳﻘﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻘﺒﻠﻪ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ﺑﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻗﺎﺋﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ
ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺒﻮﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻳﻘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﻮﻗﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺋﺐ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﺒﻲ ،ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ) (٢ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ،
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺬﺍﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﻤﻲ ).(٣
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺍ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ
ﻟﻠﻤﺘﺸﻴﻊ ﺣﺠﺔ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ " :ﻳﺎ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻢ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ ) " (٤ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ .ﻻﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ
ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﺒﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻟﻬﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﻲ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻢ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺖ ).(٥
ﻭﻳﻌﺎﻓﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﺑﻴﺤﺔ ،ﻟﺮﺳﻮﺥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻏﻠﺒﺔ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ) ،(٦ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ:
" ﻳﺎ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻢ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ " ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺍﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻳﻌﺔ،
" ﻭﻻ ﺗﺘﺒﻌﻮﺍ ﺧﻄﻮﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ " ﻭﺯﻳﻨﺘﻪ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺑﺄﻟﻔﻜﻢ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻧﺸﻮﻛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﻔﻠﻪ ".
) (٢ﻫﻮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﺑﺎﺫﺍﻡ ،ﺃﻭ ﺑﺎﺫﺍﻥ ،ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﻡ ﻫﺎﻧﺊ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
.١٧٨ :٩ / ٤١٦ :١
) (٣ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﺎﺭﻱ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٤٦١٣
) (٤ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٢٠٨ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺒﻘﺮﺓ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺐ " ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺩ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻴﻬﻮﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﺘﻬﻢ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ".
)(١١٧
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ " :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻭﻫﻢ ﺭﺍﻛﻌﻮﻥ )." (١
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻛﺎﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻼﻡ )،(٢
ﻭﺭﻫﻂ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺸﺮﻛﻲ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﺃﺗﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻈﻬﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﺑﻴﻮﺗﻨﺎ ﻗﺎﺻﻴﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﺍ
ﺩﻭﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻮﻣﻨﺎ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺻﺪﻗﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻋﺎﺩﻭﻧﺎ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ
ﻣﺨﺎﻟﻄﺘﻨﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻗﺴﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻜﻠﻤﻮﻧﺎ.
ﻓﺒﻴﻨﻤﺎ ﻫﻢ ﻳﺸﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﺪﺍﻭﺓ ﻗﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﺫ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ " ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻭﻫﻢ
ﺭﺍﻛﻌﻮﻥ " ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﺮﺃﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺭﺿﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﻮﻻﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ .ﻭﺃﺫﻥ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻟﻠﺼﻼﺓ ) ،(٣ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺭﺍﻛﻊ ﻭﺳﺎﺟﺪ ،ﻭﻗﺎﺋﻢ
ﻭﻗﺎﻋﺪ ،ﻓﺘﻼ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻭﻣﻦ ﻳﺘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺣﺰﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻟﺒﻮﻥ ) " (٤ﺍﻵﻳﺔ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﺗﻜﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﻣﺠﺎﻫﺪ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﺑﺄﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٥٥ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺋﺪﺓ.
) (٢ﺳﻼﻡ ،ﺑﺘﺨﻔﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻼﻡ .ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺑﻌﺎﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺣﺒﺎﺭ ﻳﻬﻮﺩ ،ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .٤٣ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٤٧١٦
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ".
) (٤ﻫﻲ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٥٦ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺋﺪﺓ.
)(١١٨
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ،
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﺑﺈﺟﻤﺎﻉ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻭﻫﻢ ﺭﺍﻛﻌﻮﻥ "
ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ
ﻻﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ " ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ " ﻟﻮﺍﺣﺪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺨﺒﺮ ﻳﺠﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻮﻝ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻦ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻟﻔﻈﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﻣﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ .ﻭﻟﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺮﺩ .ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﺗﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺳﺎﺋﻼ ﺩﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﻓﺴﺄﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺍﻛﻊ ،ﻓﻠﻢ
ﻳﻌﻂ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﻓﻨﺰﻉ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﺗﻤﻪ ﻓﺄﻋﻄﺎﻩ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻢ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻭﻫﻢ
ﺭﺍﻛﻌﻮﻥ " .ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺑﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ
ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﻴﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺰﻳﻞ ،ﻗﺮﺏ ) (١ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﺷﻌﺮ ) (٢ﺑﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺯﻫﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﻝ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﺎﻝ
ﺭﺍﻫﻦ ﻳﺠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﺩﺭﻫﻢ
ﻭﺩﺭﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺯﻛﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺟﺒﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺇﻥ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻮﻗﻪ ﻗﺪﺭ،
ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺍ ﺑﺈﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﺮﺏ " ) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺳﻌﺪ.
)(١١٩
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺍ ﻣﺴﺘﻔﻴﻀﺎ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﺗﻔﻖ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺰﻛﻰ
ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ؟!
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﻄﻮﻉ ﺑﺈﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺗﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻻﻳﺜﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺳﺎﺓ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺑﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺇﻥ ﺗﺼﺪﻕ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﺭﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺭﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﻣﺘﻨﻔﻼ ﻭﻣﺘﻄﻮﻋﺎ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻌﻂ ﺯﻛﺎﺓ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺟﺐ ﺇﺧﺮﺍﺟﻪ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﻄﻬﻴﺮﺍ ﻟﺴﺎﺋﺮ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ،
ﻭﺳﺒﺒﺎ ﻟﻠﻨﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻘﺎﺀ .ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺫ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﺯ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻝ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻮﺟﺐ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻻ ﺑﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺿﺮﺑﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻔﻈﻬﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺔ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ
ﻛﻘﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺳﺒﻴﻼ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺒﻖ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻓﺎﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻟﻪ ﺣﻘﻪ
ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ.
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( :ﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ
ﻓﺎﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻟﻪ ﺣﻘﻪ ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ ).(١
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ " :ﻗﻞ ﻛﻔﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ :ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﺗﻜﺮﺍﺭ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ.
)(١٢٠
ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﻬﻴﺪﺍ ﺑﻴﻨﻲ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ )." (١
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻭﻣﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ " ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﺇﻻ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺑﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ
ﺑﻌﺪ؟! ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻤﻌﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺎﺕ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺘﻬﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ
ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻄﺒﻘﺎﺕ ﻛﺎﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻱ ،ﻭﻣﺠﺎﻫﺪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺤﺎﻙ ،ﻭﻋﻜﺮﻣﺔ،
ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﻒ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﻥ
ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺸﺘﻬﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻭﺣﻔﻆ
ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺧﺬﻭﺍ
ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﻨﺼﻴﺐ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻛﻤﻦ ﺗﺠﺮﺩ ﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺋﺾ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ،
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻏﻠﺐ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻷﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪ ﻭﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ
ﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺀﺍﺕ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻈﻦ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ
ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ .ﻭﻟﻮ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻟﻌﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺑﻄﻦ ﻭﻏﺎﺏ
ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻓﻘﻬﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﻋﻠﻤﻪ
ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ " .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺑﻤﻌﺎﻧﻴﻪ ﻭﻏﺮﻳﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻋﺮﺍﺑﻪ ﻭﻗﺼﺼﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤٣ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﻋﺪ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺧﺎﺗﻤﺘﻬﺎ.
)(١٢١
ﻭﻣﺤﻜﻤﻪ ﻭﻣﺘﺸﺎﺑﻬﻪ ،ﻭﺧﺎﺻﻪ ﻭﻋﺎﻣﻪ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺳﺨﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﺴﻮﺧﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻜﻴﻪ ﻭﻣﺪﻧﻴﻪ،
ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺷﻄﺮﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻗﺮﻳﺒﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺠﺰ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻤﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻛﻞ ﺁﻳﺔ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻓﻴﺪﻋﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺸﻔﺎﺀ
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺳﻤﺎﻩ " ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ " ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺃﻧﺒﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ
ﻣﺘﺼﻞ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﺍﺳﺘﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻭﻛﻨﻴﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺣﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺘﻲ ،ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ
ﺣﻮﺍﺭﻱ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﺭﻳﻦ " ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ
ﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﺭﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺍﺭﻯ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﺭﻳﻦ ،ﺍﺳﺘﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻋﻦ
ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺋﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﻛﻨﺎﻫﻤﺎ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﺷﺎﻋﻮﺍ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺸﻴﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﺳﻢ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺭﺃﻭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﻴﻨﺎ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻟﺸﺊ ﺭﺃﻭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺻﻨﻴﻌﻪ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻓﻼ ) (١ﺷﺊ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﻳﻨﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺑﺎﺳﻢ ﻳﻨﺴﺒﻪ ﺑﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻ ".
)(١٢٢
ﻟﻈﻬﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻇﻬﺮ ﺍﺳﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ .ﻭﻻ ﺳﻤﺎﻩ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺎﺳﻢ
ﺑﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻰ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻻﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﺳﻤﺎﻥ ﻳﺪﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﻳﻨﺔ :ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻗﻂ
ﺇﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺘﻠﻮﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻻﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻓﻘﻮﻟﻪ " ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ " ﺑﺈﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﺳﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻻﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ﻗﻂ ،ﻭﻻ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻓﻘﻮﻝ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ :ﻳﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻘﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ]ﻛﺎﻥ[ ﻳﻜﺘﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ:
" ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﻭﻳﻜﺘﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ " ﺇﻟﻰ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﻭﻛﻤﺎ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻳﺤﻠﻒ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ]ﻋﻠﻴﻪ[ ﻫﻮ ﺗﻮﻟﻰ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻼﻓﻪ،
ﻓﻼ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻗﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺭﻓﻊ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺷﺄﻧﺎ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﺟﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﺭﺃﻭﻫﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻔﻰ ﺑﻪ
ﺷﺮﻓﺎ ﻭﻗﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻣﺰﻳﺔ ﻭﺫﻛﺮﺍ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺯﻋﻢ ﻗﻮﻡ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺍﺭﺗﻀﺎﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺣﺒﺎ
ﺑﻬﺎ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻻ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻛﺮﺍﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺟﺴﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﺤﻤﺰﺓ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺪ
ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺣﻮﺍﺭﻱ " ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ -ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﻭﺭ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻘﺎﻁ ﻭﺍﻹﻫﺎﻧﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻣﻮﻟﺪ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﻣﺤﺪﺙ ،ﺃﺣﺪﺛﺘﻪ
ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺸﻮﻳﺔ ).(١
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻟﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ ٦٢ :٦ﻭﻛﺬﺍ ﺩﺍﺋﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻣﻴﺔ
.٤٢٩ :٨
)(١٢٣
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﺃﺳﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ
ﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺣﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻣﻮﻟﺪ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ
ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺪﺛﻪ ﺃﺗﺒﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ،ﻻ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻣﻮﻟﺪﺍ ﻣﺤﺪﺛﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ
ﻟﻴﺴﻮﺍ ﺑﺬﻭﻱ ﻧﺤﻠﺔ ﻓﻴﺘﻘﺪﺭﻭﺍ ) (١ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺑﺬﻭﻱ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻓﻴﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ،
ﻭﻻ ﺫﻭﻱ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻓﻴﻄﻠﺒﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻖ ﺑﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﺠﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺤﺔ
ﺍﻟﻘﺪﻳﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺞ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻟﻴﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻭﺟﻮﻩ
ﺩﻻﺋﻠﻪ ﻭﻗﻬﺮ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺁﻧﺲ ﻟﻠﻘﻠﻮﺏ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻜﻦ ﻟﻠﻨﻔﻮﺱ ،ﻭﺃﻗﻄﻊ
ﻟﺸﻐﺐ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻢ ،ﻭﻟﺠﺤﺪ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻉ.
ﻓﻤﻤﺎ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺷﺮﻳﺢ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺎﻧﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺛﻲ )،(٣
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻤﺮﺍ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﻴﻌﻴﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﺗﺠﺰ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺣﺮﻭﺑﻪ:
ﺃﺻﺒﺤﺖ ﺫﺍ ﺑﺚ ﺃﻗﺎﺳﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮﺍ * ﻗﺪ ﻋﺸﺖ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﺃﻋﺼﺮﺍ )(٤
ﺛﻤﺖ ﺃﺩﺭﻛﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺬﺭﺍ ) * (٥ﻭﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﻪ ﻭﻋﻤﺮﺍ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻴﺘﻘﺪﺭﻭﺍ ،ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﺭ :ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻳﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻬﻴﺆ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻳﺠﺤﺪ ".
) (٣ﺃﺩﺭﻙ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺑﻌﺜﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻤﺎﺋﺔ ﺭﺟﻞ ،ﻭﻗﺘﻞ
ﻏﺎﺯﻳﺎ ﺑﺴﺠﺴﺘﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻭﻻﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﻦ ﻳﻮﺳﻒ ﺳﻨﺔ .٧٩ﻭﻋﺎﺵ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ
ﻭﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺃﻭ ﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﻤﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻠﺴﺠﺴﺘﺎﻧﻲ
٣٨ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ .٢٨٢ :٧
) (٤ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ " :ﻭﻋﺸﺖ ".
) (٥ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﻤﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " :ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺬﺭﺍ ".
)(١٢٤
ﻭﻳﻮﻡ ﻣﻬﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﺴﺘﺮﺍ * ﻭﺑﺎﺟﻤﻴﺮﺍﻭﺍﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﻘﺮﺍ )(١
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻤﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻔﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻬﺮﺍ ) * (٢ﻫﻴﻬﺎﺕ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻃﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺷﺮﻳﺢ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺎﻧﺊ ﺳﻤﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎﻟﻢ
ﻳﺰﻝ ﻳﺴﻤﻰ ﺑﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺅﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻋﺮﺍﺑﻲ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺬﻯ ﻧﺨﻠﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ
ﺧﺼﻮﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺩﺭﻙ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ:
ﻋﻬﺪ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻔﺎ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺩﺛﺮ * ﻭﻋﻬﺪ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻬﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ )(٣
ﻭﻋﻬﺪ ﺻﺪﻳﻖ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺑﺮﺍ ﻓﺒﺮ * ﻭﻋﻬﺪ ﺇﺧﻮﺍﻥ ﻫﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﺯﺭ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﻠﻐﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻘﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻘﻴﻔﺔ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺳﺎﻋﺪﺓ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ:
* ﻗﺒﺾ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺑﻮﻳﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ *
ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﻴﺪﺓ ﻟﻪ ﻃﻮﻳﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ:
* ﻭﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﻮﻕ *
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺩﻧﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﺤﺠﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ:
ﺳﻤﻴﺖ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﺮ * ﺳﻮﺍﻙ ﻳﺴﻤﻰ ﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﺑﺎﺟﻤﻴﺮﺍﻭﺍﺕ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺑﺎﺟﻤﻴﺮﻯ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺗﻜﺮﻳﺖ ،ﻭﺳﻤﺎﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﻢ " ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﺮﺍﺕ "
ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ:
* ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﺮﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺭﻛﺎﺕ *
ﻣﻌﺠﻢ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﺠﻢ .٢٢٠ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺩ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻤﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ " :ﻭﻳﺎﺣﻤﻴﺮﺍﺭﺍﺕ "
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻫﻨﺎ " :ﻭﻳﺎ ﺣﻤﻴﺮﺍﺕ " ﺑﺈﻫﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻴﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻴﺔ .ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " :ﻭﺑﺎﺟﻤﻴﺮﺍﺕ
ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻘﺮﺍ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ﻭﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﻤﺮﻳﻦ " :ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﻴﻨﻬﻢ ".
) (٣ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﻣﺘﺄﺧﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺗﺎﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻮﺍﻧﻪ .١٥
)(١٢٥
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻃﺮﻳﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺪﻱ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺗﻢ:
ﺃﺑﻴﺪﻭﺍ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﻟﻴﻈﻬﺮﻭﺍ * ﻣﻌﺎﻫﺪ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﻭﺻﺪﻳﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻴﻦ ﺑﻤﺎﻟﻪ * ﻃﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﻳﺒﺔ ﻣﺬﻭﺩ )(١
ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺣﺒﻜﻪ ) * (٢ﺃﺻﺎﺥ ﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺩﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻄﺮﺩ
ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺮﻣﺰﺍﻥ ،ﻭﺑﺎﺭﻛﺖ * ﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﺍﻙ ﺍﻷﺩﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺩ )(٣
ﺃﻗﺎﻣﻮﺍ ﻃﻐﺎﺓ ﺣﺎﺋﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻬﺪﻯ * ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻤﻬﺘﺪ
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻃﺎﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﺟﺄﺷﻪ * ﻭﺛﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻛﻞ ﻏﺎﻭ ﻣﻄﺮﺩ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﺛﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻛﻞ ﻏﺎﻭ ﻣﻄﺮﺩ " ﻓﺈﻥ " ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻭﻱ " ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ " ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﺮﺩ " :ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ﻃﺮﻳﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻬﺠﻮ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮﺍﺀ ):(٤
ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﺳﺪ * ﺃﻭ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﺃﻭ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻴﺪ
ﺃﻭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺬﺅﺍﺑﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻴﻢ ﻭﻗﻌﺖ ﺑﻬﻢ * ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺟﻤﺢ ﺍﻟﺨﻀﺮ ﺍﻟﺠﻼﻋﻴﺪ )(٥
ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺮﺍﺭﺓ ﺃﻗﻮﺍﻡ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺣﺴﺐ * ﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﺒﺢ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻧﻜﺴﺎ ﻣﺎﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺩ )(٦
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﻦ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﺎﺳﺔ ﺑﺸﺮﺡ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺯﻭﻗﻲ
.١٦١٧ - ١٦١٦
) (٢ﺣﻨﻜﻪ .ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻭﺑﻜﺎﻑ ﻣﺴﺘﻄﻴﻠﺔ " ﻙ ".
) (٣ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺮﻣﺰﺍﻥ ،ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻬﺮﻣﺰﺍﻥ ﻣﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻫﻮ
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻟﺆﻟﺆﺓ ،ﻭﺟﻔﻴﻨﺔ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻧﺴﺐ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ .٣٥٥
) (٤ﻫﻮ ﻣﺴﺎﻓﻊ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻴﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﺘﻴﻤﻲ .ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ ١٤١ﻟﻴﺒﺴﻚ ﻭﺩﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ .١٣٣
) (٥ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ " :ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﺑﻬﻢ " .ﺍﻟﺠﻠﻌﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻼﻋﺪ :ﺍﻟﺼﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﻳﺪ .ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺤﻼﺣﻴﺪ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ.
) (٦ﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺮﺍﺭﺗﻬﻢ ،ﺃﻱ ﺻﻤﻴﻤﻬﻢ .ﺍﻟﻨﻜﺲ :ﺍﻟﺪﻧﺊ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺼﺮ.
)(١٢٦
ﻟﻮﻻ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺭﻭﺡ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺱ ﻳﺤﻔﻈﻪ * ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﺭﺑﻚ ﺣﺘﻢ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺮﺩﻭﺩ )(١
ﻭﺃﻧﻨﻲ ﺃﺣﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻣﺠﺘﻬﺪﺍ * ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺩ
ﺃﺗﺘﻜﻢ ﺧﻴﻠﻨﺎ ﻛﺎﻟﻠﻮﺫ ﻛﺎﻟﺤﺔ * ﺗﻄﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺎﺳﺐ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺟﻴﺪ )(٢
ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﺧﻴﻔﺎﻧﺔ ﻃﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﺠﺎﻡ ﺑﻬﺎ * ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﺨﺘﻄﻒ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺏ ﻛﺎﻟﺴﻴﺪ )(٣
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ:
ﻧﺪﻣﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ * ﻭﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻤﻲ ﻳﺎ ﺃﻡ ﻣﻌﺒﺪ )(٤
ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻱ ﻣﺼﻴﺒﺔ * ﺭﺟﻮﻋﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﻴﺪ
ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻲ ﺑﻼﺩﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﻮﺏ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ * ﻃﺮﻳﺪﺍ ﻭﻗﺪﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻄﺮﺩ
ﻓﻬﻞ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺃﻧﻰ ﺗﺎﺋﺐ * ﻭﻣﻌﻂ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﺣﺪﺛﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﺙ ﻳﺪﻱ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﻗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ:
ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﻌﻲ ﺑﺨﻴﺮ ﻛﻨﺪﺓ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ * ﺑﺎﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺷﺞ ﻭﺧﺎﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ!
ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ :ﺷﺮﻳﺢ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺎﻧﺊ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺅﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻃﺮﻳﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺪﻱ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺗﻢ ،ﻭﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ،
ﻭﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺷﺒﻬﻬﻢ ،ﻟﻴﺴﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﺎﺕ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻈﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺿﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻔﻀﻮﻝ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ:
ﻟﻮﻻ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻓﺈﻧﻲ ﻟﺴﺖ ﻋﺎﺻﻴﻪ * ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻐﻴﺒﻨﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻣﺲ ﻣﻠﺤﻮﺩﻯ
) (٢ﺍﻟﻠﻮﺫ :ﺣﻀﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻞ ﻭﺟﺎﻧﺒﻪ ،ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻮﺩ ".
) (٣ﻣﺨﺘﻄﻒ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﻒ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻀﻤﺮ ﻭﺧﻔﺔ ﻟﺤﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺐ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻒ ".
ﻭﻻ ﻭﺟﻪ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺏ :ﺟﻤﻊ ﻗﺮﺏ ﺑﺎﻟﻀﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺮﺓ .ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺪ :ﺍﻟﺬﺍﺋﺐ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ
ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻘﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻭﻳﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ.
) (٤ﻫﻮ ﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﺼﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺛﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺑﻜﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻏﻨﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺩﻭﺩﺍﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﺪ.
ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٥٦٢٦
)(١٢٧
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻣﻮﻩ ﻭﺳﻤﻮﻩ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻳﺴﻤﻰ ﺑﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺄﺗﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻨﺎ ﻭﻧﺴﺘﻘﺼﻴﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺷﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﻱ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺪ
ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺮﻱ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺼﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﻤﺮﻱ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺷﻌﺎﺭﻫﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ
ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ .ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺎﺝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ
ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻬﻢ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ،ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻬﻢ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺣﺠﺔ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻟﻌﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺧﻠﻒ
ﺍﻟﺨﺰﺍﻋﻲ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺭﺳﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ " :ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻴﻦ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺃﺑﻐﺾ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺑﻪ .ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎ ﺃﺑﺎﻙ
ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎﻙ ﺃﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ " ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺴﻤﻴﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﺴﺘﻌﻤﻼ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺣﺒﺒﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﻗﺪﺭ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺳﻤﻰ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺎﻧﻈﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺟﻞ ﺛﻨﺎﺅﻩ " ﻭﺍﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ
ﺇﺩﺭﻳﺲ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻧﺒﻴﺎ .ﻭﺭﻓﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ) " (٢ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺍﺫﻛﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺎﺩﻕ ﺍﻟﻮﻋﺪ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻻ ﻧﺒﻴﺎ ) " (٣ﻓﺬﻛﺮ
ﺻﺪﻳﻘﻴﺘﻪ ) (٤ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻧﺒﻮﺗﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻟﺴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ٤٦٠ :٢ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺴﺎﺏ ،٥٨٨ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻳﺆﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺟﻌﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺻﻠﺒﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺩﺍﺭ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﻳﺚ.
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٥٧ ،٥٦ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ.
) (٣ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٥٤ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺻﺪﻳﻘﻪ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ .٤٠ ،٢١ :١
)(١٢٨
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ " :ﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻴﺢ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﻗﺪ ﺧﻠﺖ ﻣﻦ
ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺃﻣﻪ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﺔ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻳﺄﻛﻼﻥ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻧﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻳﺆﻓﻜﻮﻥ )." (١
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻧﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻠﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺞ ﺑﺎﻵﻳﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﻈﺮ
ﺃﻧﻰ ﻳﺆﻓﻜﻮﻥ ،ﺃﻱ ﻳﺴﺨﺮﻭﻥ ) (٢ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺄﻣﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻭﻻﻩ
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺳﻢ ﻭﺑﻌﺜﻪ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺝ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺗﺴﻊ ،ﻭﺑﻌﺚ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻳﻘﺮﺃ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﺁﻳﺎﺕ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺑﺮﺍﺀﺓ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﻣﻮﻡ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺍﻟﺪﺍﻓﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻮﺳﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﺪﻓﻊ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺪﻓﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ
ﺧﻠﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺗﺴﻊ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺗﺴﻊ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻌﺚ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺑﺼﺪﺭ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺑﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻟﻴﻘﺮﺃﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻓﺮﻍ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ :ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻗﻒ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ ﻟﺨﺼﻠﺘﻴﻦ :ﺇﺣﺪﺍﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﻌﺚ ﻣﻌﻪ
ﺑﺼﺪﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺀﺓ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻨﻰ " .ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺮﻯ ﻓﺮﻁ
ﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻭﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﻬﺪ
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻭﺍﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺳﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﺎﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺗﻮﺭﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻨﻘﻴﻦ،
ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺼﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻻ ﺗﺪﻓﻊ ،ﻓﺸﻤﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺳﺎﻗﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﺪﻯ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٧٥ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺋﺪﺓ.
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ .ﻭﻓﺴﺮﺕ ﺑﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻳﺼﺮﻓﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻳﺼﺪﻭﻥ ،ﻭﻳﺨﺪﻋﻮﻥ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ،ﻟﻮ ﻳﺒﻌﺚ ".
)(١٢٩
ﺻﻔﺤﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻔﻲ ﻫﺎﺗﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻠﺘﻴﻦ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺷﺪ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ :ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﺄﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻐﺮﻳﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﺽ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ،ﻓﻨﺼﻴﺐ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻭﻓﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺧﻮﻑ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ
ﺃﺳﺮﻉ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻷﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺍﻟﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﺒﻮﻉ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺗﻢ
ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻋﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﻣﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﻴﻊ .ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﺒﻮﻉ ﻭﺍﻵﻣﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺄﻣﻮﺭ ﻓﺮﻕ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﺚ ﺑﺼﺪﺭ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ
ﺑﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ " :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻨﻰ "
ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ) (١ﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺗﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺪﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﺛﻢ ﺑﻌﺚ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻠﺤﻘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻳﻖ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻼ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻋﺎﻣﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺾ ،ﻭﻛﻌﺎﺩﺗﻬﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﻠﻒ ﻭﺣﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﺪ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﻘﺪ ﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺣﻠﻔﺎ
ﺃﻭ ﻋﺎﻫﺪ ﻋﻬﺪﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﺪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﺃﻭ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ ﻛﺄﺥ
ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ،ﺃﻭ ﻋﻢ ،ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻢ ،ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ،
ﺣﻴﺚ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻼﺗﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮﻩ،
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﺣﻔﺼﺔ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﺗﺎ ﺻﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻞ ﺳﻨﺬﻛﺮﻫﺎ ﻓﻲ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ".
)(١٣٠
ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻬﺎ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺇﻟﻴﻜﻦ ﻋﻨﻰ
ﺻﻮﺍﺣﺐ ﻳﻮﺳﻒ ،ﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ".
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ
ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺳﺘﻄﺎﻉ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺄﻣﻮﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ :ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﺪﻳﻨﻨﺎ ﻓﺎﺧﺘﺮﻧﺎﻩ ﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎﻧﺎ .ﻭﺣﺘﻰ
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻻﻩ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻼﺗﻨﺎ ،ﻭﺯﻛﺎﺗﻨﺎ ﺗﺒﻊ ﻟﺼﻼﺗﻨﺎ ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﻣﻌﻈﻤﺎ
ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ.
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻴﺼﻠﻰ
ﺑﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺴﺠﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻟﻚ ﺗﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﻨﺎ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﻬﺪ ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﺐ .ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻔﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﻣﺼﻞ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﺼﻞ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ
ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻊ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺮ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﻣﺠﺎﺭﺍﺗﻪ ﻭﻣﺪﺍﻓﻌﺘﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﻗﻴﺎﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻟﺘﺒﺮﻳﺰﻩ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ،ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ
ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﻓﻜﻔﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻕ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺿﺎﻫﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﺗﺴﻠﻴﻤﻬﻢ ) ،(١ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻷﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺘﻜﻠﻢ،
ﻭﻻ ﻟﺸﺎﻏﺐ ) (٢ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺘﻌﻠﻖ ،ﻭﻻ ﻟﻮﺍﻗﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﺬﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ،ﻭﻣﺼﻼﻫﻢ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ،ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻣﻪ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺗﺴﻠﻴﻬﻢ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻ ﺗﺴﺎﻋﺐ ".
)(١٣١
ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﺻﻼﺓ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻠﺴﺔ ) .(١ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﺎ
ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻬﺮﻫﻢ ﺑﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ
ﺑﻌﺸﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺾ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺍﻝ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺑﺎﺋﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﺐ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻋﺘﻼﻝ ﺑﺎﻷﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ) :(١ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻧﺤﺘﺎﺝ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺑﻠﺔ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻓﻌﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺃﻓﻌﺎﻝ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺘﺨﻄﻰ ﺍﻷﻓﻀﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻧﻘﺺ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻐﻠﺐ،
ﻭﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻇﻬﻮﺭﻩ ﻭﺯﻭﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ .ﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ) (٣ﻗﺎﺑﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﺪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﺻﻨﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﻔﻀﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻮﺕ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺜﻼﺙ
ﻭﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﻀﺎ ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﻌﺾ ،ﻳﻐﺰﻭﻥ
ﻣﻌﺎ ﻭﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻳﺴﻤﻌﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ،
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﺃﺣﻮﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ،
ﻓﻌﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻀﻌﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ ﺛﺎﻧﻴﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻣﻨﺎ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ
ﻣﺎ ﺧﻔﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺷﺒﻬﻬﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻫﺪﻳﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺣﻠﺴﻪ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻷﻧﻬﻢ ".
)(١٣٢
ﻭﻋﻤﻼ ،ﻭﻃﺮﻳﻘﺔ ﻭﻋﺰﻣﺎ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺐ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺘﺨﺒﻴﻦ،
ﻭﺃﺱ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻣﺮﺳﻰ ﻗﻮﺍﻋﺪﻩ.
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻻ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ،
ﺃﻭ ﺛﺎﻧﻴﺎ ،ﺃﻭ ﺛﺎﻟﺜﺎ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺗﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻠﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻪ،
ﻭﻟﻠﺜﺎﻟﺚ ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻬﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺃﻳﻬﻢ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ.
ﺛﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪﻫﻢ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻒ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻘﺪﻣﻴﻦ .ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺎ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻷﻓﻀﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﻢ.
ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ﻭﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﻳﻘﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﻞ ﺑﻤﻮﺿﻊ
ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﺃﻃﺎﻋﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺼﻮﻩ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻗﺪﻣﻮﺍ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺘﻌﻤﺪﻳﻦ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻋﺪﺍﻟﺔ
ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻃﻦ ﻃﻬﺎﺭﺗﻪ ) (١ﻭﺇﺧﻼﺻﻪ.
ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﻣﺪﻳﺤﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺇﺧﺒﺎﺭﻩ ﻋﻦ
ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺻﺒﺎﺡ ﻣﺴﺎﺀ ،ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﻬﺎﺭﺗﻪ
ﻭﺇﺧﻼﺻﻪ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺳﻜﻦ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺬﻝ ) (٢ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ،ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﻕ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩ ،ﻻﻥ )(٣
ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻧﺼﻪ ﻭﺗﺒﻴﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺇﻗﺮﺍﺭﻩ ﻟﻠﺮﺟﻞ )(٤
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻃﺎﻫﺮﺗﻪ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺬﻝ :ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺎﻭﻥ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺬﻳﻞ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻﻥ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ".
)(١٣٣
ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻕ ،ﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻓﻌﺎﻟﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻘﻮﻟﻬﻢ .ﻭﻋﻠﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﻭﺗﺠﺎﺭﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺻﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻊ
ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻘﺎﺭﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻊ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﺎﻭﻳﻦ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻘﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ.
ﻓﻤﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻏﺪﻳﺮ ﺧﻢ،
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻗﺎﺑﺾ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺷﺨﺼﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺗﻪ " :ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ
ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ .ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﺎﺩ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺍﻩ ،ﻭﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻩ " .ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ:
" ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ".
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺁﺗﻨﻲ ﺑﺄﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﻳﺄﻛﻞ ﻣﻌﻲ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺮ ".
ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ،ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺤﺠﺒﻪ ﺃﻧﺲ ،ﻃﻤﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﺼﺎﺭﻳﺎ ،ﻓﺄﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺍﻵﻛﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻵﺗﻲ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺐ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻘﺮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻻﺷﻜﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻗﺮﺩ ) (١ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﺜﺎﻝ ،ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺃﺧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺔ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻻ ﺑﺪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺎﺩﻕ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻻ ﺑﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺭﻙ
ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺼﺎﺩﻕ
ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﻊ ،ﻋﺪﻡ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺎﻑ ،ﻭﺑﻄﻼﻥ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺮﻓﻌﻮﺍ ﺧﺒﺮﺍ ﻟﻪ ﺿﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻨﺎﺩ ﻭﺗﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ) (٢ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻖ
ﻣﺜﻠﻪ .ﻻﻥ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻤﻴﻦ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺠﺰﻩ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﺾ ﺑﻠﺴﺎﻧﻪ،
--------------------
) (١ﻗﺮﺩ :ﺟﻤﻊ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺮﺩ ".
) (٢ﺃﻱ ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ.
)(١٣٤
ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻦ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺫ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﺎﻗﻠﻪ ﻋﺪﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﻩ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﺎﻗﻠﻪ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﺄﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺑﻜﻢ ﻭﺑﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻕ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻛﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ
ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻕ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻗﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﻉ ﻭﺍﻧﺴﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻻﺣﺪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺣﺴﻦ ﻋﻘﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﺢ ﻓﻜﺮﻩ ،ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻀﺎﻑ
ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺧﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺃﺛﺮ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ
ﺻﺢ ﻋﻘﻠﻪ ﻭﻛﺜﺮ ﺳﻤﺎﻋﻪ ،ﺧﻔﺖ ) (١ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ.
ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ﻭﻫﻢ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻋﺪﺩﺍ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻓﻘﻴﻬﺎ
ﻭﻣﺤﺪﺛﺎ ،ﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ
ﺑﺼﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻭﺫﺍﺕ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﺘﺨﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ
ﻻﺗﺨﺬﺕ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ ،ﻟﻜﻦ ﻭﺩﺍ ﻭﺇﺧﺎﺀ ﺇﻳﻤﺎﻥ ) ." (٢ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺧﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﻞ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺧﺺ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﻣﻮﺩﺓ.
ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻭﻟﻜﻦ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺧﺎﻩ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﻭﻗﺒﻴﻞ
ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ " ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻗﺒﻠﻲ ﻓﻴﻤﻮﺕ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺘﺨﺬ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺘﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ ،ﻭﺇﻥ
ﺧﻠﻴﻠﻲ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ )." (٣
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺍﻗﺘﺪﻭﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ:
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ".
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺧﻔﺖ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺫﺍ ﻭﺍﺧﺎ ﺍﺗﻴﺎﻥ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ ،٨٥ :١ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻓﺘﺢ
ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﻱ .١٥ :٧
) (٣ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ .٨٤ :١
)(١٣٥
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻨﺎﺩﻩ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ) ،(١ﻋﻦ ﺭﺑﻌﻲ ) (٢ﻋﻦ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ )،(٣
ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻬﻴﻞ ،ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﻋﺮﺍﺀ ) ،(٤ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ).(٥
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻧﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻘﺒﻠﻴﻦ.
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻫﺬﺍﻥ ﺳﻴﺪﺍ ﻛﻬﻮﻝ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﻳﻦ ،ﺇﻻ
ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺳﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻻ ﺗﺨﺒﺮﻫﻤﺎ ".
ﻓﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﺣﻴﻴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﺣﺪﺛﺘﻜﻢ.
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻻ ﺇﻥ ﺧﻴﺮ
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻧﺒﻴﻬﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﺷﺌﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻛﻢ
ﺑﺎﻟﺜﺎﻟﺚ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ " ﻓﻜﻨﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﺳﺲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺟﺎﺀ ﺑﺤﺠﺮ
ﻓﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺤﺠﺮ ﻓﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﺤﺠﺮ ﻓﻮﺿﻌﻪ،
ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﺤﺠﺮ ﻓﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻓﺴﺌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
" ﻫﻢ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ) (٦ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺧﻂ ﻷﻫﻞ ﻗﺒﺎﺀ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻫﻢ
ﺑﻌﻨﺰﺓ ) (٧ﻓﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﺠﺮﺍ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺿﻊ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻞ " .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻮﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺷﻲ
ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﻲ .ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .١٣٦ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٢ﺭﺑﻌﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺍﺵ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﻲ .ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .١٠٤ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٣ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻥ ،ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻠﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺳﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .٣٦
ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٤ﻫﻮ ﺧﺎﻝ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻬﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺎﻧﺊ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﺪﻱ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﻲ ،ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﺰﻋﺮﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﻴﺮ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ،ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٥ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ.
) (٦ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٧ﺍﻟﻌﻨﺰﺓ ،ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻚ :ﻋﺼﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺪﺭ ﻧﺼﻒ ﺍﻟﺮﻣﺢ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺮﻓﻬﺎ ﺍﻷﺳﻔﻞ ﺯﺝ ﻛﺰﺝ ﺍﻟﺮﻣﺢ.
)(١٣٦
ﺣﺠﺮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﻨﺐ ﺣﺠﺮﻱ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺧﺬ ﺣﺠﺮﺍ ﻓﻀﻌﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﻨﺐ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻭﺿﻊ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺣﺠﺮﻩ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺃﺣﺐ.
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ " :ﻣﺜﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻴﻜﺎﺋﻴﻞ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺣﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ،
ﻭﻣﺜﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺨﻂ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻃﻮﻳﻞ ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻲ ﺍﺧﺘﺼﺮﺗﻪ.
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺿﻊ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻣﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺔ ﺍﻷﺧﺮﻯ ،ﻓﺮﺟﺢ ﺑﻬﻢ .ﺛﻢ ﺃﺣﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻭﺿﻊ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻓﺮﺟﺢ ﺑﺎﻷﻣﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻭﺿﻊ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻓﺮﺟﺢ
ﺑﺎﻷﻣﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﻓﺮﻓﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ).(١
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺑﻌﺜﻨﻲ ﺇﻟﻴﻜﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﻓﻘﻠﺘﻢ :ﻛﺬﺑﺖ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻲ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻲ :ﺻﺪﻗﺖ ،ﻓﻬﻞ
ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺎﺭﻛﻲ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺒﻲ؟ ".
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺆﻛﺪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻣﺎ ﺩﻋﻮﺕ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺗﺮﺩﺩ ﻭﻛﺒﻮﺓ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻠﻌﺜﻢ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺆﻧﻲ
ﻗﻂ ،ﻓﺎﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻪ " ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻃﻮﻳﻞ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻘﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺣﻘﺎ ،ﻓﺄﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ .٣٧ :١
)(١٣٧
ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺎﻗﺾ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻻ ﻳﺘﻨﺎﻗﺾ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻟﻴﻦ ﻭﺻﺤﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﻘﻞ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﺪﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ،ﻭﺻﻨﻌﺘﻪ ﺣﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ .ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﺳﻨﺎﺩ ﻣﺘﺴﺎﻭﻳﺎ ،ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻣﺘﻘﺎﺭﺑﺎ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ
ﺍﻷﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻳﻀﻄﺮ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺻﺤﺘﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻜﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺗﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻭﻗﺼﺪﻩ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺗﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﺧﺎﺻﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﻪ .ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﻠﻮﻫﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻒ ﻣﺠﺮﺩﺓ ) (١ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻓﺄﺩﻭﻫﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ ،ﻓﺼﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻣﻊ ﻳﺘﻨﺎﻗﺾ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﺑﻞ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﺎ ﺑﺒﻌﺾ ،ﻟﺠﻬﻠﻪ
ﺑﺄﺻﻮﻝ ﻣﺨﺎﺭﺟﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻮﻗﻌﻬﺎ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﺴﺮﺕ ﻟﻚ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ .ﻭﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻴﻞ.
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﻐﺒﺮﺍﺀ ﻭﻻ
ﺃﻇﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﺨﻀﺮﺍﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻱ ﻟﻬﺠﺔ ﺃﺻﺪﻕ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺫﺭ " ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﺳﺘﺜﻨﺎﺀ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺣﺎﺟﺔ ،ﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﺳﺘﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺑﻮﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺫﺭ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻪ ﻣﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ
ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺧﺎﺹ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﺧﺼﻮﺻﻴﺘﻪ ﻣﻮﺟﻮﺩﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻟﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻷﻧﻚ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ ﻓﻘﻠﺖ :ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺪﻕ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﺠﺮﺩ ".
)(١٣٨
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ ﺃﻭ ﻋﻠﻰ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ :ﻋﻠﻰ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﺮﻙ ) (١ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻟﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺑﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻓﻘﻠﺖ :ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺪﻕ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻛﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ
ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ.
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﻔﺎﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺫﺭ ﺃﺻﺪﻕ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺫﺭ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ".
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﺼﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺗﻨﺎﺯﻉ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺎﺭ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻳﺄﺗﻴﻜﻢ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺫﻱ ﻳﻤﻦ،
]ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ) [(٢ﻣﺴﺤﺔ ﻣﻠﻚ " .ﻓﺄﺗﺎﻫﻢ ﺟﺮﻳﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ ﻋﺎﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﺗﻜﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ،ﻓﺘﺮﻙ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺜﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ ،ﻟﻜﺎﻥ
ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﺮﻳﺮ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺣﻤﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﺑﺮ )،(٣
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﺰﻝ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﻣﺴﺢ .(٤٣٤
) (٣ﻫﻮ ﻋﺎﺻﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻷﻓﻠﺢ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺴﺎﻓﻌﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻼﺱ ﺍﺑﻨﻲ
ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ،ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺘﻞ ،ﻓﺄﺭﺳﻠﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻟﻴﺆﺗﻮﺍ ﺑﺸﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺟﺴﺪﻩ،
ﻓﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﻈﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﺑﺮ ،ﻓﺤﻤﺘﻪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﺎﺭﺗﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺧﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻓﺪﻓﻨﻮﻩ.
ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٤٣٤٨ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٦٣٩ ،٦١٠ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﺩﺑﺮ( .ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺑﺮ ،ﺑﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﻝ
ﻭﻛﺴﺮﻫﺎ :ﺍﻟﻨﺤﻞ.
)(١٣٩
ﻭﻣﻦ ﻏﺴﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ) ،(١ﻭﻣﻜﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﺋﺐ ) .(٢ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ) " :(٣ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ
ﺧﻴﺮ ﺃﻫﻠﻲ " ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺧﻴﺮ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ "
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻣﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻱ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻮﻱ،
ﻓﺎﻟﻌﻠﻮﻱ ﻳﻘﺪﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﻳﻘﺪﻡ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻤﻠﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻗﻂ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﻗﺪ
ﻓﺮﻏﺖ ]ﻣﻨﻪ[ ،ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ
ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻀﺮﻩ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺲ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺑﺮﻳﻦ ) (٤ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻓﻴﻪ.
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ،ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺫﺭ ،ﻭﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﺼﻦ ،ﻭﺟﺮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﻬﻞ ﻛﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﻛﻼﻣﺎ ﻭﺗﻔﻀﻴﻼ ﻣﺎ ﻧﻘﻞ
ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ،ﺍﻟﻠﺬﻳﻦ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺎﺯﻉ.
--------------------
) (١ﻫﻮ ﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺻﻴﻔﻲ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺍﻫﺐ
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻨﻈﻠﺔ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻓﻨﻬﺎﻩ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﺑﻌﺪﻣﺎ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺷﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﻮﺏ " :ﺇﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻜﻢ ﺗﻐﺴﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ " .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .١٨٥٩
) (٢ﻫﻮ ﺃﻫﺒﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻭﺱ ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﻛﻮﻉ ،ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ،ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﺋﺐ ﻛﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﺑﺸﺮﻩ
ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ .٥١٣ :٣
) (٣ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ،ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻛﻨﻴﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺧﻮ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎﻉ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮﻩ
ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻋﻢ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٥٣٥ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﻰ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺑﺮ :ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺴﺮ.
)(١٤٠
ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻛﻢ ﻣﻦ
ﺫﻱ ﻃﻤﺮﻳﻦ ) (١ﻻ ﻳﺆﺑﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺃﻗﺴﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻﺑﺮﻩ ،ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ".
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻘﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺮﺩﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﻛﻼﻣﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻬﻤﺎ ﺳﻴﺠﻌﻠﻮﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺘﺠﻮﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻞ
ﻣﺜﻞ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻻﻣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺿﻰ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ،
ﻭﻛﺮﻫﺖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺮﻩ )." (٢
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻟﻜﻞ ﺃﻣﺔ ﺃﻣﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﻣﻴﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ".
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﺗﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﻢ ﻓﻮﻗﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﻢ :ﺣﺲ ) !(٣ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ:
" ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺑﺎﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﺮﻓﻌﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ".
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺩﺧﻮﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻜﺸﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﻔﺨﺬ ،ﻓﻐﻄﺎﻫﺎ،
ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻟﻢ ﺗﻐﻄﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻏﻄﻴﺘﻬﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ
ﺩﺧﻮﻝ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻛﻴﻒ ﻻ ﺃﺳﺘﺤﻲ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺗﺴﺘﺤﻰ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺍﻫﺘﺰ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺵ ﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ )." (٤
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻄﻤﺮ :ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺏ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻖ .ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺭﺏ ﺫﻱ ﺛﻮﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﻮ ﺳﺄﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﺟﺎﺑﻪ .ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻯ " :ﺭﺏ ﺃﺷﻌﺚ ﺃﻏﺒﺮ ﻻ ﻳﺆﺑﻪ ﻟﻪ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٨٦
) (٣ﺣﺲ :ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺗﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻊ.
) (٤ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ " ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ :" ٧٧٨
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺍﻫﺘﺰ ﻋﺮﺵ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺕ ﻫﺎﻟﻚ * ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻟﺴﻌﺪ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ
)(١٤١
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﺎﺏ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﺀ
ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﺎﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺊ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻬﺎﺟﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﺤﺐ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻫﺪ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻔﻖ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﺮﺽ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻉ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻄﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﻨﻴﻔﻴﺔ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻧﻔﻴﻞ ،ﻓﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻳﺒﻌﺚ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﻣﺔ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ".
ﻭﺃﻱ ﺷﺊ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻞ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻟﻌﻤﺎﺭ " :ﻻ ﺗﺆﺫﻭﺍ ﻋﻤﺎﺭﺍ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﺟﻠﺪﺓ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻴﻨﻲ ".
ﻣﺎ ﺃﻋﻄﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺿﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺎﻷﻧﺼﺎﻑ!
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺎ ،ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻬﺘﺰ ﻟﻤﻮﺗﻬﻢ ﻋﺮﺵ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ،ﻭﻗﺘﻠﻮﺍ ﺷﻬﺪﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺤﻢ ﻟﺤﻮﻣﻬﻢ
ﺍﻟﺪﺑﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻏﺴﻠﺘﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ).(١
ﻓﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﻌﺎﻧﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ .ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻗﻮﻻ ﻋﺪﻻ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻻ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ ﻣﻔﻬﻮﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺿﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ
ﺃﺩﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ).(٢
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻷﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺳﻼﻓﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﺋﻤﺘﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﺖ ﻟﻚ ﻻ ﺗﻤﻨﻊ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﺗﺪﺍﻓﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺰﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺠﺊ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻮﻯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺒﺮﺉ ﻣﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٤٠ - ١٣٩
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﻭﺑﺘﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ١٤٠ﺱ .١٠
)(١٤٢
ﺳﻘﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺒﺮﺩ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻴﺮﺓ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺘﻤﺪ ) (١ﺑﻀﻌﻒ
ﺍﻻﺳﻨﺎﺩ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﺮﻙ ﻟﻀﻌﻒ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻮﻗﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﺽ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻭﺉ ) ،(٢ﻛﻨﺤﻮ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺂﺛﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﺎﺗﻬﻢ ﻭﻣﺸﺎﻫﺪﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻛﺼﻨﻴﻊ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﺆﺍﺯﺭﺗﻪ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻛﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﺘﺪﺍﻓﻊ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻨﺎﻗﺾ ،ﻻﻥ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﺒﺪﺭ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻨﺎﻗﺾ ﻟﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺄﺣﺪ ﻻ ﻳﺪﻓﻊ ﻛﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ،
ﻭﻻﻥ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺨﻴﺒﺮ ﻻ ﻳﺪﻓﻊ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺍﻝ ،ﻭﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﻗﺎﺏ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﺗﺠﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺭﺍﺩﺍ ﻭﺩﺍﻓﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻜﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺍﻗﺘﺪﻭﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ
ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ " ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﻠﻲ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ
ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " .ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺁﺧﻰ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﺘﺨﺬﺍ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ
ﻻﺗﺨﺬﺕ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ " ﻓﻲ ﺃﺷﺒﺎﻩ ﻟﻬﺬﺍ ﻗﺪ ﺣﻜﻴﺖ ﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ
ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻟﺘﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﺠﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻒ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺍﻗﺘﺪﻭﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ " ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ]ﺫﻟﻚ[ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺴﺘﺜﻨﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ " ]ﻭ[ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺴﺘﺜﻨﻰ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﻭﻯ ".
)(١٤٣
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻕ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﻻ ﺗﻨﻜﺮﻭﻥ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ،
ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻧﻨﻜﺮ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ ﻛﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻌﻴﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺼﻤﻚ ﺑﺸﺊ
ﻻ ﻳﻌﺠﺰﻩ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﺍ ﺇﻻ ﺟﺤﺪ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻭﺗﻜﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﻳﺠﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ " ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ:
" ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻩ ،ﻭﻋﺎﺩ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺍﻩ ".
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺎﺩﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺻﻼ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻤﻮﻝ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻷﻋﻤﺶ -ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺍﻓﻀﻴﺎ -ﻋﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ،ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺑﺮﻳﺪﺓ )(١
ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺮﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻌﻤﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ.
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻢ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻜﻢ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺈﻣﺎ ﺷﻜﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺷﻜﺎﻩ
ﻏﻴﺮﻱ ،ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻣﻜﺒﺎﺑﺎ ) ،(٢ﻓﺮﻓﻌﺖ ﺭﺃﺳﻲ ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻗﺪ ﺍﺣﻤﺮ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻭﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻭﻟﻴﻪ )." (٣
ﻓﻮﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻷﻋﻤﺶ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻇﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻣﻀﻌﻒ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺯ .ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ.
ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻴﺔ ) (٤ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻭﻟﻴﻪ "
--------------------
) (١ﻫﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺑﺮﻳﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﻴﺐ ﺍﻷﺳﻠﻤﻲ ،ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ :ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻜﺐ ﻭﻣﻜﺒﺎﺏ :ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ " ﺛﻢ ﻛﺘﺐ ﺗﺤﺖ " ﻣﻮﻻﻩ " :ﻭﻟﻴﻪ " ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻌﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﻄﻠﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺛﺎﻟﺜﺔ ".
)(١٤٤
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﺖ ﺍﻷﻟﻔﺎﻅ ﺩﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﻫﻦ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﺎﺩ ﻣﻦ
ﻋﺎﺩﺍﻩ ﻭﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻩ " .ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻧﺸﻬﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﺴﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﻭﻟﻴﻪ .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﻳﺔ ﺃﻗﻮﺍﻡ )(١
ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻐﺰﺍﺓ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻛﻼﻣﺎ ﻗﺒﻴﺤﺎ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻫﻦ :ﺃﻧﻬﻢ
ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺟﺎﺭﻯ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ )(٢
ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻭﻻﺣﺎﻩ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺃﻏﻠﻆ ﻟﻪ ) (٣ﻓﺮﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ :ﺗﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻤﻮﻻﻙ؟! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺯﻳﺪ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﻭﻻﺋﻲ ﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﺴﺖ ﻟﻲ ﺑﻤﻮﻟﻰ .ﻓﺄﺗﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺸﻜﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ:
ﻣﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ " .ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺯﻳﺪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ،
ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺜﻢ ،ﻭﺗﻤﺎﻡ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺒﺪ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﻣﻮﺍﻟﻰ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ،ﻓﻠﻌﻠﻢ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ) (٤ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻏﻠﻄﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻇﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺍ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻗﻮﻡ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺯﻳﺪ ﺛﻢ ﺣﺎﺭﺑﻪ " ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺠﻴﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻏﻠﻂ ﻟﻪ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ".
)(١٤٥
ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﻌﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺇﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﺎﺩ
ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺍﻩ ﻭﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻩ " ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺗﻰ
ﺟﺮﻣﺎ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ) (١ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻴﺘﺨﻄﻰ ﺩﻋﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﻯ
ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻗﻮﻋﻪ ﺑﻪ .ﻻﻥ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺘﻜﻰ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ
ﺻﻨﻴﻌﻪ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﻳﺪ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ
ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺻﻢ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﻣﺬﻫﺒﻪ ﻏﻀﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻧﺺ ﻭﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﻋﻨﻰ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﻳﺠﻮﺯﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﻗﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺩﻟﻠﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻨﺎ .ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ).(٢
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻓﻲ ﺳﺮﻳﺔ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﺒﻼﺩ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﻫﺎ.
ﻭﻳﺪﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺎﺭ،
ﻭﻋﻘﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻣﺆﻧﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﻋﻘﺪ ﻻﺑﻨﻪ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ،
ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ .ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ -ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻋﻴﺎﺵ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ) :- (٣ﻳﻮﻟﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ! ﻓﻐﻀﺐ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺭﺩ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ "
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٢٤ - ٢٢
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ " :ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٦١١٨ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ
٥٣٧ﻭﻓﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﻱ .١١٦ - ١١٥ :٨ / ٦٩ :٧
)(١٤٦
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻻ ﺃﻋﺠﺒﻚ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺍ؟ ﻓﻤﺸﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻣﺎ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺔ ﺑﻠﻐﺘﻨﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻌﻀﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺗﺄﻣﻴﺮﻩ؟! ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﻃﻌﻨﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﺭﺗﻪ
ﻟﻘﺪ ﻃﻌﻨﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﺭﺓ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ .ﻭﺃﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﺨﻠﻴﻘﺎ ﻟﻼﻣﺎﺭﺓ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ
ﻟﺨﻠﻴﻖ ﻟﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺃﺣﺐ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ.
ﻓﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺐ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺐ ،ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ :ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺐ.
ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻻﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺯﺍﺩ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﻳﻀﺔ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﻳﻀﺘﻪ،
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ :ﻟﻢ ﻓﻀﻠﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﺳﻴﺎﻥ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻚ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻨﻚ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺣﻴﺎ
ﻻﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ.
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﺑﻮﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺠﻌﻮﻝ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻧﺘﻪ ﻭﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻋﻈﻢ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ]ﻟﻤﺎ[ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ
ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ،ﻭﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ .ﻭﻗﺪ
ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﻭﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﺃﻧﻔﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻣﺮﺃ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻔﺌﺎ ﻟﺤﻤﺰﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺧﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ،ﻟﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﺄﻥ ،ﺭﻓﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻥ.
)(١٤٧
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ
ﻟﻘﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﻌﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺑﺔ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﺎﺩ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺍﻩ
ﻭﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻩ " ﻭﺣﺎﻝ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻭﺻﻔﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻭﻓﺴﺮﻧﺎ؟! ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﺎﺩ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺍﻩ ﻭﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻩ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻓﻴﻪ ﺩﻻﻟﺔ ﺗﻀﻄﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺠﺔ ﺗﻘﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ﻭﺗﺤﻤﻠﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ
ﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻟﻔﻆ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻓﻮﻗﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻣﻦ
ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﺼﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻣﺘﺨﺬﺍ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ ﻻﺗﺨﺬﺕ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻠﻴﻼ " ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻴﺪﺍ ﻛﻬﻮﻝ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﻳﻦ ،ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻴﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺳﻠﻴﻦ ".
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻔﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺻﺤﺔ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺨﺘﻠﻔﺎ ﻓﻲ
ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ﻭﻓﺮﻋﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻣﺘﺪﺍﻓﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﻋﻪ ﻣﺘﻜﺎﻓﺌﺔ،
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﺤﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻗﻪ ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻈﺮﺍﺋﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﺠﺘﻤﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻔﻈﻪ
ﻣﺤﺘﻤﻼ ﻟﻀﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻠﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ ﺗﻘﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻢ،
ﻭﺗﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﻳﻨﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﺠﺘﻤﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻪ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺑﺖ
ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﺍ ﻟﻜﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺢ ﻟﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺑﻴﺎﻧﻪ،
)(١٤٨
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻴﻤﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻔﺼﺤﺎ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺮﺑﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻻ
ﻋﻦ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺇﺭﺍﺩﺗﻪ ﻻﻥ ﻳﻜﻔﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻜﻜﺔ
ﻓﻴﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻭﻓﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺟﺌﺔ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻬﺎ ﺗﺠﺤﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ،ﻭﺗﻨﻜﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﺠﺘﻤﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻏﺎﻣﺾ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ،
ﻭﻋﻮﻳﺺ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ،ﻻ ﻳﻜﺎﺩ ﻳﺪﺭﻛﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺳﺦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ،ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺴﻦ
ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺨﺮﺍﺝ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﺍﺳﻌﺎ ﻣﺒﺴﻮﻃﺎ
ﻷﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺒﺮﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺭﺕ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻛﻔﺎﺭ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﺑﺰﻋﻤﻬﻢ )(١
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻧﺺ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻻﺑﺪ
ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﻋﺼﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ،ﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﻨﻌﺎ
ﻭﻣﻌﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺧﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﻟﻞ ،ﻭﻻﻥ
ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻷﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﻠﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﻟﻤﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺷﻜﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻐﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ) (٢ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻼﺑﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ
ﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﻨﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺻﺤﺔ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﺳﻨﺄﺗﻴﻜﻢ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺗﻴﺘﻤﻮﻧﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻟﻔﻆ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻳﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻃﺎﺋﺮ )(٣
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻫﻮ "(٢) .
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺯﻋﻤﻬﻢ ".
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ١٣٤ﺱ .١٠ - ٩
)(١٤٩
ﺃﺗﻰ ﺑﻪ ﻓﺄﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻛﻠﻪ ﻓﺄﺣﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺸﺮﻛﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻛﻠﻪ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺁﺗﻨﻲ ﺑﺄﺣﺐ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﻙ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﻳﺄﻛﻞ ﻣﻌﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﺮ "
ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻷﻧﺲ :ﺍﺧﺮﺝ ﻓﺎﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﺎﺏ؟ ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﻓﻮﺟﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻠﻢ
ﻳﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻃﻤﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﺼﺎﺭﻳﺎ.
ﻓﻔﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ،ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺤﺠﺒﻪ ﺃﻧﺲ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺩﺧﻠﻪ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻃﻠﻊ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻝ )." (١
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﻓﺈﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺳﺎﻗﻂ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ،
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺠﺊ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻧﺲ ﻓﻘﻂ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺲ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ
ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ) (٢ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻘﺎﻝ ﻭﻻ ﻣﺘﻜﻠﻢ.
ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻴﺔ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﺨﺒﺮ ﺃﻧﺲ ﻷﻧﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ،
ﻻﻥ ﺃﻧﺴﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﻛﺎﻓﺮ ﻛﺬﺍﺏ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺀ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺬﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ،
ﻛﺬﺑﻪ ﻭﺑﻬﺘﻪ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ،ﻓﺪﻋﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺛﻢ ﺑﺼﻖ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻓﺒﺮﺹ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻧﻪ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﺪﻣﻪ .ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﻜﻔﺮﻭﻧﻪ ﺑﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﻟﻠﺤﺠﺎﺝ ،ﻭﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ
ﺃﻛﻔﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺟﺤﺪ ﻻﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﻘﺾ ﻻﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻗﺘﻞ ﻟﺸﻴﻌﺘﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻻﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺮﻳﻘﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺣﻜﻤﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺻﺪﻗﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﺲ،
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﺰﻋﻤﻜﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺬﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ
ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺕ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻣﺴﻚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺸﺘﻬﻴﻪ،
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﺒﺘﻮﺭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻢ ".
)(١٥٠
ﻓﺄﺣﺐ ﻟﺸﻬﻮﺗﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺸﺮﻛﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻪ ﻓﺪﻋﺎ ﺭﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ
ﺇﺫ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺭﺑﻪ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺭ ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﻴﺐ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺮﺍﻩ ﺃﻧﺲ
ﻭﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻳﺼﺪﻩ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺎﺟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﺳﺮﻋﺔ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺠﺎﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺠﻴﻞ
ﻗﻀﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ ،ﻭﺗﺴﻮﻳﻐﻪ ﺃﻛﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺘﻬﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻃﻌﺎﻣﻪ .ﻛﻠﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺩﻋﻮﺓ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﺧﺮﺝ ﻳﺎ ﺃﻧﺲ ﻓﺎﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﺎﺏ ،ﺛﻘﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﺮﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺗﻜﺎﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺮﺟﻊ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺘﻤﻪ ﻭﺣﺠﺒﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻌﻪ ﺳﺮﻭﺭ ﺗﻌﺠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ،
ﻭﺃﻛﻞ ﺷﻬﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﺬﺍﺀ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻧﺲ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺭﻛﺐ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺫﻫﺐ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﺎ ﻗﺒﻴﺤﺎ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺼﺪﻕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻘﻪ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ) (١ﻭﻛﺬﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ
ﺛﻢ ﻻ ﺗﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻟﺜﺔ .ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ
ﺑﺄﺳﺮﻉ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻑ ﺑﻠﻌﻦ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻭﻣﺪﺡ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻣﺮﺃ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﻠﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺷﺎﻉ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﻌﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻮﺍﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻣﺮﺍﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺃﻭﺟﺒﻬﻢ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻟﺤﺮﻱ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺼﺪﻕ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻌﻈﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺿﻌﻒ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﻨﺪ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ﻣﻦ ) (٢ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻮﺟﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻃﻨﺎﺏ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻣﺘﻰ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﻨﺎ ﺿﻌﻒ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﻓﺴﺎﺩﻩ ﻓﺎﺗﻬﻤﺘﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ،ﻭﺧﻔﺘﻢ ﻣﻴﻠﻨﺎ
ﺃﻭ ﻏﻠﻄﻨﺎ ﻓﺎﻋﺘﺮﺿﻮﺍ ﺣﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﻔﺎﺀ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ
ﺗﻨﺎﺯﻋﻨﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺲ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﻭﺟﻪ.
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩ ﺍﻷﺳﻠﻮﺏ ،ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﻤﺎﻝ " ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻠﻴﺔ " ﻣﻊ ﺃﻓﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻀﺎﻑ،
ﻛﻘﻮﻝ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﻴﻢ:
ﻧﺤﻦ ﺑﻐﺮﺱ ﺍﻟﻮﺩﻱ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ * ﻣﻨﺎ ﺑﺮﻛﺾ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺎﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﺪﻑ
)(١٥١
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﻧﺼﻒ ﻛﻞ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻋﺎﻛﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﻨﻊ ﻣﻊ ﻗﺮﺏ ﺩﺍﺭﻩ
ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺟﻮﺭﻩ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺻﺢ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ .ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻪ ﻳﻘﻀﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺠﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺳﻤﻌﺘﻢ ،ﻷﻧﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎﻛﻢ ﺗﻜﻔﺮﻭﻧﻪ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺟﺮﻯ ﺳﺒﺐ ﻳﺆﻛﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﺟﻌﻠﺘﻢ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ﺇﻳﻤﺎﻧﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺬﺑﻪ
ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻘﺎ ،ﻭﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻪ ﻭﻻﻳﺔ .ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﺿﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺃﻟﺤﻘﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﺑﺎﻷﻭﻟﻴﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﺧﺮﺟﺘﻤﻮﻩ
ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻭﺩ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻗﻤﺘﻢ ﺧﺒﺮﻩ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺧﺒﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ
ﺁﻳﺎ ) (١ﺑﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺧﺒﺮ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺠﻴﺌﻪ ﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻋﻠﻞ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻧﺤﻦ ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻧﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﺟﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ).(٢
ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺧﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺻﻐﻴﺮﺍ ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺼﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻛﺒﻴﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻂ ﺻﺪﻕ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻻﻳﺘﻪ ﻟﻠﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻟﻠﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﺧﻠﻔﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺇﻛﻔﺎﺭﻩ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﻘﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ
ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﺳﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ ﻋﺬﺭ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺮﺽ ﻣﺼﺎﺋﺐ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻨﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻳﻮﺏ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ؟! ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﻌﻴﺐ ﻣﻜﻔﻮﻓﺎ!
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﺄﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺑﺼﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻓﺄﺭﺍﺩ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺣﺒﺮ ﺑﻠﺪﺏ ﺍﻣﺎﻣﻪ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺄﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ".
)(١٥٢
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﺮﺹ ﺑﺮﺹ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﻳﻢ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﺮﻕ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ،ﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﺼﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ
ﻓﻴﺠﺬﻣﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺻﻔﻴﻦ ﻓﻴﻬﺰﻣﻪ؟! ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺳﻠﻤﺎ،
ﻭﺃﺭﺟﺢ ﺣﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﻭﺭﻋﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻓﻘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻴﻦ ﻓﻀﻼ ،ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻋﻰ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻤﺪﺡ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻠﻴﻖ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻫﺎﺯﻝ ﺃﻭ ﺟﺎﻫﻞ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﻛﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ " ﻭﺇﻥ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺻﻴﻪ ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﺳﻨﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻧﺴﺘﻌﻴﻦ.
ﻧﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺧﻼﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻻ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻮﺗﻪ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﻭﺓ ﻣﻦ ﻏﺰﻭﺍﺗﻪ ،ﻓﻲ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻣﺎ ﻏﺰﺍ ،ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ
ﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﻰ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺧﻠﻔﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﻭﺓ ﺗﺒﻮﻙ،
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ :ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ
ﻣﻜﺘﻮﻡ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺨﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﺍﻷﻣﻴﺮ
ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺈﻥ "
)(١٥٣
ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺧﻠﻔﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﻭﺍﺗﻪ ﻳﺼﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ) (١ﺑﻜﻞ
ﻣﻜﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻛﻞ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺘﺒﺘﻪ ﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﺩﺩﺕ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﻦ ﺻﻐﺮ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺗﺼﻠﺢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ
ﺍﻟﻜﺜﻴﺮ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺘﺒﻲ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﺘﺤﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻲ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﺖ
ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻤﺖ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ .ﻭﺟﻌﻠﺖ
ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﻋﺪﻻ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﺃﻛﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻘﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﻟﻢ
ﺃﺳﺘﺤﻞ ﻛﺘﻤﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻊ ﺯﻭﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺻﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ،ﻭﺇﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﻢ.
ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻌﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻛﻼﻣﻨﺎ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ﻓﻘﻠﻨﺎ :ﻻﺑﺪ ﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ
ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺎﺓ ﺃﻭ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ :ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺎﺓ ﻓﻼ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺗﻪ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻀﻊ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺨﻠﻔﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺗﻪ .ﺃﻭ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﻓﻼ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ " ﺃﻧﺖ
ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ
ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ :ﻻﻥ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻭﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻭﺃﻣﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺎﺗﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺷﻬﺮ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺁﺧﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻮﺗﺎ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ
ﺑﻨﻮ ﺇﺳﺮﺍﺋﻴﻞ ﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻗﺘﻠﺖ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ )(٢
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻣﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ؟
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻓﺎﻋﺘﺮﺿﻮﺍ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻤﺴﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻱ ﻳﻮﻗﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " :ﺻﺎﺑﻮﺍ ﺑﻬﻢ :ﻭﻗﻌﻮﺍ ﺑﻬﻢ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﺎﻣﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺛﻴﺮ ١١١ :١ﻓﻔﻴﻪ ﻗﺼﺔ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺳﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ
.٢٩ ،٢٨ :٢٠
)(١٥٤
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻓﺄﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻳﻬﻮﺩﻫﻢ
ﻭﻧﺼﺎﺭﺍﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺩﻓﻊ ﻣﻀﺮﺓ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺟﺘﻼﺏ ﻣﻨﻔﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻮ
ﺁﺛﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﺤﺪﻭﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻄﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻧﻜﺎﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻤﻜﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭﺓ ،ﺳﺎﺋﻐﺎ ﺟﺎﺋﺰﺍ ،ﻟﺠﺤﺪﻭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺇﺳﺮﺍﺋﻴﻞ ﺃﺧﺬﺕ
ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺑﻘﺘﻞ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﺗﻌﻨﺘﺎ ﻭﺑﻐﻴﺎ ،ﺃﻭ ﻏﻠﻄﺎ ﺃﻭ ﺟﻬﻼ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺣﻖ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﺼﻴﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﺜﺎﻝ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺿﺮﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺤﺴﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺷﺒﻪ ،ﻣﻦ ﺧﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﻔﻮﺗﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺳﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻮﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺗﻪ .ﻓﻔﻲ ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻳﺔ
ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻟﻴﻦ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ) (١ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺣﻴﺎﺗﻪ .ﺑﻞ
ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻻﺑﺪ ﻟﻠﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﻊ ﺳﻮﺀ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ﺣﺠﺘﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺿﺮﺑﻴﻦ:
ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﺎﻃﻼ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻭﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ .ﻭﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮﻩ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺣﻴﺎﺗﻪ ،ﻟﻘﺎﻝ ) :(٢ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻳﻮﺷﻊ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " .ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺔ " ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " .ﻣﻘﺤﻤﺔ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ".
)(١٥٥
ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ " ﻻﻥ ﻳﻮﺷﻊ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺇﺳﺮﺍﺋﻴﻞ
ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﺒﻴﺎ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﻮﺕ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻭﺑﻌﺪﻩ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺼﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺩ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﺯﺍﺭﺓ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﻭﺯﺍﺭﺓ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻻﺑﺪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻣﺮﻳﻦ:
ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻫﻮ ﺟﻌﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻭﺯﻳﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﺨﺬ
ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻭﺯﻳﺮﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﻭﺯﻳﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﻜﻔﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ.
ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻭﺯﻳﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺍﺯﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺗﻔﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﻭﻥ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺯﺑﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻭﻣﻌﺎﻭﻧﻪ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﺗﻔﻪ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻏﺎﺏ ﻋﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ،ﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻋﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻻ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺇﻻ ﻫﺎﺗﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺯﺍﺭﺓ ،ﻻﻥ ﻧﺒﻮﺓ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻻ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ
ﻻ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ " :ﺃﺧﻠﻔﻨﻲ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻣﻲ " ﻋﻦ ﺿﺮﺑﻴﻦ:
ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﻜﻔﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ ﺑﻪ،
ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻏﺎﺏ ﻋﻦ
ﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻭﺯﺍﺭﺓ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻭﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ ﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ ﺃﻧﺰﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ
ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " ﻓﻜﺄﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻚ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻲ
)(١٥٦
ﻭﻭﺯﺍﺭﺗﻲ ) ،(١ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ .ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻭﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺴﺘﺜﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ ﻣﻦ ]ﻏﻴﺮ[ ﺷﻜﻠﻪ؟! ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﻌﺾ
ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻛﻠﻪ؟!
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﺟﻌﻠﺘﻚ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻲ ﻭﻭﺯﻳﺮﺍ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻟﻢ ﺃﺟﻌﻠﻚ ﻧﺒﻴﺎ
ﻣﺜﻠﻲ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺯﺍﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺑﻪ :ﺇﻥ ﻟﻚ
ﻣﻨﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺯﺍﺭﺓ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ " ﻓﻴﺴﺘﺜﻨﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻤﻠﻜﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻤﻠﻜﻪ ،ﻣﻤﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻣﻠﻜﻪ ﻭﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﻠﻜﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻔﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﻣﻦ
ﺧﻠﻔﺎﺀ ﺧﻠﻔﺎﺋﻪ.
ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺯﻳﺮ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺍﺯﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻭﻧﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺯﻳﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻐﻴﺒﺔ ﻭﺣﻀﻮﺭ
ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻭﻭﺯﻳﺮﺍ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ
ﻓﻠﻴﺴﺖ ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺯﺍﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﻦ
ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﺜﻠﻬﺎ .ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺻﺎﺭﺕ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﻭﺯﺍﺭﺗﻬﻤﺎ
ﻛﻨﺒﻮﺗﻬﻤﺎ ﺃﻭ ﺭﺳﺎﻟﺘﻬﻤﺎ .ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺴﺖ
ﻟﻬﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ؟! .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻣﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻲ ﻭﻭﺯﺍﺭﺗﻲ ".
)(١٥٧
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻜﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻜﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺜﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﻞ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ
ﺃﻥ ﻧﺒﻮﺓ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟!
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ،ﻭﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺂﺯﺭ؟!
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻮ ﺻﺢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﺨﺮﺟﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻘﺼﺎﻥ ﻭﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ .ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻮﻩ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ
ﻣﻮﺟﺒﺎ ﻭﺷﺎﻫﺪﺍ ﺻﺎﺩﻗﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ) (١ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ ﻭﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﻪ
ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺩﺧﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻀﻌﻒ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺴﺎﺩ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻮﺟﺐ
ﺗﻜﺬﻳﺒﻪ ﻭﺭﺩﻩ.
ﻭﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻠﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﺎﻭﻭﻛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﺑﻄﻼﻥ ﺣﺠﺘﻜﻢ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﺖ ﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻌﻠﻦ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻀﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺎﺳﺪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻜﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻧﻲ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺘﻌﻘﺪ ) ،(١ﻭﻻ ﻳﻀﺮﺏ ﻣﺜﻼ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﺑﺸﺊ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﺸﺊ ﻭﻓﻖ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻘﺺ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻭ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ).(٢
ﻓﻮﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﺇﻥ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻘﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ".
) (٢ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻘﺪ ﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﺗﻌﻘﻴﺪﺍ :ﻋﻮﺻﻪ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﻩ.
) (٣ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﺗﺎﺑﻌﻲ ﺛﻘﺔ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .١٠٤ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
)(١٥٨
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺄﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻛﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻦ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ) (١ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ .ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ
ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﺧﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﻃﺮﻳﻘﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ
ﻛﺎﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻋﻤﺮ " :ﻫﺬﺍﻥ ﺳﻴﺪﺍ ﻛﻬﻮﻝ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ".
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺮﻭﻯ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻣﻊ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺑﻘﻤﻴﺼﻲ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺣﻖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻬﺎ " ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻳﺮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺛﺮﺓ
ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺤﺎﺳﻦ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺃﻋﻴﺪﻭﻫﺎ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ " .ﻭﻳﻌﻴﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﺑﺎﻻﺳﺘﺒﺪﺍﺩ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻛﻨﺖ ﺳﺎﺑﻊ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﻣﺎ ﻟﻨﺎ ﻃﻌﺎﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺮ ،ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀﻧﻲ ﺃﻋﺮﺍﺑﻲ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻨﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ،
ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺑﻘﻤﻴﺼﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺄﺣﻖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻬﺎ ".
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻓﺨﺮ ﺑﺄﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﺎﺑﻊ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﺒﻬﻢ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻣﺎ ﺣﺪﺛﺎ ﺻﻐﻴﺮﺍ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻌﺔ ) ،(٢ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺠﺎﺏ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻗﻴﻞ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ
ﻛﻨﻴﺘﻪ .ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ .١١٨ - ١١٥ :١٢
) (٢ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ .ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﻭﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ
ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﺃﻟﻒ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺐ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ " ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ ،ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺎﻗﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ "
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ ﻓﻬﻢ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻫﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻃﻌﻦ ﻟﻴﺨﺘﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﺭﺟﻼ
ﻟﻠﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ،
ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺿﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﺎﺑﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ .ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ -
)(١٥٩
ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺍﺭﻡ ﻓﺪﺍﻙ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﺃﻣﻲ ".
ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻣﺴﺘﺤﻘﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻤﻊ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻃﻠﺐ ﻣﺨﺎﻳﺮﺓ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﺛﺮﺗﻪ
ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺤﺎﺳﻦ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻘﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺟﻌﻞ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ
ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻦ
ﺷﻬﺪ ﺳﻌﺪﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻛﻢ.
ﻭﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ
ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻌﻲ ﻧﺒﻲ " ﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﺭﻭﻭﻩ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ.
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻛﻢ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺧﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﺎﻫﻰ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻠﻴﺄﺕ ﻛﻞ
ﺍﻣﺮﺉ ﺑﺨﺎﻟﻪ ) " (١ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻞ ﺧﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﻝ
ﺟﻌﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺒﻴﺮﺓ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺜﻦ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻮﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻪ
ﻫﺪﻳﺎ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﻓﻀﻼ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﻋﺪﻝ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻷﺛﺮ ﻭﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﺒﺮ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ
ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻜﻔﺮ ﺍﻷﺳﻼﻑ ،ﻭﻳﺒﺮﺃ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻳﺠﺤﺪ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎﻟﻢ
--------------------
) .٣٥ - ٣٤ :٥ - (١ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻌﺔ ﻓﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ :ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ.
ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ ٢٩٢ :٢ﻭﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ .٩٥ - ٩٣ :١
) (١ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺄﻥ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ،ﻭﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﻮﺓ .١٤٠ :١
ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ .٢٩٦ :٢ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺐ " :ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ .ﻭﺃﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ .ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺧﺎﻟﻰ ".
)(١٦٠
ﻳﻮﺍﻓﻖ ﻫﻮﺍﻩ ،ﻭﻳﺪﻋﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻓﻖ ﻫﻮﺍﻩ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﻃﻼ ،ﺑﻞ ﻻ ﻳﺮﺿﻰ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻳﺘﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺰﻭﺭ ﻭﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺷﺊ ﺃﻳﺴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ
ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﺃﺣﻖ
ﻣﺎ ﺧﻀﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻋﺮﺿﺔ ﻟﻜﻢ،
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ
ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ﻓﻨﺤﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺠﺤﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻓﺎﺳﺄﻟﻮﺍ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻛﺮ ﺇﻥ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﻻ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ )." (١
ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻟﺴﺘﻢ ) (٢ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺁﺛﺎﺭ ،ﻓﺎﺳﺄﻟﻮﺍ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺇﻥ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﻻ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ،
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻻ ﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺩﺍﻓﻊ ﻟﻪ ،ﺃﻋﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺍﺧﺎﺓ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ.
ﻭﻟﺜﻘﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﻤﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ
ﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﻛﺒﻮﺍ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻰ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﺓ ﺑﺄﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺭﻛﺒﻮﻩ ﺑﻪ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮ ،ﻟﺮﺃﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻟﻐﻠﺒﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻄﺎﻉ ﺑﺄﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﻭﺃﻭﺱ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ) .(٣ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤٣ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺤﻞ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻴﺲ ".
) (٣ﻫﻮ ﺃﺧﻮ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ.
)(١٦١
ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﻳﺤﺎﻣﻰ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ﻭﻳﻨﺼﺮﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮ ،ﻭﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻳﺎ ﻟﻴﺖ ﺷﻌﺮﻱ ﻭﻟﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺮ ﺗﺨﺒﺮﻧﻲ * ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻧﺎ )(١
ﻟﻨﺴﻤﻌﻦ ﻭﺷﻴﻜﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﺎﺭﻛﻢ * ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﻳﺎ ﺛﺎﺭﺍﺕ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻧﺎ
ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻌﺘﻤﺪ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ :ﺛﻜﻠﺖ ﺃﻡ ﻧﺰﺍﻝ
ﺣﺮﺏ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻛﻔﺎﺣﺎ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺪﺕ ﺃﻡ ﻧﺰﺍﻝ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﺳﻬﻮﺍ .ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ .ﻭﺷﻌﺮ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ.
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﺭﺩﺍﺀ ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ .ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺑﻴﻊ .ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ) ،(٢ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻭﺯﻳﺪ )،(٣
ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﺘﺪﺍﻓﻊ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻱ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ،ﻭﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺗﺼﻴﺮ ) (٤ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺍﺧﺎﺓ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﺛﻨﻴﻦ:
ﻣﻬﺎﺟﺮﻱ ﻭﺃﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ) (٥ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻟﻘﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺁﺧﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺇﺳﻨﺎﺩﺍ ﻳﺜﻖ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻣﺠﺊ
--------------------
) (١ﺩﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ .٤١٠
) (٢ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺎﺳﺮ.
) (٣ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ .ﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ .٢٠١ :١
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺗﺼﺒﺮ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺈﺫﺍ "
)(١٦٢
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺁﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺽ
ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺑﻬﻢ ﺣﺎﻻ
ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺁﺛﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻛﻔﻌﻠﻪ ﺑﻐﻴﺮﻩ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ -ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ.
ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻃﻠﺐ
ﺃﻓﻀﻠﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻫﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ
ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺣﻤﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﺑﺮ ﻭﻣﻦ
ﻏﺴﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﺋﺐ ) (١ﻭﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻨﻜﺮﺍ
ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺎﺑﺮﺗﻬﻢ ﻭﺟﻬﻠﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺟﺎﺋﺰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻻﺷﻜﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﺟﺎﺋﺰ
ﺃﻻ ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﺎﻭﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻘﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺍﺥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
ﻋﻠﻰ -ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺁﺧﺎﻩ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ،ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺗﻘﺎﺭﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻛﻠﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ .ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺍﺥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺭﺃﺳﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻻ
ﻳﺆﺍﺧﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻻﺷﻜﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻘﺎﺭﺏ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﺜﺎﻝ .ﻭﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﺎﺋﺰﺍ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﺯﺍﻝ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ:
" ﺃﻧﻔﺬﻭﺍ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ " ﻳﻌﻴﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻳﻜﺮﺭﻩ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺒﻀﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﻨﺘﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٤٠ - ١٣٩
)(١٦٣
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ
ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﺣﻔﺼﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺍﻋﺘﻮﻧﺘﺎ ) (١ﻟﻴﺼﺮﻓﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻻﻥ:
ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺭﻗﻴﻖ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻚ.
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺩﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻄﺒﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﺇﻥ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺧﻴﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ ﻓﺎﺣﺘﺎﺭ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ ".
ﻓﺒﻜﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻌﺠﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ) :(٢ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ:
ﺇﻥ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ!! ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ .ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ،ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ
ﻳﺴﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺄﺫﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺁﺩﻣﻲ ﻗﺒﻠﻚ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺍﺋﺬﻥ ﻟﻪ .ﻓﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻪ
ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻭﻗﻒ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻱ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺃﺭﺳﻠﻨﻲ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻧﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻃﻴﻌﻚ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺮﺗﻨﻲ ﺑﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﻣﺮﺗﻨﻲ ﻗﺒﺾ ﻧﻔﺴﻚ
ﻗﺒﻀﺘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺮﻫﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺗﺮﻛﺘﻬﺎ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺴﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺍﻟﺮﻓﻴﻖ ﺍﻻﻋﻠﻰ " ﻓﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻛﻞ ﺻﻼﺓ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺪ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ ﺇﻓﺎﻗﺔ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻣﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ " ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ .ﻣﻊ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻌﺎﺋﺸﺔ
ﻭﺣﻔﺼﺔ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﺗﺎ ﺻﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﺃﻧﺘﻦ ﺻﻮﺍﺣﺒﺎﺕ ﻳﻮﺳﻒ.
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﺑﺎﻟﻐﻠﻆ .ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺐ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺻﻐﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻏﻠﻆ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻋﺘﻮﻧﺘﺎ ،ﻣﺜﻞ ﺗﻌﺎﻭﻧﺘﺎ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﺍﻋﺘﻮﻧﺎ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ".
)(١٦٤
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻣﺎ ﺩﻋﺎ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺻﺮﻑ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ
ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻳﻒ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ؟
ﻗﻴﻞ :ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﺍﻋﺘﺬﺭﺕ ﻫﻲ ﺑﻪ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻬﺎ،
ﻓﺈﻧﻬﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﺩﺕ ﺻﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻟﻢ ﺃﻋﺮﻑ ﺷﺮﻓﻪ
ﻭﺧﻄﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻲ ﺧﻔﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺸﺎﺀﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻻ ﻳﺤﺒﻮﺍ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻗﺎﻡ
ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﺮﺑﻴﻊ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺻﺒﻴﺢ ) (١ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ:
ﺧﻔﺖ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻄﺒﻖ ﺣﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻇﻨﻨﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺳﻴﺮﻳﺪﻭﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﻮﺩﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻟﻨﺒﻲ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺍﺳﺘﺜﻨﺎﻩ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﺍﺷﺘﻜﻰ ،ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ
ﻻﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ
ﻭﻣﺼﻼﻩ ،ﻓﻲ ﺃﻋﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻭﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﺃﻳﺎﻣﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺑﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺗﺄﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﺔ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺩﺧﻠﻨﺎ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻌﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻴﺪﻳﻦ ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺜﻦ ﺻﻼﺓ
ﺩﻭﻥ ﺻﻼﺓ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﺎﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻘﻴﻦ
ﻣﻦ ﻓﺮﺍﻕ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺪ
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻤﻌﺔ :ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻛﻼﻣﺎ ﻋﺎﻣﺎ ).(١
--------------------
) (١ﺑﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺩ ﻭﻛﺴﺮ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺀ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٢ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻘﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺮﺍﻕ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺣﻲ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ".
)(١٦٥
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ ﻳﺘﺨﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ
ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺳﻴﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻋﻴﺎﺩﻫﻢ ﻭﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﺻﻼﺗﻬﻢ
ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺳﻴﺤﺘﺞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻕ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ " :ﺃﺑﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ " ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻗﺪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺃﻭﺟﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻨﺎﻩ ﻭﺃﺣﺒﻪ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻒ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺟﻴﺶ
ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺷﻜﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ
ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﺮ ﺣﺮﻓﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ
ﺫﻛﺮ ﺗﺨﻠﻒ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻻ ﻋﺎﺗﺒﺎ ﺯﺍﺭﻳﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﺴﺘﻔﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺴﺘﺮﺷﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻣﺘﻌﺠﺒﺎ ﻧﺎﻗﻤﺎ .ﻭﻻ ﻣﺼﻮﺑﺎ ﻋﺎﺫﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺣﺪﻳﺜﺎ -ﺿﻌﻒ
ﺇﺳﻨﺎﺩﻩ ﺃﻡ ﻗﻮﻯ -ﺃﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ).(١
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺭﺣﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻧﺒﺎﻫﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻗﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻧﺒﺎﻫﺔ
ﻣﺎ ﺻﺎﺭ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺸﺪﺓ ) (٢ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺪ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻣﻨﻪ،
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﺨﻔﻰ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﺗﻮﻛﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺷﺪﺗﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﺛﻢ ﻻ ﻳﻠﺠﺄ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻣﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻼ ﻋﻠﺒﻪ ".
) (٢ﺑﻴﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻘﺘﻬﺎ ﺑﻴﺎﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ.
)(١٦٦
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺛﻢ ﻳﻄﺒﻖ ) (١ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻮﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﺤﺴﺎﻥ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ.
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺑﻨﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺷﻬﻮﺩ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ) (٢ﻗﺪ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ
ﺳﺘﺔ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻴﻢ؟! ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ
ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﺭﺟﺔ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻜﻔﻮﻑ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﻗﺎﻣﻮﺍ ﺍﺑﻨﻚ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺮﺿﻴﺖ ﺑﻨﻮ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻧﻌﻢ :ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺑﻨﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻧﻌﻢ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻼ ﻣﺎﻧﻊ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﻣﻌﻄﻰ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻣﻨﻊ ).(٣
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺇﻃﺒﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻮﺕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻮ ﻭﺟﺪﻭﺍ ﻏﻤﻴﺰﺓ ﺃﻭ ﺧﻼﻓﺎ ﺃﻭ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﺽ ﻓﻴﻪ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻗﻄﻌﺘﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻘﻄﻌﺘﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﻄﻌﺘﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ
ﻓﻲ ﺗﺨﻠﻔﻪ
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺭﺿﺎ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺗﺴﻠﻴﻤﻪ ﻭﺳﻜﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﻗﻨﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﺤﻜﻰ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻓﻲ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺻﻨﻴﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ
ﺗﻘﻴﺔ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺎﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﻨﻊ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺛﻢ ﻳﻠﺠﺄ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻄﺒﻖ ".
) (٢ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻌﻂ ".
)(١٦٧
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﺪﻱ
ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺭﺍﺟﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺭﻋﻴﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻫﻢ ﺭﻋﻴﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻧﺴﻖ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻭﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﻣﻨﻌﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﻊ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ
ﺃﻟﻒ ﺳﻴﻒ ﻳﻄﻴﻌﻪ .ﻭﻫﻞ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺿﻤﻴﺮﻩ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻋﻤﻠﻪ؟! ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ
ﺑﺄﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻷﻧﺘﻢ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻫﺪ ﻟﻄﻠﺤﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ:
ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺘﻨﻲ ﻭﻧﻜﺜﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻲ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ " :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺘﻚ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻔﻰ )." (١
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻔﺎﻩ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺃﺭﻩ ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
ﺑﺎﻳﻊ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﺎﺭﻩ .ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﻳﺎ،
ﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﺎ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺇﻃﺒﺎﻗﻬﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻧﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﺎﺀ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ،
ﻻ ﻣﻜﺮﻫﻴﻦ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻘﻬﻮﺭﻳﻦ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻓﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺳﻮﻁ ﻭﻻ ﺷﻬﺮ ) (٢ﺳﻴﻒ،
ﻭﻻ ﺳﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻭﻋﻴﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺃﻭﺍ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺛﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺃﻭﺍ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻣﺮﺓ ﻟﺒﻌﺾ
ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺎﺋﺮ ،ﻓﻴﺨﺎﻓﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻘﻮﻯ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻊ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ
ﺍﻷﻧﺴﺎﺏ ﻭﺗﻔﺮﻕ ﺍﻷﻫﻮﺍﺀ ،ﻭ ]ﻓﻲ[ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ،ﻭﺣﺠﺔ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﻨﺎ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻠﺞ :ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪﻩ :ﻭﺃﻇﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻰ ﻟﺠﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ.
ﻗﻔﻰ ،ﺃﻭ ﻗﻔﺎﻱ .ﻭﻫﻰ ﻟﻐﺔ ﻫﺬﻳﻞ ،ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻮﻥ ﺃﻟﻒ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺼﻮﺭ ﻳﺎﺀ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺇﺿﺎﻓﺘﻪ ﻟﻠﻴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﻗﻮﻝ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺫﺅﻳﺐ:
ﺳﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﻫﻮﻯ ﻭﺃﻋﻨﻘﻮﺍ ﻟﻬﻮﺍﻫﻢ * ﻓﺘﺨﺮﻣﻮﺍ ﻭﻟﻜﻞ ﺟﻨﺐ ﻣﺼﺮﻉ
ﺃﻱ ﻫﻮﺍﻱ .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ٢٠٤ - ١٧٤ :٥ﻓﻲ ﺣﻮﺍﺩﺙ ﺳﻨﺔ .٣٦
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﻬﺮ ".
)(١٦٨
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻨﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺃﻧﻔﺬﻭﺍ ﺟﻴﺶ
ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ " ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺪﻝ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﺎﻋﻴﻦ ،ﻻﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺃﻧﻔﺬﻭﺍ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ
ﻣﻦ ﻳﻨﻔﺬ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺑﺎﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﻘﻨﻌﻴﻦ ) (١ﻏﻴﺮ ﺳﺎﺧﻄﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻷﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻤﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻃﺒﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺎﻋﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻠﻪ ) (٢ﻭﺻﻔﻴﻪ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﺎ
ﻟﻢ ﻧﺒﻠﻐﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺴﺘﻘﺼﻪ ،ﺇﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻮﻑ ﻣﻨﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺮﺍﻫﺔ ﻹﻃﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺇﻣﺎ
ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻘﺼﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻧﻚ ﻟﻮ ﺟﻬﺪﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺠﺪ ﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﻦ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺻﻼ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺠﺪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻰ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ ﺫﻟﻚ ) (٣ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ
ﻛﻮﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ،ﻻﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ) (٤ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻧﺘﺪﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ.
ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﺠﺮﻯ ﻣﻊ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻏﻠﻄﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺟﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺮﺍﺭ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ،
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻟﻪ :ﻭﻓﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ .ﻭﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻄﻤﺲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺟﺎﺣﺪ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻴﺶ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﺳﻞ ،ﻓﺄﻟﺤﻘﻮﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ.
--------------------
) (١ﻣﻘﻨﻌﻴﻦ ،ﺃﻱ ﺭﺍﺿﻴﻦ .ﺃﻗﻨﻌﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ :ﺃﺭﺿﺎﻩ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻘﻨﻤﻴﻦ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺧﺎﻟﻪ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺎﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ٢٨١ :٢ﻭﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ .٥٣٧ :١
)(١٦٩
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﺍ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﻓﺎﻟﺠﻮﺍﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺘﻜﻢ .ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﺭﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻓﻘﻂ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺳﺒﻊ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﺪﺉ ) (١ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻷﺭﺑﻌﺎﺀ ﻟﻠﻴﻠﺘﻴﻦ ﺑﻘﻴﺘﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻔﺮ،
ﻭﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻻﺛﻨﺘﻲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﻣﻀﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻊ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺄﻣﺮ ﺑﻼﻻ
ﺑﺎﻻﺫﻥ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻭﺟﺪ ﺇﻓﺎﻗﺔ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﻣﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ " ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺼﻠﻴﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﻧﻜﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ
ﻭ ]ﺍﺩﻋﻮﺍ ) [(٢ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ
ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻤﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎﺕ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﺭﺃﻳﺘﻢ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﻠﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻤﻮﻩ ،ﺃﺷﺊ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﺮﺟﺘﻤﻮﻩ
ﺃﻭ ﺳﻤﻌﺘﻤﻮﻩ؟
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﺳﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﺄﺗﻮﺍ ﺑﻔﻘﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﺃﻭ ﻣﺤﺪﺙ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻳﺤﺪﺙ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺪﻋﻰ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﻋﻴﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ " :٢٨١ :٢ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻷﺭﺑﻌﺎﺀ ﺑﺪﺉ ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺟﻌﻪ ﻓﺤﻢ ﻭﺻﺪﻉ ".
) (٢ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻳﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ.
)(١٧٠
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻋﺘﺮﺿﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺨﺒﺮ
ﺑﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻓﺎﻟﺤﻖ ﺃﺣﻖ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺒﻊ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﺮﺟﻨﺎ
ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺨﺮﺍﺝ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻴﺎﻥ ﺃﻭ ﺧﺒﺮ.
ﺃﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻋﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺮﻳﺮﻩ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺯﺍﻏﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺯﺍﻏﺖ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺎﺀ ،ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﻔﻴﺮ
ﻗﺒﺮﻩ ) (١ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ؟!
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺗﻮﺍ ﺑﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺎﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﺗﻮﺍ ﺑﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺻﻼﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ]ﺣﻴﻦ[ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻣﻴﺮ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﺍﺀ
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺨﻼﻑ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻔﺎﺀ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ
ﻓﺎﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ.
ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻌﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﻣﺼﻞ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﺼﻞ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ) (٢ﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺄﻣﻮﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ ،ﻓﻐﺼﺐ ﺣﻘﻪ ﻭﻇﻠﻢ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ؟!
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﺊ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺿﻪ ﻭﺳﻤﺎﺋﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻧﺴﺐ ﻭﻻ
ﺳﺒﺐ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻨﻔﺬ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻣﺎﺕ ،ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺸﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻣﻦ ﻋﻢ
ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻢ ،ﻭﻗﺮﻳﺐ ﻭﻧﺴﻴﺐ ،ﻭﺟﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻈﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺔ
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﺩﻫﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﺛﻢ ﻻ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ؟! ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺘﺎﻉ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ " :٥٥١ :١ﻓﺼﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﺮﻳﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﻔﻴﺮ ﻗﺒﺮﻩ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻠﻌﺠﺐ ".
)(١٧١
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻭﺭ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ
ﻭﺃﻧﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ
ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ﺑﻪ؟! ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ:
" ﻛﺮﺩﺍﺫ ﻭﻧﻜﺮﺩﺍﺫ ) ." (١ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ
ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻫﺬﺍ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺧﺮﺝ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ ﺷﺎﺩﺍ ) ،(٢ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺁﻩ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺩﻭﻧﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﺐ .ﻭﺟﻠﺲ
ﻋﻠﻰ ]ﻓﻲ[ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻋﺘﻞ ﺑﺄﻧﻪ ﺁﻟﻰ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺒﺮﺡ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺠﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻼﻑ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﻧﺎﻗﻀﺎ ﻻﻣﺮﻩ .ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻭﺃﻛﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻧﻔﻌﻪ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﺭﺩﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ) ،(٣ﻓﻌﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ ﻟﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ﺑﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻋﺪﺩﺕ ﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻫﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ،
ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﺴﺎﻓﺮﻭﻥ ﻣﻌﺎ ﻭﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮ،
ﻭﺃﺳﺮﻉ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻨﺎ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺩﻫﺮﻧﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺗﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻋﺘﺰﺍﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ،
ﺑﺨﻼﻑ ) (٤ﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﻭ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﻠﻤﺘﺎﻥ ﻓﺎﺭﺳﻴﺘﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻫﻤﺎ " ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﻨﻌﻮﺍ " ﻛﺮﺩﺍﺩ ﺑﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺸﻴﻴﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﺳﻴﺲ
ﻭﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ .ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻮﻥ ﻋﻼﻣﺔ ﻟﻠﻨﻔﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ ،ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺹ ١٧٩ﻭﻛﺬﺍ
ﻣﻌﺠﻢ ﺍﺳﺘﻴﻨﺠﺎﺱ .١٠٢٢
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺷﺎﺫﺍ " .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " :١٩٨ :٣ﻣﺼﻠﺘﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ":
) (٣ﺃﻱ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﻧﻔﻌﺎ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺃﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺃﻱ ﺃﻧﻔﻊ ﻟﻪ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺧﻼﻑ " .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﺤﺔ .١٧٧
)(١٧٢
ﺳﺒﺐ ﻭﻻﺣﻖ ﻭﻣﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻻﻥ ) (١ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻻ ﺃﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺑﻘﻤﻴﺼﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺣﻖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻬﺎ ،ﺃﻋﻴﺪﻭﻫﺎ
ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ،ﺃﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻓﻼ ﺃﺭﻳﺪﻫﺎ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺮﺳﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻭﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ:
ﺛﻜﻠﺖ ﺃﻡ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻠﺪﻧﻲ ،ﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﺳﺎﺩﺱ ﺳﺘﺔ ﻣﺎﻟﻨﺎ ﻃﻌﺎﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺎﻡ،
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﺀﻧﻲ ﺃﻋﺮﺍﺏ ﺍﻷﻭﺱ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻨﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟! ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ).(٢
ﻭﺧﺎﻟﻔﻪ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﺷﺮﻳﻜﺎﻩ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﻭﻗﺎﻳﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺘﻤﺎﻧﻰ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺘﻚ ﻗﻂ ،ﺇﻥ
ﻛﻨﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻘﻴﻦ ﺃﻧﻚ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻓﺎﺟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ،ﺑﻴﻌﻪ ﻭﺣﻖ ﺩﻋﻮﺍﻙ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻃﻠﻪ ).(٣
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ " :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺖ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻔﻰ ) " (٤ﺣﻴﻦ ﺭﻗﻰ ) (٥ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﺎﻛﺮ
ﻭﻃﻌﻨﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺤﻠﺖ ﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺘﻪ .ﺛﻢ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺮﺑﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ
ﻗﺎﻃﺒﺔ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻛﻌﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺒﻬﺰﻱ ) (٦ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻀﻼﺀ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺳﺘﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﺘﻨﺔ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ " ﻭﺃﻭﻣﺄ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻘﻨﻊ،
ﻓﻜﺸﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻜﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ
ﺍﺳﺘﻨﺼﺮ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻻﻥ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٥٩
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٤ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٦٨
) (٥ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺭﻗﺎ ".
) (٦ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٧٤٢٨
)(١٧٣
ﻭﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﺛﻠﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺳﻘﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﺜﻲ ،ﻭﻟﻪ ﺻﺤﺒﺔ ﻭﻧﺴﻚ ) ،(١ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻌﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ
ﺑﺸﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺨﻠﺪ ،ﻭﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻉ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺞ ).(٢
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﻻﻧﻲ ،ﻭﺷﺮﺣﺒﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﻂ .ﻭﻋﻤﺮﻭ
ﺑﻦ ﻭﺍﻓﺪ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻣﺪﻱ ) (٣ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ ]ﻓﻴﻪ[ ﻣﻜﺤﻮﻝ :ﻛﺄﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻭﺩﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ
ﻭﺣﻮﺳﺐ ) (٤ﺛﻢ ﺭﺩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻓﻤﻌﻪ ﺧﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺮﺏ.
ﺛﻢ ﺧﺎﻟﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﺇﺧﻮﺍﻧﻪ ﻭﻧﺴﺎﻙ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺎﺋﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻨﺪﻩ
ﻭﺣﻤﺪﺕ ) (٥ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻛﻔﺮﻭﻩ ﻭﺧﻠﻌﻮﺍ ) (٦ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﻭﻻﻳﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﻊ ﻧﺴﻜﻬﻢ ﻭﺟﺪﻫﻢ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﺮﻭﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﻓﻞ ﺍﻷﺷﺠﻌﻲ ،ﻭﺣﺮﻗﻮﺹ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻓﻴﻬﻢ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺭﺋﻴﺴﻬﻢ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺳﺒﻲ ،ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺼﻦ
ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻲ ).(٩
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺩﻋﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻮﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺮﺽ ﺁﺧﺬﺍ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻛﺴﺮﻩ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺿﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺴﻴﻒ ﺿﺮﺑﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ؟!
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٩٠٨٨ﻭﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﻮﺓ .٢٨٠ :١ﻭﺍﻷﺳﻘﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺎﻑ.
) (٢ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٨٠٥٧
) (٣ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ .١١٥ :٨
) (٤ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺔ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺓ.
) (٥ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻮﺍ ".
) (٧ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٢٨٨٧ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﻣﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ .ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺮ " :ﻭﻗﺪ
ﻗﺪﻣﺖ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻻ ﻳﺆﻣﺮﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ " .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻩ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ
ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
)(١٧٤
ﻓﺪﻋﺎ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻮﻧﻪ ﻓﺄﺑﻰ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﺷﺤﺎ
ﺃﺳﺪ ﻓﺎﻩ ) (١ﻷﻟﻘﻤﺘﻪ ﻛﻔﻰ ﺩﻭﻧﻚ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺿﺮﺏ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻲ ﻷﺅﻛﺪ ﻟﻚ
ﻣﻠﻜﺎ ﻓﻼ.
ﻭﺩﻋﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻟﻦ ﺃﻧﺰﻉ
ﻳﺪﻱ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺃﺿﻌﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﻗﺔ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ:
ﻟﻮ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺖ ﺃﺧﺎﻙ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺧﻲ ﻭﺿﻊ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﻗﺔ،
ﻭﺇﻧﻲ ﻟﻦ ﺃﻧﺰﻉ ﻳﺪﻱ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺃﺿﻌﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﻗﺔ.
ﻭﻃﻌﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻔﻴﻞ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻓﺘﻨﺔ
ﻋﻤﻴﺎﺀ ﻳﺨﺒﻂ ﺃﻫﻠﻬﺎ " .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ :ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻲ ﻭﺑﻚ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺟﻌﻠﻨﻲ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﺃﺧﺮﺟﻚ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻰ ﺧﺎﻧﻚ ﻭﺃﻣﻨﻨﻲ.
ﻭﺩﻋﺎ ) (٢ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﻋﻮﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﺇﺫﻥ ﻟﻤﻔﺘﻮﻥ!
ﻭﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺖ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺞ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻗﻔﻰ " ﻓﺴﺌﻞ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﻜﻠﻤﻪ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺑﻜﻼﻡ ﻏﻠﻴﻆ.
ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺻﻬﻴﺐ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻼﻣﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻗﺶ .ﻛﻞ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻌﺔ
]ﻣﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ) [(٣ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻻ :ﻭﻗﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺁﻻﻑ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺪﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﺧﻒ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺭﺟﻼ .ﻓﺴﻤﻴﺎ ﺣﺮﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺻﻔﻴﻦ ﻓﺘﻨﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﺷﺤﺎ ﻓﺎﻩ ﻳﺸﺤﻮﻩ ﻭﻳﺸﺤﺎﻩ :ﻓﺘﺤﻪ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻙ ".
) (٣ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﻠﺘﺌﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
)(١٧٥
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ :ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﺛﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻓﻜﺬﺑﻪ .ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺎﺣﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﻧﺎﺣﻴﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻧﻲ ﺇﻻ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻨﻜﺮ
ﻻﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ .ﻭﻫﻢ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻋﺪﺩﺍ ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﻘﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻣﺤﺪﺛﺎ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻳﻈﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺸﻴﻊ ﻓﻴﺘﺮﻙ ﻭﻳﻀﻌﻒ ﻭﻳﺘﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ.
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻄﻮﻳﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﺘﺮﻩ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻮﺀ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﺠﻠﺪﻩ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺿﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ ﺗﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺗﻔﺴﺪ ﻋﺪﺍﻟﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺧﻼﻑ
ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﺃﻭ ﺧﻤﺴﺔ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻧﺘﻘﺎﺻﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﻟﻘﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ
ﺃﻣﻴﺮ! ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻭﻭﺻﻴﺎ ﻭﻧﺺ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻐﺪﻳﺮ ﺧﻢ،
ﺃﻭ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﺯﻱ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺮﺑﻬﻢ ) (١ﻭﻋﻨﻮﺩﻫﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺣﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻠﻐﻮﺍ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺨﺎﻃﺒﺎﺗﻬﻢ
ﻭﻣﻨﺎﺯﻋﺎﺗﻬﻢ ،ﺇﻻ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻬﺪ ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﺐ .ﻓﻬﺬﻩ
ﺣﺠﺔ ﻗﺎﻃﻌﺔ.
ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ :ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻠﺔ ﻣﺒﺎﻻﺗﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﺎﻣﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻛﺎﺋﻨﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ،ﻻﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ،ﻗﻮﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻛﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ،ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻚ :ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻀﺐ.
)(١٧٦
ﻻﺑﺪ ﻟﻨﺎ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺎﻝ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺸﺄﻧﻜﻢ
ﻓﺄﻣﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺪﺍ ﻟﻜﻢ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻃﻌﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺗﺄﻛﻴﺪ ﻻﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻘﻴﻔﺔ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺳﺎﻋﺪﺓ ،ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻭﻭﺍﻋﻈﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺒﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﻣﺤﺘﺠﺎ .ﻓﻼ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ .ﻓﻠﻴﺲ
ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ،ﺧﻼﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻼﻓﺎ
ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺔ ،ﺃﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺈﻧﻬﺎ
ﻏﻴﺮ ﻻﺯﻣﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﻛﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻼﻥ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻼﻥ ،ﺃﻭ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻟﻜﻢ
ﺃﻥ ﺗﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﻛﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻼﻧﺎ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻼﻧﺎ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﺑﻪ
ﻣﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﻭﻳﺸﻐﺐ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺎﻏﺐ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ
ﻟﻠﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﺃﻟﺰﻡ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺃﻭﻛﺪ.
ﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ) ،(١ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺽ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻻ ﻳﺼﻠﺢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ
ﻭﻣﻊ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻓﺘﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺮﻳﺮﺓ ﺃﻭ ﺗﺒﺮﻡ ﺑﻪ ،ﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ:
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٧٢
)(١٧٧
ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻟﻘﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻘﻰ ﻧﻈﺮﺍﺅﻩ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﺒﻼﻝ ﻭﺻﻬﻴﺐ ،ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ،
ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻭﻭﺍ ﻭﻧﺼﺮﻭﺍ ،ﻭﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻭﻗﺪﻣﻮﺍ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻫﺪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺍﻧﺤﺴﺮﺕ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ
ﻭﺍﻧﻜﺸﻒ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺮﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﻟﺤﻴﻦ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻼﺀ
ﺍﻟﻤﺨﻠﺼﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺟﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺧﻠﻔﺎﺋﻪ
ﻣﻘﺮﺑﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﻻ ﺣﺴﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ ﺗﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ،
ﻭﻃﻌﻨﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﺼﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ.
ﺛﻢ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎﻩ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺍﺋﻦ ،ﻳﻘﻴﻢ ﻟﻪ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻭﺩ ﻭﻳﺠﺒﻰ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﺍﺝ ،ﻭﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻳﺆﻛﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ،
ﻭﻳﻨﻔﺬ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻣﻄﻴﻌﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻜﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻣﺨﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭ ،ﻓﻮﻻﻳﺘﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ
ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺼﻮﻳﺐ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻣﻄﻴﻊ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺃﺫﻋﻦ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻈﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﺃﺷﺪ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﺎ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺁﺫﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺒﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻴﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻮﺝ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ.
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ﻭﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﻼﻡ
ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ :ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺒﺎﺏ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ،
ﻣﺜﻞ ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺼﻦ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﺇﺫ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺁﺫﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻳﻦ ﺑﻼﻝ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ
ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ ﺻﻬﻴﺐ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ؟ ﺍﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ .ﻓﺘﻐﻴﺮﺕ ﻭﺟﻮﻫﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺒﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﺠﺰﻉ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻭﺍﻋﻈﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺮﺑﺎ ) (١ﻭﻣﺬﻛﺮﺍ،
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﺐ :ﺍﻟﺘﺒﻴﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻻﻳﻀﺎﺡ.
)(١٧٨
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺩﻋﻮﺍ ﻭﺩﻋﻴﻨﺎ ،ﻓﺄﺳﺮﻋﻮﺍ ﻭﺃﺑﻄﺄﻧﺎ ]ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﺣﺴﺪﺗﻤﻮﻫﻢ ) [(١ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺏ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ.
ﻓﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻋﺎﻗﻞ ﻳﻈﻦ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﺴﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ
ﻭﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ،ﻭﻳﻮﻟﻴﻪ ﺑﻼﺩ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ﻭﺁﻝ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ
ﻇﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻧﺎﻗﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﺭﻙ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ) ،(٢ﻓﻲ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ،ﺣﻴﻦ
ﻋﻘﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺟﻨﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ،ﻟﻜﻠﻤﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻋﺰﻟﻪ.
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻟﺴﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﺛﻢ ﻻ ﻳﺮﺿﻰ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﻮﻻﻳﺔ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻼﺩ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺮﻯ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﺠﺮﻯ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻭﻻ ﻗﺮﻳﺒﺎ؟!
ﻓﻔﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ " :ﻛﺮﺩﺍﺫ ﻭﻧﻜﺮﺩﺍﺫ ) ." (٣ﻭﺇﻥ
ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﺮﺟﻤﺘﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺮﺑﻴﺔ :ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﻨﻌﻮﺍ.
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﺃﻗﻤﺘﻢ ﻓﺎﺿﻼ ﻣﺠﺰﻳﺎ ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ
--------------------
) (١ﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺗﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺘﻴﻦ ﺑﻴﺎﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻭﺃﺛﺒﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﺭﻗﺔ
١٦٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﻄﻮﻃﺔ .ﻭﺟﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﻮﺓ " :٣٠٧ :١ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ :ﻟﻢ ﺃﺭ ﻛﺎﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻗﻂ
ﻳﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻬﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﻴﺪ ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺑﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻠﺘﻔﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ؟! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ -ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻋﺎﻗﻼ -
ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺇﻧﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﺭﻯ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻮﻫﻜﻢ ،ﺇﻥ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﻏﻀﺎﺑﺎ ﻓﺎﻏﻀﺒﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ ،ﺩﻋﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ
ﻭﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ ﻓﺄﺳﺮﻋﻮﺍ ﻭﺃﺑﻄﺄﺗﻢ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺑﻜﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺩﻋﻮﺍ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﺘﻢ؟! ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺳﺒﻘﻮﻛﻢ
ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﺗﺮﻭﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﻓﻮﺗﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﺑﻜﻢ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﺗﻨﺎﻓﺴﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ".
) (٢ﺑﺎﺭﻛﻪ :ﺃﺩﺍﻡ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺸﺮﻳﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺮﺍﻣﺔ.
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﺹ .١٧٢
)(١٧٩
ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﻧﺼﺒﻪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻭﺻﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ :ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﻨﻌﻮﺍ،
ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻢ " ﺗﺜﺒﻴﺖ ﻻﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻜﺄﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﻮ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ،ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ).(١
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺪﻳﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﻦ
ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺍﺭﺗﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﺈﻧﻜﺎﺭﻫﻢ
ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺃﻧﻜﺮ ،ﻣﺎ ﺧﻼ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﻧﻔﺮ :ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ ،ﻭﺑﻼﻝ .ﺛﻢ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭﺍ ﺗﺎﺑﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ،
ﻟﻘﺪ ﺷﺎﺭﻛﻬﻤﺎ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﺩﻣﺸﻖ ،ﻻﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﻼﻻ ﺩﻣﺸﻖ،
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻧﻔﺬ ﻻﻣﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻃﺎﻋﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺪ ﺷﻬﺮ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻖ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﻮﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻘﺮﺑﻪ ﻭﻳﺪﻧﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻘﺪﻡ ﺇﺫﻧﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻠﺤﻖ
ﻋﻄﺎﺀﻩ ﺑﻌﻄﺎﺀ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺑﻼﻝ
ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ " ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﺘﻖ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ ".
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻃﻌﻦ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﺇﻻ ﺟﺎﻫﻞ ﺑﻌﻤﺮ ،ﺟﺎﻫﻞ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻄﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻧﻄﻖ
ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻓﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻧﻘﻀﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺧﻼﻓﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺗﻮﻛﻴﺪﻫﺎ ،ﺑﺤﺮﻑ
ﻗﻂ ،ﻭﻻ ﻭﻗﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻮﻗﻔﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻧﻜﺎﺭﻩ ]ﺃ[ ﻭﺗﺜﺒﻴﺘﻪ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﺎ،
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻧﺪﺭﻱ :ﺑﺄﻱ ﺳﺒﺐ ﺍﺩﻋﻮﻩ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﺫﻫﺒﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺭﺣﻤﺔ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ".
)(١٨٠
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻴﻜﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻌﻈﻤﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻮﺍﺟﻬﺘﻪ ﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻠﻒ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ.
ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ ،ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺩﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﻓﺄﻣﺬﻯ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺴﻬﺎ ،ﻓﺎﺳﺘﺤﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﺄﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﻓﺴﺄﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ:
" ﻳﻐﺴﻞ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻭﺃﻧﺜﻴﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺘﻮﺿﺄ " .ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﺍﻷﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ) (١ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻣﺘﻨﻜﺮﺍ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﺧﻄﺐ ﺿﺒﺎﻋﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺑﻌﺚ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻳﺨﺒﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺭﺿﻴﻪ ﻟﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻜﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻓﺮﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﺭﻫﺔ ،ﻓﺄﺭﺳﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻻ ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ :ﺃﻭﻟﻢ ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺃﻧﻨﻲ ﻗﺪ ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻲ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺭﺿﻰ
ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ؟! ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻓﺤﻤﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺛﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻗﻢ ﻓﺎﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻚ ﻭﻋﻦ ﺷﻤﺎﻟﻚ .ﻭﺍﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻚ
ﻓﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺳﻮﺩﻫﻢ ﻭﺃﺣﻤﺮﻫﻢ ) (٢ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻳﻦ " .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻭ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ ﻟﻴﺆﻛﺪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ
ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ.
ﻭﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻠﻤﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻓﺮﻭﻕ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺄﻣﺘﻨﻬﺎ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺗﺠﺮﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﻯ
ﺑﻼ ﺳﺒﺐ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺟﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺟﺰ.
--------------------
) (١ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ".
) (٢ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ ﻭﺍﻷﺣﻤﺮ :ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ.
)(١٨١
ﻭﻟﺮﺑﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﻠﻘﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻒ ،ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻭﺟﺪﻭﺍ ﻟﻌﻤﺎﺭ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺎﺳﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﻋﺪﺍﻭﺓ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﻴﺰﻫﻤﺎ ﺟﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﻃﻌﻦ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻃﻌﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ
ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ،
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﺟﺘﻬﺪﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺼﻴﺐ ﻟﻌﻤﺎﺭ ﻣﻮﻗﻔﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ﺃﻭ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻃﺎﻋﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺇﺣﺪﺍﺛﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﺮﻯ
ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺟﺮﻯ ،ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪﺭﺕ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻫﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﻭﺍﻝ ﺃﻧﻔﺬ ﻟﻄﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ؟! ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺭﻓﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺟﺮﻳﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻓﺠﻤﻊ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻃﻤﻌﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺣﺠﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺮﺡ ﻋﻦ
ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ) ،(١ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻟﻚ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻈﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ ﺿﻌﻒ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﻻﻳﺔ ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺷﻜﺎﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﺔ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﺃﻋﻀﻞ ﺑﻲ ) (٢ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﺔ ،ﺇﻥ ﻭﻟﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺗﻘﻴﺎ
ﺿﻌﻔﻮﻩ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻭﻟﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻗﻮﻳﺎ ﻓﺠﺮﻭﻩ ".
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻳﺨﻄﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻓﺔ ﺑﺘﻮﻛﻴﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻳﺄﻣﺮ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻄﺎﻋﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻭﺩ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﺑﺄﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻮﺡ ﺑﺘﺄﻣﻴﺮﻩ،
ﻓﻴﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺒﻲ ﻭﺇﺣﻼﻝ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻭﺝ .ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻜﺮﻩ ﺑﻮﻋﻴﺪ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭ
ﺑﺈﻳﻘﺎﻉ ،ﻓﺄﻱ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎﻩ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﻃﺎﻋﻨﺎ ﻃﻌﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺳﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻨﻴﻒ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﻳﻮﺏ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﺭﻱ ،ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻫﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺡ :ﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻋﻀﺎﺑﻰ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﻋﻀﻞ .(٤٧٩
)(١٨٢
ﻓﻲ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺑﻼﻝ
ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻭﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﻈﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﻋﻈﻤﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻗﻂ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺻﺎﻓﺤﻪ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻓﻌﺼﺮ ) (١ﻳﺪﻩ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﺪﺍ،
ﻓﺼﺎﺡ :ﻳﺎ ﻗﻔﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ! ﻭﻣﺴﺢ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻕ ﺑﺒﺎﻃﻦ ﺭﺍﺣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺮ
ﻣﻮﻋﻮﻙ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺭﺣﻀﺎﺅﻙ ) (٢ﻟﻮ ﻗﺪﻣﺖ ﺻﺮﻧﺎ ﻫﻜﺬﺍ -ﻭﺷﺒﻚ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻌﻪ -ﺃﻭﺟﻌﺘﻨﻲ! ﻓﺨﻼﻩ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻟﻦ ﺗﺰﺍﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺨﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻇﻬﺮﻛﻢ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﺸﺎﺏ :ﻏﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻚ! ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺍﺳﺘﻐﻔﺮ ﻟﻲ!
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺊ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺫﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﻭﻻ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ ،ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻃﻌﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻣﺘﻮﻋﺪﺍ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻋﺮﺿﺘﻢ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﻠﺘﻢ :ﺇﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ
ﻃﻌﺎﻧﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﺆﻛﺪﻳﻦ ﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ
ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﺧﺒﺮ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ،ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﺴﻚ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ
ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ) (٣ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻨﺎ ﻭﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺘﻔﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ) (٤ﻓﻘﺪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻌﺒﺮ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻀﺎﺀ :ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻕ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺛﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻰ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ "
) (٤ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٧٢
)(١٨٣
ﺃﻛﺜﺮﺗﻢ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺼﻨﻌﻮﺍ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ :ﺇﻧﻜﻢ
ﻗﺪ ﺃﻗﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﺠﺰﻳﺎ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺟﺰﺃ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻓﻴﺠﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻞ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺪﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ (١) ...ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﺠﺰ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ؟ ﻭﺃﻱ ﺿﺮﺏ ﻫﻮ؟ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻣﺘﺤﻦ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺘﺤﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﺘﺤﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻣﻦ ﻗﻴﺎﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ،
ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﻌﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺮﻳﻘﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻴﺮﺗﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻣﺘﻪ ،ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ﻭﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ -ﻭﻫﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻻ ﺗﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻃﻨﺎﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺸﺮﻳﻔﻬﺎ -ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻐﺎﺩﺭ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺤﺮﻑ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻐﻴﺮ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺛﺮ ) (٢ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻀﻌﻒ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﻈﻢ ﺻﻐﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺷﻨﻊ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻀﻌﻒ ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻓﺮﺍﻁ ﺟﻠﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ،
ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻭﺷﻜﻴﻤﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻈﺘﻪ ﻭﺧﺸﻮﻧﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺛﺒﺎﺕ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺣﻤﻠﻪ
ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻴﻪ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻦ ﺛﻼﺙ ) " :(٣ﻣﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ
ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﻤﺮ " .ﻓﺎﻟﻔﺼﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﻓﺼﻞ ) (٤ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ " :ﻟﻴﺲ
ﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺘﺮ ﺃﻛﺜﻒ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺳﺒﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺘﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻜﺸﻒ
ﺇﺫ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻳﻌﻘﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ".
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻏﺎﺋﺒﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﺍﺓ ،ﺃﻭ ﺣﺠﺔ
--------------------
) (١ﺑﻴﺎﺽ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ،ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺛﺮ "
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻓﺼﻞ ".
)(١٨٤
ﻭﺍﺭﺗﺪﺕ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻧﺘﻘﻀﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﻬﻮﺩ ،ﻭﻇﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﻕ ﻭﻣﺎﺝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻓﻮﺛﺐ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺽ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻒ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺪﺍﻡ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻄﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﺩﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺼﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻋﺎﺩﻩ ﻛﺄﺣﺴﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺗﻪ ﺑﺒﺬﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻓﻤﺎ ﺩﻭﻧﻬﺎ ) ،(١ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺻﻨﻴﻌﺎ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﻓﻌﻼ ﻛﺒﻴﺮﺍ.
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺑﺮﺟﻞ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻫﺘﻜﺖ ﺃﺳﺘﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺗﻘﻄﻌﺖ ﺃﻃﻨﺎﺑﻪ،
ﻭﻣﺮﺟﺖ ﻋﻬﻮﺩﻩ ) (٢ﻣﻨﻔﺮﺩ ) (٣ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺴﺘﻌﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﺴﺘﻮﺣﺶ )(٤
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﺑﻞ ﺧﺎﻟﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ) (٥ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﻭﺟﺪﻩ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻭﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺇﻻ ﺻﺮﺍﻣﺔ ﻭﺑﺼﻴﺮﺓ ﻭﺛﻘﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺨﻮﻑ ﻭﻻ ﻣﺘﻮﻗﻊ ﻗﺪﻭﻣﻪ ،ﻓﺮﺩ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ
ﻗﺎﻃﺒﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺮﺓ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺷﺤﺮ ﻋﻤﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻗﺎﺻﻲ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ ،ﻭﻗﻤﻊ
ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﻕ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺣﻮﻟﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺮ ﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ،
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻭﻃﺄ ﺧﻴﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺟﻨﺪ ﺍﻷﺟﻨﺎﺩ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺯﺓ ،ﻭﻭﻃﺄ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ،
ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﺑﻜﻞ ﻣﻜﺎﻥ .ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺄﺛﺮ ﺑﺪﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻨﺰ ﺩﻳﻨﺎﺭﺍ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻠﻒ ﺩﺭﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻔﻜﻪ ﺑﻐﻨﻴﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻞ ﻋﻤﺎﻟﺘﻪ ﻣﺮﺩﻭﺩﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﺖ ﻣﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﺭﺣﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺷﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ".
ﻓﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺟﺰﺃ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻨﻪ
ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺟﺰﺃ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻐﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻮﺡ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻣﺎﻧﻪ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻦ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺭﺝ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺩﻭﻧﻬﺎ ".
) (٢ﻣﺮﺟﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﻬﻮﺩ :ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻄﺖ ﻭﻗﻞ ﺍﻟﻮﻓﺎﺀ ﺑﻬﺎ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻣﻨﻔﺮﺩ " (٤) .ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻓﺼﻮﺍﺑﻪ ".
)(١٨٥
ﺑﺎﺏ ) (١ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻓﻌﻠﻨﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺩﺧﻠﻨﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﺒﻨﺎ.
ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻃﻔﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﻓﺎﻕ ﺗﻄﻠﺐ ﻟﻜﺮﺩﺍﺫ ﻭﻧﻜﺮﺩﺍﺫ ) (٢ﺇﺳﻨﺎﺩﺍ ).(٣
ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻳﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﺻﺒﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺃﺧﻄﺄﺗﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺪﻥ "
ﻓﻨﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺫﻫﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ
ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺍﺭﺙ ﺍﻷﻗﺮﺏ ﻓﺎﻷﻗﺮﺏ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺟﺪﺭ
ﺃﻻ ﻳﻄﻤﻊ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺫﺅﺑﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺩﻫﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﺎﺑﺮ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺗﻄﺎﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﺪﻫﻮﺭ.
ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻓﺎﺭﺳﻲ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ،ﻓﺘﻮﻫﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺣﻜﻢ
ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ ﻛﺤﻜﻢ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﺮ ) (٤ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻠﻚ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻋﺎﺩﺗﻪ ﻭﺗﺮﺑﻴﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻗﺪ ﺳﺎﺳﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺳﻴﺎﺳﺔ ﻭﺭﺗﺒﻮﻫﻢ ﺗﺮﺗﻴﺒﺎ،
ﻳﻘﻄﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻤﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺑﺂﻳﻴﻦ ) :(٥ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﻟﻠﺼﺎﻧﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﺘﻘﻞ ﻋﻦ
ﺻﻨﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﻟﻠﻜﺎﺗﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﺘﻘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺩﺓ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﻷﺑﻨﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻵﺑﺎﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻟﻴﻌﻮﺩﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﺎﺩﺓ
ﻳﺴﺘﻮﺣﺸﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ).(٦
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﺴﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻠﻜﻬﻢ ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻠﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻷﻫﻠﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ .ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ " ﺑﺎﺏ ﻳﻜﺜﺮ " ﺃﻭ " ﺑﺎﺏ ﻳﺘﺴﻊ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٧٢
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻧﻘﺺ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ،ﺗﻘﺪﻳﺮﻩ " ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪﺭﺕ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " ﺃﻭ ﻧﺤﻮﻩ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﺴﺮ :ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺋﻴﺲ ،ﻓﺎﺭﺳﻴﺘﻪ " ﺳﺮ " .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺪﻳﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﺮ ".
) (٥ﺍﻵﻳﻴﻦ :ﺍﻟﻘﺎﻧﻮﻥ ،ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ.
) (٦ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ :ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺣﺶ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﻪ :ﻟﻢ ﻳﺄﻧﺲ ﺑﻪ.
)(١٨٦
ﺃﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ .ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﺍﻻﺧﺬ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺳﺒﻴﻞ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﺫﻫﺐ ،ﻭﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﻋﻨﻰ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ
ﻟﻠﻌﺒﺎﺳﻴﺔ ﻻ ﻟﻠﻌﻠﻮﻳﺔ.
ﻭﺳﻨﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺳﻴﺔ ﻭﻭﺟﻮﻩ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻓﺮﺍﻏﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﺑﻐﺎﻳﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﻘﺼﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺇﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﻣﻦ
ﺑﻌﺾ ،ﻟﺘﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻚ ﺑﻌﻘﻠﻚ ،ﻭﺍﻷﻗﺎﻭﻳﻞ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﺓ
ﻣﺠﻠﻴﺔ ﻟﺬﻫﻨﻚ ،ﻓﻠﺌﻦ ﺃﻋﺠﺰﻙ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻷﺭﺟﺢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﻳﺔ ﺇﻧﻚ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﺳﺘﻨﺒﺎﻃﻪ ﻭﺗﺨﻠﻴﺼﻪ ﺃﻋﺠﺰ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻫﺸﻴﻢ .ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻮﺷﺐ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﻴﻤﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﻮﻳﻊ " :ﺃﺻﺒﺘﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺘﻢ ﻭﺣﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .ﻭﺃﺧﻄﺄﺗﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﻋﺰﻟﺘﻤﻮﻫﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺖ ﻧﺒﻴﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻭﺿﻌﺘﻤﻮﻫﺎ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻷﻛﻠﺘﻢ ﺭﻏﺪﺍ ".
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺣﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﺻﻠﺢ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻧﻬﻢ.
ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ :ﺃﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻛﺮﺩﺍﺫ " ﻛﻤﺎ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ،ﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﻧﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻗﺪﻭﺓ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ،ﻟﻢ ﺗﺴﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ
ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻥ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺻﺎﺭ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻃﻌﻨﻪ ﻭﺧﻼﻓﻪ ،ﻳﻨﻘﺾ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ،
ﻭﺗﺘﺨﺬﻭﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺼﻤﺎﺋﻜﻢ ﺣﺠﺔ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺻﻔﺘﻢ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻤﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻭﺻﻔﺘﻢ ،ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺏ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ،
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﺮﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ ﻓﺼﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ
ﻓﺮﺱ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻔﻬﻤﻬﺎ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻻﻋﺬﺍﺭ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻀﻰ ﺣﻖ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﺑﺸﺄﻧﻪ.
)(١٨٧
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺪﻕ ﻧﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﻓﺮﻁ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻉ ﻟﺒﻪ ) (١ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﻋﺰﻳﻤﺘﻪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ) (٢ﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻌﻼﻧﻴﺔ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺧﺎﻃﺮ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺑﻜﻞ
ﺷﺊ ﻳﻬﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ .ﻭﻳﻮﺿﺢ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻋﻈﺔ ،ﻭﻳﺒﻴﻦ ﻋﻦ
ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻈﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻻ ﻓﺴﻜﻮﺗﻪ ) (٣ﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻓﻬﻤﺖ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻫﻰ ﻻ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ) (٤ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ ﻗﻠﻴﻼ ﻭﻻ
ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻠﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺗﺮﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﺒﺮ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻟﻠﻔﺮﺱ ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺎﺿﺮﺍ ﻟﻜﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻓﻴﻔﺴﺮ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻧﻘﻠﺖ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻻ ﻳﻔﻬﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺗﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻬﺎ
ﺍﺳﺘﺮﺍﺑﻮﺍ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ ﻓﺴﺄﻟﻮﻩ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﻓﻔﺴﺮﻫﺎ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﺤﻜﺎﻩ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﻧﻘﻠﻮﻩ ﻟﻴﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻛﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺜﺮﺕ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺟﻌﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ،ﻭﻃﺎﻝ ﺳﺒﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺮﺓ
ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﻔﺎﺿﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ.
ﻓﻮﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺃﺳﺮﻉ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺣﻜﺎﻳﺘﻪ ،ﻟﺘﺴﺘﺸﻬﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﻯ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻘﻮﻯ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ،ﻭﺗﺸﺪ ﺑﻪ
ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻠﺐ :ﻣﺎ ﺟﻌﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻪ ".
) (٢ﺑﻌﺪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻭﺭﻗﺔ ﺑﺄﻛﻤﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﺒﺪﻭ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻗﻔﺰﺕ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺔ
ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻓﺮﺩﺩﺗﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻬﺎ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﻣﻨﺒﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻻ ﺑﺴﻜﻮﺗﻪ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻫﻮ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ".
)(١٨٨
ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻴﺔ :ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻗﻠﻴﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺳﻴﺤﻜﻮﻧﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻮﺍ
ﻧﻔﺲ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻟﻴﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺧﻼﻑ ،ﻭﻳﺪﻟﻮﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﻒ ،ﻭﻣﻤﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﺮﻓﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﺨﻼﻓﻪ.
ﻭﺃﺧﺮﻯ :ﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻃﻌﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺍ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ،ﻭﻫﺆﻻﺀ
ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﺷﻴﻊ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺃﻃﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ
ﺩﺍﺭﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺣﻜﻤﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻏﺒﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻫﺒﺔ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺃﺓ ) (١ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﺴﺮ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻐﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺃﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻃﺒﻘﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ
ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺧﻼ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﻧﻔﺮ :ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻢ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺠﺪﺓ
ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺸﻜﻴﻤﺔ .ﻭﻻ ﻭﺭﺍﺀﻩ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻳﻤﻨﻌﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﺟﺮﻩ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺯﺍﺟﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻓﻌﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺩﺍﻓﻊ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺎﻇﺮﻩ ﻣﻨﺎﻇﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﺠﺐ ﻣﻨﻪ
ﻣﺘﻌﺠﺐ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻓﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻓﻌﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺪﺍﺭﻳﺎ ﻳﺘﺴﻊ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ﻷﻛﺜﺮ ،ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﺍﺗﺴﻊ ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻌﺎﺗﺐ ﺧﺎﻟﺪﺍ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ .ﻛﻴﻒ ﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺪﺓ
ﺣﻜﻢ ) (٢ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﺟﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩﻩ ﻟﻤﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ؟! ﻭﻛﻴﻒ
]ﺳﻠﻢ[ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻣﻊ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺑﺄﻭﻩ ) (٣ﻭﺻﺮﺍﻣﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻮﻩ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺑﺎﻃﻼ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻓﺴﺪ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ
" ﻛﺮﺩﺍﺫ ﻭﻧﻜﺮﺩﺍﺫ ".
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺓ " ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺎﺀ ،ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﺠﻴﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺎﻟﻴﻪ.
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﺒﺄﻭ :ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮ ﻭﺭﻓﻌﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ.
)(١٨٩
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺧﺎﻟﺪﺍ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺪﻗﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ ،ﻓﻘﺪﻡ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺑﺎﻳﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ
ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺒﻠﻪ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻠﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﻏﻴﺮﻛﻢ؟ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﺭﺩﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﻻ،
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻇﻬﺮﺍ ﻗﺒﻮﻟﻪ .ﺛﻢ ﺟﻠﺲ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺄﻟﻪ ﺫﺍﻙ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺒﻴﻨﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﺫ ﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺪﺍﺭ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻣﻈﻬﺮﺍ ).(١
ﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭﻩ .ﻓﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ :ﺃﺗﺤﺐ
ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎﻳﻌﻚ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺣﺐ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺪﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ .ﻗﺎﻝ
ﻟﻪ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ :ﻣﻮﻋﺪﻙ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﻴﺔ :ﻓﺄﺗﺎﻩ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ ﻓﺒﺎﻳﻌﻪ.
ﻓﻔﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺟﻮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ:
ﻣﻨﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺧﺎﻟﺪﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻌﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺰﺀ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﻳﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻔﺴﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺗﻨﺘﻘﺾ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺐ ﻭﻃﺮﺍﺋﻖ ) (٣ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭﺍ ﻓﻲ
ﻗﻮﻡ ) (٤ﺩﻭﻥ ﻗﻮﻡ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻴﺲ
]ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭﺍ[ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻡ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭﺍ ﻓﻲ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻟﻠﺸﺮﻑ ﺃﻭ ﻟﻠﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﻓﺎﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ.
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻱ ﻓﻲ ﻭﻗﺖ ﺍﻟﻈﻬﻴﺮﺓ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﺠﺰﺀ :ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻃﺮﺋﻖ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻔﻲ ﻗﻮﻡ ".
)(١٩٠
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ؟! ﻻﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻣﻨﺎﻓﻴﺎﻥ ،ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺘﺮﺓ ،ﺃﻭ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ
ﻭﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﻠﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻻﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺇﻥ ﺻﻠﺢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ
ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻂ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻗﺼﻰ
ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ،ﻟﺼﻠﺢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻗﺼﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻛﻼﺏ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﺘﻴﻢ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺧﺎﻟﺪﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻤﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺰﺀ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ) (٢ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻻﻓﻀﻞ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻛﺎﺋﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ،
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻧﺼﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺩﻝ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﻴﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻨﺼﻮﺹ
ﺃﻭ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻟﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻻ ﻳﺼﺎﺏ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﺍﻟﻮﺭﺍﺛﺔ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﻻﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻮﺭﺍﺛﺔ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﻬﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٩٠
) (٢ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ "
)(١٩١
ﻣﻮﺿﻌﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﺑﺎﻥ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﻗﺮﺏ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ
ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ :ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺑﻜﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ،ﻟﻴﻬﺰﻫﻤﺎ
ﻣﻌﺎ .ﻻﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ﺍﻷﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﻩ ﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺼﺒﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺎﻣﺎﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻷﺣﺴﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺘﺨﺎﻳﺮ ﺑﺎﻻﻓﻌﺎﻝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﺎﺿﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﺰﺀ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻤﺎﻝ.
ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﺃﻭ ﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺬﻛﻴﺮ ﺑﻬﺎ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻨﺒﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺃﻗﺪﻡ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻗﺪﺭ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺃﺣﻴﺤﺔ ).(٢
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﺣﻴﺤﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻋﺘﻢ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺘﻢ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﺇﻛﺒﺎﺭﺍ ﻟﻘﺪﺭﻩ،
ﻭﺗﻔﻀﻴﻼ ﻟﺤﺎﻟﻪ ).(٣
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺎﻟﻰ ...ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺻﻲ.
ﻭﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻭﻗﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﺮ
ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﺃﺭﺩﺗﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺨﺒﺮﻭﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺧﻼﻑ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﺟﻠﻮﺳﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ،ﻓﻠﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﺍﺟﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﺎﺀ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺛﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ
ﻋﺎﺯﺏ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺧﻄﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺭﻳﺜﻤﺎ ﺫﻫﺒﺖ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺣﻤﻴﺘﻪ .ﻭﺍﻧﺠﺎﺏ ﻋﻨﻪ...
ﻭﺗﻴﻘﻆ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻮﻣﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻔﺎﺻﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﻭ ".
) (٢ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﺣﻴﺤﺔ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ .ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ .٢١٦٣
) (٣ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺸﺪﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺮﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻣﻞ :١٩٧
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﺣﻴﺤﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻌﺘﻢ ﻋﻤﺘﻪ * ﻳﻀﺮﺏ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﺍ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻭﺫﺍ ﻋﺪﺩ
)(١٩٢
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺄﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻉ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻠﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ:
" ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ!
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﺩﺍﺭﻫﻢ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﺿﻴﻔﺎﻧﻬﻢ ﻭﻧﺰﻭﻝ
ﻓﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﻫﻢ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻼﺡ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﺠﻠﺒﻴﻦ )(١
ﺟﺎﺩﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﺮﺷﺪﺍ
ﻭﻣﺤﺘﺠﺎ ]ﺣﺘﻰ[ ﺍﺳﺘﺒﺪﻟﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻀﺠﺔ ﺇﻃﺮﺍﻗﺎ ،ﺑﺎﻻﻧﻔﺔ
ﺧﻀﻮﻋﺎ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻄﻴﺶ ﺣﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺼﺘﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﺎ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﺎ.
ﻭﻛﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺋﻞ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺗﻌﺮﻳﻔﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺧﻼﻑ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺧﻄﺌﻪ ،ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺮﻏﻮﺏ ﻭﻻ ﻣﺮﻫﻮﺏ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ
ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺭﺣﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻗﻠﻴﻞ ﻭﻻ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ،
ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﻢ .ﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻳﺴﻴﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻋﺴﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﺬﻛﺮﻫﻢ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻣﻬﻤﺎ ﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺼﺎﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻻ ﻳﻔﻲ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻻ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﺩﺧﺎﻝ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻟﻮ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻒ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻭﺭﺿﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻭﺳﻜﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﻭﺻﻮﺍﺑﻬﻢ ) (٢ﻟﻢ ) (٣ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻴﺘﻬﻴﺄ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻄﻖ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﺑﺤﺮﻑ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻻ ﺟﺎﻫﻞ ﻭﻻ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻋﺼﻰ ﻭﻻ ﺣﺎﺳﺪ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺘﻔﻖ ﺇﻃﺒﺎﻗﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻜﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﺎﺳﺪ ﻭﺭﺍﺽ.
ﻭﻋﺼﻰ ﻭﺗﻘﻰ ،ﻭﺣﻠﻴﻢ ﻭﺳﺨﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻏﺎﻟﻂ ﻭﻣﺼﻴﺐ ،ﻭﻋﺎﻗﻞ ﻭﺃﺣﻤﻖ؟!
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﺠﻠﻴﺐ :ﺍﻟﺼﺨﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺼﻮﻳﺖ.
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ (٣) .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ".
)(١٩٣
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺟﺎﺣﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻖ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻣﺘﻪ ]ﻣﻦ[ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﺎﺣﺪﻳﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﻜﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻪ،
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﺟﺪﺭ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻋﻴﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻗﺎﻡ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻣﺎ ﻋﺪﻟﺖ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻋﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺴﻤﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻮﻳﺔ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻠﻤﺰﻙ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻗﺎﺕ ) " (١ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻨﺎﺩﻭﻧﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺭﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺮﺍﺕ )." (٢
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﺩﺍﺱ:
ﺃﺗﺠﻌﻞ ﻧﻬﺒﻲ ﻭﻧﻬﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﻴﺪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﻭﺍﻷﻗﺮﻉ )(٣
ﻓﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺼﻦ ﻭﻻ ﺣﺎﺑﺲ * ﻳﻔﻮﻗﺎﻥ ﻣﺮﺩﺍﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻤﻊ
ﻓﻲ ﺷﻌﺮ ﻟﻪ ﻃﻮﻳﻞ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ) (٤ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ :ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻨﺎﺀﺍ ﻭﺃﻋﻤﺎﻣﻨﺎ ﻭﻳﻨﻬﺎﻧﺎ
ﻋﻦ ﻋﺸﻴﺮﺗﻪ ) (٥ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﺌﻦ ﺃﺩﺭﻛﺘﻪ ﻷﻟﺠﻤﻨﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ!
ﻭﺧﺎﻟﻔﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺒﻴﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺤﺮ ﺍﻟﻬﺪﻯ ،ﻭﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
" ﻻ ﻧﻌﻄﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺔ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺮﺓ " ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ.
ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻃﻌﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﻦ ﺩﻻﻟﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻌﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﺎﻣﻼ ﻓﺎﺿﻼ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٥٨ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﻴﺎﻥ .٥٥ :٥
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺮﺍﺕ.
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺰﺍﻧﺔ .٧٣ :١ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﻴﺪ :ﺍﺳﻢ ﻓﺮﺱ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ .ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺼﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺰﺍﺭﻱ.
ﻭﺍﻷﻗﺮﻉ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺑﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﺷﻌﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻤﻴﻤﻲ .ﺃﻋﻄﺎﻫﻤﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻟﻔﺔ ﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺮﺩﺍﺱ ﺃﺑﺎﻋﺮ ﻓﺴﺨﻄﻬﺎ.
) (٤ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٢٦٣ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻴﻤﻪ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﻋﺴﺮﻩ "؟
)(١٩٤
ﻭﺇﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ
ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻃﺒﻘﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻏﺒﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻫﺒﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﺍﻏﺘﺮﺍﺭﺍ ﻭﻻ ﺇﻏﻔﺎﻻ ،ﻓﻠﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺬﻭﺫ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻭﻻ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺩﻻﻟﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻧﺘﻘﺎﺽ
ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻓﺴﺎﺩ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺟﺎﻫﻞ ﺑﻄﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ،
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﻧﺎﻗﻀﺎ ﻻﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻘﺾ
ﻭﺃﻓﺴﺪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﺍﻧﻜﻔﺖ ﺑﺄﻫﻠﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ) (١ﻭﻣﺎﺟﺖ ﺑﺴﺎﻛﻨﻴﻬﺎ...
ﻣﻦ ﻭﻻﻳﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺗﺪﺍﻋﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﻄﺎﺭﻫﺎ ،ﺗﺮﻳﺪ ﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺘﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻧﺎﺯﻋﻪ
ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ
ﻓﻨﺎﻫﻀﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺯﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ ...ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺞ ) (٢ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺠﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺴﻜﺮﻩ ،ﻓﺮﺩ ﺑﺄﺳﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺻﺮﻑ ﻛﻴﺪﻩ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺟﻠﺲ ﺧﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﺭﻉ ،ﺭﺿﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻝ] ،ﻓﻲ[ ﻋﺠﺐ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺗﻦ
ﻭﺳﺮﻭﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﺩﻉ ،ﻭﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﻴﺐ ،ﻭﺑﺄﻭ ﺍﻷﺭﻳﺐ ) .(٣ﺛﻢ ﺑﻌﺚ ﺭﺳﻮﻻ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ
ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺑﻌﺚ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻻ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﻪ.
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺪﻭﻉ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﺩﻉ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻌﺖ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻧﺘﺰﻋﺖ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻄﺶ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ.
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻼﻑ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ﺟﻨﺪﻩ ﻭﺗﺒﺪﻳﻞ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ .ﻭﻧﺼﺮﺓ ﺟﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺛﺒﺎﺕ ﻋﻬﺪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ،
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﺎﺭﺍ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻻ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻘﺺ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ،
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻠﻰ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﺞ :ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻂ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺢ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﺒﺄﻭ :ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺨﺮ.
)(١٩٥
ﻭﺿﻌﻒ ﺣﺰﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺬﺭ
ﻭﺍﻧﺘﺸﺎﺭ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﻞ ،ﻭﻇﻔﺮ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﻭﺷﻤﺎﺗﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺎﺩ،
ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻢ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺟﺌﺘﻢ ﺗﺸﺒﺜﻮﻥ ﺑﻄﻌﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ،
ﻭﻗﻌﻮﺩ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ،ﻛﺄﻧﻜﻢ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ،ﻏﺮﺍﺭﺓ ﻭﻧﻘﺼﺎ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻤﻞ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺮﻑ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻟﻀﻐﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺣﻘﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﻭﺭﻫﺎ،
ﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻨﺎﺀﻫﺎ ﻭﺇﺧﻮﺗﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﻤﺎﻣﻬﺎ .ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﺗﻌﺘﻠﻮﻥ ﻭﺗﺤﺘﺠﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻘﺾ
ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻄﻌﻦ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﻲ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻛﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻛﺨﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ .ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻟﻜﻢ ،ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻲ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻠﺘﺔ ".
ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻠﺘﺔ ﻭﻗﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﺮﻫﺎ " ﻓﺈﻥ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺍﺿﺢ .ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺔ.
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺒﻘﺎﺕ:
ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ،ﻧﺎﺻﺢ ﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻄﺎﻉ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻨﻌﻘﺪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻨﺤﻞ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺴﺖ
ﻏﺎﻳﺘﻪ ﺻﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻏﺎﻳﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﺎﺋﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ،
ﻟﻴﺰﺩﺍﺩ ﻫﻮ ﻭﻗﻮﻣﻪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺷﺮﻓﺎ ﻭﻓﺨﺮﺍ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻟﻪ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻓﻬﻮ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺗﻐﻨﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻤﻞ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺄﺳﻪ ،ﺿﻌﻴﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ،ﻣﺨﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺫﺍﺕ ﻳﺪﻩ
)(١٩٦
ﺑﻌﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﻤﺔ ﺣﺎﻣﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺪﻭﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺃﻣﻨﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﻻ ﻳﺄﻟﻮ ﺇﺿﺮﺍﻡ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ،
ﻭﺗﻬﻴﻴﺞ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﻠﺔ ،ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﻴﺞ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﻧﺠﺪﺗﻪ ،ﻭﺧﺮﻭﺟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻤﻮﻝ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﺎﻫﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻗﻼﻝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻛﺜﺎﺭ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺩﺧﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻷﻓﻮﺍﺝ .ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺣﻘﻴﻘﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﺮﻳﺢ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﺧﺎﻓﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﺑﺈﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ،
ﻛﻤﻨﺎﻓﻘﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺣﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﺩﻳﺔ ،ﻳﻌﻀﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ
ﺍﻷﻧﺎﻣﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﻴﻆ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺎﻧﺔ ﻻ ﻳﺄﻟﻮﻥ ﺧﺒﺎﻻ ،ﻳﺘﺮﻗﺒﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻭﺍﺋﺮ،
ﻭﻳﻨﻔﺮﺟﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﺭﺍﺟﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﺮﻳﺤﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﻣﺎﻧﻲ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻳﺪﻳﻦ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻏﻠﺐ ،ﻻ ﻳﺪﻓﻊ ﻣﺒﻄﻼ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﻴﻦ
ﻣﺤﻘﺎ .ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺻﻼﺡ ﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ ﻫﻮ ﺻﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺛﻮﺏ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺩ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ
ﻭﺍﻷﻣﻮﺍﻝ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻟﻮ ﺗﺎﺑﻌﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﻓﺮﻗﺔ
ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ،ﻟﻔﺘﺤﺖ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺑﺎﺑﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺴﺎﺩ ﻻ ﻳﻘﻮﻯ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻘﻊ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﺱ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺰﺭﺝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺨﺎﻑ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﻣﻦ
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻛﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺃﻣﺲ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ،ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺗﺎﻫﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺄﻇﻬﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﺸﻘﺎﻕ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ(١) ...
ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺟﻬﻠﻮﻩ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﺒﻮﺍﺭ ﻣﺎﻧﻊ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ
ﻭﺛﻮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺣﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻓﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺸﻮ
--------------------
) (١ﺑﻴﺎﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻛﻠﻤﺎﺕ.
)(١٩٧
ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﻀﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺗﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻣﻤﻦ ﺑﺪﻝ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺳﺎﻋﺔ ﺑﻠﻐﺘﻪ ﻭﻓﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ
ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﻧﺸﺮﺍ ) (١ﻭﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ ﺷﺘﻰ ،ﻭﺑﺄﺳﻬﻢ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻐﺰﻭﻫﻢ ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻣﺔ ﻗﺎﻃﺒﺔ ﻣﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺩﻳﺔ .ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﻤﺪ ﺑﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻧﻜﺚ )(٢
ﻭﻧﺼﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻭﺓ.
ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ،ﻟﻢ ﻧﻘﻠﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺄﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ
ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺔ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺔ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﺴﻰ ﻧﻘﻤﻪ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ
ﻭﻧﺰﻟﻨﺎ.
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺻﺪﻕ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﻌﺔ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻓﻠﺘﺔ ﻭﺃﻋﺠﻮﺑﺔ ﻭﻏﺮﻳﺒﺔ.
ﺇﺫ ﺳﻠﻤﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻬﻠﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺳﺮﺑﺦ )،(٤
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺩﻭﻧﻬﺎ ﺳﺘﺮ ﻭﻻ ﺭﺩ ) .(٥ﻓﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻳﻤﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﺮﻛﺔ ﺃﻧﻘﺬ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻬﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻬﻠﻜﺔ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻊ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺘﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺭﺩ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺼﺎﺑﻪ ،ﺑﻌﺪ
ﺗﺨﻠﻌﻪ ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺑﻪ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎﺗﺖ ﺍﻟﺴﺨﻴﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻭﺩﻋﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻮﺏ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻌﺘﻬﺎ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻟﻔﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻨﺸﺮ :ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻔﺮﻗﻮﻥ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ " :ﻓﺮﺩ ﻧﺸﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﺮﻩ " ﺃﻱ ﺭﺩ
ﻣﺎ ﺍﻧﺘﺸﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﺎﻟﺘﻪ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﺌﻦ ﺑﻜﺖ ".
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﺴﺮﺑﺦ :ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺳﻌﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺪﺓ ﺍﻻﺭﺟﺎﺀ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺳﻮﻍ ".
) (٥ﺍﻟﺮﺩ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺴﺮ :ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ .ﺃﻧﺸﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ:
* ﻓﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﻳﺎ ﺭﺩﺍ *
ﺃﻱ ﻣﻌﻘﻼ ﻳﺮﺩ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﺀ.
)(١٩٨
ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﻜﺮﻣﺔ ﻭﻋﻄﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺒﻮ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺧﺎﻟﻖ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺩ ﺇﻻ ﻧﺒﻴﺎ
ﺃﻭ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻧﺒﻲ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻲ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻠﺘﺔ ﻭﻗﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﺮﻫﺎ " ،ﻓﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻣﺮﺉ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻮﺍﻗﺐ ،ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ﺑﺄﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻦ ،ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻔﻘﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ،ﺣﺎﻣﺪ ﻟﺮﺑﻪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ.
ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻳﺨﻄﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﻰ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻓﻬﻢ ﺳﺮﻓﻬﻢ،
ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺪﺍﺀﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺧﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﺼﻴﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺍﻻﻓﺮﺍﻁ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻠﻮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺐ ،ﺃﻥ ﻳﻀﺎﺭﻋﻮﺍ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺎﺭﻯ
ﻭﺧﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻪ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺧﺮﺟﻮﺍ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ،ﻓﺒﺪﺭﻫﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻄﺒﺔ ﻣﺤﺘﺠﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ
ﻏﻠﻄﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻧﺤﺲ ﺇﻓﺮﺍﻃﻬﻢ ،ﻓﺤﻴﻦ ﺗﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺧﻄﺆﻫﻢ ﻭﺳﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﺃﺗﺎﻩ ﺁﺕ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﺓ
ﻓﻲ ﺳﻘﻴﻔﺔ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺳﺎﻋﺪﺓ ،ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ،ﻓﺮﺍﻋﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ،
ﻭﺻﻮﺭ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺰﻡ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺨﻮﻑ ،ﻓﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻧﻄﻘﻮﺍ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻋﻼﺟﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻄﻖ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﺀ ﻛﻞ
ﺳﻘﻢ ﺃﻫﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﺀ ﺳﻘﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻤﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﻴﻤﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺷﺎﺑﻬﻤﺎ
ﺳﻮﺀ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻭﺿﺎﻓﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺤﺲ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﻮﺓ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻌﻀﺎﻝ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﻫﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﺎﻡ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻌﻀﺎﻩ ".
)(١٩٩
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﻧﺘﻬﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻌﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻠﻠﻬﻢ،
ﻭﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺃﺗﺒﺎﻋﻬﻢ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺷﺊ ﺃﻫﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﺍﺭ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﺴﺘﻔﺤﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺮ ،ﻭﻳﺘﻤﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻡ .ﻓﻤﺮ ﺣﺜﻴﺜﺎ ﻭﺗﺒﻌﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻟﺤﻘﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ
ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻓﻴﻤﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﻠﻘﺎ ﻋﺰﻳﻦ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﺒﻜﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﺘﺤﺪﺛﻮﻥ،
ﻓﻴﻘﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺟﻠﻮﺱ ﺗﻔﺮﻛﻮﻥ ﺃﻋﻴﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﺎ
ﺍﻟﺒﺪﺍﺭ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﻮﺍﺭ ).(١
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﺪﺍﺭﻛﻬﻢ ﺑﺤﻴﻄﺘﻪ ﻭﻳﻘﻈﺘﻪ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﺣﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻄﺄ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﺭﻳﺜﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ
ﻳﺘﻄﺎﺭﺣﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﺜﻴﺮﻭﻥ ﺩﻓﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺘﻤﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺪ،
ﻭﺗﺘﻤﺜﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺻﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻈﻔﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻮ ﻫﺠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺿﻌﻒ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻗﺘﻬﻢ ﺩﻓﻌﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﺩﺍﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻼﺩ ﺑﻼﺩﻫﻢ
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﺩﻳﺔ ﺑﺎﺩﻳﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺗﺒﻊ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ
ﺍﻟﺬﺍﺋﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻢ .ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺱ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻃﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺪﺍﻭﻯ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻈﺮﻫﻢ
ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﺴﺎﺩﻫﻢ ﻭﻫﻠﻜﺘﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻸﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺗﺎﻫﻢ " :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺨﻠﺴﺔ ،ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ]ﺃﻧﺎ[ ﺃﻛﺮﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ
ﺃﺣﺴﺎﺑﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻳﻘﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺑﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺘﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﺻﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻴﻀﺔ
ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺗﻔﻘﺄﺕ ﻋﻨﻪ "؟
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻭﺃﺣﺴﺎﺑﻬﺎ ﻭﻋﺘﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻴﻀﺔ
ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺗﻔﻘﺄﺕ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻬﻢ،
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺒﺐ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﺗﻴﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٢٠٠
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﻜﻢ
ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻗﻄﻌﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻴﻨﺎ ﻓﻜﺎﻥ
ﻳﻮﺑﺦ ) (١ﺑﻪ ﻭﺇﻧﺎ ﻧﺤﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻧﺎ
ﻭﺇﻳﺎﻛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺪﺃ ﺑﺬﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻗﺒﻠﻜﻢ ،ﻓﻤﻨﺎ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﺍﺀ
ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻮﺯﺭﺍﺀ ".
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻳﺎ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﻛﺮﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺃﺣﺴﺎﺑﺎ،
ﻭﺃﻳﻘﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺑﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺘﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺃﺻﻠﻪ " ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺗﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﻟﻐﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺭﻳﺎﺳﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﺣﺴﺐ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺗﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﻟﺢ.
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﻄﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﻟﻠﺤﺴﺐ ﻗﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻠﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ
ﺳﺒﺒﺎ ،ﻓﺄﺗﺎﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺄﺗﺎﻫﻢ ) (٢ﻭﺃﺧﺬﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﻣﺂﺧﺬﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ
ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ،ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻗﻄﻊ ﻟﻠﺸﻐﺐ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺮﻉ ﻟﻠﻘﺒﻮﻝ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﺃﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺮﻳﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻳﺔ،
ﻭﺣﻤﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺩﻕ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺞ ﻭﺃﺻﻮﺑﻬﺎ .ﻭﻟﺮﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﻔﻰ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ) (٣ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ
ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ،ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ...ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺿﻴﻖ ﺻﺪﻭﺭﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻌﺔ
ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﺑﻞ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺃﻃﻠﻌﻬﻢ ﻃﻠﻊ ﺇﺭﺍﺩﺗﻪ ) ،(٤ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﺰﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺻﻼﺣﻬﻢ ،ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﺳﺮﻉ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻃﻠﺐ ﺑﻐﻀﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺪﻭﻫﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﺎﻫﻢ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻻﻫﺘﻤﺎﻡ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ " :ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺫﻱ ﻳﺰﻥ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ :ﺃﻃﻠﻌﺘﻚ ﻃﻠﻌﻪ.
ﺃﻱ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﺘﻜﻪ ،ﺍﻟﻄﻠﻊ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻜﺴﺮ :ﺍﺳﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻃﻠﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ .ﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ".
)(٢٠١
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺩﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺣﺴﺎﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺧﻄﺒﺔ ﺧﻄﺒﻬﺎ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ .ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻣﻪ:
" ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺑﺘﻘﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﻛﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻜﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻮﻯ ،ﻭﺃﺣﻤﻖ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻖ
ﺍﻟﻔﺠﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻲ ﻣﺘﺒﻊ ﻭﻟﺴﺖ ﺑﻤﺒﺘﺪﻉ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺣﺴﻨﺖ ﻓﺄﻋﻴﻨﻮﻧﻲ ،ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺯﻏﺖ ﻓﻘﻮﻣﻮﻧﻲ ،ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻉ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﺿﺮﺑﻬﻢ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺬﻝ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺸﻊ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺣﺸﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻤﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻼﺀ ،ﺃﻳﻬﺎ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺗﺒﻌﻮﺍ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻗﺒﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﻴﺤﺔ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺑﺔ،
ﻭﻳﻌﻔﻮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺣﺬﺭﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﻳﺎ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻟﻜﻞ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺁﺩﻡ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻧﺼﻴﺐ،
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺧﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺗﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻊ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺣﻤﻴﻢ ﻭﻻ ﺷﻔﻴﻊ ﻳﻄﺎﻉ ".
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﺍﻩ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺁﺩﻡ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺧﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﺗﻘﺎﻫﻢ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ:
" ﺇﻥ ﺃﻛﺮﻣﻜﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺗﻘﺎﻛﻢ " ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺍﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻊ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺣﻤﻴﻢ
ﻭﻻ ﺷﻔﻴﻊ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻣﺬﻫﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ﺑﻐﺎﻳﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺑﻪ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ .ﻓﻜﺄﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ
ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺴﺐ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻮﺟﺐ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻓﻘﺮﻳﺶ ﺃﻛﺮﻡ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ
ﺣﺴﺒﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ
ﻓﺎﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﻣﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﻪ
ﻣﻨﻜﻢ .ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﺭ ﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻋﺠﺰﻩ
ﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺮﺭﻫﻢ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺰﻝ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻌﻬﻢ ،ﻟﺤﻘﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺃﻋﻄﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺩﺓ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﺒﻘﻬﻢ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻨﻴﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻳﻦ
)(٢٠٢
ﺁﺑﺎﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﺃﺻﻨﺎﻣﻬﻢ .ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ
ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻴﻮﺗﻬﻢ ،ﺭﺍﻓﻬﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﺎﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻧﺎﻋﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﻢ،
ﺧﻠﻰ ﺳﺮﺑﻬﻢ ) (١ﻟﺬﻳﺬ ﻋﻴﺸﻬﻢ ،ﺛﻢ ﻫﺎﺟﺮﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺩﺍﺭﻫﻢ ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻀﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺣﺸﺔ ﺍﻻﻏﺘﺮﺍﺏ ،ﻭﻓﺮﺍﻕ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ
ﻭﺍﻷﺣﺒﺎﺏ ،ﻓﻠﻠﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻸﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺴﺎﺑﻘﺘﻬﻢ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻣﻮﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻟﺘﻘﺪﻣﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ.
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻟﻴﺴﻮﺍ ﻛﻐﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻛﻤﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻛﻔﺎﺭ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻛﻤﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ.
ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺄﻣﻠﺖ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻟﻸﻧﺼﺎﺭ " :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﻴﺲ
ﺑﺨﻠﺴﺔ " ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺎﻥ ،ﺭﺍﺑﻂ ﺍﻟﺠﺄﺵ ،ﻭﺍﺛﻘﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻋﺎﺭﻓﺎ ﺑﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻏﺎﻳﺘﻪ ﺗﻘﺮﻳﺮﻫﻢ ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ،
ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻼ ﺣﺎﺟﺔ ﺑﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺗﻌﺮﻳﻔﻬﻢ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ،
ﻻﻥ ﺗﺒﺮﻳﺰﻩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺧﻮﺽ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﻛﻼﻣﻬﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ
ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺮﺭﻫﻢ ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺘﻜﻠﻢ ،ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺃﻃﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ -ﻓﻼ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻋﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻧﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻﺑﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﺍﺀ ﻓﻠﻴﻜﻦ ﻓﻼﻥ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻭﺃﺣﻖ ﺑﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺃﻭ ﺑﻌﻤﻞ -
ﻓﺴﻜﺘﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﺎ ﺳﻜﺘﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﺎ ﺗﺴﻠﻴﻤﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺴﺮﺏ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﺢ :ﺍﻟﻄﺮﻳﻖ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ.
)(٢٠٣
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻗﺪ ﺳﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻟﻠﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﺀ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻔﺎﺭﻗﻮﺍ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻤﺎﺩﻭﺍ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻛﺎﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻃﺒﺎﻗﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻟﻴﻈﻬﺮ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻬﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺻﺮﺍﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻉ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ﻣﻨﺘﻪ،
ﻭﺟﻠﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺣﻴﺮﺗﻪ ﻭﺗﻀﺠﻌﻪ ) (١ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ
ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﻞ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻀﺎﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺳﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﻟﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻴﺮﺓ،
ﻭﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻮﺟﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻔﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻴﺔ ) (٢ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻼﻁ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ
ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ.
ﻓﻬﻞ ﺃﻋﻀﻞ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺍﺀ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺴﺪ ﺛﻐﺮﻩ ) ،(٣ﺃﻡ ﻫﻞ ﻧﺠﻢ ﺑﻼﺀ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺘﻮﻝ ﻗﻤﻌﻪ؟!
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﺃﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻄﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻋﻄﻴﺔ ﻭﻳﻔﻀﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻟﻨﺴﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻤﻠﻬﻤﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ
ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﻀﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻟﻤﻌﺎﻓﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺘﻠﻰ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻓﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻼﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻜﺮ
ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﺑﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻘﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻭﺍﺯﻧﺖ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻮﺍﺟﻞ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﻤﺎ ﻭﺃﻭﺍﺟﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺟﻮﻫﻬﺎ ،ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻻ ﻓﻀﻞ
ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺷﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻠﻮﻙ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻘﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺘﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻓﻰ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﻘﺺ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻘﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺣﻼﺗﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﻵﺟﻞ،
ﻛﺎﻟﻤﻌﺎﻓﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺘﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﻟﻚ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻤﻠﻮﻙ .ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻘﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻳﺐ
--------------------
) (١ﺗﻀﺠﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ :ﺗﻘﻌﺪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻢ ﺑﻪ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻐﻠﺒﺔ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺴﺒﺮ ﺑﻌﺮﻩ ".
)(٢٠٤
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺪ ﻓﺮﻕ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻌﻪ ﺷﺊ ﺇﻻ ﻛﻤﺎ
ﻧﻔﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻓﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻤﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺼﻠﺤﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻨﻊ ،ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ
ﺳﺒﺐ ﻟﻠﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻬﺎ ﺳﺒﺐ ﻟﻠﻘﺪﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﺎﻫﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺟﻬﺎ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﻫﻂ ،ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﺀ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﻓﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺪﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺜﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻟﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﻫﻂ ﺍﻟﺬﻣﻴﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺭﻭﺍﺋﻪ،
ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺘﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺪﻧﻪ ،ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻴﻞ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻴﺪ ،ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻐﻴﺐ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻤﺎ .ﻭﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻘﻊ
ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻤﺎ ،ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺪﺗﻪ.
]ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ[ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺗﻨﻔﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺴﺐ
ﻓﺘﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﺒﺒﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻢ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ
ﻭﻧﺒﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻠﻪ ) (١ﻧﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮﻯ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺴﺐ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻲ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻛﺐ )(٢
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺖ ﺑﻘﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﺃﺟﺪﺭ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻛﺐ،
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﺎﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﺎﺷﻤﻴﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﻋﺮﺽ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻧﺎﻟﻪ ﺑﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻟﺼﻠﺒﻪ ﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﺸﺨﺺ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﺎﺷﻤﻴﺔ ﺃﻭ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻄﻠﺒﻴﺔ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﺣﺪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ،
ﻭﺃﻣﻪ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺍﺑﻨﺔ ﺃﺳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻛﺐ :ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺖ ،ﻫﻮ ﻛﺮﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻛﺐ ،ﺃﻱ ﻛﺮﻳﻢ ﺃﺻﻞ ﻣﻨﺼﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ.
)(٢٠٥
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ،ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺼﻴﺮﻩ ﻣﺴﺘﺤﻘﺎ ﻷﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺎﺕ ﻭﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻣﺎﺕ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻤﻞ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﻨﺎ
ﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺴﺎﻭﻳﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺎﺷﻤﻴﺔ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﺃﻥ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻳﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺪ ﺣﺠﺠﺎ
ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﺘﻬﺎ ﻭﺳﻤﻌﺘﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻠﻬﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻮﺿﻊ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻟﺮﺑﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻟﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻠﺔ ) (١ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺗﻌﺮﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺻﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻃﻠﺒﺎ ﻟﻠﺘﻤﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺮﻳﻔﺎ
ﻟﻮﺟﻮﻩ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ﻛﻼﻡ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﻮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺑﺎﺏ ﻳﺸﺘﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﻐﻤﺾ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﻓﺮﻋﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ
ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺘﻔﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺭﺉ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺻﺎﺭ ﻭﺑﺎﻻ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻔﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﻛﻔﻰ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺗﻜﻠﻒ ﻏﺎﻣﺾ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ،ﻓﺄﺧﺒﺮﻫﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ﺑﺄﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﻭﺿﺤﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻓﻲ
ﻋﺪﻟﻪ ﻭﺣﻜﻤﺘﻪ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺘﻔﻌﻮﻥ ﺑﺼﻼﺡ
ﺁﺑﺎﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻀﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﺴﺎﺩ ﺭﻫﻄﻬﻢ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻭﻓﻰ.
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺰﺭ ﻭﺍﺯﺭﺓ ﻭﺯﺭ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ .ﻭﺃﻥ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻼﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻌﻰ )." (٢
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻥ ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻧﺒﻲ ،ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻢ
ﻧﺒﻲ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﺷﺊ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﺔ ".
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ ٣٩ - ٣٧ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﻢ.
)(٢٠٦
" ﻭﺃﻥ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻼﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻌﻰ " ﻓﺎﻟﺴﻌﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻂ
ﺩﻭﻥ ﺭﻫﻂ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻌﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ " ﻳﺎ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻭﻳﺎ ﺻﻔﻴﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻭﻳﺎ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻳﺎ ﻓﻼﻥ ،ﺇﻧﻲ ﻻ ﺃﻏﻨﻰ ﻋﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ".
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻫﻮ ﻋﺼﻰ ﻭﻋﺼﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺘﻪ
ﻏﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ]ﻟﻪ[ ﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻐﻔﺮ ﻟﻶﺧﺮ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﻭﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ
ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﺃﻋﻄﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﻄﻰ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ،ﻟﻜﺎﻧﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﻳﺎ ﻓﻠﻢ
ﻳﻄﻴﻌﺎ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺼﻴﺎ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﺎ ﺇﻣﺎ ﻃﻔﻠﻴﻦ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻣﺠﻨﻮﻧﻴﻦ ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻧﺎﺋﻤﻴﻦ،
ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺳﺎﻫﻴﻴﻦ ،ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻳﺐ ﻭﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻂ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻮ
ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻊ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺺ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻳﺐ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺺ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻴﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻌﻤﻪ ﻭﻋﻤﺘﻪ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻻ ﺃﻏﻨﻰ ﻋﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ.
ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺗﺘﻜﺎﻓﺄ ﺩﻣﺎﺅﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻳﺴﻌﻰ
ﺑﺬﻣﺘﻬﻢ ﺃﺩﻧﺎﻫﻢ ".
ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ :ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻛﺄﺳﻨﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻂ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺀ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﺑﺄﺧﻴﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺮﻯ ﻟﻚ ﻣﺜﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻯ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ.
ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﻠﻐﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺷﻴﺎﺥ ،ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺼﻦ
ﺑﻦ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺑﺪﺭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻳﻮﺳﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻳﻌﻘﻮﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ".
ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻭﺑﺮﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻨﺐ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺣﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻔﺴﻲ
ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺃﺣﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ".
)(٢٠٧
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻻ ﺗﺠﺰﻯ ﻧﻔﺲ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻔﺲ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ
ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺷﻔﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺆﺧﺬ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻋﺪﻝ ﻭﻻ ﻫﻢ ﻳﻨﺼﺮﻭﻥ ) ،" (١ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ ﻧﻔﺴﺎ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ،ﻻ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻧﺒﻲ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻳﻮﻡ ﻻ ﻳﻐﻨﻰ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ) ." (٢ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﻟﻰ
ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ،ﻓﻤﻨﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺀ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ .ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ
ﻣﻦ ﻓﻮﻕ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺤﺖ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻣﻠﻜﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻨﻘﻪ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻳﻮﻡ ﻻ ﻳﻐﻨﻰ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ " ﻓﻘﺪ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻢ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺜﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻳﻮﻡ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻊ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻭﻻ ﺑﻨﻮﻥ .ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻘﻠﺐ ﺳﻠﻴﻢ )" (٣
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻳﺎ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﺭﺑﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﺧﺸﻮﺍ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺰﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﺪ ﻋﻦ
ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻮﻟﻮﺩ ﻫﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ ﻋﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻩ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ) " (٤ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻥ ﻭﻋﺪ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻖ ﻓﻼ ﺗﻐﺮﻧﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻐﺮﻧﻜﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﻭﺭ ".
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺍﻏﺘﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﺗﻜﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﻟﺢ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺭﺩ ﺗﺄﺩﻳﺐ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺗﻌﻠﻴﻤﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺁﺩﻡ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﻴﻪ ﻗﺮﺑﺎﻧﺎ ﻓﺘﻘﺒﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻘﺒﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻪ ﺣﺴﺪﺍ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺑﻐﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻨﻔﻌﻪ
ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺁﺩﻡ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻟﻌﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺑﺮﺉ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ،
ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺟﺰﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻟﻤﻴﻦ )." (٥
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤٨ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺒﻘﺮﺓ.
) (٢ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤١ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺪﺧﺎﻥ.
) (٣ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٨٩ - ٨٨ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮﺍﺀ.
) (٤ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٣٣ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻟﻘﻤﺎﻥ.
) (٥ﻣﻦ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٢٩ﻓﻲ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺋﺪﺓ.
)(٢٠٨
ﻟﻜﻲ ﻻ ﻳﺘﻜﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻇﺎﻟﻢ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻐﺘﺮ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻧﺒﻲ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺭﺳﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﻮﻡ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺮﺝ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﺭﺍﺩﺗﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﺼﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﺼﻠﺒﻪ ﻟﻨﻔﻌﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﺣﺪ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻭﺍﺗﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻧﺒﺄ ﺍﺑﻨﻲ
ﺁﺩﻡ " ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺽ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺁﺩﻡ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺳﺒﻌﻴﻦ ﻗﺮﻧﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻳﻞ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻦ
ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ) ،(١ﻻﻥ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻌﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻻﺑﻦ ﻟﻠﺼﻠﺐ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ
ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻻﺑﻦ ﺍﻻﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻻﺑﻦ] ،ﻭ[ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﻨﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ،ﻻﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺃﺗﺎﻧﻲ ﻓﻼﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻓﻼﻥ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻻﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻦ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻭﺭﺑﻴﺒﻪ،
ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻻ ﻓﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻌﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺎﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﺡ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻗﺪﺭﺍ
ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻧﺎ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻋﺼﻰ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﻋﺼﻰ ،ﻛﻴﻒ ﻏﺮﻗﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﻏﺮﻕ )(٢
ﻣﻤﻦ ﻻ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻭﻻﺩﺓ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﻫﻠﻚ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻋﻤﻞ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ) ،" (٤ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻧﻮﺡ ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻟﻮﻁ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻦ ﺻﻠﺒﻪ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻛﻴﻒ ﻋﺮﻓﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﻋﺮﻑ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ".
) (٤ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٤٦ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻫﻮﺩ.
)(٢٠٩
" ﻛﺎﻧﺘﺎ ﺗﺤﺖ ﻋﺒﺪﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﻧﺎ ﺻﺎﻟﺤﻴﻦ ﻓﺨﺎﻧﺘﺎﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻐﻨﻴﺎ ﻋﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ )." (١
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺪﻉ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﻧﺎﺩﻯ ﻧﻮﺡ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ".
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ .ﻭﻟﻘﻮﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺎﻧﺔ ﻣﺨﺎﺭﺝ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻗﺪ
ﺗﻔﺠﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺻﺢ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻟﺒﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻓﻠﻢ
ﻳﻐﻨﻴﺎ ﻋﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﺒﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺢ ﻋﻦ ﺧﻴﺎﻧﺘﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻭﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﺒﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻐﻦ ) (٢ﻋﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ.
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ]ﻓﻲ[ ﻧﺴﺎﺀ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻃﻴﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻛﺢ ،ﻭﻃﻬﺎﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺍﺧﻞ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ.
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﺘﺮﻙ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻧﺒﻲ ﺗﺼﻴﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺗﻬﺠﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺼﻐﻴﺮ ﺑﻘﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﻣﻨﻈﻔﺔ ﻣﺼﻔﺎﺓ ،ﻻ ﺗﺤﻤﻞ ﺍﻷﻗﺬﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﻌﻠﻖ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻷﺩﻧﺎﺱ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻄﻮﻕ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻄﻠﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻻﻋﺘﻤﺎﺩ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻹﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺷﺠﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻞ ﺭﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﺓ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻲ ﺟﺎﻋﻠﻚ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ) " (٤ﻗﺎﻝ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺇﻣﺎ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﻴﻤﺎ
ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺒﺎ " :ﻭﻣﻦ ﺫﺭﻳﺘﻲ " ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ﻋﻬﺪﻱ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻟﻤﻴﻦ ".
ﻭﺃﺧﺒﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻬﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻟﻢ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻴﺮ
ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ١٠ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻢ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻢ ﺗﻐﻨﻴﺎ ".
) (٣ﻃﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ ﻳﻄﻮﻗﻪ :ﺃﻃﺎﻗﻪ ﻭﻗﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
) (٤ﻣﻦ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ١٢٤ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺒﻘﺮﺓ.
)(٢١٠
ﻓﻔﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻻ ﺗﻨﺎﻝ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﺭﺳﻠﻨﺎ ﻧﻮﺣﺎ ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﺭﻳﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ
ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻓﻤﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻬﺘﺪ ﻭﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﺎﺳﻘﻮﻥ ) " (١ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﺭﻳﺔ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﺫﺭﻳﺔ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﻧﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ،ﻓﻤﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻭﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻋﺪﻭ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﺎ ﻭﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ
ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻭﺳﻴﺔ ﺃﺻﻞ ﻟﻼﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻫﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺎﺻﺘﻪ
ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ﻭﺻﻨﻴﻌﺘﻪ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺘﺬﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻓﻀﻞ
ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺷﻴﺎﺕ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺴﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻦ ،ﻭﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻄﺎﺀ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻟﻰ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺯﻭﺟﻮﺍ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ " ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﻨﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻛﺢ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻬﺮ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ
ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ]ﻇﻬﺮ[ ﻣﻨﻪ -ﺧﻼﻑ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ -ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻠﻄﻜﻢ ﻭﺧﻄﺄ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ،ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻓﺮﺽ ﺍﻷﻋﻄﻴﺔ ﻭﺩﻭﻥ
ﺍﻟﺪﻭﺍﻭﻳﻦ ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺣﻜﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺰﺍﻡ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻻ:
ﻳﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺃﺩﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﻛﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻔﺮ ) ،(٢ﺇﻧﻚ ﺇﻥ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﺗﻜﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺎﺭﺍﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺵ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ:
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻔﺊ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ.
ﻓﻔﺮﺽ ﻟﻠﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﻣﻮﺍﻟﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻼﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﻣﻮﺍﻟﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻤﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٢٦ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ.
) (٢ﺑﻨﻮ ﺍﻷﺻﻔﺮ ﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻜﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﺟﻤﺔ ﻳﺎﻗﻮﺕ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻣﻲ .٢٠٩ :٢
)(٢١١
ﻓﻲ ﺳﺘﺔ ﺁﻻﻑ ﺳﺘﺔ ﺁﻻﻑ ) (١ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ،ﻭﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﺳﺎﻟﻢ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ
ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻟﻰ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﺛﻢ ﻓﺮﺽ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ
ﻭﻗﺮﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮ ،ﻓﻔﺮﺽ ﻷﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻌﻤﺎﺋﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ،ﻭﻫﻢ
ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻣﻀﺮ ﺃﺭﺣﺎﻣﺎ ﻭﻧﺴﺒﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﻏﺒﻬﻢ ﻭﺯﺍﺩﻫﻢ ﻟﺒﻌﺪ
ﺩﺍﺭﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮ ) ،(٢ﻭﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻗﺮﻯ ﻭﻣﺰﺍﺭﻉ ،ﻓﺘﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﻣﻄﻨﺒﻬﻢ )(٣
ﺭﻏﺒﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ.
ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﻟﻤﻀﺮ ﻭﺑﻠﻰ ﻭﻛﻠﺐ ﻭﻃﺊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺜﻠﺜﻤﺎﺋﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﺭﺑﻌﻤﺎﺋﺔ ،ﻓﺘﺴﻮﻳﺘﻪ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻀﺮ ﻭﻃﻴﺊ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﻟﺮﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻤﺴﻴﻦ ﻭﻣﺎﺋﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﺎﺟﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻃﻨﺎﺏ
ﺑﻴﻮﺗﻬﻢ .ﻭﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﻣﺲ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺑﻤﻀﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻠﻰ ﻭﻃﻴﺊ.
ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﻻﺷﺮﺍﻑ ﺍﻷﻋﺎﺟﻢ :ﻟﺪﻫﻘﺎﻥ ﻧﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ) ،(٤ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻴﺮﻭﺯ ﺑﻦ
ﻳﺰﺩﺟﺮﺩ ،ﻭﻻﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺒﺮ ﺧﺎﻥ ) (٥ﻭﻟﺨﺎﻟﺪ ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻞ ﺍﺑﻨﻲ ﺑﺼﺒﻬﺮﻯ )(٦
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻄﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻷﺑﻲ ﻳﻌﻠﻰ ٢٢٢ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺧﻤﺴﺔ ﺁﻻﻑ ﺩﺭﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺳﻨﺔ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻨﺐ :ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻹﻗﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻃﻨﺐ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻜﺎﻥ ﺗﻄﻨﻴﺒﺎ :ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﻪ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﺼﺒﻬﻢ "
ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ.
) (٤ﻧﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ :ﻛﻮﺭﺓ ﻭﺍﺳﻌﺔ ﺑﺒﻐﺪﺍﺩ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﺸﺘﻤﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻠﺜﻤﺎﺋﺔ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺔ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ
ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ .ﻳﺎﻗﻮﺕ.
) (٥ﻛﺬﺍ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " ﺍﻟﻨﺨﻴﺮﺟﺎﻥ " .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ،٢٤٢٢ - ٢٤١٩ ،١٠٣٨ :١
٢٦٢٧ ،٢٥٩٩ ،٢٤٣٩ﻃﺒﻊ ﻟﻴﺪﻥ.
) (٦ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ .٢٦٣ :٢
)(٢١٢
ﺩﻫﻘﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﻠﻮﺟﺔ ،ﻭﻟﺒﺴﻈﺎﻡ ﺑﻦ ﻧﺮﺳﻲ ﺩﻫﻘﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﺑﻞ ،ﻭﺟﻔﻴﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺩﻱ،
ﻭﺭﻓﻴﻞ ) (١ﻓﻲ ﺃﻟﻔﻴﻦ ﺃﻟﻔﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﻟﻠﺒﻮﺳﺤﺘﺎﻥ ) ،(١ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺮﻣﺰﺍﻥ ،ﻭﻟﺴﻴﺎﻩ ﻭﺧﺶ ) (٢ﻭﺃﻣﻘﻼﺱ
ﻓﻲ ﺃﻟﻔﻴﻦ ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻤﺎﺋﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻗﺼﻰ ﺷﺊ ﺃﺧﺬﻩ ﻋﺮﺑﻲ ﻗﻂ ،ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ،
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻗﻮﻡ ﺃﻋﺎﺟﻢ ﺃﺷﺮﺍﻑ ،ﺃﺣﺒﺒﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺗﺄﻟﻒ ﺑﻬﻢ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ.
ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﻟﺴﻮﻯ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺷﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺳﺒﻰ
ﻭﺃﺳﺮ ﻭﺧﺮﺝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﻠﺢ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺋﻴﺴﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﺋﺪﻩ ،ﻓﻲ ﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻓﺮﺽ ﻟﻸﻋﺮﺍﺏ
ﻭﺣﺎﺷﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻋﻮﺍﻣﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺑﻰ ﺇﻻ
ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﻭﺷﻘﻪ ﻭﻧﺎﺣﻴﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﺍ ﺑﺼﻴﺮﺓ
ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ﻗﺎﺗﻞ ﻣﺤﺎﻣﺎﺓ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺴﺒﻪ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻣﻨﺖ ﺗﺤﻮﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﺪﻭﻩ
ﻓﺄﻗﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻮﺍﺩ ﻭﻳﻜﺜﻒ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺎﻝ
ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻓﻬﻢ ﻟﻠﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﻤﻲ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺬﻯ ﺑﺼﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺩﺍﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺤﺎﻣﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺴﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﺍﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ
ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﻮﻝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻴﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺭﺓ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺟﺪﺭ
ﺃﻻ ﻳﻔﻬﻢ ﺗﻨﺰﻳﻼ ﻭﻻ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻼ.
ﻭﺣﻤﻞ ﻗﻮﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺤﺮ ﻭﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺮ ،ﻓﻔﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻭﻧﺔ،
ﻭﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻘﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﺳﻴﺎﻩ ﻭﺧﺶ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﻦ .ﺍﺳﺘﻴﻨﺠﺎﺱ .٧١٣ﻭﻫﻮ ﺳﻴﺎﻭﺧﺶ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻬﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺑﻬﺮﺍﻡ ﺷﻮﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺯﻱ .ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ .٢٥٣ :٤
)(٢١٣
ﻓﻬﻜﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻋﻄﺎﻳﺎﻩ ،ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﺭﻭﺕ
ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺧﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﻓﻌﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺃﺛﺮ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻬﺠﻴﻨﻪ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ .ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻧﺪﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﺘﺎﻝ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ﻭﺍﻷﺳﺎﻭﺭﺓ ﺗﺜﺎﻗﻠﺖ ﻋﻦ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺏ ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻫﻴﺒﺔ ﻟﻨﺎﺣﻴﺔ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﺱ ،ﻭﺧﻔﻮﺍ ﻟﻐﺰﻭ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ ﻭﻧﺸﻄﻮﺍ ﻟﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺍﻧﺘﺪﺏ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﻔﻲ
ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻧﺘﺪﺏ ،ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﻋﻘﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ،
ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺪﺭﻳﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻫﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺗﺼﻐﻴﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﻭﺗﻬﺠﻴﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻂ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭﻫﻢ ﻟﻴﺮﺩ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﻮﺱ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ.
ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺑﺮ.
ﺃﻭ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺳﻤﻊ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻜﺸﻮﺡ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﻋﺎﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺱ :ﻭﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﻛﺎﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺣﺪﻳﺪﺍ ﻭﻻ ﻋﺪﻳﺪﺍ! ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺳﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺷﻬﺪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺳﻴﺔ ﺣﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ ،ﻭﻗﻴﺲ
ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﻨﺘﻬﺮﺍ ﻟﻪ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺯﺑﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺯﺑﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ )!(١
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺎﻳﻦ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﺎﻳﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺪﺑﻴﺮ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺫﻫﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻗﻴﺲ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﺗﺮﻛﻪ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺨﻔﺎﻑ ﺑﺄﻗﺪﺍﺭ
ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ ﻭﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺍﺣﺘﻘﺎﺭﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻹﺯﺭﺍﺀ ﺑﻬﻢ ،ﺑﻌﺪ ﺟﻠﻮﻻﺀ ).(٢
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺰﺑﺪ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻔﺘﺢ :ﺍﻟﺮﻓﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻄﺎﺀ.
) (٢ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﻌﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺱ ﺳﻨﺔ ١٦ﻗﺘﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺃﻟﻒ.
ﻣﻌﺠﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ .١٧٩ :٤
)(٢١٤
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺑﺴﻴﻒ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ﻭﻗﺒﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﻄﻘﺘﻪ ﺃﻟﺒﺴﻪ ﺳﺮﺍﻗﺔ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﺑﻦ ﺟﻌﺸﻢ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺃﺩﺑﺮ ،ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ
ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﺮﺏ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﻣﻦ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ﻭﺁﻝ ﻛﺴﺮﻯ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺷﺮﻓﺎ ﻟﻚ ﻭﻟﻘﻮﻣﻚ ،ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ
ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﻴﻨﻄﻖ ﺑﺤﺮﻑ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﺣﺮﺑﻬﻢ ﻣﺨﻮﻓﺔ،
ﻭﻧﻔﻮﺱ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻫﺎﺋﺒﺔ.
ﻭﻫﻜﺬﺍ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻔﺎﺀ ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻻ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺇﺫﺍ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﻬﻤﻮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺘﺮﺿﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻄﺌﻮﻫﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻬﻠﻮﻫﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﺴﺮ.
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺟﻴﻼ ﺃﺟﻬﻞ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺷﺒﻬﻪ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻳﻨﺘﺤﻞ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ
ﻭﻳﻨﺼﺐ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻟﻠﺨﺼﻮﻣﺎﺕ .ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﺴﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ
ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺳﻴﺔ ﻭﺃﻭﺻﺎﻩ ،ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﻴﺐ ) (١ﺇﻥ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺰ ﻭﺟﻞ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺣﺐ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﺣﺒﺒﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻓﺎﻋﺘﺒﺮ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺘﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﺧﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺫﺍﺕ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻓﺄﻱ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﻭﺃﺩﻝ ،ﻭﺃﻱ ﻓﻌﻞ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ،ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻗﺎﻭﻳﻞ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻷﻓﺎﻋﻴﻞ.
--------------------
) (١ﻫﻮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﻴﺐ -ﺃﻭ ﺃﻫﻴﺐ -ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻼﺏ
ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٥٦
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻻﻭﺍﻳﻞ ".
)(٢١٥
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺧﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺧﺬ
ﺑﻴﺪﻩ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺧﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﺎﻫﻰ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻠﻴﺄﺕ ﻛﻞ ﺍﻣﺮﺉ ﺑﺨﺎﻟﻪ ".
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻛﺢ " ﻟﻴﺲ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺼﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻗﺪ
ﺗﺮﻛﺘﻪ ،ﺃﻻ ﺇﻧﻲ ﻟﺴﺖ ﺃﺑﺎﻟﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻜﺤﺖ ،ﻭﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻜﺤﺖ " ﻓﺈﻥ
ﺷﺌﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ :ﻭﺃﻱ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻭﺟﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺒﺎﻟﻲ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻜﺢ ﻭﺃﻧﻜﺢ؟
ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻘﻴﺔ ﻋﺼﺒﻴﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ.
ﻓﻤﺎ ﺗﺒﺮﺃ ) (١ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺟﻌﻠﻪ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﺧﺼﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺁﺏ ﻟﻪ
ﻭﻧﺎﻩ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺯﺍﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺍﻛﺘﺮﺙ ﻟﺒﻘﻴﺔ ﻋﺎﺩﺓ
ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺭﺍﻏﺐ ﻋﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻏﺐ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻓﺮﺽ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻟﻔﻴﻦ ﻭﻓﺮﺽ ﻷﺳﺎﻣﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺃﻟﻔﻴﻦ ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻤﺎﺋﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻗﺮﺷﻲ ﻭﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ:
ﺃﺗﻔﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻄﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺳﻴﺎﻥ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺐ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻨﻚ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻚ.
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﺪﻭﺭ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺣﻴﺜﻤﺎ ﺩﺍﺭ؟!
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻷﺑﻴﻪ ،ﺗﻔﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻄﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﻧﺎ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺳﻴﺎﻥ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻨﺎﺀ
ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻭﺻﻴﺘﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺻﻬﻴﺐ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﺒﺮﻯ ".
) (٢ﻟﻢ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻑ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ.
)(٢١٦
ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻭﺻﻬﻴﺐ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺪﻋﺎﻥ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺻﻬﻴﺒﺎ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ:
" ﺑﻼﻝ ﺳﺎﺑﻖ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ .ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺳﺎﺑﻖ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ،ﻭﺻﻬﻴﺐ ﺳﺎﺑﻖ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ ".
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺘﻠﻒ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﻴﻬﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺧﺮﻭﺝ ﺁﺫﻧﻪ ﻭﺣﺎﺟﺒﻪ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺟﻠﻮﺱ
ﺑﺒﺎﺑﻪ ﻳﻨﺘﻈﺮﻭﻥ ﺇﺫﻧﻪ ،ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ،ﻭﺣﻜﻴﻢ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺰﺍﻡ .ﻭﺍﻷﻗﺮﻉ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺑﺲ ،ﻭﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺼﻦ ،ﻓﻨﺎﺩﻯ ﺑﺄﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﻮﺗﻪ:
ﺃﻳﻦ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ ﺑﻼﻝ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ ﺻﻬﻴﺐ؟ ﺃﻳﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ؟ ﻓﻴﻨﻬﻀﻮﻥ ﻣﻜﺮﻣﻴﻦ ﻭﻣﻔﻀﻠﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻘﺪﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻠﺔ ﻭﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺩﺓ ﺟﻠﻮﺱ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻄﻘﻮﻥ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻜﺮﻭﻥ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺜﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺗﻤﻌﺮﺕ ﻭﺟﻮﻫﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻣﺘﻘﻌﺖ ﺃﻟﻮﺍﻧﻬﻢ،
ﻓﺄﺑﺼﺮﻫﻢ ﺳﻬﻴﻞ ﻓﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻬﻢ ﻭﻧﺰﻝ ﺑﻬﻢ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻠﻴﻤﺎ ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺘﻤﻌﺮ ﻭﺟﻮﻫﻜﻢ ﻭﺗﺘﻐﻴﺮ ﺃﻟﻮﺍﻧﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺮﺟﻌﻮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻼﺋﻤﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ؟!
ﺩﻋﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﺩﻋﻮﺍ ،ﻓﺄﺑﻄﺄﻧﺎ ﻭﺃﺳﺮﻋﻮﺍ ،ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﺣﺴﺪﺗﻤﻮﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺏ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻟﻠﺬﻱ
ﺃﻋﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ )!(١
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻮﻗﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﻛﺒﺎﺭ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺟﻠﺔ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻮﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺒﺮﻩ ﻳﻨﺘﻈﺮ
ﺧﺮﻭﺝ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ " :ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﺎﻟﻢ ﺣﻴﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺨﺎﻟﺠﻨﻲ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ " .ﻭﺳﺎﻟﻢ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ
ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻠﻴﻔﺎ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ .ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ،ﻻﻥ ﺣﻠﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٧٩ - ١٧٨
)(٢١٧
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻻ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺎﻋﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﻋﺮﺍﺑﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺼﺒﻴﺔ.
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺷﺊ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ! ﻭﺇﺫﺍ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﻪ ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ؟!
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺇﻥ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺼﻴﻨﺎﻩ ﻛﺜﺮ ﻭﺷﻐﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ .ﻭﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻣﻘﻨﻊ
ﻟﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻘﻨﻌﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻟﻪ ﻣﺄﻟﻔﺎ.
ﻓﻬﻞ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻜﻰ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ،ﺃﻭ ﺷﻄﺮﻩ؟!
ﺇﻥ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺪﻳﻜﻢ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻨﻲ ﻗﺮﺃﺕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺩﻓﺘﻲ
ﺍﻟﻤﺼﺤﻒ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺃﺟﺪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻓﻀﻼ ".
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺇﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺧﻼﻓﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻣﻠﻚ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺧﻤﺲ ﺣﺠﺞ ،ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻑ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺼﻔﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻻ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﻌﻄﺎﺀ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺩﻭﺍﻭﻳﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﺑﺪﻝ ﺃﻋﻄﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﻓﺮﻭﺿﻪ ﻭﺣﻮﻟﻬﺎ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﺃﻭ ﻧﻄﻖ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺤﺮﻑ ،ﺃﻭ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻫﻴﺌﺘﻪ ) (١ﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻄﻖ ﺑﻪ
ﺧﻄﻴﺒﺎ ﻭﻣﺤﺘﺠﺎ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺑﺮ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ؟!
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻻ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺻﻨﻴﻌﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﺳﻌﻴﺎ -ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﻳﻌﺪﻝ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺪﺍﺩ -ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻗﺘﻪ
ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻫﻨﻪ ".
)(٢١٨
ﺣﻤﻴﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺬﻛﺮ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻣﺘﻦ
ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﻪ ﻭﻣﺼﺎﻫﺮﺗﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺃﺧﺮﺟﺘﻜﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻓﺮﺍﻁ
ﻛﻠﻪ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺤﺒﻮﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻭﺗﻔﻀﻠﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻠﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺗﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ
ﻟﻠﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﻭﻟﺪ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﻭﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻏﻀﺒﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻐﻀﺒﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﺘﻢ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ،
ﻭﻓﻀﻠﺘﻢ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ؟!
ﻓﻔﻀﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﻗﺼﻲ ،ﻭﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﻗﺼﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ
ﻛﻌﺐ ،ﻭﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﻛﻌﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ
ﻣﻀﺮ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺳﺎﺋﺮ ﻣﻀﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻟﺪ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ،ﻭﻭﻟﺪ
ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻗﺤﻄﺎﻥ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻓﻔﻀﻠﻮﺍ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ .ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ
ﻗﺪ ﺩﺧﻠﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻋﺒﺘﻢ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻔﻀﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ -ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻔﻀﻠﻮﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﻛﻤﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﺘﻢ -ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻜﻢ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﻗﺪ ﺍﻋﺘﺮﺽ ﺩﻭﻥ
ﻣﺸﻴﺌﺘﻜﻢ ﻭﻗﻀﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺎﺋﻼ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻟﺼﻠﺒﻪ
ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ) (١ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺃﻣﺲ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻜﻢ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ :ﻓﻤﻦ ﺃﻳﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ "
)(٢١٩
ﺟﺪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺏ؟ ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻜﻢ ) :(١ﻭﻛﻴﻒ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﻔﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﺪ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺃﺏ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ؟
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﻄﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﻭﺣﻖ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻟﺪﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ،
ﻭﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﺃﺧﻮﺍﻥ ﻻﻡ ﻭﺃﺏ؟! ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻋﺮ:
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺘﻠﻮ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﺎ * ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻻﻡ ﻭﺃﺏ
ﻓﺎﺟﻌﻠﻮﻩ ﻳﺘﻠﻮ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻖ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻕ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ .ﻭﺇﺫ ﺟﺎﺯ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ
ﺃﻥ ﺗﺘﺨﻄﻰ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ]ﺫﻟﻚ[ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺥ ﻟﻼﻡ ﻭﻟﻸﺏ
ﺛﻢ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻋﺼﺒﻴﺔ ﻭﺣﻤﻴﺔ ،ﺭﺩﻩ
ﻟﺴﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺧﻄﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﻄﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺟﻮﺍﺑﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻠﻲ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ
ﻣﻮﺿﻌﺎ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " :ﻳﺎ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻻ ﺗﺒﻐﺾ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻓﺘﺒﻐﻀﻨﻲ " .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻣﺮﻧﺎ
ﺃﻥ ﻧﺄﺗﻢ ﺑﻜﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺆﻣﻜﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺰﻭﺟﻜﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺘﺰﻭﺝ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ.
ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻣﺘﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻋﺼﺒﻴﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻛﺢ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻤﻨﻊ ﺍﻻﺷﺮﺍﻑ ﻋﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﻧﺴﺎﺋﻬﺎ ﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻢ ،ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻴﺒﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺁﺩﺍﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻘﺼﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺩﻳﺎﻧﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺎﺏ ﺻﺮﻳﻌﺎ:
" ﺷﻔﻴﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﻭﺟﺪﻋﺖ ﺃﻧﻔﻰ ،ﻗﺘﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﺎﺩﻳﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻜﻢ ".
)(٢٢٠
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻨﻲ ) (١ﺍﻷﻋﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺟﻤﺢ! " ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺭﺟﻞ :ﻟﺸﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺟﺰﻋﺖ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ! ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﻋﻨﻰ ﻭﻋﻨﻪ ﻧﺴﻮﺓ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻤﻦ
ﻋﻨﻚ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﻟﻸﻣﻬﺎﺕ ﻗﺪﺭﺍ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻟﻠﻤﻨﺎﻛﺢ
ﺧﻄﺮﺍ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻛﺮﺍﻫﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺰﻭﺝ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺿﺒﺎﻋﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻀﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﻣﺘﻘﻠﺒﻬﻢ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﻞ ﺳﻤﺎﻋﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﻞ
]ﺇﻟﻰ[ ﺍﺳﺘﺼﻐﺎﺭ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﺃﻭ ﺗﻀﻠﻴﻠﻪ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻓﻴﻬﻠﻚ ﻫﻼﻙ
ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻏﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻪ ﻷﻧﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ
ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﺤﻠﻮﺍ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺼﺒﻴﺔ ﺭﺟﻼﻥ :ﺭﺍﻓﻀﻲ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﻘﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﻢ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻟﻲ ،ﻭﻣﺘﻌﺮﺏ ﻋﺮﻑ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻗﺪﻭﺓ ،ﻓﻨﺤﻠﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ
ﻟﻪ ﺣﺠﺔ .ﻓﺎﻋﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺷﺎﺩﺍ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺴﻘﻴﻔﺔ ،ﻓﺈﻥ
ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺻﺎﺩﻗﻴﻦ ﻓﺈﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻟﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﺮﻉ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ .ﻭﺗﻬﻴﻴﺞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﺡ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺏ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ .١٩٣
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﺼﻠﺒﻪ ".
)(٢٢١
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻋﻈﺎ ﻭﻣﺤﺘﺠﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺴﻜﻨﺎ ﻭﻣﺼﻠﺤﺎ ﺑﺄﻟﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻬﺪﻯ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﻤﻞ ﺳﻮﻃﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻣﻌﺎﺯﺓ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﻟﺒﺔ ) .(١ﻓﻤﺎ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺧﺮﻭﺝ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ ﺷﺎﺩﺍ ﻧﺤﻮﻩ؟! ﺑﻞ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﻭﻻﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻈﻨﻪ ﺑﻪ،
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﻣﺤﺘﺠﺎ ﻭﻣﺼﻠﺤﺎ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺃﺑﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺠﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻋﺬﺭ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﻋﻈﺘﻪ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺮ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻧﺎﺟﻌﺎ ) (٢ﻭﻻ ﻣﻘﺒﻮﻻ ،ﻭﺭﺃﻯ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺪ ﺑﻪ،
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺭﺍﺀ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺳﻞ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻟﻴﺆﻛﺪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻟﻴﻮﻃﺊ
ﻟﻪ ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ؟! ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﻏﻀﺐ ﻟﺼﺮﻑ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻛﺒﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﺷﻴﺨﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺻﺮﻓﻬﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ؟! ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺸﺪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﻧﻲ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺹ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺮﻩ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﺒﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻧﺸﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻟﻠﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ " :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻱ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ " ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺘﺞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻑ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻀﻞ
ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ.
ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻧﺸﻚ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻧﺤﻦ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﻔﻨﺎ ،ﻓﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻨﺎﺻﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺘﻪ ﻟﻪ
ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺯﻋﻤﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ
ﻟﻔﺮﻋﻪ ﻭﺑﺮﺯ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻌﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﻟﺒﺔ " .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺯﺓ :ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﻟﺒﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﺓ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺎﺟﻌﺎ ".
)(٢٢٢
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﺸﻚ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺷﻌﺐ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺇﻛﺒﺎﺭﻩ ﻟﻘﺪﺭﻩ،
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺤﺎ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺗﺴﻠﺒﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ) ،(١ﻭﺭﻓﻌﺎ ﻟﻘﺪﺭﻩ ﺃﻥ
ﺑﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ .ﻛﻤﺎ ﻣﺤﺎ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﺣﻜﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺰﺍﻡ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺤﺎ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻮﺍﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺑﻌﺜﻪ ﻣﺪﺩﺍ ﻟﻌﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ،ﻓﺠﻌﻞ
ﻋﻤﺮﺍ ﺍﻷﻣﻴﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﻨﻔﺬ ﻻﻣﺮﻩ ﻭﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺼﻼﺗﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺪﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻧﺒﺘﺎﺗﻪ ) (٢ﻓﻲ ﻫﻮﻯ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻧﻘﻄﺎﻋﻪ ،ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺑﻤﻮﺩﺗﻪ،
ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻪ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ
ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻣﺎﺕ .ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﻱ ﻣﺤﺾ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﺮﺯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻟﻮﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎﻫﺎ ]ﻓﻲ ﺃﻋﻼ[ ﻧﺎ ﺫﺍ ﻓﻮﻕ )(٣
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ )." (٤
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ]ﻭ[ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺻﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﺮﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﻳﻨﺔ
ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻭﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ .ﻭﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﺎﺭ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﺐ :ﺍﻻﺣﺪﺍﺩ (٢) .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻧﺒﺜﺎﺛﻪ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﺎﺩﻯ ﻓﻮﻕ " ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺳﺄﻧﺒﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻣﻤﺎ
ﺍﺷﺘﻀﺄﺕ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ ،ﻓﻔﻴﻪ ﻣﺎﺩﺓ )ﻓﻮﻕ " :(١٩٥ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ :ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻓﺄﻣﺮﻧﺎ
ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺄﻝ ﻋﻦ ﺧﻴﺮﻧﺎ ﺫﺍ ﻓﻮﻕ " ﺃﻱ ﺧﻴﺮﻧﺎ ﺳﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ .ﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻔﻮﻕ.
ﺑﻀﻢ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻓﻮﻗﻪ :ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻮﺗﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ".
)(٢٢٣
ﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﻓﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻮﺳﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻼﻓﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ.
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻊ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺷﺠﺔ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﺎﻫﺮﺗﻪ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﺭﻏﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺰﻭﻳﺞ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ
ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﻄﺎﻗﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻮﻟﺪﺕ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ -ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﻨﻴﺘﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺧﺒﻴﺐ -
ﻭﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻮﻟﻮﺩ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻓﺴﻤﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ
ﺑﺎﺳﻢ ﺟﺪﻩ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﻘﺒﻪ ﻋﺘﻴﻖ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﻟﻘﺐ ﺑﻌﺘﻴﻖ ﻟﻌﺘﻖ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻭﺩﻗﺔ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻪ .ﺛﻢ ﻛﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺑﻜﻨﻴﺔ ﺟﺪﻩ .ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻳﻜﻨﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺗﻴﻤﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺑﻜﻨﻴﺘﻪ
ﻭﺗﺒﺮﻛﺎ ﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺭﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ :ﺃﻻ ﺗﻜﻨﻴﻨﻲ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﺑﻠﻰ ،ﺍﻛﺘﻨﻰ ﺑﺎﺑﻨﻚ " ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ .ﻓﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺗﻜﻨﻰ
ﺑﺄﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﻘﻮﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻨﻲ ،ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﺍﺑﻨﻲ ،ﻭﻛﺎﺩﻭﺍ
ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺘﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﺑﻨﻲ.
ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﺩ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺧﺒﺮﻧﺎﻛﻢ ﺑﻪ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ]ﺃﻥ[ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺳﻞ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ ﻟﻴﺆﻛﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺄﺗﻮﺍ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺒﺮﻫﺎﻥ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﻌﺎﺩﺍﺓ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺘﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﻭﻓﺨﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ
ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﺪﻓﻊ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﺃﺳﻠﻤﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ ﻣﺪﺭﻛﺎ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻤﺖ ﻧﺎﺷﺌﺎ ﻃﻔﻼ ،ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻞ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﺒﻄﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﺴﺘﺨﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ ﻳﻜﻔﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻭﻳﻤﻮﻧﻚ
ﺍﻷﻗﺎﺭﺏ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﻓﺎﺭﺳﺎ ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺭﺍﺟﻼ ،ﻭﻛﻨﺖ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎ ﻭﻛﻨﺖ
)(٢٢٤
ﺑﻄﻼ .ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﻨﺖ ﺗﺰﻋﻢ ]ﺃﻧﻚ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ[ ﺇﻧﻲ ﻻﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺘﻪ ) .(١ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺎﺑﺮ
ﺍﻟﺒﺤﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻫﻴﺌﺘﻲ ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ .ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺣﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻓﺎﺭﺳﻪ.
ﺧﺒﺮﻧﻲ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺯﻓﺮ ) .(٢ﻋﻦ ﺿﺮﺍﺏ ) (٣ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ.
ﻭﺧﺒﺮﻧﻲ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ) ،(٤ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻘﻂ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻌﻀﻪ ﻟﻄﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﻬﺪ ﺑﺴﻤﺎﻋﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( :ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﺄﻥ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺳﻞ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻭﻣﻀﻰ ﻗﺪﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻛﻴﺪ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺧﻠﻊ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ ،ﻭﻧﻘﺺ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ.
ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﻣﻨﻌﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺟﺤﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻒ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ :ﻛﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺧﻼ ﺧﻤﺴﺔ ﻧﻔﺮ ) (٥ﺃﻭﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺒﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ
ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺪ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻔﻪ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ .ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻘﺔ ﺃﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻻﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ " ﻭﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺗﻪ ﺻﻔﻴﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ
ﻋﻤﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
) (٢ﺃﺑﻮ ﺯﻓﺮ ،ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻟﺴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ٣٧٩ :٦ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺪﻳﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﻨﻔﻲ
ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺘﺰﻟﺔ " ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺒﻮﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻬﺮﺳﺖ.
) (٣ﺿﺮﺍﺏ ،ﺁﺧﺮﻩ ﺑﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻪ " ﺿﺮﺍﺭ " ﺁﺧﺮﻩ ﺭﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺿﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ
ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺍﺭﻳﺔ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ .١٠ :٥
) (٤ﻫﻮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻔﺺ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ .١٢ :٢
) (٥ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﺹ ١٨٠ﺱ .٧ - ٥
)(٢٢٥
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ .ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﻤﻞ ﺇﻻ ﻟﻨﺼﺮﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻗﺼﻲ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻝ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺆﻣﻨﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﺎ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺟﺤﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻘﺘﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ .ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ ﺷﺒﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺴﺒﻴﻞ
ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ،ﻷﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﺎﺑﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻣﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ،
ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻣﺆﻣﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻛﻔﺮ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻘﺘﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺭ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻭﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﻭﻟﻴﻴﻦ ﻷﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻻ ﺑﺰﻋﻤﻬﻢ:
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﻔﺮﺗﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ .ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﺤﻴﻔﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﺮﺍﻁ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻣﺔ .ﻳﺘﺄﺫﻯ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻊ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺗﻮﻟﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﻛﻔﺎﺭﻫﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻞ ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻖ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺭﻭﻭﻩ ﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻻ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ
ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺣﻔﺮﺗﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ .ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﺠﻴﻔﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﺮﺍﻁ ﻳﺘﺄﺫﻯ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻊ،
ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻠﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻛﻞ ﺃﺻﻔﺮ ﺃﺑﺘﺮ! ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺎﺑﺎ
ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺍﺭﺗﺪﺍ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻻ :ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻠﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻛﻞ ﺃﺻﻔﺮ ﺃﺑﺘﺮ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻣﺮﺗﺪﻳﻦ ﻓﺘﺎﺑﺎ ﻓﺘﻮﻟﻴﺘﻤﻮﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺗﻮﺑﺘﻬﻤﺎ
ﻭﻋﺎﺩﻳﺘﻤﻮﻫﻤﺎ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻢ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻣﺆﻣﻨﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺟﺤﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﺪ؟! ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻞ
ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ،ﻭﻋﺪﻭﻩ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﺩﻭﻧﻜﻢ
ﺍﻟﻜﻠﺐ " ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻭﺧﻄﺮ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ
ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﻀﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺤﻘﻘﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ.
)(٢٢٦
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺧﻄﺐ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﻝ
ﺧﻼﻓﺘﻪ " :ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻜﻢ ﻭﻟﺴﺖ ﺑﺨﻴﺮﻛﻢ "؟ ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻕ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺪﻗﺎ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺧﻼﻑ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﺋﻤﺘﻜﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺑﺄﻫﻞ ﺩﻫﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﺫﺑﺎ
ﻓﺄﻱ ﻛﺬﺏ ﺃﻗﺒﺢ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺬﺏ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ؟! ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﻖ ﺑﺄﻻ ﻳﻠﻴﻬﻢ
ﻭﻳﺤﻤﻞ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺩﻧﻴﺎﻫﻢ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﺮﻫﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺮﻳﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻘﻴﺔ ﻛﺨﺎﺋﻒ ﺍﻟﺴﻮﻁ
ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ؟! ﺑﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﻣﻘﺒﺢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ ﻣﻘﺒﺢ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺭﻫﺒﺔ ﺗﺴﻮﻗﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺭﻏﺒﺔ ﺗﻘﻮﺩﻩ؟! ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﻛﺬﺏ ﺍﻟﺮﻋﻴﺔ ) (١ﺃﺳﺨﻒ ﻭﺃﻗﺒﺢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻻ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺻﺎﺩﻗﺎ
ﻓﻼ ﻳﺴﻌﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻣﻜﻨﻪ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﺫﺑﺎ )(٢
ﻓﺎﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﺗﺬﻛﺮ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﺟﻮﻫﺎ:
ﻓﻤﻨﻬﺎ :ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻦ ﻳﻬﻀﻢ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ .ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﻬﻀﻢ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻭﺿﻊ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻔﻖ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺰﺭﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻳﻌﻴﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻳﺴﺘﺒﻄﺌﻬﺎ ).(٣
ﻭﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﺘﺎﺩﺓ ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻜﻢ ﻭﻟﺴﺖ ﺑﺨﻴﺮﻛﻢ " ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺐ ،ﻟﻴﻌﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﺫ ﻳﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺴﺐ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ .ﻻﻧﻬﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻋﻴﺔ (٢) .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻛﺬﺑﺎ ".
) (٣ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﺗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٢٢٧
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻠﻰ
ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺗﻴﻢ؟! ﻭﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﻗﺎﻣﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻬﻢ ]ﺃﻥ[ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ
ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﺴﺒﺎ ﻭﻣﺮﻛﺒﺎ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻨﺎﻝ ﺑﺄﻥ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﻋﻤﻼ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺋﻔﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻔﻘﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ :ﻛﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻰ؟ ﺛﻢ ﻳﺒﻜﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻀﻴﻴﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻌﻈﻢ ﺻﻐﻴﺮ
ﺫﻧﻮﺑﻪ ﻛﺄﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻣﺬﻧﺐ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ
ﺑﻌﺾ ﺫﻧﻮﺑﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺎﺭﺿﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ،ﻣﻦ ﺗﺰﻛﻴﺘﻪ
ﻭﺗﻘﺮﻳﻈﻪ ﻭﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺇﺣﺴﺎﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ) (١ﺑﺤﺎﻟﻪ .ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ
ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻧﺒﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺭﺑﻪ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﻜﺒﺎﺭ
ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺼﻐﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ .ﻓﻌﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻌﺎﺭﺿﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻦ ﺑﺘﻘﺮﻳﻊ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺗﺄﻧﻴﺒﻬﺎ،
ﻭﺗﻮﻗﻴﻔﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻓﺮﻁ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺗﺬﻛﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﻣﺴﺎﻭﻳﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻌﻈﺎﻡ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺼﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﻭﺇﺳﺎﺀﺗﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺼﻐﺎﺭ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺇﺣﺴﺎﻧﻬﺎ ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺘﻬﺎ،
ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ :ﻛﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻰ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻔﻆ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺠﺮﻯ
ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺰﻭﺭ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ " :ﻛﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻰ " ﺧﻴﺮﺍ
ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ.
ﻓﻜﺄﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺧﻄﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺔ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺳﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻗﻴﺎﻣﺎ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻗﺪﺍﻣﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺻﻔﻮﻓﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺮﺍﺗﺒﻬﻢ ،ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﻳﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻴﻌﺠﺐ "
)(٢٢٨
ﻭﺃﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺯﻣﺔ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻄﻮﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻤﺤﺖ ﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺻﺮﻓﻮﻫﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻭﻋﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻑ ،ﺭﺃﻯ ﺑﺴﻄﺔ ﻋﻴﺸﻪ ) (١ﻣﻦ ﻋﺰ
ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻭﺑﺄﻭ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺄﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻨﻬﻪ،
ﻭﻟﻠﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ ) (٢ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﻣﺪﺍﺧﻞ ﻭﻣﺨﺎﺗﻞ ،ﻭﺩﺱ ﻭﺗﺤﺮﻳﻚ ﻭﻃﻤﻊ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻘﻮﻯ
ﺑﺸﺮﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻓﻊ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺗﺴﻜﻴﻦ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻛﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻬﻮﺽ ﺑﺘﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ،
ﺇﻻ ﺑﻐﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺰﺭﻱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻀﻢ ﻟﻬﺎ .ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺨﺲ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺨﻮﻥ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺗﻨﺎﺳﻰ
ﺫﻛﺮ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻼﺏ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺴﺎﻭﻳﻬﺎ .ﻓﺒﺎﻟﺤﺮﻱ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺻﻨﻊ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﺩ ﻣﻦ ﻏﺮﺑﻪ ﻭﻃﻮﺍﺋﻊ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺮﻛﺔ ﻫﻤﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻧﺘﺸﺎﺭ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻧﺘﻘﺎﺽ ﻣﺮﺗﻪ.
ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻻ ﻳﻤﺘﺤﻦ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺨﺘﺒﺮ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻬﺪﻯ،
ﻻﻥ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻦ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻓﻀﻮﻝ ﺍﻷﺣﻼﻡ ،ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﻮﺭﻉ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺛﺒﺎﺕ
ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﺩﺍﻩ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﺋﻊ ،ﻭﺇﻣﺎﺗﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﻮﺍﺕ ،ﻭﻗﻤﻊ ...ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﺎﻡ ﺑﻪ
ﻣﻮﺭﻳﻪ ) (٣ﻣﻜﺎﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻄﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻻ ﺗﺴﻤﺢ
ﺑﺈﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻤﻨﻌﻬﺎ ﻣﺎﻟﻬﺎ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻜﻢ ﻭﻟﺴﺖ ﺑﺨﻴﺮﻛﻢ " ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺑﻪ
ﻣﺪﺍﻭﺍﺓ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺭﻱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺑﻜﺬﺏ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﺮﻫﻢ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺇﺻﻼﺡ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻼﺝ ﺩﺍﺋﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺮﻳﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺑﻨﻘﺼﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺨﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﺘﺒﺮﻳﺰﻩ .ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﻠﻢ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺘﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﻈﻢ .ﻓﺠﻤﻊ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻷﺩﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﺪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﺳﻄﻪ ﻋﻨﺒﺴﺔ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ.
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ ﻧﺎﻗﺼﺔ ﻣﺤﺮﻓﺔ.
)(٢٢٩
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺰﻛﻴﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺤﺒﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻤﻊ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﻟﺮﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺪﺍﻭﺍﺓ ﻟﻘﻠﺒﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻈﻔﺮ ﺑﻌﺪﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺇﺣﺮﺍﺯ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﺧﻼﺹ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻟﻔﻈﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ ﻭﻣﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻓﻼ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﺑﺎ ،ﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﺑﻔﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻤﻊ ﻋﻨﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﻌﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ.
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻻﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ :ﺃﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﺣﺒﻠﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﺎﺭﺑﻚ! ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻃﻼﻗﻬﺎ
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺣﺒﻞ ﺃﻟﻘﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﺎﺭﺏ.
ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻣﺎﻟﻲ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻧﺎﻗﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺟﻤﻞ! ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ.
ﻭ :ﻟﺴﺖ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻴﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻔﻴﺮ! ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﺍﻕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﻜﻢ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺑﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﺁﺗﻴﺘﻢ ﺇﺣﺪﺍﻫﻦ ﻗﻨﻄﺎﺭﺍ ﻓﻼ ﺗﺄﺧﺬﻭﺍ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ) " (١ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ
ﺃﻓﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻴﺎﺳﻜﻢ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﺬﺑﺎ .ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ
ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﺎ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻱ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ " ،ﻳﻌﻨﻰ
ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻟﻸﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺣﻀﺮ
ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺮﺭ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺑﻔﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﺍﺀ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻓﻌﻠﻢ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺑﺎﺋﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ٢٠ﻣﻦ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻥ ﺁﺗﻴﺘﻢ " ﻭﻫﻮ ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
)(٢٣٠
ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﺎﺋﺴﺎ ﺭﻓﻴﻘﺎ ،ﻓﻜﺮﻩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﻧﻲ ،ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻫﻢ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻄﻠﺒﻮﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻳﺮﻳﺪﻭﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻈﻬﺮﻭﻥ ﺣﺐ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ،ﻟﺘﻜﻮﻥ
ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ ﺑﻄﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﺃﺳﻤﺢ ،ﻭﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺃﺭﻏﺐ ،ﻭﻟﻤﺬﻫﺒﻪ ﺃﺣﻤﺪ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ
ﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺒﺪﺍﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﺍﻻﻓﺘﻴﺎﺕ ﺑﺎﻻﻣﺮ ﺩﻭﻧﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﺹ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﺸﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻫﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﺴﺘﻘﻴﻞ ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ؟
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﻌﺔ:
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻲ ﻓﻠﺘﺔ ،ﻭﺧﺸﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺣﺮﺻﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ
ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﺄﻟﺘﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻼﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺎﻟﻲ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺭﺍﺣﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﻠﺪﺕ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ ﻣﺎﻟﻲ ﺑﻪ ﻃﺎﻗﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻮﺩﺩﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻲ.
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺯﻫﺪﻩ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ) ،(١ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺣﺮﺻﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺨﺶ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻮﺩ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ؟!
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻟﻮﺩﺩﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻲ " ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻭﺩﺩﺕ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﻰ .ﻟﻴﺲ ) (٢ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻗﻮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺟﺰ ) (٣ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺇﺑﻠﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻐﺎﺭﺿﻬﺎ ):(٤
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻫﺪﻩ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ".
) (٣ﻫﻮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻌﺴﻲ .ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﻏﺮﺽ(.
) (٤ﺟﻤﻊ ﻣﻐﺮﺽ ،ﻛﻤﺠﻠﺲ ،ﻭﺃﺻﻠﻪ ﺟﺎﻧﺐ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﻦ ﺃﺳﻔﻞ ﺍﻷﺿﻼﻉ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﺽ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺣﺰﺍﻡ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻞ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺍﻷﻏﺮﺍﺽ .ﻭﻳﺒﺪﻭ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ ﻣﻘﺤﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻌﻬﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ.
)(٢٣١
* ﻳﺸﺮﺑﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻨﻘﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﺭﺽ )* (١
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻳﺸﺮﺑﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﻮ ]ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻐﺎﺭﺿﻬﺎ ) [(٢ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻧﻘﻴﻀﺎ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺮ ﻻ ﻳﻮﺭﺩ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻏﺮﺿﻪ ﻭﺑﻄﺎﻧﺔ.
ﺛﻢ ﺭﺟﻌﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ
ﻓﻜﺄﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻱ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ " ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ،
ﻳﻮﻡ ﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻳﺴﺘﺸﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺰﻭ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺧﺎﻟﻔﻮﻩ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺇﻻ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﺫ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺠﺔ ) (٣ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺍﻟﺤﻤﺪ ﻟﻠﻪ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺨﺺ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺸﺎﺀ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻘﻪ .ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺒﻘﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮ
ﺇﻻ ﺳﺒﻘﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺆﺗﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺸﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻢ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺴﻘﻴﻔﺔ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻱ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ:
" ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻﻥ ﺃﻗﺪﻡ ﻓﺘﻀﺮﺏ ﻋﻨﻘﻲ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ".
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻﻥ ﺃﺿﺠﻊ ﻓﺄﺫﺑﺢ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﺬﺑﺢ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ
ﺃﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ! ".
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ،ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺳﺌﻞ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻟﺔ " ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻲ ﻻﺳﺘﺤﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺭﻯ ﺧﻼﻑ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ".
ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺠﺪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﻗﻂ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﺕ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﻗﻒ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺃﺳﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﻏﺔ " ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻨﺘﺄ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺒﻴﻪ ٤ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺹ ١٠٥ﺱ .٩ - ٨
)(٢٣٢
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻟﻚ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﺎﺕ
ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺷﺮﻳﻔﺔ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ.
ﻓﺒﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺄﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻄﻠﺐ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻃﻠﺒﺎ،
ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﻴﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻟﺒﻴﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺍﻏﺒﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻣﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻭﻃﻴﺐ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ،ﻓﺮﻕ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ.
ﻭﺃﻳﺔ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻘﺪﻫﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺿﺮﺏ
ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ " ﻭ " ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ ﻳﻔﺮﻕ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺴﻪ ) " (١ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺃﻋﺰ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﻌﻤﺮ "؟! ﻭﺃﻳﺔ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻘﺪﻫﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻟﻜﻞ ﺃﻣﺔ ﺃﻣﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﻣﻴﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ".
ﻭﺃﻳﺔ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻘﺪﻫﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﺎﻩ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ " ﺍﻷﻣﻴﻦ ) " (٢ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻣﻴﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﻭﻕ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ،
ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻻ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﺮﺍ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ " ﻗﺪ ﻋﻘﺪﺍ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻛﺪﺍ
ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ) (٣ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﺴﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ؟! ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻮﺍﻃﺄﺓ ﻣﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ ٢٠٨ :١ﻓﻲ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻳﺔ " :ﻓﻘﺎﻣﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺭﺃﺱ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻨﻘﺮﺕ ﻧﻘﺮﺗﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ،ﻓﺎﺳﺘﻔﺘﺢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﺴﻘﻂ ﺍﻟﺪﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺪﻫﺎ
ﻭﺃﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺧﺪﺭ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ .ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ :ﻣﺎﻟﻚ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺻﻮﺕ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻬﺒﺘﻪ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ ﻟﻴﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺲ ﻋﻤﺮ ".
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ٤١٠ﺟﻮﺗﻨﺠﻦ ،ﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ " :ﺍﺋﺘﻮﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﻴﺔ ﺃﺑﻌﺚ
ﻣﻌﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻯ ﺍﻷﻣﻴﻦ " .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ " :٣٠٨ :٢ﺇﻥ ﻟﻜﻞ ﺃﻣﺔ ﺃﻣﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻣﻴﻨﻨﺎ
ﺃﻳﺘﻬﺎ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ .ﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﺎﺭﻱ ﻭﻣﺴﻠﻢ .ﻭﺃﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﻣﺬﻱ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺣﺎﺗﻢ،
ﻭﻟﻔﻈﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﻜﻞ ﺃﻣﺔ ﺃﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻣﻴﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ." ...
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻘﺪ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻛﺪ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ " ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺍﻷﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﻭﻕ.
)(٢٣٣
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻷﺑﻲ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻭﺍﻃﺄ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ،ﻣﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﻤﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﺍ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺣﻴﺎﺗﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻋﺰﻟﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻛﻤﺎ
ﺻﻨﻊ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺑﻌﻤﺮﻭ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﻃﻌﻤﻪ ﻣﺼﺮ.
ﻭﺃﻳﺔ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻘﺪﻫﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻻﻣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺿﻰ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ،ﻭﻛﺮﻫﺖ
ﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ) ." (١ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺭﺿﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻓﻘﺪ
ﺭﺿﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻻﻣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺿﻰ
ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ،ﻭﻛﺮﻫﺖ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ".
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻥ " :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻟﻮﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎﻫﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻋﻼﻧﺎ ﺫﺍ ﻓﻮﻕ )." (٢
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ﻟﻪ ،ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻟﻘﺪ ﺧﺸﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺣﺐ ﻋﻤﺮ " .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺻﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﻳﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ " .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﻣﻮﺕ ﻋﻤﺮ " :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻼﺳﻼﻡ ﺣﺼﻨﺎ ﺣﺼﻴﻨﺎ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻮﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ ﺍﻧﺜﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﻦ ﻓﺼﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻮﻥ
ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻮﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ " .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﺫﺍ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﻟﺤﻮﻥ ﻓﺤﻰ ﻫﻼ
ﺑﻌﻤﺮ )." (٣
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﺒﺎﻉ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻭﻟﻴﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ
ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ؟!
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٤١ ،٨٦
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٢٢٣ﻭﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﺎﺩﻯ ﻓﻮﻕ ".
) (٣ﺃﻱ ﺍﺑﺪﺃ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻋﺠﻞ ﺑﺬﻛﺮﻩ.
)(٢٣٤
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺤﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻋﻘﺪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﺃﻭ ﻧﻄﻖ
ﻓﻴﻪ ﺑﻜﻠﻤﺔ ،ﻷﻛﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﺾ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺤﺘﺞ
ﻳﺮﺿﺎﻩ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ) (١ﻣﻦ ﺗﺜﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻤﺎ ﺑﻮﻳﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺑﺎﻳﻌﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺑﻨﻮ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻗﺎﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻄﺎﻑ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺛﻼﺛﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻗﺪ ﺃﻗﻠﺘﻜﻢ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻲ "! ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ:
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻧﻘﻴﻠﻚ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺴﺘﻘﻴﻠﻚ ،ﻗﺪﻣﻚ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺗﺼﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﺍ ﻳﺆﺧﺮﻙ؟! ".
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻘﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮﻩ " :ﺃﻻ ﺇﻥ
ﺧﻴﺮ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﺷﺌﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻛﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺜﺎﻟﺚ
ﻓﻌﻠﺖ ".
ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺇﺫ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ " :ﻫﺬﺍﻥ ﺳﻴﺪﺍ ﻛﻬﻮﻝ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻣﺎ ﺧﻼ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻴﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺳﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻻ ﺗﺨﺒﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﻠﺖ
ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ " .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ :ﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻣﺎﺗﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺣﺪﺛﺘﻜﻢ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ " :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﺍﻫﺎ ﻣﻨﻴﺒﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻥ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻧﺎﺻﺢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻨﺼﺤﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ".
ﻭﻧﻘﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ -ﻭﺩﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺴﺠﻰ -
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻨﺎ ".
)(٢٣٥
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺭﺣﻤﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ! ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻟﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ
ﺻﺤﻴﻔﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﻰ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺴﺮﻳﺮ!
ﻭﺑﻠﻐﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ﺗﻨﺎﻭﻝ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﺮﺟﻞ :ﻟﻮ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ
ﻣﻨﻚ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻠﻐﻨﻲ ﻷﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﻙ ﺷﻌﺮﺍ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻮ ﺃﺗﻴﺖ ﺑﺮﺟﻞ ﻳﺸﺘﻤﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﺠﻠﺪﺗﻪ ﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺘﺮﻯ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻧﻘﻠﻪ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻨﺖ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﺪﻳﺜﺎ ﻧﻔﻌﻨﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺷﺎﺀ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻋﻨﻪ
ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻠﻔﺘﻪ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺣﻠﻒ ﻟﻲ ﺻﺪﻗﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ -ﻭﺻﺪﻕ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ -ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ
ﻳﺬﻧﺐ ﺫﻧﺒﺎ ﻓﻴﺘﻮﺿﺄ ﻓﻴﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺿﻮﺀ ﺛﻢ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺭﻛﻌﺘﻴﻦ ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻐﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻻ
ﻏﻔﺮ ﻟﻪ )." (١
ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻛﻴﻒ ﺃﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻣﻪ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻠﻴﺪ
ﻭﺭﻓﻊ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺮﺍﺑﺔ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺰﻭﻳﺠﻪ ﺃﻡ ﻛﻠﺜﻮﻡ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻣﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻃﺎﺋﻌﺎ ﺭﺍﻏﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺳﺒﺐ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺴﺐ
ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﻘﻄﻊ ،ﺇﻻ ﻧﺴﺒﻰ " .ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ :ﺇﻧﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﻳﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﻳﺪﻫﺎ ﻟﺬﺍﻙ! ﻓﺄﺭﺳﻠﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻨﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺰﻭﺟﻬﺎ،
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٨٤
)(٢٣٦
ﺛﻢ ﺯﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ،ﻓﻮﻟﺪﺕ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﺳﻮﺩﺍﻥ ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ )،(١
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﻌﻲ ﺃﻡ ﻛﻠﺜﻮﻡ ﻛﻤﺪﺕ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﺰﻧﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻣﺎﺗﺖ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻭﺍﺣﺮﺑﻬﺎ!
ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻮﻫﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﺯﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻗﺘﻞ
ﻭﻟﺪﻫﺎ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﺛﻢ ﺗﺴﻤﻴﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻭﻻﺩﻩ ﺑﺄﺳﻤﺎﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﺘﺒﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﺄﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺃﺋﻤﺘﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﺩﺗﻪ،
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺳﻤﻰ ﺑﻌﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﺄﻋﻘﺐ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻘﺐ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﻻﻳﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻀﻰ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻌﺴﻜﺮﺍ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﺟﻴﺶ ﻣﻬﺮﺍﻥ ) (٢ﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻗﻌﺔ ﻗﺲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻃﻒ ) (٣ﻓﺄﺗﺎﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺴﻜﺮﻩ ﻓﺄﺷﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﺃﺷﺎﺭ ) (٤ﺑﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻠﻘﺎﻫﻢ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﺑﻞ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻴﺌﺔ ) .(٥ﻓﺮﺟﻊ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻚ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻴﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﻭﻳﻌﺰﻣﻮﺍ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ ،ﺃﻭ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﻭﺇﻥ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻜﺘﻔﻰ ﺑﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻘﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻛﺮﺩﺍﺫ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻧﺴﺐ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ٢٧٢ ،٣٥٣ - ٣٥٢ﻭﺟﻤﻬﺮﺓ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ .١٤٧
) (٢ﻫﻮ ﻣﻬﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺑﺎﺫﺍﻥ ﺍﻟﻬﻤﺬﺍﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻲ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺮﺑﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻧﺸﺄ ﻣﻊ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻴﻤﻦ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﻣﻼ ﻟﻜﺴﺮﻯ .ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ ٧٨ :٤ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ:
ﺇﻥ ﺗﺴﺄﻟﻮﺍ ﻋﻨﻰ ﻓﺈﻧﻲ ﻣﻬﺮﺍﻥ * ﺃﻧﺎ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺃﻧﻜﺮﻧﻲ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺑﺎﺫﺍﻥ
ﻋﺴﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺴﻜﺮ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " ٨٣ :٤ﺧﺮﺝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻧﺰﻝ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎﺀ ﻳﺪﻋﻰ ﺿﺮﺍﺭﺍ ﻓﻌﺴﻜﺮ ﺑﻪ ".
) (٣ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻨﺔ .١٣
) (٤ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺧﺒﺮ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ .٨٤ - ٨٣ :٤
) (٥ﺃﻣﺮﻯ ﻣﺮﺟﻌﺎ.
)(٢٣٧
ﻭﻧﻜﺮﺩﺍﺫ ) " (١ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺷﺎﺩﺍ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻪ ﻟﻴﺆﻛﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺧﺎﻟﻔﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻧﻘﻀﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺒﺪﺍﺩ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ) ،(٢ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻻ " :ﺃﺭﺿﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ
ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺗﻴﻢ " ،ﻧﺼﺮﺓ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ،
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ) ،(٣ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ " ،ﻭﺟﻌﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻃﻼﻕ ﻧﺴﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ ) ،(٤ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ
ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺽ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺽ ،ﻓﻴﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺼﺪﻗﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﻟﺤﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﺔ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﺋﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺘﺔ ،ﻭﻃﻼﻕ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺝ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻙ ﺑﻴﺪﻙ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ ،ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻛﺜﻼﺙ
ﺗﻄﻠﻴﻘﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻳﻮﺟﺒﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﻼﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻄﻼﻕ
ﺇﻻ ﻃﻼﻕ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻗﻂ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺄﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺎﺩ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﺩ،
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺎﺩﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻀﻤﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻴﺐ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻠﻬﻢ ﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﺍﺯﻥ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺎﺋﻊ.
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﻬﻼ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﻔﻼ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .١٨٧ ،١٨٦ ،١٨٣ ،١٧٩ ،١٧٢
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ " :١٧٩ :٢ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺃﺱ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻮﺣﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺳﺮﻯ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ،ﺻﻠﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺼﺮ؟
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺇﻧﻚ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺎﺟﺘﻚ ﻭﺣﺎﺟﺔ ﻧﺒﻴﻚ ﻓﺮﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ .ﻓﺮﺩﻫﺎ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﺼﻠﻰ ﻭﻏﺎﺑﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ،ﺧﺮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺪﻭﻻﺑﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ :ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﺩ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ﻻﺣﺪ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﺒﺴﺖ ﻟﻴﻮﺷﻊ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﻥ ".
) (٤ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٢٣٨
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺃﺭﺟﺢ ﻋﻘﻼ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻭﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﻓﺘﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﺎﺭﺿﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻫﺪ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎﺋﺐ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻄﻖ ﺑﻪ
ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻭﺛﺒﺘﻪ ﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺃﺑﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺳﻤﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻼ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺍﺳﻤﺎ
ﻳﻔﻀﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺑﻠﻰ ،ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺳﻤﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﻌﻮﻩ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻇﻠﻤﻮﻩ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻴﺮﻭﻩ ﻭﻳﺸﻴﻌﻮﻩ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺍﺷﺘﻜﻰ ﺃﻳﺎﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﺎﻟﻲ ،ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺄﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺑﺎﻟﺼﻼﺓ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺣﺎﺿﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺄﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺸﻐﻮﻻ ﺑﺘﻤﺮﻳﻀﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺍﻓﺘﺘﻨﻮﺍ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻮﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﻋﻈﻤﻮﺍ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺩﻋﺎﻫﻢ ﺍﻻﻓﺮﺍﻁ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺖ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻳﻐﻴﺐ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻏﺎﺏ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ
ﻋﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ .ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺘﺞ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺎﻣﻰ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻋﺮﻓﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ
ﻭﺗﻨﺒﻬﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺳﻨﺔ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﺣﺰﻧﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﻄﻌﻪ
ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﺮﻳﻒ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﻇﻬﺮﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻗﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﺩﺍﺭﻫﻢ .ﻟﻮ ﺗﺮﻛﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻬﻢ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﻭﺃﻛﺒﺮ
ﺍﻟﻔﺴﺎﺩ ،ﻓﻌﺎﺟﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺗﺠﺮﺩ ﻟﻼﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻞ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻫﻤﻪ
ﻫﻢ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻤﻌﺰﻝ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺄﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻏﺎﺋﺒﺎ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻋﺮﻑ ﺣﺴﺪ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺑﻐﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺘﻬﺎ ﻭﺣﺒﻬﺎ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻟﻴﻘﺪﺡ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻘﺪﺡ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻨﻔﺦ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻓﺤﻢ.
)(٢٣٩
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻠﺘﻘﻴﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻴﻞ :ﻓﻠﻢ ﺭﺿﻰ ﺑﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻣﺨﺘﺎﺭﺍ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ
ﻋﺪﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺨﻮﻓﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻭﻫﻼ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻳﺴﻴﺮ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻼ ﻧﻄﻖ ﺑﺤﺮﻑ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺘﺨﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺣﺠﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﻠﻎ ﺃﻗﺼﻰ ﺧﻼﻓﻬﻢ
ﻓﻴﺮﻯ ﻭﻋﻴﺪﺍ ﺃﻭ ﺇﻳﻘﺎﻋﺎ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻷﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﻤﻴﺲ -ﻭﻫﻰ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ -
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺗﻔﺎﺧﺮ ﻭﻟﺪﻫﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ :ﺍﻗﻀﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻭﻟﺪﻙ.
ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ :ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺷﺎﺑﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻃﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺷﻴﺨﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﺧﺴﻬﻢ ﻟﻔﻀﻼﺀ ) !(١ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻨﻜﺮ ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺮﻕ ) (٢ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﺠﺐ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻳﺆﺛﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻀﻴﺔ ﺗﻈﻬﺮ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎﺯﺣﺔ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻤﺰﺡ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﻣﻊ ﺯﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﻭﺗﺤﺮﺵ ﺑﻪ ).(٣
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﻳﻊ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﻋﻄﺎﻩ ﺻﻔﻘﺘﻪ ﻃﺎﺋﻌﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻜﺮﻩ
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻋﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﻗﺮ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻜﺮ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻟﻲ ﺃﺛﺮ ﺟﻨﻮﻥ ﻭﻻ ﺇﻛﺮﺍﻫﺎ ،ﺃﻥ ﺇﻗﺮﺍﺭﻩ ﺟﺎﺋﺰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٩٥
) (٢ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻕ :ﺍﻟﺠﺰﻉ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﺶ :ﺍﻻﻏﺮﺍﺀ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺗﺨﺮﺵ ﺑﻪ ".
)(٢٤٠
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﻳﻊ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﺳﻴﻒ ﻭﻻ ﺳﻮﻁ ،ﻓﺤﻜﻤﻪ ﺣﻜﻢ
ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺿﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺇﻛﺮﺍﻩ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺗﻜﺎﺗﻤﻮﻩ
ﻭﺃﺧﻔﻮﻩ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻗﺪ ﺻﺪﻗﻨﺎﻛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻘﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺳﻠﻄﺎﻥ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺃﻟﻒ ﺳﻴﻒ ﺗﻄﻴﻌﻪ
ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺭﻋﻴﺘﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺧﻼ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ،ﻟﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺗﺰﻛﻴﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮﻩ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺠﻠﺴﻪ؟
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻠﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻋﻴﺘﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﻮﺍﻫﻢ ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺘﻬﻢ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺮﻛﻪ ﻟﻌﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﺳﺘﺒﺪﺍﺩﻫﻢ ﻭﻇﻠﻤﻬﻢ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺰﻛﻴﺘﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻋﻦ
ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻨﺔ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻮﺕ ﺳﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﻨﺪﻭﺣﺔ؟! ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺗﻌﺪﻯ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺪﻳﺢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻻﺑﻦ
ﻃﻠﺤﺔ " :ﺇﻧﻲ ﻷﺭﺟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻛﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻭﺃﺑﻮﻙ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﺇﺧﻮﺍﻧﺎ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺮﺭ ﻣﺘﻘﺎﺑﻠﻴﻦ ".
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺴﻤﻴﺘﻪ ﺑﻨﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﺳﻤﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﺳﻴﺤﺘﺎﺟﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﺘﺮﺣﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﺗﻘﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻴﻌﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻓﺴﻤﻰ ﺑﻨﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﺳﻤﺎﺋﻬﻢ،
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﺣﻢ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﻻﻥ ﻳﻨﺼﺐ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺼﺪﻭﺍ
ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﺮﺣﻢ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻟﻄﺎﻁ ).(١
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻻﻟﻄﺎﻁ :ﺍﻟﺪﻓﺎﻉ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺷﺘﺪﺍﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻣﺔ.
)(٢٤١
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺯﻭﺝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻜﺮﻩ ) (١ﻭﻻ ﺷﺊ ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻔﺎﺀ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﺭﻛﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺼﺎﻫﺮﺓ.
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺗﻮﻋﺪ ﻭﺗﺨﻮﻑ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻭﺝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻗﻂ .ﻭﻧﺒﺌﺖ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﺎﻧﻬﺎ ﻓﺄﺧﻔﺎﻫﺎ ﻭﺭﻓﻌﻬﺎ.
ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ :ﻓﺨﺒﺮﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺭﺃﻭﻫﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺰﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ،ﻭﻭﻟﺪﺕ
ﻣﻨﻪ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ،ﻣﺎ ﻫﻲ؟ ﻭﺃﻱ ﺷﺊ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ؟
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺷﻴﻄﺎﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻮﺭﺓ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﺖ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻗﻠﺒﺎ،
ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺘﻘﻰ ﻛﻞ ﺷﺊ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﻴﺴﻠﻢ ﺣﺮﻣﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻛﺎﻓﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺸﻬﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺳﻴﻒ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻀﺮﺏ ﺑﺴﻮﻁ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻭﻥ
ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺠﺎﻋﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺼﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻭﻥ
ﻫﺬﺍ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻠﻢ ﻭﻟﻪ ﻳﺨﺪﺵ ،ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﺮﺡ
ﻭﻳﻘﺘﻞ ،ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻣﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺠﺎﺯ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺤﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻛﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﺒﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﺔ ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻤﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﺻﻨﻴﻊ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ
ﻛﻴﻒ ﻧﻬﺾ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﻠﻴﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺔ ﺍﻟﻜﺜﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺃﺷﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﻌﻴﻦ
ﺑﺠﻴﺶ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ﺃﻋﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻪ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻣﻨﺎ ﻏﺰﻭ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻡ ﺇﻳﺎﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻮﻣﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ،ﻭﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻧﺄﻣﻦ ﻣﻊ
ﺍﺭﺗﺪﺍﺩ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻐﺰﻯ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﺮ ﺩﺍﺭﻧﺎ! ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻮ ﺑﻘﻴﺖ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺄﻛﻠﻨﻲ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ .٢٣٧ - ٢٣٦
)(٢٤٢
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﺏ ﻭﺣﺪﻯ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺧﺮﺕ ﺟﻴﺸﺎ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺈﻧﻔﺎﺫﻩ.
ﺛﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﺃﺿﻌﻒ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺃﺟﺒﻦ ،ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﺍ ﻣﻌﻄﺸﺎ ﻣﺨﺬﻭﻻ ﻗﺪ ﻗﻬﺮﻩ ﻋﺪﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﺗﻠﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻓﻀﻮﺍ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺩﺍﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺗﺴﻠﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻮﺧﺘﺔ ) ،(١ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﺮﻳﺪﻭﻥ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺃﻭ ﺧﻠﻊ
ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻨﻘﻪ ،ﻓﺼﺒﺮ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻛﺮﻳﻤﺎ ﻣﺤﺘﺴﺒﺎ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ:
" ﻻ ﺃﻧﺰﻉ ﻗﻤﻴﺼﺎ ﻗﻤﺼﻨﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ! " ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﺠﺪ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺃﻣﺎﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻤﻮﺕ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺜﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻄﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﺭﻗﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻣﻊ ﺫﺍ ﻳﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ) (٢ﻗﺪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺳﺮ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻴﺞ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ
ﻻ ﻳﺸﺒﻪ ﺍﺗﺨﺎﺫﻩ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺣﻜﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻟﻪ ،ﻣﻊ ﻏﺒﺎﺀ ) (٣ﺃﺑﻰ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ
ﻭﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﻴﻤﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺮﻧﻪ ﺑﻌﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﺮﺃﻱ
ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﻌﻮﻧﻪ ).(٤
ﻓﻔﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ) (٥ﻣﺎﻟﻜﻴﻦ ﻷﻫﻮﺍﺋﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻤﻪ ﻭﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ
ﻭﻣﺒﺎﻳﻨﺘﻪ؟ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﻳﻦ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻭﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ
ﻣﺠﻤﻌﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ ،ﺛﻢ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ﻭﺃﻧﻜﺮ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺮﺟﻌﻮﺍ ﻋﻤﺎ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺈﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺧﺔ :ﻛﻮﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﺗﺆﺩﻯ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻀﻮﺀ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺒﺎ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
) (٤ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٥ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ " ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ".
)(٢٤٣
ﻳﻮﺍﺯﻧﻪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻄﺮﺣﻮﺍ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻗﺔ ﻭﺗﻘﻀﻮﺍ ﺑﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﺎﻋﺔ،
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﻣﻌﺘﻤﻮﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻣﺆﻣﻨﺎ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺧﺒﺮ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻨﺎ ﻭﻣﺠﺎﻣﻌﺔ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻻ ﻳﺼﺎﺏ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻤﺠﺎﻣﻌﺘﻬﻢ
ﻷﺻﺤﺎﺑﻨﺎ ،ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺎ ﻭﻗﻴﺎﺳﺎ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ .ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻗﺪ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ) (١ﻭﺑﻪ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻌﻞ ﻳﺴﻤﻰ ﻛﻔﺮﺍ ﻭﺇﻳﻤﺎﻧﺎ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻻ ﻧﻠﺘﻔﺖ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﻣﻮﺍﻓﻖ ﻭﻻ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺨﺎﻟﻒ ،ﻭﻻ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻘﻞ ﻭﻻ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻈﺮ .ﺛﻢ ﻧﻈﺮﻧﺎ ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻣﻨﻪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ،
ﻭ ]ﻫﻮ[ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ
ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ﺑﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﺨﺼﻮﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺇﻳﻤﺎﻧﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺏ :ﺃﻧﻜﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﻣﻌﺘﻤﻮﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ .ﻭﻳﺄﻛﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﺑﻴﺤﺔ ،ﻭﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﻕ
ﻣﺴﺘﺨﻒ ﻭﺛﻮﺏ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺩﺍﺝ ) ،(٢ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﺫﻟﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﺰﻳﺰ] ،ﺛﻢ[
ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﺮﺭﺗﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﺃﻧﻪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺴﺘﺴﺮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻔﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻟﻔﺔ ﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﺟﺐ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﻜﻢ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻠﺘﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﻧﺪﻉ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﻭﺣﺪﻛﻢ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻻ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ".
) (٢ﺩﺟﺎ :ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ :ﻗﻮﻯ ﻭﺃﻟﺒﺲ ﻛﻞ ﺷﺊ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﺪﺟﻮ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻞ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﻢ ﻭﺃﻟﺒﺲ ﻛﻞ ﺷﺊ.
)(٢٤٤
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺎﻕ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻻ ﺗﻨﺰﻝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻓﺮﻗﺔ ،ﻭﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻻ ﺗﺘﺮﻙ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﻗﻂ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻻ ﺻﻠﻰ ]ﺇﻟﻰ[ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﻠﺔ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻩ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻩ
ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺯﻱ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻏﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻠﻮﻡ
ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺓ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻔﺮ ،ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ؟
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﻧﻘﻒ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻐﻴﺒﻪ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺍﺟﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻻﺑﺪ ﻟﻜﻔﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺟﻬﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻈﻬﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻋﻬﺪﻩ ﻭﺫﻣﺔ ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺘﻠﻮﻩ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﻬﺪ ﻭﺫﻣﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﺩﻋﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻬﺪ ﻭﺫﻣﺔ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻠﻨﺼﺎﺭﻯ
ﻭﻟﻠﻴﻬﻮﺩ ،ﺧﺮﺟﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﻣﻊ ﻓﺤﺸﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﻬﺪ ﻭﺫﻣﺔ ﻭﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ.
ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺧﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻫﻞ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ
ﻗﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ :ﻻ ﺇﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ؟
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﺛﻢ ﺗﺮﻛﻬﺎ ،ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﻘﺪ
ﺃﻗﺮﺭﺗﻢ ﻭﺟﺎﻣﻌﺘﻢ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ
)(٢٤٥
ﺗﺨﺮﺟﻮﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺃﻭ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺗﺮﻙ ،ﺇﻻ ﻟﻤﺠﺎﻣﻌﺔ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻜﻢ ﻟﻜﻢ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻗﺔ
ﻻ ﺗﻨﻘﺾ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﺎﻋﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻻ ﺇﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺮﺓ ﻗﻂ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻫﺮﻩ،
ﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺎﻗﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻷﺻﻨﺎﻡ ،ﺛﻢ ﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ .ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﺇﺳﻘﺎﻃﻪ
ﻭﺗﺤﺮﻳﻢ ﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﺇﻣﻀﺎﺀ ﺣﻜﻢ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ.
ﺑﻞ ﻗﺪ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﻩ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻬﺎ ﺑﻮﺟﻮﻩ:
ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺛﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﻟﺤﻴﻦ ،ﻓﺨﺺ ﺑﺘﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻴﻦ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﺖ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ
ﻣﻊ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻫﺠﺮﺗﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺠﺮﺗﻪ ﻭﻫﺠﺮﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻌﺎ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺟﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺛﻨﺎﺋﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﺪﺭ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ،ﻣﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ
ﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻗﻒ ،ﻣﻊ ﻣﺎ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﻣﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﺘﻘﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﻣﻮﺍﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻋﺎﻣﺔ
ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﺗﺤﺪﺙ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﺍﻃﻠﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻋﻤﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ " ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﻣﻌﺎ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ
ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻋﺘﻘﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﻌﺘﻖ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ
ﺛﻢ ﻳﻌﻴﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺭﻗﻪ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ .ﻭﺣﻮﺷﺐ ،ﻭﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺍﻷﻭﻗﺺ ،ﻭﺑﻜﺮ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﺖ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺣﺪ ،ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ " :ﻫﻠﻜﺖ ﺍﻻﺗﺒﺎﻉ
ﻭﻧﺠﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺓ " ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﻮﺍ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
)(٢٤٦
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺛﻨﺎﺋﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻳﻊ ﺗﺤﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺮﺓ.
ﻭﺃﻱ ﺷﺊ ﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻒ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻬﺎ ﻭﺃﻧﺼﺎﺭﻳﻬﺎ ﺧﻼ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﻧﻔﺮ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻴﻘﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﺸﺎﺭﻫﻢ
ﻭﺃﺷﻌﺎﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻓﺮﻭﺟﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ .ﻭﻳﺤﻤﻞ ﺃﻣﺎﻧﺎﺗﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻳﺪﻋﻮﻧﻪ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﺘﺮﻙ ) (١ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻳﻒ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺎﻉ ﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺪﻡ ﻭﺗﻮﻟﻰ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ
ﺍﻟﺨﺎﻣﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺼﺮ ،ﻓﻼ ﻳﺮﺍﺩ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﺍﻓﻊ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺮﺍﺟﻊ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻔﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﺑﺠﺤﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﻋﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻷﻭﺛﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺬﻯ ﻋﺸﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﻨﻴﻌﺔ.
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻃﺄ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺎﺋﺮ ﻟﻴﺼﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ
ﻋﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺛﺮﻫﻢ ) (٢ﻭﻳﻔﻀﻠﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻈﻬﺮ ﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻒ ﺃﺛﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﺎﻉ ﻛﺘﻤﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺳﺘﺮﻩ ﻭﺗﺰﻣﻴﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﻮﻯ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻓﻴﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺿﻴﻊ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻟﻴﻞ ]ﻭ[ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻴﻊ؟! ﻓﻠﻢ )(٣
ﻳﺆﺛﺮ ﻗﺮﻳﺒﺎ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻮﻝ ﻧﺴﻴﺒﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﺎﻥ ﺑﻄﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﻭﻻﻩ ﻭﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﺎ .ﻭﻟﻠﻮﻻﻳﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺃﻫﻼ ،ﺑﻞ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺿﺪ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺼﻨﻌﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻷﺛﺮﺓ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺼﺒﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻃﺄﺓ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻟﺠﺎﺯ ) (٤ﻟﻘﺎﺋﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻡ ﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺼﺒﻴﺔ ﻟﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻖ ﺑﻮﺭﺍﺛﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﻫﻂ ﻟﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻡ ﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﻗﺒﻴﻠﺘﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﻘﻮﻝ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﻮﺭﺑﻬﻢ " ﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﻤﻦ ﻟﻢ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺟﺎﺯ ".
)(٢٤٧
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﺘﻌﺎﻥ ﺑﻘﻮﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﺍﻃﺄﺓ ﻭﺷﺮﻳﻄﺔ ،ﻛﺼﻨﻴﻊ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺑﺬﻯ
ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻉ ﻭﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ،ﻟﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻡ ﺭﻫﺒﺔ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻭﺍﻃﺄﻩ ،ﻭﺭﻏﺒﺔ
ﻓﻴﻤﻦ ﺃﻛﺪ ﻫﻮﺍﻩ.
]ﻭ[ ﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﺃﻋﻨﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻗﺘﺎﻝ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺣﺮﺏ
ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺔ ﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ .ﺩﻭﻥ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ * ﻭﻟﻮ ﻭﻟﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ
ﺃﻫﻼ ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﻦ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺠﺪ ﺳﺒﺒﺎ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻭﺃﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻗﺒﺎﺀ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ،
ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻫﻼ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﻦ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺠﺪ ﻣﺘﻌﻠﻘﺎ.
ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺣﺮﺏ ﻣﺴﻴﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﺗﻤﻴﻢ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺩﻳﺔ،
ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﻋﻜﺮﻣﺔ ﺭﺩﺓ ﻋﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺭﺩﺓ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻧﺠﻴﺮ
ﻭﺍﻟﻴﻤﻦ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﺯﺍﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﻌﺎﺗﺒﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ " :ﻻ ﺃﺷﻴﻢ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ ﺳﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﺭ " .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ) (١ﻟﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﺷﺮ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻣﺆﻣﻨﺎ
ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ ،ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﺴﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻓﺮ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻓﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ!
]ﻭﻫﻢ[ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻭﺧﺎﺻﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺪﺭﻳﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻮﻥ :ﺧﻴﺮ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ! ﺍﺑﺘﻠﻮﺍ ﻓﺼﺒﺮﻭﺍ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻌﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﺸﻜﺮﻭﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻠﻌﺠﺐ " ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻌﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ.
)(٢٤٨
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﻛﻴﻒ ﺭﺃﻭﺍ ) (١ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﺪﻳﺤﺎ ﻟﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺎﻟﻴﺎ ﺭﻓﻴﻌﺎ ﻣﺘﻘﺪﻣﺎ ﺯﺍﻫﺪﺍ ﻋﺎﻟﻤﺎ ﺳﺎﺋﺴﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻀﻼﺀ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻘﻼﺀ ،ﻭﺃﺯﻫﺪ ﻣﻦ
ﺯﻫﺎﺩ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻮﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺎﺳﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻘﺺ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ،
ﻭﺃﺯﻫﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﻏﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻬﻞ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺩﺭﻙ ﻓﻴﺘﻜﻠﻔﻪ ﻣﺘﻜﻠﻒ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻡ ﺑﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺎﻭﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺒﺎﻳﻦ ﺛﻢ ﺷﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻤﻴﻦ )(٢
ﻣﻦ ﺳﻤﻌﻬﻤﺎ ﻳﺘﻨﺎﺯﻋﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﻴﺤﺴﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺿﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺷﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﺧﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻮ
ﺍﻷﺭﻳﺐ ﺍﻷﺩﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﺍﻫﺐ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺎﻛﺮ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﺘﺒﺲ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻭﺃﺷﻜﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﺸﻜﻼ ﻣﻠﺘﺒﺴﺎ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻔﺮ ﺑﺠﺤﺪﻩ
ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻛﻔﺮ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻭﺣﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺘﻲ ﺳﺒﻌﻴﻦ ﺃﻟﻔﺎ
ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺣﺴﺎﺏ " ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﺼﻦ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ،
ﺩﻉ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻨﻲ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻓﻘﺘﻞ ﻣﻊ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺰﺍﺧﺔ
ﻓﻲ ﺇﻣﺮﺓ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﺨﻼﻓﺘﻪ ،ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻃﻠﻴﺤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ
ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﻓﻀﻼ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻔﺮﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﻘﺎﺩ ﻻﻣﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ.
ﺛﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻓﺾ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻖ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ]ﻗﺎﻝ[ ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺻﻮﺣﺎﻥ " ﺯﻳﺪ
.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻧﺄﻭﺍ ".
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ.
)(٢٤٩
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺯﻳﺪ! ﻳﺴﺒﻘﻪ ﻋﻀﻮ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ " ﻓﻘﺘﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻞ .ﻓﺠﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﻮﺍﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﺎﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﻔﻲ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ " ﻳﺴﺒﻘﻪ ﻋﻀﻮ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻌﻀﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺒﻖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﻄﻊ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﺟﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻩ
ﻗﻄﻌﺖ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻧﻬﺎﻭﻧﺪ ،ﻓﻲ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻋﻤﺮ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ ﺇﻥ ﺗﺘﺒﻌﻪ ﻣﺘﺘﺒﻊ .ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﺃﺭﺩﻧﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺍﻷﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻧﻔﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺺ ﻋﻨﻬﻤﺎ ).(١
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺳﺄﻝ ﺳﺎﺋﻞ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻫﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺨﺬﻭﺍ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ﻭﺃﻥ
ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﺍ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ؟
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ " ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ " ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ
ﻗﺼﺪﺗﻢ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻔﺼﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﺎﻟﻴﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻻ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ .ﻭﻻ ﺗﻔﺼﻞ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻭﺟﻮﺩﻫﺎ ﻭﻧﻘﺺ ﻋﺪﻣﻬﺎ )(٢
ﻭﻷﻱ ﺷﺊ ﺍﺭﺗﺪﺕ ﻭﻷﻱ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﻣﻠﺖ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻣﺄﺗﺎﻫﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺒﻴﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ،ﺑﻞ ﻫﻲ
ﻣﻊ ﻛﻞ ﺭﻳﺢ ﺗﻬﺐ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺷﺌﺔ ﺗﻨﺠﻢ ) (٣ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺒﻄﻠﻴﻦ ﺃﻗﺮ ﻋﻴﻨﺎ ]ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ) [(٤ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺤﻘﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺩﺍﺓ ﻟﻠﺨﺎﺻﺔ ،ﺗﺒﺘﺬﻟﻬﺎ ﻟﻠﻤﻬﻦ ،ﻭﺗﺰﺟﻰ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺗﻄﻮﻝ )(٥
ﺑﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ،ﻭﺗﺴﺪ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺜﻐﻮﺭ ،ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺟﻮﺍﺭﺡ
ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻓﻜﺮ ﺃﺑﺼﺮ ،ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﺑﺼﺮ ﻋﺰﻡ،
--------------------
) (١ﺑﻌﺪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻳﺒﺪﺃ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺤﻒ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﻄﺎﻧﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻣﻮﺯ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﻣﺰ
)ﺏ( ﻭﺳﺄﻧﺒﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﺰﻣﻬﺎ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ ﺑﺸﺨﺺ " ﻭﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٥ﺏ " :ﺗﺼﻮﻝ ".
)(٢٥٠
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﺰﻡ ﺗﺤﺮﻙ ﺃﻭ ﺳﻜﻦ ﻭﻫﺪﺃ ) (١ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭﺡ ]ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ .ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭﺡ ) [(٢ﻻ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻭﻻ ﺗﺮﻭﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻬﺎ
ﺫﺍﻙ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﻟﻠﻌﺰﻡ ،ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻻ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺓ ) (٣ﻭﻻ
ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺮﻭﻯ ﻣﻌﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻬﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻋﺰﻣﻬﺎ،
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﺑﺮﻣﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻫﺎ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭﺡ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻣﺴﺨﺮﺓ ﻭﻣﺪﺑﺮﺓ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺗﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻟﻌﻠﻞ ﺗﺪﺧﻠﻬﺎ،
ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺗﺼﺮﻓﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺗﻨﻘﻀﻬﺎ ) (٤ﻛﺎﻟﻴﺪ ﻳﻌﺮﺽ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﻟﺞ .ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ
ﻳﻌﺘﺮﻳﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﺱ ،ﻓﻼ ﺗﻘﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺴﺪﻳﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻭﺗﻘﻮﻳﻤﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ
ﻋﺰﻣﻬﺎ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺗﺄﺗﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﺭﻓﻘﻬﺎ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻧﻔﻮﺭﻫﺎ ﻭﺗﻬﻴﻴﺠﻬﺎ )(٥
ﻭﻏﻠﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﻬﻮﻯ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺨﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺗﻌﻬﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺳﺔ.
ﻏﻴﺮ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺭﺣﺔ ﺃﻳﺴﺮ ﺿﺮﺭﺍ ﻭﺃﻫﻮﻥ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻧﻜﻔﺖ )(٦
ﺑﺎﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺗﻨﻜﺮﺕ ﻟﻠﻘﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺗﺸﺰﻧﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺿﺔ ) (٧ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺒﻮﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻻ ﺣﻴﻠﺔ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻨﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﺑﻘﺎﺀ ﻣﻌﻪ.
ﻭﺻﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﻌﻤﺔ ،ﻓﻲ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ
ﻛﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻔﻌﺔ ﻭﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﺩﺭﻙ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ ) (٨ﺑﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻭﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺭﺣﺔ،
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ " ﻭﺏ " ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ " ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " ﻳﻨﻘﺼﻬﺎ ".
) (٥ﺃ " :ﺛﺒﻮﺭﻫﺎ ﻭﺗﻬﻴﺠﻬﺎ ".
) (٦ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " :ﻧﻜﺜﺖ ".
) (٧ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺿﺔ :ﺟﻤﻊ ﺭﺍﺋﺾ ،ﺗﺸﺰﻧﺖ :ﺗﺼﻌﺒﺖ .ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ :ﻭﻓﻰ ﺏ
" ﺗﺸﺮﺑﺖ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٨ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(٢٥١
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻟﻮ ﺃﺩﺭﻛﺖ ﻛﻞ ﺑﻐﻴﺔ .ﻭﺃﻭﻓﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻞ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻓﺘﺤﺖ ﻛﻞ
ﻣﺴﺘﻐﻠﻖ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺜﺎﺭﺕ ﻛﻞ ﺩﻓﻴﻦ ،ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻌﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺑﺔ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺟﻮﺩ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻨﺒﻂ -ﻭﺇﻥ ﺟﻞ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻭﻋﻈﻢ
ﺧﻄﺮﻩ ] -ﻭﻋﺪﻣﻪ ) [(١ﺳﻮﺍﺀ.
ﻓﺎﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﺗﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻛﺤﺎﺟﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺐ
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺎﺭﺣﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺟﻨﺔ ﻟﻠﺪﻓﻊ ،ﻭﺳﻼﺡ ﻟﻠﻘﻄﻊ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻟﺘﺮﺱ ﻟﻠﺮﺍﻣﻲ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺄﺱ ﻟﻠﻨﺠﺎﺭ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻀﻰ ) (٢ﺳﻴﻒ ﺻﺎﺭﻡ ﺑﻜﻒ ﺍﻣﺮﺉ ﺻﺎﺭﻡ ﺑﺄﻣﻀﻰ
ﻣﻦ ﺷﺠﺎﻉ ﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﺃﻣﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﻠﺪ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﻪ! ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﻠﺐ ﺃﺷﻼﻩ ﺭﺑﻪ ﻭﺃﺣﻤﺸﻪ ﻛﻼﺑﻪ،
ﺑﺄﻓﺮﻁ ﺗﻨﺰﻗﺎ ) (٣ﻭﻻ ﺃﺳﺮﻉ ﺗﻘﺪﻣﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺗﻬﻮﺭﺍ ،ﻣﻦ ﺟﻨﺪﻱ ﺃﻏﺮﺍﻩ
ﻃﻤﻌﻪ ،ﻭﺻﺎﺡ ﺑﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻋﻤﺎﻝ ﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ،ﻓﻠﺒﺎﺏ ﻛﻞ ﻋﻤﻞ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻭﺻﻔﻮﺓ ﻛﻞ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻊ
ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ .ﻓﺄﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﺎ،
ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﺎ ﻣﻮﺟﺒﺔ ﺃﻗﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍ ،ﻭﺃﻗﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍ ﺃﻗﻠﻬﻢ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﺎ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻠﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﺭﻳﻦ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻨﻬﻴﻴﻦ،
ﻭﻻ ﻋﺎﺻﻴﻦ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻄﻴﻌﻴﻦ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﻄﻴﻌﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻌﺼﻮﻥ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺠﻬﻠﻮﻥ؟
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﻤﻀﻰ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﺏ " :ﻧﺰﻗﺎ ".
)(٢٥٢
ﻗﻴﻞ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻓﺎﻟﺘﻨﺰﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺮﺩ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ) (١ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻳﻌﺔ
ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻔﺎﺽ ،ﻭﻛﺜﺮ ﺗﺮﺩﺍﺩﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻤﺎﻉ،
ﻭﻛﺮﻭﺭﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻓﻬﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺠﻬﻠﻮﻥ ﻓﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻝ ،ﻭﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻤﻞ،
ﻭﻏﺎﻣﺾ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺣﻤﻠﺘﻬﺎ ) (٢ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺹ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺹ ﻣﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻷﺛﺮ ،ﻭﻃﻼﺏ
ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ،ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﺘﻜﻠﻒ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﻭﻳﺘﺘﺒﻊ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻬﺠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺒﻪ )(٣
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻘﻬﺮ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﻋﺪ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ،ﺧﺒﺮﺍﻥ :ﺧﺒﺮ ﻟﻠﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻛﺎﻟﺼﻠﻮﺍﺕ
ﺍﻟﺨﻤﺲ ،ﻭﺻﻮﻡ ﺭﻣﻀﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻏﺴﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺎﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺋﺘﻴﻦ ﺧﻤﺴﺔ ) .(٤ﻭﺧﺒﺮ
ﺗﻔﻀﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺳﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻼﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻡ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﻀﺎﺀ ) (٥ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻼﻕ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺳﻚ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻴﻮﻉ ،ﻭﺍﻷﺷﺮﺑﺔ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﺭﺍﺕ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻩ ﺫﻟﻚ.
ﻭﺑﺎﺏ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻳﺠﻬﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﻭﻳﺨﺒﻂ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺸﻮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺸﻌﺮ ﺑﻌﺠﺰﻫﺎ )(٦
ﻭ ]ﻻ[ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺩﺍﺋﻬﺎ ) .(٧ﻭﻣﺘﻰ ﺟﺮﻯ ﺳﺒﺒﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻇﻬﺮ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺗﺴﻨﻤﺖ
ﺃﻋﻼﻩ ،ﻭﺭﻛﺒﺖ ﺣﻮﻣﺘﻪ ) ،(٨ﻛﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻋﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻋﻴﺪ،
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﻌﺪ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺟﻬﻠﺘﻬﺎ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﺃﻱ ﻳﺴﻬﻞ ﻓﻬﻤﻪ .ﺏ " ﻳﻌﺠﻢ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٤ﻳﺸﻴﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ.
) (٥ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ".
) (٦ﺏ " :ﺑﺴﺮﻫﺎ ".
) (٧ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻟﻔﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ ﻭﺩﺍﺋﻬﺎ ﻫﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺫﺍﺗﻬﺎ " ﻭﻓﻰ ﺏ " ﺩﺃﺑﻬﺎ "
ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ.
) (٨ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺣﺮﻣﺔ " ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
)(٢٥٣
ﻷﻧﻬﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺤﺠﻢ )] (١ﻋﻦ[ ﺩﻋﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻴﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺘﻬﺎﻓﺖ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ] ،ﻭﻻ[ ﺗﺘﺴﻜﻊ
ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ) ،(٢ﻭﻻ ﺗﺴﺘﻮﺣﺶ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ]ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﻮﻳﺮ،
ﻭﻻ ﺗﻔﺮﻍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ) [(٣ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺒﺎﻉ ،ﻭﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ) (٤ﻭﻛﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﺟﺮﻯ ﺳﺒﺒﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻗﻴﻖ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺟﻠﻴﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺑﺮﺯ ) (٥ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﺎﺩﺓ ﻣﻨﻬﺞ ﻭﻗﺎﺭﻋﺔ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ،ﻓﻨﺎﺯﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺤﻮ
ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻭﺽ .ﻭﺧﺎﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﻮﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺴﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺐ
ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻨﺪﺳﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﺎﻋﺎﺕ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﺽ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺎﺗﺤﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻘﺎﺕ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻧﻄﻖ ﺑﺤﺮﻑ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﻴﺌﺔ ) ،(٦ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﻄﺎﻋﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻫﻞ ﺧﻠﻖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﻭﻗﺪﺭﻩ؟ ﺃﻭ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﻠﻘﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﺭﻩ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻖ ﺣﻤﺎﻝ ﺃﻏﺜﺮ ) (٧ﻭﻻ ﻳﻄﺎﻑ ) (٨ﻏﺚ ،ﻭﻻ ﺧﺎﻣﻞ ﻏﻔﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻏﺒﻲ
ﻛﻬﺎﻡ ،ﻭﻻ ﺟﺎﻫﻞ ﺳﻔﻴﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﻭﻗﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻻﺣﺎﻩ ،ﻭﺻﻮﺑﻪ ﻭﺧﻄﺎﻩ،
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺽ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺘﻮﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺿﺎﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻜﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻒ ﻫﻮﺍﻩ .ﻓﺈﻥ
ﺟﺎﺭﺍﻩ ﻣﺤﻖ ،ﺃﻭ ﺃﻏﻠﻆ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻋﻆ ،ﻭﺍﺗﻔﻖ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺗﻪ ﺃﺷﻜﺎﻟﻪ ،ﺍﺳﺘﻌﻮﻯ
ﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ) (٩ﻓﺄﺷﻌﻠﻮﻫﺎ ﻓﺘﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺿﺮﻣﻮﻫﺎ ﻧﺎﺭﺍ.
--------------------
) (١ﺏ " :ﻋﺠﺰﺕ " ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻴﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻜﻊ :ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﻣﺘﻌﺴﻔﺎ ﻟﻐﻴﺮ ﻭﺟﻬﺔ .ﺏ " :ﻭﻻ ﺗﺘﺴﻊ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٤ﺏ " :ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ".
) (٥ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺩ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٦ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ".
) (٧ﺍﻻﻏﺜﺮ .ﺍﻷﺣﻤﻖ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻞ.
) (٨ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺮﻑ ﺍﻷﻭﻝ ﻣﻬﻤﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٩ﺍﺳﺘﻌﻮﺍﻫﻢ :ﻧﻌﻖ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ.
)(٢٥٤
ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺻﻔﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺤﻴﺰ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺣﺴﻨﺖ
ﻧﻴﺘﻪ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻓﻄﺮﺗﻪ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﺼﻮﻝ ﻭﺗﻤﻴﻴﺰ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻬﻢ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻋﺪﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻮﺭﻩ،
ﻭﺗﺸﺒﻴﻬﻪ ﺑﺨﻠﻘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ]ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻭ )[(١
ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮ ) (٢ﺟﻤﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﻪ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻥ ﻗﻠﻮﺏ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻐﻴﻦ ﻣﺴﺨﺮﺓ ﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺭﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻤﻴﻦ .ﻭﻣﺤﻤﻮﻟﺔ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺳﻠﻴﻦ ،ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻨﺒﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ]ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ ) [(١ﺍﻷﺩﻟﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻌﻬﺎ ]ﻋﻦ ) [(١ﺍﻟﺠﻮﻻﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺼﺮﻑ ،ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺑﺚ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻜﻴﺮ ) ،(٣ﻭﺷﻐﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺼﻴﻞ ،ﻣﻦ ﻭﺳﻮﺳﺔ ﺃﻭ ﻧﺰﺍﻉ ﺷﻬﻮﺓ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻻﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻌﺘﻮﻫﺎ ﺃﻭ ﻃﻔﻼ ﻓﻤﺤﺠﻮﺝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻟﺴﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺳﻠﻴﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﺎﻟﻤﺎ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﻪ ،ﻋﺎﺭﻓﺎ ﺑﻤﺎ
ﻧﻬﻰ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﺨﻂ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﻋﻴﻦ
ﺭﺿﺎﻩ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﻛﺐ ﺍﻟﺴﺨﻂ ﺃﻭ ﺃﺗﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻕ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﺪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺘﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺎﻗﺐ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺩ
ﺧﻼﻓﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺭﺿﺎﻩ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﺤﻤﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺘﻤﺪ ﺭﺿﺎﻩ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺼﺪ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﻌﺪﻝ ﺻﻨﻌﺘﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﻮﻯ ﺃﺩﺍﺗﻪ ) ،(٤ﻭﻳﻔﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻘﻮﺹ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻨﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻴﺒﻪ ،ﺇﻻ ﻟﻴﻔﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺘﻮﻩ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٢ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺏ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﻧﻔﻴﺲ ".
) (٣ﺭﺑﺜﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ :ﺣﺒﺴﻪ ﻭﺻﺮﻓﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻜﻴﺮ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٤ﺏ " :ﺁﺩﺍﺑﻪ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻔﻪ.
)(٢٥٥
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻠﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻟﺘﺒﺼﻴﺮﻩ ) (١ﻭﺗﺨﻴﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺫﺍﻙ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﺧﺺ ﺑﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻹﺑﺎﻧﺔ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﻨﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺇﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺒﻨﻴﺔ ) (٢ﻣﻌﻨﻰ .ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺘﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻋﻦ
ﻓﻌﻞ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﺧﻠﻘﺖ ﺍﻟﺠﻦ ﻭﺍﻹﻧﺲ ﺇﻻ ﻟﻴﻌﺒﺪﻭﻥ " ﺩﻟﻴﻞ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻻﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺠﻦ ﻭﺍﻹﻧﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻠﻖ
ﻟﻠﻌﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ .ﻭﻻ ﺣﺠﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻘﻞ ،ﺃﻭ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ،ﺃﻭ ﺧﺒﺮ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﺎﻧﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻮﻳﺔ ﻟﻠﻌﺒﺎﺩﺓ
ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻓﺤﻜﻤﻬﻢ ) (٣ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻌﺒﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ
ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻌﺒﺪﻳﻦ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻠﺰﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻠﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ
ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﺴﺒﻴﻞ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ ﻓﻴﻠﺰﻣﻬﺎ ) (٤ﺃﻣﺮ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﺠﺮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻧﻬﻰ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺟﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺑﻘﺪﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻌﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﺓ ﻋﻘﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺧﻮﺍﻃﺮﻫﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺮﺗﻔﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺿﻌﻒ ﻋﻘﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻨﺤﻂ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻃﺒﻘﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻧﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻃﻔﺎﻝ.
ﻭﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺹ ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﻣﺠﻬﻮﻟﺔ ﻓﻨﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ
ﺑﺄﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﺒﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻷﻧﻜﻢ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ ﻓﻮﻕ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻔﺮﻗﺔ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻟﺴﻌﺪﻩ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺗﺤﻜﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﻨﻴﺔ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ " :ﻭﺣﻜﻤﻬﻢ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻓﻠﻴﻠﺰﻣﻬﺎ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
)(٢٥٦
ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻔﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻔﺎﺀ ﻓﻮﻕ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻊ ﺍﻟﻮﺯﺭﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﻭﻃﺒﻘﺎﺗﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﻛﻴﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺨﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺨﺎﺀ .ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺓ
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻛﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺪﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻓﺎﺀ .ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺒﻦ ) (٢ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪﺓ .ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺰﻉ ]ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺒﺮ )[(٣
ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻴﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻔﻆ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺴﻴﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻴﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ
ﺧﺎﺻﺔ .ﻭﺫﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺎﺿﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺒﺎﻳﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﻨﻴﺔ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻒ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻌﻬﻢ ﻟﺴﻘﻂ ﺍﻻﻣﺘﺤﺎﻥ ﻭﺑﻄﻞ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﺒﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ
ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺧﻮﻟﻒ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﻳﺰﺓ ﻟﻴﺼﺒﺮ ﺻﺎﺑﺮ ،ﻭﻳﺸﻜﺮ ﺷﺎﻛﺮ،
ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻔﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻫﻮ ﺳﺒﺐ ﺍﻻﺋﺘﻼﻑ ).(٥
ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ :ﺇﻧﻜﻢ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻛﺜﺮﺗﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ،ﻭﺧﻠﻄﺘﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻓﻤﺮﺓ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻧﻜﺬﺏ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﻴﻦ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﺑﺰﻋﻤﻜﻢ ﻻ ﻳﻔﺼﻠﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻔﺮﻗﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻜﺎﺫﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺘﺎﻝ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺩﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻖ .ﻭﺟﻌﻠﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻜﻢ
ﺍﻋﺘﺮﺿﺘﻤﻮﻫﻢ ﺑﺰﻋﻤﻜﻢ ﻓﺴﺄﻟﺘﻤﻮﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﻕ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻢ
ﺗﺠﺪﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﺸﻌﺮﻭﻥ ﺑﻤﺎ ) (٦ﻳﻠﺰﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﺑﺎﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺓ ،ﺑﻔﺘﺢ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺀ ﻭﺿﻤﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﻼﺩﺓ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ :ﺿﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺎﺫ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻛﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻀﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ.
ﺏ " :ﺍﻟﺒﻼﺩﺓ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ " ﻣﻊ ﺍﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ ،ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٣ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺏ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺏ.
) (٥ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﻨﺎ ﻳﻨﺘﻬﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻷﺧﻴﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ )ﺏ( .ﻭﺗﻨﻔﺮﺩ ﻧﺴﺨﺘﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺺ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻤﺎ ".
)(٢٥٧
ﻭﺇﻧﺎ ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻤﺪﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﺣﻴﻦ ﺯﻋﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ
ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻭﻳﻔﺮﻗﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺹ
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ،ﻣﻦ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ ﻭﻋﻘﺪ
ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ .ﻓﻤﺮﺓ ﺗﺨﺮﺟﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﺗﺠﻌﻠﻮﻧﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺪﻝ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺃﻗﺴﻄﻬﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﺟﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﺍﺋﻊ
ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻫﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﻠﻴﺔ ) (١ﻭﺟﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺿﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻔﻴﻀﺔ ،ﻭﻳﺠﻬﻠﻮﻥ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﺟﻤﻠﻬﺎ
ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﻨﺼﻮﺹ ﻟﻢ ) (٢ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻛﻈﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺤﺞ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺮ
ﻛﺸﻬﺮﺓ ) (٣ﺻﻮﻡ ﺭﻣﻀﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻏﺴﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺎﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺗﺤﺮﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﻤﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻨﺰﻳﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻴﺘﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻡ.
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺩﻋﻮﻧﺎ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﺎ .ﻭﺍﺿﺮﺑﻮﺍ ﻋﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ ﺻﻔﺤﺎ .ﻭﻗﺮﺑﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻟﻴﻦ
ﻟﻨﺘﻌﺎﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ .ﻓﺄﻳﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻣﺘﺤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻔﻰ ﻟﻠﻘﺬﻯ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺴﻦ
ﻣﻐﺰﻯ ،ﻭﺃﺟﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ .ﻭﺃﺻﺢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻠﻴﺐ ،ﺩﻧﺎ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺎﻣﻴﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﺗﻘﺮﺑﻨﺎ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺁﺛﺮﻧﺎﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ.
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺴﺘﻤﻠﻰ ﺣﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﺻﺪﻗﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﺤﺘﺞ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ
ﺇﻻ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﺮﻭﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ.
ﺧﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ :ﻫﻞ ﻳﺨﻠﻮ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﻴﻦ؟ ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﻴﻦ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺩﺧﻠﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻋﺎﺑﻮﺍ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﻴﻦ ﻓﻬﻞ ﺗﺨﻠﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻋﺬﺭﻫﻢ
ﻣﻦ ﺿﺮﺑﻴﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﺼﺪﻕ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻭﻓﺼﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺠﻠﻴﻠﺔ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻛﺸﻬﻮﺭ ".
)(٢٥٨
ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻨﺒﻲ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ .ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ،
ﻭﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻭﺍﻓﻘﻮﺍ ﻭﺃﺻﺎﺑﻮﺍ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ
ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻓﻠﻴﺨﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ؟
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻫﻮ ﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﺋﺐ ) (١ﻭﺣﻨﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺩ ) ،(٢ﻭﺇﻇﻼﻝ ﺍﻟﻐﻤﺎﻣﺔ )،(٣
ﻭﻗﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﻀﺎﺓ ) (٤ﻭﺧﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺮﺓ ) ،(٥ﻭﻛﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﺭﺍﻉ ) ،(٦ﻭﻋﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮﺍﺀ ﻋﻦ
ﺗﺄﻟﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺸﺎﺭﺍﺕ ﺑﺮﺳﺎﻟﺘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺐ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﺻﺪﻗﺘﻢ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻷﻋﺎﺟﻴﺐ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﻮ ﺫﺋﺐ ﺃﻫﺒﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻭﺱ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﻲ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻛﻠﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﺋﺐ ﻭﺑﺸﺮﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ
ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ .٥١٣ :٣
) (٢ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻟﺤﻨﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺬﻉ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .٢٤١ - ٢٣٩ :١ﻭﺟﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺻﻞ ﺃﺳﻄﻮﺍﻧﺔ ﺟﺬﻉ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ ،ﺛﻢ ﺗﺤﻮﻝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺻﻞ
ﺃﺧﺮﻯ ،ﻓﺤﻨﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻰ ﻭﻣﺎﻟﺖ ﻧﺤﻮﻩ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﻓﺎﺣﺘﻀﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﺳﻜﻨﺖ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﺬﻉ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﻩ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻋﻤﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ ﺻﻌﺪ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺤﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺬﻉ
ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﺃﻱ ﻧﺰﻉ ﻭﺍﺷﺘﺎﻕ ،ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ )ﺣﻨﻦ(.
) (٣ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻳﺮﻭﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺣﻠﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ١٢٠ﺟﻮﺗﻨﺠﻦ.
) (٤ﺍﻟﻤﻴﻀﺄﺓ :ﺍﻻﻧﺎﺀ ﻳﺘﻮﺿﺄ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺇﺷﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﺗﻰ
ﺑﻘﺪﺡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺎﺀ ﻓﻮﺿﻊ ﺃﺻﺎﺑﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺡ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺴﻊ ،ﻓﻮﺿﻊ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﻠﻤﻮﺍ .ﻓﺘﻮﺿﺆﻭﺍ ﺃﺟﻤﻌﻴﻦ
ﻭﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻌﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﻦ .ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .٢٨٨ :٢
) (٥ﺍﻟﺨﺪ :ﺍﻟﺸﻖ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺧﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮﺓ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
" :٢٨٦ :٢ﻭﻧﺎﻡ ﻓﺠﺎﺀﺕ ﺷﺠﺮﺓ ﺗﺸﻖ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻴﻘﻆ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻫﻲ ﺷﺠﺮﺓ ﺍﺳﺘﺄﺫﻧﺖ ﺭﺑﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺴﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺄﺫﻥ ﻟﻬﺎ ".
) (٦ﻫﻮ ﺫﺭﺍﻉ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺃﻫﺪﺗﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ،ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺸﻜﻢ .ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ
ﺃﻛﺜﺮﺕ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺬﺭﺍﻉ ﻓﺘﻨﺎﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﺬﺭﺍﻉ ﻓﻼﻙ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻣﻀﻐﺔ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺴﻐﻬﺎ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻢ ﻟﻴﺨﺒﺮﻧﻲ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺴﻤﻮﻡ " .ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٧٦٥ - ٧٦٤
)(٢٥٩
]ﻻ[ ﺗﺨﻠﻮ ﻋﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﻮﺍﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﺖ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺕ ﺑﻪ،
ﺃﻭ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺮ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻮﺩﻉ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﺼﺤﺔ ﻣﺠﻴﺌﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺮﺭ ﺑﻪ ،ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻓﻤﻦ ﺃﻳﻦ
ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﻃﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﻳﻀﺔ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻻﺯﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ
ﻭﻻ ﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻻ ﺗﺴﺘﻄﺎﻉ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻟﻴﻞ ﻣﻌﺪﻭﻡ .ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ
ﻻﺯﻡ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﺎﻉ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻀﻊ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺑﻴﻨﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﺮﻳﺔ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺮﺭ ) (١ﻋﻘﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻵﻳﺎﺕ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻓﻬﻢ ﺻﺪﻗﻬﺎ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﻣﺠﻴﺌﻬﺎ،
ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻨﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﻞ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﺟﺮﺏ ﺑﻌﺾ
ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺮﺑﺔ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺣﻴﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺗﻰ ،ﻭﺃﺑﺮﺃ ﺍﻷﻛﻤﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻠﻖ
ﺍﻟﺒﺤﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻄﻖ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺎﻉ .ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻊ ،ﻭﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺘﻘﺪ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﺃﻛﺬﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻤﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﺑﻄﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻄﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻣﻊ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﻩ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻫﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﺠﻴﺐ
ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ .ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﻗﻮﻡ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻛﻠﻤﺎ ﺯﺍﺩﻫﻢ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺁﻳﺔ ﻭﺃﺭﺩﻓﻬﺎ ﺑﻌﻼﻣﺔ،
ﺍﺯﺩﺍﺩﻭﺍ ﺟﻬﻼ ﺑﺼﺪﻗﻪ ) (٣ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺒﺼﺎﺭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻜﺬﻳﺒﻪ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺤﺖ ﻓﻄﺮﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ
ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺮﺑﺔ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺮﺭﺕ ﺑﺄﻋﻼﻡ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻓﺖ ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ ﻛﻤﺎ
ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺄﻟﻨﺎﻫﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺻﺪﻗﻬﺎ ﻭﺻﺤﺔ ﻣﺠﻴﺌﻬﺎ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ
ﻧﻔﺼﻞ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﺒﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻄﻞ ،ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﻳﻨﺰﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﺎ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺪﺭ " .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺹ ٢٦١ﺱ .٦
) (٢ﺃﻱ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﻩ ﺇﻳﺎﻩ ﻣﺤﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺗﻰ ﻭﻣﺒﺮﺉ ﺍﻷﻛﻤﻪ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺼﺪﻗﻪ ".
)(٢٦٠
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺳﺄﻟﻨﺎﻫﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺮﻫﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻧﻬﺎ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺤﺼﻠﻮﻥ ﻣﺠﻴﺌﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺨﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺻﺪﻗﻬﺎ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﻀﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻬﻞ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻨﺒﻰ .ﻻﻧﻬﻢ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﺤﺴﻨﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻭﻕ ،ﻭﻳﻔﺼﻠﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ
ﺃﻥ ﻧﻘﻀﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻬﻞ .ﻭﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺮﺭﻭﺍ ) (١ﺑﺸﺊ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻵﻳﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻷﻋﺎﺟﻴﺐ.
ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ ﻣﺤﺠﻮﺟﻴﻦ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺮﺭﻭﺍ ﻭﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ،ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻻ ﻧﺠﺪ
ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺄﻟﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﻭﺟﺎﺯ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ،
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ]ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ[ ﻋﺎﺭﻓﻴﻦ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺄﻟﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ ﻣﻔﺴﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ " ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ " ﻷﺧﺒﺮﺕ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻱ ﻭﺟﻬﺔ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﻓﻴﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﻳﻦ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻗﺪ ﻓﻬﻤﻨﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ؟
ﻓﻬﻞ ﻛﻠﻔﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻠﻔﻬﺎ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ؟ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺳﻘﻮﻁ
ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺑﻞ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ،ﺯﻳﺪ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ.
ﻭﻻ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻣﻜﺎﻥ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﺐ ﻋﺠﺰ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺇﻣﻜﺎﻧﻬﺎ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺟﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻏﻲ ) (٢ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻐﻠﺐ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻭﺍ " ﻗﺮﺭﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺊ :ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺍﻻﻋﺘﺮﺍﻑ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻋﻲ " ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ ﺹ ٢٦٤ﺱ .٣
)(٢٦١
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻬﻞ ﻳﻠﺰﻣﻬﺎ ﻓﺮﺽ ﺍﻹﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ ﻋﻦ
ﺍﻟﻌﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﻳﻠﺰﻣﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻠﺰﻣﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻔﻲ ﺃﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻟﻴﻦ ﻳﻠﺰﻣﻬﺎ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﻟﻼﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻮﺟﺐ ﻟﻠﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ،
ﻣﻜﺸﻮﻑ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﺯﺍﺋﻠﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻻ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﺯﺍﺋﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ
ﻋﺪﺩﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻐﻠﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻏﻲ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ ﻣﻤﺴﻜﺔ ﻻ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻋﺪﺩﺍ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻋﺪﺩﺍ
ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﺯﺍﺋﻠﺔ ،ﻓﻌﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻠﻢ ﺟﻌﻠﺘﻢ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻘﻄﺘﻢ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺽ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ
ﻫﻢ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻋﺪﺩﺍ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻷﺳﺒﺎﺏ ،ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﺪﺍ ،ﺫﺍ ﺳﻼﺡ ﻭﻋﺘﺎﺩ
ﻭﻛﺮﺍﻉ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﻴﺌﺔ ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ،ﻓﻘﻠﻴﻞ ﻣﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻧﺸﺮ ) .(٢ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺃﻧﻔﺬ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﺣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺘﺎﺩﻳﻦ :ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺍ )(١
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺭﺑﺔ ،ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﺑﻄﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﺎﺭﺳﺔ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ.
ﻭﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻋﺮﻓﺖ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺤﻖ ،ﻭﻇﻬﺮ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻮﺟﺐ،
ﻭﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺟﻤﺎﺣﺎ ،ﻓﻜﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻘﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺤﻞ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﺑﻪ )(٣
ﻭﺧﺬﻻﻧﻪ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﻻﺑﺪ ،ﻣﺎ ﺩﺍﻣﺖ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺍﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺨﺎﺫﻝ ،ﻭﺇﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﺿﺮﻱ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺊ ﺿﺮﺍ :ﻟﻬﺞ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺻﺎﺭ ﻋﺎﺩﺓ ﻟﻪ.
) (٢ﺍﻟﻨﺸﺮ :ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻔﺮﻕ (٣) .ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺎﻝ :ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻴﺪ.
)(٢٦٢
ﺍﺗﻔﻖ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺓ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻨﺘﻔﻊ ﺑﺎﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﺃﻫﻮﺍﺋﻬﻢ
ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﺸﺎﻋﺮﻭﺍ ).(١
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺼﻔﻮﻥ ﻭﺟﺐ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﺍ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ﺃﺑﺪﺍ،
ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻔﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺨﺎﺫﻝ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ،ﻻﻥ ﺗﻘﻴﺔ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﻗﺪ
ﺗﺰﻭﻝ ﺑﺄﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ :ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺴﻮﺀ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﻠﻂ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻏﻲ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﻳﻔﺤﺶ
ﺟﻮﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﺗﻌﻀﻴﻠﻪ ) (٢ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺌﺜﺎﺭﻩ ﻭﻗﻬﺮﻩ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﺣﺮﺍﺟﺎ
ﻟﻬﻢ ﻭﺳﺒﺒﺎ ﻟﻠﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻜﺎﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻼﻗﻲ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻻﺣﺮﺍﺝ ﻣﻌﺎ
ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺮﺟﻴﻦ ﻳﺘﻜﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ .ﻟﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ
ﻟﻘﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﻮ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻣﻦ ﺛﻮﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﻭﺗﻬﻴﻴﺞ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻴﻌﺔ ،ﻓﻼ
ﻳﺰﺍﻝ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺘﻔﻘﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻛﺎﺗﻔﺎﻗﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻦ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺍﻻﺣﺮﺍﺝ ﻗﺪ ﺷﻤﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻤﻬﻢ .ﻭﺑﻠﻎ ﺃﻗﺼﺎﻫﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﺩﻧﺎﻫﻢ .ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺘﻼﻗﻲ
ﺗﺰﺩﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ ﺣﻤﻴﺔ ﻭﻏﻀﺒﺎ ﻭﺑﺼﻴﺮﺓ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺗﺒﺎﺛﻮﺍ ﻭﺗﻜﺎﺷﻔﻮﺍ ﻭﺷﺎﻉ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻣﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺷﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺪ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻟﻌﺪﻭﻫﻢ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﻠﻂ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻟﺤﺠﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ،
ﻭﻧﺸﺒﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺻﺒﺔ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﺑﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ.
ﻭﺇﻋﻄﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻲ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺗﺮﺍﻣﻰ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻞ ﺗﺪﺍﻋﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺗﻬﻴﺞ
ﺃﻣﻮﺭﺍ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ ﺗﻮﺟﺐ ﺃﻓﻌﺎﻻ ،ﻓﻌﻨﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺗﻤﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ،ﻭﻳﺠﺐ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺽ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺃﺳﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﻏﺔ ﻣﺎﺩﺓ )ﺷﻌﺮ( " :ﻭﺗﻘﻮﻝ :ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻌﺎﺷﺮﺓ ﻭﻣﺸﺎﻋﺮﺓ ".
) (٢ﺍﻟﺘﻌﻀﻴﻞ :ﺃﻥ ﻳﻀﻴﻖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺤﻮﻝ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﺗﻌﻄﻴﻠﻪ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﺧﺮﺍﺟﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ ".
)(٢٦٣
ﻭﻣﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﻣﻜﺎﻥ ،ﻓﻤﺘﻰ ﺑﻄﻞ ﺑﻄﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺽ ،ﻭﻣﺘﻰ ﻭﺟﺪ
ﻭﺟﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺽ.
ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﺒﺐ ﺗﻜﺎﺷﻔﻬﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺿﻌﻒ ﺟﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻏﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺒﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺑﺄﻣﺮﻫﻢ ).(١
ﻭﻟﻀﻌﻔﻬﻢ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺏ :ﻓﺮﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻳﻘﻊ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ .ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﺪﻭ
ﻳﺪﻫﻤﻬﻢ ﻭﻳﻨﺎﺯﻋﻬﻢ ﻣﻠﻜﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻠﺨﻠﻞ ) (٢ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ .ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻗﺔ ﺗﺼﻴﺒﻬﻢ،
ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺕ ﺃﻋﻼﻣﻬﻢ ،ﺃﻭ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻗﻮﺍﺩﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻀﻌﻒ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻣﺪﺑﺮﻫﻢ
ﻭﺳﻴﺎﺳﺔ ﺳﺎﺋﺴﻬﻢ ) ،(٣ﺃﻭ ﻣﻮﺕ ﻗﻴﻤﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺒﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﺗﺘﻜﺎﺷﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺗﻈﻬﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻟﺴﻨﺘﻬﻢ ﺿﻤﺎﺋﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺗﺒﺪﻭ
ﺃﺳﺮﺍﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﻨﻘﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻣﺘﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺑﺨﻠﻌﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﺒﺪﺍﻝ
ﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺴﻜﺖ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﻧﻜﺎﺭ ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮﺕ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ ﺭﻳﺜﻤﺎ ﺗﺠﺪ ﻓﺮﺻﺔ
ﻭﺗﺮﻯ ﺧﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻳﺴﺘﺠﻤﻊ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ،ﻭﺗﺰﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ
ﺃﺳﺨﻒ ﺃﺣﻼﻣﺎ ﻭﺃﺧﻒ ﺣﺮﻛﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﻃﻴﺸﺎ ،ﺃﻥ ﺗﺆﺛﺮ ﺍﻟﻜﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰﻟﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻴﻢ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻧﺒﺔ ،ﻋﻨﺪ ﺣﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺴﻠﻄﻴﻦ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﻄﻴﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺑﻌﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻜﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ .ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﺃﺟﺒﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ
ﻣﺠﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺄﻟﺔ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻤﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﻫﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﺮﻯ ،ﺃﻥ ﺗﻨﻤﺎﺯ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺼﻴﺮ
ﺑﻌﻀﻬﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ،ﻭﺑﻌﻀﻬﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﻐﺎﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻈﻠﻤﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻠﺤﻞ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺻﺒﺎ ".
)(٢٦٤
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻤﻠﺔ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻣﺘﻰ ﺃﻗﺮﻧﻮﺍ ﻟﻌﺪﻭﻫﻢ ) (١ﻭﺃﻣﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻨﻌﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺤﻖ
ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ،ﻓﻌﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻭﻣﻦ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ )(٢؟
ﻗﻴﻞ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻨﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻋﺮﻓﻮﻩ
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻄﺎﻋﻮﺍ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻩ ،ﻭﻻﺑﺪ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻡ ) (٣ﻓﻴﻬﻢ -ﺇﺫ ﻓﺮﺽ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ -ﺭﺟﻞ ﻳﺼﻠﺢ ﻟﺠﺒﺎﻳﺔ ﺧﺮﺍﺟﻬﻢ .ﻭﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺻﻼﺗﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺳﺪ ﺛﻐﻮﺭﻫﻢ
ﻭﺗﻨﻔﻴﺬ ﺃﺣﻜﺎﻣﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺗﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺎﺑﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻫﻞ
ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻤﻨﻮﻥ ) (٤ﻣﺴﺘﻔﻴﺾ؟
ﻗﻴﻞ :ﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺘﺰﻟﺔ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻲ )(٥
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺪﻳﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻥ ﻣﺮﺩﺍﺱ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺩﻳﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺭﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ،
ﻭﻛﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻏﻴﻼﻥ ﺑﺪﻣﺸﻖ ،ﻭﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﺑﺨﺮﺍﺳﺎﻥ.
ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺘﺰﻟﺔ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻗﻄﺎﺭ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ ﻧﻌﻢ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﻬﺎ ).(٦
ﻭﻻ ﻭﺿﻌﺖ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺴﺎﻭﻯ ) (٧ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻓﺎﺣﺘﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻋﺔ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺪﻳﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻲ .ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺭﺝ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺮﺩﺍﺱ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺩﻳﺔ .ﻭﻟﻜﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻗﺮﻥ ﻟﻠﺸﺊ :ﺃﻃﺎﻗﻪ ﻭﻗﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
) (٢ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ".
) (٤ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " ﻣﻨﺠﻨﻮﻥ ".
) (٥ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﻤﺪﺍﻧﻲ ﻭﻟﺪ ﺳﻨﺔ ١٠٠ﻭﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺳﻨﺔ .١٦٩
ﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
) (٦ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺟﻤﻴﻌﻬﺎ ".
) (٧ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺗﺴﺎﻭﺩ ".
)(٢٦٥
ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺗﺮﺩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻮﺏ ،ﻭﺗﻬﺠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ] ،ﺇﻣﺎ[ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﺒﺮ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺸﻔﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ ﻭﻳﺒﺮﺉ ﺍﻟﺴﻘﻢ ،ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ) (١ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺜﻠﺞ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻭﺭ
ﻭﻳﻀﻄﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﻧﺤﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺪﺍﺛﺔ ﺃﺳﻨﺎﻧﻨﺎ ﻭﺗﻘﺎﺩﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻗﺒﻠﻨﺎ .ﺃﻥ ﺟﺎﻟﻴﻨﻮﺱ
ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﺋﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﺭﺳﻄﺎﻃﺎﻟﻴﺲ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺋﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻄﻖ.
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺩﺍﻫﻴﺔ ﻗﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻇﺎﻟﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﺎﺗﻜﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻫﺮﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻨﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﻮﺍﺩﻫﺎ .ﻭﺃﻥ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺑﻐﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺎﻋﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻠﺪﺓ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻃﺒﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻴﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻓﺮﺳﻬﺎ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﻀﻊ ﻗﻂ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ،ﻭﻻ ﻭﺿﻌﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻠﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺳﺘﺠﻤﻌﺖ ﻗﻴﺲ ﻓﻘﺎﺑﻠﺖ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﺼﺎﻝ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ) (٢ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﻗﻴﺲ ،ﻟﺘﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ ) (٣ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﺑﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺣﺘﺎﺟﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻉ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﻫﻤﺔ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺗﻘﺎﺩﻡ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺋﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﻋﺼﺮ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﻡ
ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺃﻣﺮ ،ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﺷﺒﻴﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ) (٤ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻮﺟﺐ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﺎﻉ ﻛﺘﻤﺎﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺮ ﻻﺑﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻇﻬﻮﺭﻩ.
ﻭﺍﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺎﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ
ﺛﻢ ﻻ ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ﺑﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺼﻴﺮ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺑﻄﻮﻝ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﺎﻥ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺧﺼﺎﻟﻬﻢ ﻻ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺭﺑﻪ " ﺑﺪﻭﻥ ﺑﺎﺀ ﻭﺑﺎﻻﻫﻤﺎﻝ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻫﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ.
)(٢٦٦
ﻣﺠﺎﺛﺎﺓ ) (١ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺩﺭﺱ ﻛﺘﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻛﺘﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺎﺯﻋﺔ
ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻢ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻭﻟﺔ ﺍﻷﻛﻔﺎﺀ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻳﺸﻬﺮ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﺧﻴﻼﺀ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﻋﺰ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ،ﻭﺳﺮﻭﺭ ﺍﻟﻈﻔﺮ
ﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﻴﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﺘﻤﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﻋﺰﻣﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻞ
ﺭﻳﺎﺅﻩ ﻭﻧﻔﺠﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻟﻠﻌﻠﻢ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ،ﻭﻻﻧﻔﺘﺎﺣﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺳﺘﻐﻼﻗﻪ ﻓﺮﺣﺔ،
ﻻ ﻳﻀﺒﻄﻬﺎ ﺑﺸﺮﻯ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺷﺘﺪﺕ ﺣﻨﻜﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻗﻮﻳﺖ ﻣﻨﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻀﻠﺖ ﻗﻮﺗﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻚ ﻟﺘﺠﺪ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻼﺀ ﻳﺨﺎﻃﺮﻭﻥ ﺑﺄﻋﻨﺎﻗﻬﻢ ،ﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻤﺔ
ﻳﺠﺪﻭﻧﻬﺎ ) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻛﻔﺎﺋﻬﻢ .ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻤﺘﻨﻌﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭﻫﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺨﺮ ﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻨﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﺋﻨﺎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﺩﻭﻟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻮﻛﻞ ﺑﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﻛﺘﻤﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺇﻣﺎﺗﺘﻪ،
ﻣﻊ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻻﺭﺷﺎﺩ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻭﻧﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻨﻘﺎﺫ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﻟﺔ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻡ ﺑﺤﻖ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺗﻌﻠﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻞ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ ﻳﻐﻨﻰ ﻋﻦ
ﻟﻘﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻜﻞ ﻟﻠﻜﻞ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﺷﻜﻞ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﺻﻠﺢ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ،
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﻣﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺄﺱ ) (٤ﺇﺫ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﺍ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﻟﻨﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ
ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻻﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻘﻂ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻟﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻬﻤﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺒﻪ
ﻭﻃﻠﺐ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻣﻬﻤﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﺟﺎﺛﺎﻩ :ﺟﻌﻞ ﺭﻛﺒﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﻛﺒﺘﻪ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻤﺎ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻳﺠﺪﻭﻧﻬﺎ ".
) (٤ﺍﻟﺒﺄﺱ :ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ .ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻣﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﺍ " .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻴﺄﺗﻲ
ﺹ ٢٦٩ﺱ .٥
)(٢٦٧
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻛﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺧﻔﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﻣﻐﻴﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﻤﻞ ،ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻜﺜﺮ ﺗﺠﺮﺑﺘﻪ ﻭﻳﻜﺜﺮ ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺸﺘﺪ ﺣﻠﻤﻪ،
ﻭﻳﺤﺴﻦ ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻻﺑﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺣﺞ ﻭﻏﺰﻭ ،ﻭﺻﻼﺓ ﻭﺻﻮﻡ ﻭﺻﺪﻗﺔ،
ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﻭﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻗﺮﺁﻥ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﻭﻧﻬﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺣﺪﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﺎﺀ ﻭﻏﻠﻈﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ .ﺇﻥ ﺩﺍﻡ ﻓﻘﺮﻩ ﺩﺍﻣﺖ ﻗﻨﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﻭﻗﻞ ﺇﺳﻔﺎﻓﻪ،
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺩﺍﻡ ﻏﻨﺎﻩ ﺩﺍﻡ ﺑﺬﻟﻪ ﻭﻗﻞ ﻃﻐﻴﺎﻧﻪ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺷﺊ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻳﺸﻬﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻭﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ ،ﻭﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺤﺒﺘﻪ ﻭﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺯﻋﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻭ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺑﺸﺊ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺻﺎﺭ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻤﻞ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻗﻂ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﺇﻥ ﻭﺟﺪﻭﺍ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﻣﺘﻘﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ
ﺑﺎﻥ ﺍﻷﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﻧﻘﺺ .ﻭﻗﻠﻴﻼ ) (١ﻣﺎ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ
ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻫﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﻘﺔ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ .ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﻘﺔ ﻗﺪ ﻳﺘﻔﺎﺿﻠﻮﻥ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻻ ﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﺑﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ
ﻧﻈﺮﻭﺍ ﻓﺎﺧﺘﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻜﺮﻫﻴﻦ ﻭﻻ ﻣﺤﻤﻮﻟﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺑﻮﺟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﻩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻔﻖ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻘﻴﻘﺔ،
ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺤﺔ ،ﻻﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻄﻼﻥ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻔﻖ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻟﺠﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﻗﺒﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﻬﻮﺩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ .ﻭﻟﻮ
ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺴﺘﻮﻯ ﺣﺎﻻﺗﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻓﻌﺎﻟﻬﻢ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﻧﻌﻢ " :ﻻ " ﻣﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻻ " :ﻧﻌﻢ " ﻣﻌﺎ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﻠﻴﻞ ".
)(٢٦٨
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﺴﺎﺩ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻉ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻓﺴﺪ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻉ ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺑﺎﺋﻨﺎ ﻓﻼ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﻔﺮﺽ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺳﺒﻴﻼ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻴﻜﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻣﺮﺍ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻣﺼﻠﺤﺔ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻤﻨﻌﻬﻢ ﻣﺼﻠﺤﺘﻬﻢ ،ﺑﻞ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻈﻬﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﺮﺽ
ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻣﻜﻨﺘﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﺓ ) ،(١ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﺳﻴﺘﻬﻴﺄ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺘﻔﻖ
ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺃﺩﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺽ ،ﻭﻻ ﺑﻠﻮﻍ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﻠﺤﺔ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻔﻖ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻘﻴﻘﺔ ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺯﻧﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ
ﺍﻟﺨﺼﺎﻝ ،ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺣﻴﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺗﻰ ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﺀ ﺍﻷﻛﻤﻪ ﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺟﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﺮﺳﻠﻪ ﻓﻘﻂ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻔﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﺷﺊ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﺎﻋﻼ ) (٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﺟﺎﺯ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻂ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﺫﺏ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﺎﺩﻕ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ
ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺒﻬﺔ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺟﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻋﺮﻓﻮﺍ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻣﻲ :ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎ،
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺍﻗﻲ :ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺯﻱ :ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ
ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺎﻣﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺰﺭﻱ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺷﻲ :ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻴﻨﻲ :ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻨﻰ :ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻔﻼﻧﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻼﻧﻲ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻷﺑﺎﺿﻲ:
ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺮﻱ ﻭﺍﻷﺯﺭﻗﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﻳﺪﻱ،
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻀﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺹ ٢٦٧ﺱ .١٥
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٢٦٩
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻼﻧﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻼﻧﻲ -ﻟﻤﺎ ﻭﺻﻞ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺘﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ
ﻓﻲ ﻋﺪﺩ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻋﺘﺎﺩﻫﻢ.
ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻳﻘﺎﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻭﺟﻪ:
ﻓﻮﺟﻪ ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭ ﻋﻤﺮ
ﺳﺘﺔ ﻣﺘﻘﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﻓﺎﺧﺘﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺭﺟﻼ ،ﻓﻠﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﺋﻨﻴﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ
ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﻃﺒﺎﻕ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻣﻨﺎ ) ،(١ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻗﺒﺎﺀ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ :ﻓﻴﻨﺎ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﺘﺔ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﺋﻨﻴﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ
ﺑﺎﺋﻨﻴﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ.
ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺁﺧﺮ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺇﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺟﻌﻞ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻭﺿﻌﻬﺎ ) (٢ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ
ﻣﺎ ﺣﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﺻﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺔ ﺑﺈﻗﺎﻣﺔ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﺧﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻭﻧﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﺗﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ
ﺃﻏﻤﺾ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻭﺃﺩﻕ ﻣﺴﻠﻜﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻏﻮﺹ ﻣﺴﺘﺨﺮﺟﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻓﺤﺶ ﻣﺄﺛﻤﺎ ،ﻏﻴﺮ
ﻣﻔﺴﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻨﺼﻮﺹ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﻮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﻓﺼﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺎﻉ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ﻭﻧﻔﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻭﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ.
ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺮ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻗﻂ ﺃﻟﺤﺪ ﻭﻻ ﺗﺰﻧﺪﻕ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻡ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻌﻨﺎ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺻﻔﻬﺎ ".
)(٢٧٠
ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎﻩ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺭﺗﺪ ﺯﻧﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﺃﻭ ﺩﻫﺮﻳﺎ ﻣﻦ
ﻗﺒﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺤﺼﻰ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻋﺪﺩﺍ ،ﺃﻭ ﻧﻘﻒ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺪ.
ﻓﺈﺫ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺮﻛﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻨﻜﻮﻥ ﻧﺤﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﺴﺘﻨﺒﻄﻪ
ﻭﻧﺘﻜﻠﻒ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ،ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﺎﺟﻞ ﺳﺮﻭﺭﻩ ﻭﺭﻳﺜﻪ ) (١ﻭﺁﺟﻞ ﺛﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻭﻋﻈﻴﻢ
ﺟﺰﺍﺋﻪ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻫﻮ ) (٢ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻟﻠﻌﻘﻮﻝ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻬﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﺃﻟﻴﻦ
ﻛﻨﻔﺎ ﻟﻠﻮﺍﻃﺊ ،ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺏ ﻣﺄﺧﺬﺍ ﻟﻠﻤﺴﺘﺮﺷﺪ ،ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ.
ﻭﻻ ﺑﺪ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﻣﺮﻳﻦ :ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﺎ ﺇﺫ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ
ﻧﺼﺐ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ ،ﻓﺎﻟﻮﺍﺟﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺰﻋﻢ
ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻓﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﺧﺒﺮﺍ ﻧﻀﻄﺮ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻗﺮﺁﻧﺎ ﻳﻨﺺ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻔﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﻭﺟﺒﻨﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻈﻦ
ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﺁﻳﺔ ﺗﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺼﺐ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ،
ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ.
ﻭﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﻗﻊ ﻣﻨﻪ ) ،(٣ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎﻩ ﺑﺎﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻭﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﻜﻤﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻔﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ،
ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ ،ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﻭﺍ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺧﺒﺮﺍ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺘﺎﺑﺎ
ﺩﺍﻻ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺃﻭﺟﺒﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻌﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻳﺴﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺚ :ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺊ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " ﻭﺭﻳﺒﻪ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﻮﻉ ﻣﻨﻪ ".
)(٢٧١
ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﻭﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻏﻤﺾ ﻭﺃﺷﻜﻞ .ﻛﺎﻟﺬﻱ
ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺪﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﻮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻫﻠﻜﺘﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ
ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺳﺮﻑ ﺷﻬﻮﺍﺗﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻏﻠﺒﺔ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻌﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﻜﻤﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻐﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻭﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻓﻊ ﻣﺆﻭﻧﺘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻗﻤﻊ
ﺩﻭﺍﻋﻴﻬﺎ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻠﺤﺞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻃﺒﺎﺋﻌﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﻮﺭﻃﻬﻢ ﺷﻬﻮﺍﺗﻬﻢ،
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺤﻜﻢ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻮ
ﺃﺳﻘﻂ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺛﻘﻞ ﻇﻬﻮﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺒﺸﻌﺘﻪ ﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﻒ ﺃﻫﻮﺍﺀﻫﻢ
ﻟﺴﻘﻂ ﺍﻻﻣﺘﺤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺑﻄﻞ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﺒﺎﺭ ) ،(١ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺣﻼﻭﺓ ﺗﺠﺘﻨﺐ
ﻭﻣﺮﺍﺭﺓ ﺗﺮﻛﺐ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻳﺬ ﻳﺆﺧﺮ ،ﻭﻛﺮﻳﻪ ﻳﻘﺪﻡ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺫﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺋﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ،ﻭﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻗﺪ ﻧﺺ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺟﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻻ ﻳﻜﺬﺏ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ) (٢ﺟﺎﺯ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻄﻮﻗﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ).(٣
ﻭﻳﻀﻊ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﺼﻬﻢ ) (٤ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻔﺴﺮﻩ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻛﻔﻌﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺩﻕ
ﻭﺃﺧﻔﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﺇﺛﻤﺎ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﺧﻄﺮﺍ.
ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﺇﻧﻜﻢ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺳﻤﻌﺘﻢ ﻓﻠﺴﺘﻢ ﺑﺄﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻛﻢ.
ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﻣﺠﻴﺒﻴﻦ ﺑﺨﺒﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻣﻌﻜﻢ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺤﺠﻨﺎ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺣﺠﻜﻢ ،ﺇﻧﻪ
ﻟﻌﺠﺐ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺣﺞ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﻔﻜﻢ ﻣﻊ ﻛﺜﺮﺗﻬﻢ،
ﻭﺃﻃﺒﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺘﻤﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺟﺤﺪﻩ ﻭﺍﺗﻔﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻻﻋﺠﺐ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺇﻥ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ".
) (٣ﺃﻱ ﻳﻜﻠﻔﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻈﺮ.
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﻣﻮﺱ " :ﺍﻟﻨﺺ :ﺍﻟﺘﻌﻴﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ ﻣﺎ ".
)(٢٧٢
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺗﺤﺠﻮﻥ ﺑﺨﺒﺮ ﻻ ﺗﺴﺘﻄﻴﻌﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﻴﻤﻮﺍ ﺣﺠﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ
ﺧﺎﻟﻔﻜﻢ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻛﻨﺘﻢ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﺠﻜﻢ ﺳﻠﻔﻜﻢ ﻓﺤﺠﻮﺍ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻋﺼﺮﻛﻢ ﻭﻣﻦ
ﻣﻌﻜﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺣﺠﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻠﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻼﻓﻜﻢ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻔﻀﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺁﺧﺮﻩ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻧﺠﺪ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺁﻳﺔ ) (١ﺗﻨﺺ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻨﺺ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺩﺍﻟﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﻜﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ
ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺪﻝ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﻜﻴﺮ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻟﻔﻈﻬﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﺘﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﻣﻄﺒﻘﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻼﻥ.
ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﺑﺎﺏ ﻻ ﺗﻘﺪﺭﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺠﺔ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ
ﻭﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻣﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﺐ ،ﻣﻊ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ :ﻣﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺃﻣﻴﺮ.
ﻭﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ :ﺑﻞ ﻣﻨﺎ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﺍﺀ ﻭﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻮﺯﺭﺍﺀ.
ﺛﻢ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺘﻜﻠﻢ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻉ
ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺴﻘﻴﻔﺔ ،ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﺭﺗﺪﺍﻋﻬﻢ :ﺑﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ
ﺃﻱ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ -ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ -ﻓﻠﻢ ﻧﺠﺪﻩ ﺍﺩﻋﺎﻫﺎ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻓﻨﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ) :(٢ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﻟﻔﻼﻥ
ﻭﺣﺾ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ) (٣ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻻ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﻛﺬﺍ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻟﻔﻼﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻄﻖ
ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻄﻖ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ).(٤
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﻧﻪ ".
) (٢ﺃﻓﻨﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :ﺃﺧﻼﻃﻬﻢ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮ ".
) (٤ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ".
)(٢٧٣
ﺛﻢ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ
ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺭﺟﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻴﺼﺮﻓﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻟﻴﻦ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﺎ
ﻭﺃﺧﻔﺾ ﺟﻨﺎﺣﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻗﻞ ﻫﻴﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ :ﻳﺎ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ
ﻟﻸﺭﻣﻞ ﻭﺍﻷﺭﻣﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻔﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻬﻴﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺪﻭﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻧﺮﻳﺪ ﺻﺮﻓﻬﺎ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﺒﻖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻛﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺧﻴﺮ! ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ:
ﺃﺑﺮﺑﻲ ﺗﻬﺪﺩﻭﻧﻲ ،ﺃﻣﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻘﻴﺘﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻲ :ﻣﻦ ) (١ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺒﺎﺩﻱ؟
ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺃﻫﻠﻚ ﻋﻨﺪﻱ ).(٢
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺠﺮ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﺣﺮﻑ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﺷﻮﺭﻯ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﺘﺔ ﻭﺟﻌﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺎﺭ،
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺮﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻴﻤﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻭﺍﻷﻣﻮﻱ
ﻭﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺇﻥ ﻭﻗﻌﺖ ﻟﻸﺳﺪﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻨﻜﺮﺍ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻴﻊ،
ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺮﻱ ﻭﺍﻷﻣﻮﻱ.
ﻭﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﻭﺃﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ
ﻭﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ،ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﺗﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻮﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺒﺮﻩ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ
ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻮﻥ " :ﻟﻮ ﺃﺩﺭﻛﺖ ﺳﺎﻟﻤﺎ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺨﺎﻟﺠﻨﻲ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ ".
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺩﻋﺎﺑﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺑﺨﻞ ) (٣ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﺑﺄﻭ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ،ﻭﺣﺐ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻟﺮﻫﻄﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻤﻦ " ﺗﺤﺮﻳﻒ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﻱ " :٥٤ :٤ﻋﻦ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﻤﻴﺲ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺩﺧﻞ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻠﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺑﻪ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺧﻼ ﺑﻬﻢ؟! ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻻﻕ ﺭﺑﻚ ﻓﺴﺎﺋﻠﻚ ﻋﻦ ﺭﻋﻴﺘﻚ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ -ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻀﻄﺠﻌﺎ -
ﺃﺟﻠﺴﻮﻧﻲ ،ﻓﺄﺟﻠﺴﻮﻩ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻄﻠﺤﺔ :ﺃﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻔﺮﻗﻨﻲ -ﺃﻭ ﺃﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﺨﻮﻓﻨﻲ -ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺭﺑﻰ
ﻓﺴﺎﺀﻟﻨﻲ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻫﻠﻚ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺃﻫﻠﻚ ".
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺃﻧﺴﺎﺏ ﺍﻷﺷﺮﺍﻑ ﻟﻠﺒﻼﺫﺭﻱ ١٧ :٥ﺣﻴﺚ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺇﻧﻪ " :ﻟﻘﺲ= ،
)(٢٧٤
ﺛﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻋﺔ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻪ ﺑﻴﻌﺘﻪ
ﻭﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻭﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺸﻮﺭﻯ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺨﺎﻳﺮ ﺑﺎﻻﻋﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺰﺀ ) (١ﻓﻠﻢ ﺗﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺭﺍﺀ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ :ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﺨﺎﻳﺮﻙ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺩﻭﻧﻚ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﻷﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺪﺭﻳﻴﻦ ﻭﺳﺎﺋﺮ
ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ،ﺃﻻ ﻳﻤﺴﻜﻮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻣﺴﻚ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺃﺿﺎﻋﻮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻋﺎﻧﺪﻭﺍ ﺃﻭ ﻏﻠﻄﻮﺍ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﺒﺎﻫﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺩﻟﻴﻼ
ﻗﺎﻃﻌﺎ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻨﻊ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻲ ﻣﺤﺎﺭﺑﺔ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ
ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﻗﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻣﺎﺀ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :ﻭﻟﻢ
ﺗﻘﺎﺗﻠﻮﻥ ﺭﺟﻼ ) (٢ﺃﻭ ﺗﻄﻠﺒﻮﻥ ﻣﺨﺎﻳﺮﺗﻪ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﺼﺒﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻓﺴﺮ
ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺷﺄﻧﻪ] .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ[ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ،ﻭﺑﺮﻫﺎﻥ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺍﺩﻋﻴﻨﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻟﻌﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ :ﺧﺒﺮﻧﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻭﺻﻴﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﺑﻴﻚ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻣﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺑﻪ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﻋﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﻊ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﺃﻫﻮﺍﺋﻬﺎ ﻭﻧﺤﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻻ ﺗﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻤﺎ
ﺗﺪﻋﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺻﻴﺔ ﻗﻠﻴﻼ ﻭﻻ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺩﻋﻮﻯ
ﻣﻘﺼﻮﺭﺓ ﻓﻴﻜﻢ ،ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻬﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﻛﻢ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﺻﻴﺔ
--------------------
= ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺿﺎ ﻛﺎﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻐﻀﺐ ،ﺷﺤﻴﺢ " .ﻟﻜﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻹﺻﺎﺑﺔ ٢٧٨٣ﺃﻧﻪ " ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻟﻒ ﻣﻤﻠﻮﻙ
ﻳﺆﺩﻭﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﺍﺝ ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﺑﻴﺘﻪ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ،ﻳﺘﺼﺪﻕ ﺑﻪ ﻛﻠﻪ " .ﻭﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺽ
ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮﺓ ٢٧٢ - ٢٧١ :٢ﺣﻴﺚ ﺍﻟﺘﻨﻮﻳﻪ ﺑﺠﻮﺩﻩ ﻭﻛﺮﻣﻪ.
) (١ﺍﻟﺠﺰﺀ :ﺍﻻﺟﺰﺍﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﻳﺔ :ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﺤﺮ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﻌﻼ " ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﻘﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺀ ﻣﺎﺋﻠﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻴﻢ ﺻﺎﺭﺕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺸﻜﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺮﻑ.
)(٢٧٥
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻟﻠﺰﻳﺪﻳﺔ ﻣﻊ ﺗﺸﻴﻌﻬﺎ ﻭﺇﻓﺮﺍﻃﻬﺎ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﺇﻗﺪﺍﻣﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ .ﻭﺳﻮﺀ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﺎ
ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻬﺎ ﻟﻠﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻧﺼﺒﻪ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﻟﻪ،
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺍﺧﺘﻼﻑ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺭﺗﻴﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺤﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺠﻮﺟﻮﻥ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺎﺫ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺬ ﻭﻣﻔﺎﺭﻕ] .ﻭﻓﻰ[ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﺩﻉ ﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﺐ،
ﻭﻳﻜﻒ ﺫﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎ.
ﻭﺯﻋﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮ
ﺃﻣﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻮﺻﻴﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﻛﺎﺗﻬﻢ ،ﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺟﻤﻊ ﻟﻠﺸﻤﻞ ،ﻭﺃﺩﻋﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﻟﻔﺔ،
ﻭﺃﻣﻨﻊ ﻟﻠﻔﺴﺎﺩ ،ﻭﺃﻗﻄﻊ ﻟﻠﺸﻐﺐ ،ﻭﺃﺫﻫﺐ ﻟﻠﻀﻐﺎﺋﻦ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﻠﻂ.
ﺇﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﺘﻰ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﺗﻜﻔﺮ ﺃﻣﺔ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺃﻧﻔﺲ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻮﺻﻲ
ﺳﻴﻀﻌﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻡ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻖ ،ﻭﺳﺒﺮﻝ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻡ ) (١ﺑﻴﺪﻳﻪ ) (٢ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﻠﺴﺎﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ
ﻻ ﻳﺮﺿﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺷﺘﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺰﻛﻴﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺒﺮﻩ .ﻓﺴﺒﺤﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ!.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺃﺿﺮﺑﻮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺠﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ،ﻓﻤﺎ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺟﺤﺪ ﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺭﺩ ﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺘﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ،
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻟﺴﻨﺔ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺘﻬﻢ ﻭﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻬﻢ ﺑﺄﻗﻄﻊ
ﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺧﺼﻮﻣﻬﻢ ﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻠﻬﻢ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﺿﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﻓﻐﻠﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻃﻠﻪ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺑﻜﺎﻓﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﻴﺪﻳﻪ ".
)(٢٧٦
ﻭﻻ ﻣﻜﺎﺑﺮ ،ﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﺄﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻭﺿﺢ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻳﺨﺘﻠﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻠﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻔﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﺎﺑﺮﻭﻥ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ
ﻳﻜﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻠﻂ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺩﻩ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﺎﺻﻴﺎ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻻ ﺗﺜﺒﺖ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻓﻘﺪ
ﺃﻓﻠﺢ ﺧﺼﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺮﺍﺡ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻋﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻢ ﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ )ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ( ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ،
ﻭﻧﺼﺐ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻗﻴﻤﺎ ،ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﻳﻀﺎﺡ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻼﻣﺔ ،ﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻤﻴﺔ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻭﺃﺷﻬﺪﻭﺍ ﺫﻭﻱ ﻋﺪﻝ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ".
-ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺻﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﺍﻟﺔ -ﻓﻤﺘﻰ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻫﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺎﻵﻳﺔ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ:
" ﻟﻴﺆﻣﻜﻢ ﺧﻴﺎﺭﻛﻢ " ﻓﻘﺪ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﺍﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﻘﺺ ،ﻓﻤﺘﻰ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻋﻨﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻩ ﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ.
) (١ﻭﻻ ﻳﻬﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻳﺘﺮﻛﻬﻢ ﺳﺪﻯ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺿﻊ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻷﺩﻟﺔ ،ﻭﻧﺒﻬﻬﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻫﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻓﻬﻢ ﺃﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭ ) (٢ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﺫ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﻼﻩ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﺒﺮﻩ ﻓﻘﺪ
ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻠﻔﻪ ،ﺟﺎﺯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ .ﻭﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺏ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﺋﻞ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ).(٣
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻣﻦ ﻻ ".
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺟﺎﺯ ".
) (٣ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ " ﻭﺣﻜﻤﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ " ﺹ ٢٧٩ﺱ ٤ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺴﺨﺔ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ
" ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ " ﺹ ١٨٨ﺱ .٢ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺛﺒﺘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﻫﻨﺎ.
)(٢٧٧
ﻷﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺧﻔﻰ ﻭﺃﺩﻕ
ﻭﺃﻳﺴﺮ ﺧﻄﺒﺎ ﻭﺃﻗﻞ ﻧﻔﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺼﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ
ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺑﻬﻢ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺘﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻷﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺨﺘﺎﺭ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻟﻬﻢ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻫﻢ ﻷﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ .ﻓﺈﺫ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺘﺮﻩ ) (١ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﺘﺮﻙ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻷﻧﻪ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﻟﻬﻢ ) (٢ﻓﻘﺪ ﺩﻝ ﺗﺮﻛﻪ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺮﻛﻪ
ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﺮﻙ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ،
ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ) (٣ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﺍ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ،
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻴﺨﺘﺎﺭ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻤﻴﺔ
ﺇﻻ ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻤﻴﺔ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﻤﻴﺔ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻗﺎﺋﻞ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻨﺎ :ﺃﺭﺃﻳﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺪ ﺿﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻠﻪ
ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺸﺒﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻋﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻋﻴﺪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ،ﻭﺍﻷﺳﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻗﺪ ﻛﻔﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﻠﻬﺎ ﺑﺸﺮ ،ﻭﺑﺴﺒﺒﻬﺎ ﺗﻨﺎﺣﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻩ
ﺑﺄﺳﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻨﺼﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻘﻴﻘﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻜﻔﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻭﻧﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﻘﻊ
ﺧﻼﻑ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻮﺟﺪ ﺧﻄﺄ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﻴﻊ ﻓﺴﺎﺩ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻔﺎﻧﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺘﺮﻛﻮﺍ
ﻭﻧﻈﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻳﺨﻠﻮﺍ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻫﻢ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺍﻟﺨﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺺ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻢ ﻳﺨﺘﺎﺭﻩ ".
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻭﺭﺩﺕ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺭﺓ ،ﻭﺃﺭﺍﻫﺎ ﻣﻘﺤﻤﺔ.
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﻤﺎ ".
)(٢٧٨
ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻻﻟﺔ ﻭﻭﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﻼﻣﺔ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺧﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻷﻧﺎ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ
ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺧﻴﺮ.
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ) (١ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺺ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﺘﺮﻛﻪ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻧﺤﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ
ﻟﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﻓﻀﻞ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺃﻭﺟﺒﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺣﻜﻤﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺟﻤﻞ ﺟﻮﺍﺑﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﺑﺠﻤﻞ ﻣﺴﺎﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﺮﺍﻓﻀﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﻳﺪﻳﺔ .ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ
ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻣﻨﺎ ﻏﻨﻰ ﻋﻤﺎ ﺃﺧﺮﻧﺎ ﻟﻘﺪ ﻓﺴﺮﻧﺎ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﺟﻤﻠﻨﺎ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻣﻼﻙ ﻭﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ
ﺇﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﺃﺻﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻻ ﻳﺸﺬ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﻛﺎﻧﻪ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺼﺎﺅﻩ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻻ ﻳﺠﺮﻯ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻤﻴﻦ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺷﺊ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺿﻊ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺿﻊ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﺃﻣﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻃﻮﻟﻪ
ﻗﺎﻃﻌﺎ ﻟﻨﺸﺎﻁ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺭﺉ ،ﻭﻣﺠﻠﺒﺔ ﻟﻨﻌﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﻤﻊ ،ﺇﻻ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺻﺤﺖ ﺇﺭﺍﺩﺗﻪ،
ﻭﺃﻓﺮﻃﺖ ﺷﻬﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﻗﻮﻯ ﻃﺒﻌﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﺴﺎﺑﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻋﻴﺘﻨﺎ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻠﻤﻴﻦ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ]ﻓﻲ[ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻌﻠﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻠﻨﺤﻞ ﺻﻮﺭﺍ ﻛﺼﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ،ﻓﻜﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺭ ﺃﺷﺪ
ﻣﺸﺎﻛﻠﺔ ﻟﻄﺒﻌﻚ ،ﻭﺁﻧﻖ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻴﻨﻚ ،ﻭﺃﺧﻒ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻚ ،ﻓﻜﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻨﺤﻞ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻠﺔ ﺍﻷﻫﻮﺍﺀ ،ﻭﻣﺸﺎﻛﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﻮﺍﺕ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻔﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻮﺱ.
ﻓﺎﺣﺬﺭ ﺣﻮﺍﺩﺙ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﻮﺍﺕ ،ﻭﺍﺗﺼﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻛﻠﺔ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺃﺧﻔﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻗﻴﻖ،
ﻭﺃﺩﻕ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻔﻰ.
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻣﺠﺮﺩﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺬﻫﺐ ﻋﺎﺭﻳﺎ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻣﻮﻫﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ،
ﻭﺯﺧﺮﻓﻪ ﻭﺍﺿﻌﻪ ،ﺑﺄﻋﺬﺏ ﺍﻷﻟﻔﺎﻅ ﻭﺃﺷﻬﺎﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﺭﺝ ﻭﺃﻋﻔﺎﻫﺎ )(٢
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻟﻢ ".
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٢٧٩
ﻓﺸﻔﻰ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺣﺒﺒﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺳﺎﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻭﺍﻓﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻨﻪ
ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻢ ﻟﺴﻠﻔﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮﻯ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺎﺋﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺳﻤﺤﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻘﻠﻴﺪ،
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺴﻠﻤﺖ ﻟﻼﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩ.
ﻓﺎﺣﺬﺭ ﻓﻲ ) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﺴﺘﺨﻔﻦ ﺑﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻮﺻﻴﺔ.
ﻭﺍﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻭﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ ﻋﺪﻻ ،ﻭﻷﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ
ﻣﺄﻟﻔﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺪﺓ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﻘﺼﺎﺀ ﻟﺨﺼﻤﻪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺮﺃ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺭﺉ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺔ ﺧﺼﻤﻪ ﻟﺨﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﺟﺘﺒﺎﻩ
ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﻟﺪﻳﻨﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺍﺗﻜﺎﻟﻲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻧﻘﻄﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺼﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺑﻠﻐﺖ
ﻏﺎﻳﺘﻪ ،ﻣﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺠﺰﺕ ﺣﻜﺎﻳﺘﻪ .ﻭﻗﻤﺖ ) (٢ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ.
ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻣﺒﺘﺪﺋﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﺋﻞ ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﻤﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﻄﻮﻝ ﻧﺴﺘﻌﻴﻦ،
ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻧﺘﻮﻛﻞ.
ﻫﺬﻩ ﺟﻤﻞ ﺃﻗﻮﺍﻝ ) (٣ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻤﺪ ﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﺩﺍﺋﻤﺎ،
ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻧﺒﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻫﺮﻳﻦ
ﻭﺻﺤﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺗﺴﻠﻴﻤﺎ.
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺃﻗﻤﺖ ".
) (٣ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﻮﻝ ".
)(٢٨٠
ﻣﻨﺎﻗﻀﺎﺕ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ
ﻟﺒﻌﺾ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﺷﺮﺡ ﻧﻬﺞ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﻏﺔ ﻻﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ
)(٢٨١
)(١
ﻣﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ ٦ - ١ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ:
ﻟﻮﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻏﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﻞ ﻭﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻠﻴﺪ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺤﺘﺞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻘﺾ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺖ
ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻓﻘﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻭﻟﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻠﻄﺎﻥ ﻷﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﻣﻘﺎﻟﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ
ﻛﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ]ﻋﻠﻮ ) [(١ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭ ﺷﻴﻮﺧﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻠﻤﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﺮﺍﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﻛﻠﻤﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻗﻬﺮ
ﺳﻠﻄﺎﻧﻬﻢ .ﻭﺍﺭﺗﻔﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺮﺍﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺎﺋﺰﺓ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ
ﻓﻲ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺄﻛﻴﺪ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻷﺣﺎﺩﻳﺚ ﻃﻠﺒﺎ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺪﻳﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻻ ﻳﺄﻟﻮﻥ ﺟﻬﺪﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻃﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻠﻜﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﺨﻤﻠﻮﺍ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻭﻟﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻄﻔﺌﻮﺍ ﻧﻮﺭﻫﻢ ﻭﻳﻜﺘﻤﻮﺍ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺎﻗﺒﻬﻢ
ﻭﺳﻮﺍﺑﻘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻳﺤﻤﻠﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺘﻤﻬﻢ ﻭﺳﺒﻬﻢ ﻭﻟﻌﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺑﺮ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻄﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺩﻣﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻣﻊ ﻗﻠﺔ ﻋﺪﻫﻢ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﺪﻭﻫﻢ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﻭﺃﺳﻴﺮ ،ﻭﺷﺮﻳﺪ ﻭﻫﺎﺭﺏ،
ﻭﻣﺴﺘﺨﻒ ﺫﻟﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺧﺎﺋﻒ ﻣﺘﺮﻗﺐ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺙ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺿﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﻜﻠﻢ
ﻟﻴﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺘﻮﻋﺪ ﺑﻐﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻻﻳﻌﺎﺩ ﻭﺃﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﺑﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻻ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻬﻢ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺮﺧﺼﻮﺍ ﻻﺣﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻄﻴﻒ ﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺙ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺣﺪﻳﺜﺎ ﻋﻦ
ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻛﻨﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻓﻌﻞ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻔﻮﻩ ﺑﺎﺳﻤﻪ .ﺛﻢ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﻠﻔﻴﻦ ﻗﺪ ﺣﺎﻭﻟﻮﺍ ﻧﻘﺾ
ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ ﻭﻭﺟﻬﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻼﺕ ﻧﺤﻮﻫﺎ ،ﻣﻦ ﺧﺎﺭﺟﻲ ﻣﺎﺭﻕ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺻﺐ ﺣﻨﻖ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺑﺖ
ﻣﺴﺘﺒﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻧﺎﺷﺊ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﺪ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺎﻓﻖ ﻣﻜﺬﺏ ،ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻧﻲ ﺣﺴﻮﺩ ،ﻳﻌﺘﺮﺽ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﻳﻄﻌﻦ،
ﻭﻣﻌﺘﺰﻟﻲ ﻗﺪ ﻧﻔﺬ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﺑﺼﺮ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻑ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﺸﺒﻪ ﻭﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ
ﻭﺿﺮﻭﺏ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﻭﻳﻞ ،ﻗﺪ ﺍﻟﺘﻤﺲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺑﻄﺎﻝ ﻣﻨﺎﻗﺒﻪ ،ﻭﺗﺄﻭﻝ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ.
ﻓﻤﺮﺓ ﻳﺘﺄﻭﻟﻬﺎ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﻳﻘﺼﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻀﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪﺭﻫﺎ ﺑﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﻣﻨﺘﻘﺾ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺰﺩﺍﺩ ﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻗﻮﺓ ﻭﺭﻓﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻭﺿﻮﺣﺎ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻨﺎﺭﺓ.
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻁ .ﺃﻱ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺒﻮﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺮﺡ ﻧﻬﺞ ﺍﻟﺒﻼﻏﺔ.
)(٢٨٢
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﻭﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻌﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻣﻠﻜﻬﻢ
-ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺛﻤﺎﻧﻴﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ -ﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﺍ ﺟﻬﺪﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺘﻤﻪ ﻭﻟﻌﻨﻪ
ﻭﺇﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺳﺘﺮ ﻣﻨﺎﻗﺒﻪ ﻭﺳﻮﺍﺑﻘﻪ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺳﻄﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺼﻴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻋﻦ ﻫﻼﻝ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺴﺎﻑ
ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻇﺎﻟﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻤﺎ ﺑﻮﻳﻊ ﻟﻤﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﺧﻄﺒﺎﺀ ﻳﻠﻌﻨﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻔﻴﻞ :ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻭﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺍﻟﻈﺎﻟﻢ،
ﻳﺄﻣﺮ ﺑﻠﻌﻦ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ؟!
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺳﻠﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺎﺡ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺧﻨﺲ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺷﻬﺪﺕ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﺧﻄﺐ ﻓﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻨﺎﻝ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻛﺮﻳﺐ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﺳﺎﻣﺔ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺻﺪﻗﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺨﻌﻲ ﻋﻦ
ﺭﻳﺎﺡ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﻴﻨﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻧﺎﺱ ﺇﺫ ﺟﺎﺀﻩ
ﺭﺟﻞ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻘﻤﺔ ،ﻓﺎﺳﺘﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﺴﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺍﻷﺻﻔﻬﺎﻧﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺷﺮﻳﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻴﻦ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻲ ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ :ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺃﺩﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻜﻢ .ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻜﻢ ﺗﺴﺒﻮﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺑﺮ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺇﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻘﻴﻢ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻏﺴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﻬﺪﻱ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻴﻒ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺧﻄﺐ ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺟﺎﻟﺲ ،ﻓﻨﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ :ﻭﻳﻠﻚ ﻳﺎ ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ.
ﺃﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﺸﺘﻢ ﺃﺷﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ )(١؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻏﺴﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻳﺨﻄﺐ ﻓﻼ ﻳﺰﺍﻝ
ﻣﺴﺘﻤﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺘﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺻﺎﺭ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺳﺒﻪ ﺗﻘﻄﻊ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺍﺻﻔﺮ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ
ﻭﺗﻐﻴﺮﺕ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻘﻠﺖ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭ ﻗﺪ ﻓﻄﻨﺖ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ؟ ﺇﻥ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﻟﻮ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﺑﻮﻙ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺒﻌﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺭﺟﻞ.
--------------------
) (١ﻫﻮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻗﻼﺑﺔ " :ﺳﻴﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻏﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺍﺏ ﺍﻷﺷﺮ ".
)(٢٨٣
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻏﺴﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻈﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻡ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻋﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻔﺎﺀ ﺗﺴﺘﺤﺐ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻟﻌﻦ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺗﺮﺍﺏ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻨﺎﺩ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻓﻀﻴﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺷﻌﺚ ) (١ﺑﻦ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﺐ ﻋﺪﻯ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﻃﺎﺓ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ ﻓﺒﻜﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻱ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻘﺪ ﺳﺐ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻷﺧﻮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺪﻯ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ
ﺟﺎﻟﺴﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﻌﺔ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻠﻲ ﺃﺑﻮﺍﺏ ﻛﻨﺪﺓ ،ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﺨﻄﺐ ،ﻓﺤﻤﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺛﻢ ﺫﻛﺮ
ﻣﺎ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ،ﺛﻢ ﻭﻗﻊ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻀﺮﺏ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺨﺬﻱ ﺃﻭ
ﺭﻛﺒﺘﻲ
ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺤﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻌﺔ ،ﺃﻻ ﺗﺴﻤﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ؟
ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﻔﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻴﻒ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻟﻮﻟﺪﻩ :ﻻ ﺗﺬﻛﺮ ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺨﻴﺮ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻟﻌﻨﻮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﻨﺎﺑﺮﻫﻢ ﺛﻤﺎﻧﻴﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﺰﺩﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ ﺭﻓﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻦ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻗﻂ ﻓﻬﺪﻣﺘﻪ
ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺒﻦ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻗﻂ ﺇﻻ ﺭﺟﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻓﻬﺪﻣﺘﻪ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﻣﻄﻠﺐ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺍﻷﺻﺒﻬﺎﻧﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺩﻋﻰ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ،ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻻ ﻳﺰﺍﻝ ﻳﺸﺘﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺟﻤﻌﺔ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺨﻄﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻟﻴﺴﺘﻌﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﺘﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻧﻌﺲ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻴﺐ ،ﻓﻔﺘﺢ
ﻋﻴﻨﻴﻪ ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻳﺤﻜﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﻴﺚ؟ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﺮ ﺍﻧﺼﺪﻉ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻛﺬﺑﺖ ﻳﺎ ﻋﺪﻭ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ؟
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻘﻨﺎﺩ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﻁ ﺑﻦ ﻧﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﻬﻤﺪﺍﻧﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺪﻯ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺑﻴﻨﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ
ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺣﺠﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺰﻳﺖ ﺇﺫ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺭﺍﻛﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻓﻮﻗﻒ ﻓﺴﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ،
ﻓﺤﻒ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﻨﻈﺮﻭﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺒﻴﻨﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺇﺫ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﺹ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺃﺷﻌﺐ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٢٨٤
ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﺐ ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﻟﻚ ﺻﺎﻟﺤﺎ ﻓﺄﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺧﺰﻳﻪ! ﻓﻤﺎ ﻟﺒﺚ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺑﻌﻴﺮﻩ
ﻓﺴﻘﻂ ﻓﺎﻧﺪﻗﺖ ﻋﻨﻘﻪ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻋﻦ ﻓﻄﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻴﻔﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺪﻟﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺩﺧﻠﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻡ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺭﺣﻤﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ -ﻟﻪ :-ﺃﻳﺴﺐ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻜﻢ ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺃﺣﻴﺎﺀ؟ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻭﺃﻧﻰ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺃﻟﻴﺲ
ﻳﺴﺐ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻳﺤﺒﻪ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﺑﻜﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻀﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﻲ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻬﺬﻟﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﻫﺮﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻟﻤﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ :ﺃﻻ ﺗﻜﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺷﺘﻢ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻻﻓﻌﻞ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﻳﺮﺑﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﻐﻴﺮ ﻭﻳﻬﺮﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﻴﺮ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ ﻛﻒ ﻋﻦ ﺷﺘﻤﻪ
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ :ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ﺇﻣﺎ ﻣﻮﻗﻮﻓﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻣﺮﻓﻮﻋﺎ:
ﻛﻴﻒ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺷﻤﻠﺘﻜﻢ ﻓﺘﻨﺔ ﻳﺮﺑﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺼﻐﻴﺮ ﻭﻳﻬﺮﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻜﺒﻴﺮ ،ﻳﺠﺮﻯ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻴﺘﺨﺬﻭﻧﻬﺎ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺷﺊ ﻗﻴﻞ :ﻏﻴﺮﺕ ﺍﻟﺴﻨﺔ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻮﻙ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﺣﺪﺛﻮﺍ ﻗﻮﻻ ﺃﻭ ﺩﻳﻨﺎ ﻟﻬﻮﻯ.
ﻓﻴﺤﻤﻠﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻛﻨﺤﻮ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻳﻮﺳﻒ ﺑﻘﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺗﺮﻙ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻌﺐ ،ﻭﺗﻮﻋﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺑﺪﻭﻥ ﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻊ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺟﺒﺎﺑﺮﺓ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻭﻃﻐﺎﺓ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻣﺮﻭﺍﻥ ﺑﻮﻟﺪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻠﻄﺎﻧﻪ ﻧﺤﻮ ﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻊ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺍﻕ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻧﺸﺄ ﺃﺑﻨﺎﺅﻫﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﻻﻣﺴﺎﻙ ﺍﻵﺑﺎﺀ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻒ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻠﻢ ﻋﻦ
ﺗﻌﻠﻴﻤﻬﺎ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺮﺋﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻗﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻈﻨﻮﺍ ﺑﺘﺄﻟﻴﻔﻬﺎ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﻜﺮﺍﻩ
ﻭﺍﻻﺳﺘﻬﺠﺎﻥ ،ﻷﻟﻒ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﻟﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻋﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻴﺔ ﻭﻃﺎﻟﺖ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻠﻂ ،ﻭﺷﺎﻋﺖ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻓﺔ ،ﻭﺷﻤﻠﺘﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﻴﺔ ،ﺍﺗﻔﻘﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﺨﺎﺫﻝ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺴﺎﻛﺖ،
ﻓﻼ ﺗﺰﺍﻝ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ ﺗﺄﺧﺬ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺼﺎﺋﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺗﻨﻘﺺ ﻣﻦ ﺿﻤﺎﺋﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺗﻨﻘﺾ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺮﺍﺋﺮﻫﻢ ،ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺗﺼﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺃﺣﺪﺛﻮﻫﺎ ﻏﺎﻣﺮﺓ ﻟﻠﺴﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻮﻧﻬﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻭﻻﻩ ،ﻛﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺑﻌﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ
)(٢٨٥
ﻓﺮﺍﻋﻨﺔ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻓﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻭﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ
ﻭﺇﺳﻘﺎﻁ ﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺮﺹ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺳﻘﺎﻁ ﻗﺮﺍﺀ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ،ﻻﻥ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺀﺍﺕ
ﻻ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﺒﺒﺎ ﻟﺰﻭﺍﻝ ﻣﻠﻜﻬﻢ ﻭﻓﺴﺎﺩ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻧﻜﺸﺎﻑ ﺣﺎﻟﻬﻢ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺇﺷﻬﺎﺭ ﻓﻀﻞ
ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﻭﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻬﻢ ﺑﻮﺍﺭﻫﻢ .ﻭﺗﺴﻠﻴﻂ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﻮﺫ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ.
ﻓﺤﺮﺻﻮﺍ ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻬﺪﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺇﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺣﻤﻠﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺘﻤﺎﻧﻬﺎ ﻭﺳﺘﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺇﻻ ﺍﺳﺘﻨﺎﺭﺓ ﻭﺇﺷﺮﺍﻗﺎ ،ﻭﺣﺒﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺷﻐﻔﺎ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ،ﻭﺫﻛﺮﻫﻢ
ﺇﻻ ﺍﻧﺘﺸﺎﺭﺍ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺣﺠﺘﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻭﺿﻮﺣﺎ ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻓﻀﻠﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻇﻬﻮﺭﺍ ،ﻭﺷﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ
ﻋﻠﻮﺍ ،ﻭﺃﻗﺪﺍﺭﻫﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻋﻈﺎﻣﺎ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺻﺒﺤﻮﺍ ﺑﺈﻫﺎﻧﺘﻬﻢ ﺇﻳﺎﻫﻢ ﺃﻋﺰﺍﺀ ،ﻭﺑﺈﻣﺎﺗﺘﻬﻢ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﻢ
ﺃﺣﻴﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩﻭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺑﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺮ ﺗﺤﻮﻝ ﺧﻴﺮﺍ .ﻓﺎﻧﺘﻬﻰ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ
ﻭﺧﺼﺎﺋﺼﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺰﺍﻳﺎﻩ ﻭﺳﻮﺍﺑﻘﻪ ،ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻘﺪﻣﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺑﻘﻮﻥ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﺎﻭﺍﻩ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺻﺪﻭﻥ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻠﺤﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻟﺒﻮﻥ .ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻛﺎﻟﻘﺒﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺼﻮﺑﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻟﺴﻨﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻔﻮﻇﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻫﺮﻧﺎ ﺣﺮﻑ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ
ﻛﻤﺎ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎﻩ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺑﺈﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻜﻮﻧﻪ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﺎ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ﻷﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺴﻘﻴﻔﺔ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻩ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻷﻧﻪ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺑﻴﺪ
ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻳﺪ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﻨﺎﺱ :ﻗﺪ ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻫﺬﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻠﻴﻦ
ﻓﺒﺎﻳﻌﻮﺍ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﺎ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮ :ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻠﺘﺔ ﻭﻗﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺷﺮﻫﺎ! ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﺎ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ﻻﺩﻋﻰ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻹﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ ﺃﻭ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ ﺑﻜﻮﻧﻪ ﺳﺒﻖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﺮﻓﻨﺎ
ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺍﺩﻋﻰ ﻟﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺟﻤﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﺪﺓ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ،ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺃﺧﻮﻩ ،ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺫﺭ
ﺍﻟﻐﻔﺎﺭﻱ ،ﻭﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺴﺔ ) (١ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻤﻲ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ .ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺑﻦ
ﺍﻷﺭﺕ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺄﻣﻠﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻷﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻮﺛﻴﻘﺔ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎﻫﺎ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﻧﺎﻃﻘﺔ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﻋﻨﺒﺴﺔ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ ﻭﺗﻬﺬﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﻬﺬﻳﺐ.
)(٢٨٦
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺧﻼﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺄﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﻭﺃﺷﻬﺮ.
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻳﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻤﺎﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﻮﺍﻧﺔ ﻭﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ
ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺎﻟﺴﻲ ،ﻋﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺍﺷﺪ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﺼﻴﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻜﺮﻣﺔ
ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺮﺽ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﻐﻔﺎﺭ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻞ
ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺭﺑﻨﺎ ﺍﻏﻔﺮ ﻟﻨﺎ ﻭﻻﺧﻮﺍﻧﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺳﺒﻘﻮﻧﺎ ﺑﺎﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ " .ﻓﻜﻞ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻬﻮ ﻳﺴﺘﻐﻔﺮ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻴﻴﻨﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻧﺠﻴﺢ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺠﺎﻫﺪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﺍﻟﺴﺒﺎﻕ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ :ﺳﺒﻖ ﻳﻮﺷﻊ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﻭﺳﺒﻖ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻳﺲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻴﺴﻰ،
ﻭﺳﺒﻖ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ .ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﻭﺃﺷﻬﺮ.
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﺧﻼﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻬﺬﻟﻲ ﻭﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻫﻨﺪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ " :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻭﻝ
ﻣﻦ ﺁﻣﻦ ﺑﻲ ﻭﺻﺪﻗﻨﻲ ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﻣﻌﻲ ".
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺍﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺭﺩﺓ ﺑﺴﺒﻘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻛﻮﺭﺓ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺐ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺡ
ﻭﺍﻷﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺛﻮﻕ ﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻤﻨﻬﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺷﺮﻳﻚ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻠﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ،
ﻋﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻭﻫﺐ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭﻝ ﺷﺊ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻗﺪﻣﺖ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻣﻊ ﻋﻤﻮﻣﺔ ﻟﻲ ﻭﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻲ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻨﺎ
ﺷﺮﺍﺀ ﻋﻄﺮ ،ﻓﺄﺭﺷﺪﻧﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻓﺎﻧﺘﻬﻴﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺟﺎﻟﺲ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺯﻣﺰﻡ ،ﻓﺒﻴﻨﺎ ﻧﺤﻦ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺟﻠﻮﺳﺎ ﺇﺫ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺭﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺎ ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺛﻮﺑﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻴﻀﺎﻥ
ﻭﻟﻪ ﻭﻓﺮﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﺃﺫﻧﻴﻪ ﺟﻌﺪﺓ ،ﺃﺷﻢ ﺃﻗﻨﻰ ،ﺃﺩﻋﺞ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻛﺚ ﺍﻟﻠﺤﻴﺔ ،ﺑﺮﺍﻕ
ﺍﻟﺜﻨﺎﻳﺎ ،ﺃﺑﻴﺾ ﺗﻌﻠﻮﻩ ﺣﻤﺮﺓ ،ﻛﺄﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﻤﺮ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﺭ .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ ﻏﻼﻡ ﻣﺮﺍﻫﻖ ﺃﻭ ﻣﺤﺘﻠﻢ
)(٢٨٧
ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻪ ،ﺗﻘﻔﻮﻫﻢ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻗﺪ ﺳﺘﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﺎﺳﻨﻬﺎ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺼﺪﻭﺍ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺮ .ﻓﺎﺳﺘﻠﻤﻪ
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻠﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﺛﻢ ﺍﺳﺘﻠﻤﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ،ﺛﻢ ﻃﺎﻑ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﺳﺒﻌﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﻳﻄﻮﻓﺎﻥ ﻣﻌﻪ،
ﺛﻢ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﻭﺭﻓﻊ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﻭﻛﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺧﻠﻔﻬﻤﺎ
ﻓﺮﻓﻌﺖ ﻳﺪﻳﻬﺎ ﻭﻛﺒﺮﺕ ،ﻓﺄﻃﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻘﻨﻮﺕ ،ﺛﻢ ﺭﻛﻊ ﻭﺭﻛﻊ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺛﻢ ﺭﻓﻊ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ
ﻓﺄﻃﺎﻝ ﻭﺭﻓﻊ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺛﻢ ﺳﺠﺪﻭﺍ ﻭﺳﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻳﺼﻨﻌﺎﻥ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ ﻧﻨﻜﺮﻩ ﻻ ﻧﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺃﻗﺒﻠﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﻘﻠﻨﺎ :ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﻓﻴﻜﻢ! ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺟﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻓﻤﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻲ،
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻐﻼﻡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻲ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ،ﻫﺬﺍ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻫﺬﻩ
ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺯﻭﺟﺔ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ،ﻫﺬﻩ ﺧﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ .ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻳﺪﻳﻦ
ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺇﻻ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺔ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﻋﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻧﺎﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻔﻴﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻜﻨﺪﻱ
-ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻔﻴﻒ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﻬﺪﻱ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻨﺒﺴﺔ ﺍﻟﻮﺭﺍﻕ
ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻴﻤﻮﻧﺔ -ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺟﻤﻴﻌﺎ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺸﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺳﺪ ﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ) (١ﺍﻟﺒﺠﻠﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻳﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﻴﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻛﻨﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ ﻋﻄﺎﺭﺍ ،ﻓﻘﺪﻣﺖ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻓﻨﺰﻟﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ،
ﻓﺒﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﺟﺎﻟﺲ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺃﻧﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻌﺒﺔ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﺤﻠﻘﺖ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺷﺎﺏ ﻛﺄﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﻤﺮ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﻣﻰ ﺑﺒﺼﺮﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻓﻨﻈﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ﺳﺎﻋﺔ ﺛﻢ ﺃﻗﺒﻞ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺩﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﻌﺒﺔ ﻓﺼﻒ ﻗﺪﻣﻴﻪ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ،ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺛﺮﻩ ﻓﺘﻰ ﻛﺄﻥ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﺻﺤﻴﻔﺔ ﻳﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ،
ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﻋﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻓﺠﺎﺀﺕ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﻣﺘﻠﻔﻔﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺛﻴﺎﺑﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻣﺖ ﺧﻠﻔﻬﻤﺎ ،ﻓﺄﻫﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺏ
ﺭﺍﻛﻌﺎ ﻓﺮﻛﻌﺎ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﻫﻮﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺳﺎﺟﺪﺍ ﻓﺴﺠﺪﺍ ﻣﻌﻪ ،ﻓﻘﻠﺖ ﻟﻠﻌﺒﺎﺱ:
ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ،ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ،ﺃﺗﺪﺭﻯ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺏ؟ ﻗﻠﺖ:
ﻻ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﺃﺗﺪﺭﻯ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻰ؟ ﻗﻠﺖ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٢٨٨
ﻻ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺧﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ .ﺃﺗﺪﺭﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ؟ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻻ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺍﺑﻨﺔ ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ ،ﻫﺬﻩ ﺧﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﺯﻭﺝ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ .ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺑﺬﻛﺮ ﺃﻥ ﺇﻟﻬﻪ ﺇﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺮﻯ .ﻭﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻧﺒﻲ ،ﻭﻗﺪ
ﺻﺪﻗﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻰ ،ﻭﺯﻭﺟﺘﻪ ﺧﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ
ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺔ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻔﻴﻒ :ﻓﻘﻠﺖ ﻟﻪ:
ﻓﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺦ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ،ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺃﺧﺎﻩ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺩﻛﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻄﻴﺔ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ
ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻃﻬﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ ﻧﺎﻓﻊ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻧﺎﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻌﻘﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺴﺎﺭ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﻭﺻﻰ ) (١ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻫﻞ ﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﻧﻌﻮﺩ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ؟ ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻧﻌﻢ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﻳﻤﺸﻰ ﻣﺘﻮﻛﺌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺳﻴﺤﻤﻞ ﺛﻘﻠﻬﺎ ﻏﻴﺮﻙ ﻭﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺟﺮﻫﺎ ﻟﻚ .ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻓﻮﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﺄﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺛﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ .ﻓﺪﺧﻠﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﺗﺠﺪﻳﻨﻚ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻟﻘﺪ ﻃﺎﻝ ﺃﺳﻔﻰ
ﻭﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﺣﺰﻧﻲ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ﺯﻭﺟﻚ ﺃﺑﻮﻙ ﻓﻘﻴﺮﺍ ﻻ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﺎ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﺗﺮﺿﻴﻦ
ﺃﻧﻰ ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻚ ﺃﻗﺪﻡ ﺃﻣﺘﻲ ﺳﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻓﻀﻠﻬﻢ ﺣﻠﻤﺎ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺑﻠﻰ،
ﺭﺿﻴﺖ ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻳﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺪ ،ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ،ﻋﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ
ﺍﻟﺮﺑﻴﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺃﻳﻮﺏ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﺄﻟﻔﺎﻇﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻧﺤﻮﻫﺎ ).(٢
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺍﻷﺯﺭﻕ ﻋﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻋﻦ ﺁﺑﺎﺋﻪ ﺃﻥ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺯﻭﺝ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ -ﺩﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻓﻘﻠﻦ :ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﺖ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺧﻄﺒﻚ ﻓﻼﻥ ﻭﻓﻼﻥ ﻓﺮﺩﻫﻢ ﻋﻨﻚ ﻭﺯﻭﺟﻚ ﻓﻘﻴﺮﺍ ﻻ ﻣﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ! ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺃﺑﻮﻫﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﻬﺎ ،ﻓﺴﺄﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﺬﻛﺮﺕ ﻟﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﺃﻭﺻﻞ " (٢) .ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻟﻴﺔ ﺳﺎﻗﻂ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
)(٢٨٩
ﻳﺎ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ،ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻣﺮﻧﻲ ﻓﺄﻧﻜﺤﺘﻚ ﺃﻗﺪﻣﻬﻢ ﺳﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻤﻬﻢ ﺣﻠﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻚ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ .ﺃﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺧﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ؟!
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻇﻬﻴﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺪﻯ ،ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ﺧﻄﺒﺎ
ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﺮﺩﻫﻤﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻢ ﺃﻭﻣﺮ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ.
ﻓﺨﻄﺒﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﺰﻭﺟﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻫﺎ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﺎ :ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻚ ﺃﻗﺪﻡ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ.
ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﻤﻴﺲ ،ﻭﺃﻡ ﺃﻳﻤﻦ
ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻭﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺭﺍﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺟﺪﻩ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺭﺍﻓﻊ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺃﺗﻴﺖ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺫﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺑﺬﺓ ﺃﻭﺩﻋﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﺭﺩﺕ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺮﺍﻑ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻲ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺎﺱ ﻣﻌﻲ :ﺳﺘﻜﻮﻥ
ﻓﺘﻨﺔ ﻓﺎﺗﻘﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﻴﺦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻓﺎﺗﺒﻌﻮﻩ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻲ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺁﻣﻦ ﺑﻲ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺼﺎﻓﺤﻨﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﻣﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺖ
ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﻭﻕ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﻔﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻳﻌﺴﻮﺏ
ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻳﻌﺴﻮﺏ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﻓﺮﻳﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﺧﻲ ﻭﻭﺯﻳﺮﻱ ﻭﺧﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﺮﻙ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ،
ﺗﻘﻀﻰ ﺩﻳﻨﻲ ﻭﺗﻨﺠﺰ ﻣﻮﻋﻮﺩﻱ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻧﻤﻴﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻼﺀ ﺑﻦ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻬﺎﻝ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺩ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺧﻮ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ
ﻻ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻬﺎ ﻏﻴﺮﻱ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺬﺍﺏ ،ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺻﻠﻴﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺭﻭﺕ ﻣﻌﺎﺫﺓ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭﻳﺔ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻳﺨﻄﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻣﻨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﺓ ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ﺁﻣﻨﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻤﺖ
ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺣﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺟﻮﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻧﻲ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺳﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ
)(٢٩٠
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ .ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺍﻭﺩ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺎﻟﺴﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺷﻌﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ
ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺭﻱ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻬﻴﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺟﻮﻳﻦ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﺭ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺍﺭ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺤﺎﻑ
ﻋﻦ ﺣﻜﻴﻢ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺯﺍﺫﺍﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺻﻠﻴﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﺴﺠﺪ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺮﻛﻊ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺭﻛﻌﻨﺎ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺼﺮ ﻓﻘﻠﺖ:
ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺮﺕ ﺑﻪ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻋﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺑﻴﻊ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻘﻴﻞ ﻋﻦ
ﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺎﺀ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﺍﻷﺧﺮﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ :ﺍﺳﺘﻨﺒﺊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺎﺀ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺭﺍﻓﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺻﻼﺓ ﺻﻼﻫﺎ ﻏﺪﺍﺓ
ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺻﻠﺖ ﺧﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻧﻬﺎﺭ ﻳﻮﻣﻬﺎ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻭﺻﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺎﺀ
ﻏﺪﺍﺓ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺑﺮﻭﺍﻳﺎﺕ ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻔﺔ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﺘﻌﺪﺩﺓ ﻋﻦ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﻗﻢ ﻭﺳﻠﻤﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻲ ﻭﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻚ .ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ.
ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﺑﺄﺳﻤﺎﺋﻬﻢ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻬﻴﻞ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺟﺎﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻭﻟﻜﻢ ﻭﺭﻭﺩﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻮﺽ ﺃﻭﻟﻜﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ :ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ".
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻳﺲ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻳﻤﻦ .ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺣﺎﺯﻡ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﻤﻌﺖ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻛﻔﻮﺍ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻲ ﺳﻤﻌﺖ
ﻣﻦ
)(٢٩١
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺧﺼﺎﻻ ﻟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺧﺼﻠﺔ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺁﻝ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ
ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻃﻠﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ.
ﻛﻨﺖ ﺫﺍﺕ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ،ﻣﻊ ﻧﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻧﻄﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻓﺎﻧﺘﻬﻴﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺃﻡ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﻓﻮﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﻣﺘﻜﺌﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﺠﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ ) ،(١ﻓﻘﻠﻨﺎ :ﺃﺭﻭﻧﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻫﻮ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ،ﺭﻭﻳﺪﻛﻢ .ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﺜﺮﻧﺎ ﺣﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻓﺎﺗﻜﺄ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻲ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﺿﺮﺏ ﺑﻴﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﻜﺒﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﺑﺸﺮ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﺇﻧﻚ ﻣﺨﺎﺻﻢ
ﻭﺇﻧﻚ ﺗﺨﺼﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺴﺒﻊ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺎﺭﻳﻚ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﻣﻨﻬﻦ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ
ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺑﺄﻳﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﺨﺪﺭﻱ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺃﻳﻮﺏ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻘﺪ
ﺻﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﻞ ﻣﻌﻲ ﺭﺟﻞ
ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ :ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ " :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺗﺒﻌﻨﻲ
ﺣﺮ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ " ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺑﻼﻻ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﺘﺮ
ﺑﻼﻻ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﺑﻼﻝ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻋﺬﺑﻪ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻒ ،ﻭﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺇﺧﻔﺎﺀ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ﻭﻻ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﻴﻞ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻟﻌﺒﺪ
ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻧﺼﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺎﺭ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺫﻛﻮﺍﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻟﻠﺤﺴﻦ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﻭﺫﻛﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ :ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻮﻝ
--------------------
ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺎﻑ :ﺍﻟﻌﺘﺒﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺃﺳﻜﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ.
)(٢٩٢
ﺃﻧﺖ ﻳﺎ ﺣﺴﻦ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻣﺎ ﺃﻗﻮﻝ؟ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺃﺟﺎﺏ ﺩﻋﻮﺓ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺳﺒﻘﺖ ﻟﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﺑﻖ
ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻴﻊ ﺭﺩﻫﺎ ﺃﺣﺪ .ﻓﻐﻀﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻏﻀﺒﺎ ﺷﺪﻳﺪﺍ ﻭﻗﺎﻡ ﻋﻦ ﺳﺮﻳﺮﻩ ﻓﺪﺧﻞ ﺑﻌﺾ
ﺍﻟﺒﻴﻮﺕ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﺼﺮﻓﻨﺎ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ :ﻭﻛﻨﺎ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻣﻨﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻣﻘﺎﺭﺑﺔ
ﻟﻠﺤﺠﺎﺝ ،ﻏﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺭﺣﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻣﺤﺮﺯ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺟﻞ
ﻟﻠﺤﺴﻦ ﻣﺎﻟﻨﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺮﺍﻙ ﺗﺜﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺗﻔﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻴﻒ ﻭﺳﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻳﻘﻄﺮ
ﺩﻣﺎ ،ﺇﻧﻪ ﻷﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺣﺴﺒﻜﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻭﻳﺔ ﻓﻤﻌﺮﻭﻓﺔ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ﻣﻨﺘﺸﺮﺓ.
ﻓﻤﻨﻬﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ﻣﺠﻴﺒﺎ ﻟﻠﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻘﺒﺔ
ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻣﻌﻴﻂ:
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ * ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻛﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻃﻦ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ
ﻭﺻﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻭﺻﻨﻮﻩ * ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻻﻥ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﻪ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺧﺰﻳﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ:
ﻭﺻﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ * ﻭﻓﺎﺭﺳﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺎﻟﻒ ﺍﻟﺰﻣﻦ
ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ * ﺳﻮﻯ ﺧﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﻮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺫﻭ ﻣﻨﻦ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺳﻔﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺮﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺷﻤﺲ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﻮﻳﻊ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ:
ﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺖ ﺃﺣﺴﺐ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻣﻨﺼﺮﻑ * ﻋﻦ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺛﻢ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺣﺴﻦ
ﺃﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻠﻰ ﻟﻘﺒﻠﺘﻬﻢ * ﻭﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺎﻷﺣﻜﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻨﻦ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﺪﺅﻟﻲ ﻳﻬﺪﺩ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ:
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻣﺼﺤﺮ * ﻳﻤﺎﺛﻠﻪ ﺍﻷﺳﺪ ﺍﻷﺳﻮﺩ
ﺇﻣﺎ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺑﺪﻳﻦ * ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ
)(٢٩٣
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻬﻤﺪﺍﻧﻲ ﻳﺮﺗﺠﺰ ﺑﺼﻔﻴﻦ:
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﻄﻔﻰ * ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺟﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﻯ
ﻫﻮ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻻ ﻳﺒﺎﻟﻲ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻮﻯ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺯﻓﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ:
ﻓﺤﻮﻃﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺍﻧﺼﺮﻭﻩ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ * ﻭﺻﻰ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﻭﻝ ﺃﻭﻝ
ﻭﻟﻦ ﺗﺨﺬﻟﻮﻩ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻮﺍﺩﺙ ﺟﻤﺔ * ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺭﺿﻜﻢ ﻣﺘﺤﻮﻝ
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻛﺎﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻊ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﻴﻠﻴﻦ ) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺍﻃﺆ ﻭﺍﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻫﻤﺎ ﺣﺠﺔ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ " :ﻓﺄﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺠﻌﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻢ ﻣﻌﺎ " ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺑﻄﻞ ﺑﻬﺬﺍ
ﻣﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﻻﻣﺎﻣﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺒﻖ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﺪﻝ ﺍﻵﻥ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ :ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ :ﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻧﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺳﺒﻖ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻻ
ﻣﺠﺎﻣﻌﺘﻜﻢ ﺇﻳﺎﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ .ﻭﺩﻋﻮﺍﻛﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻃﻔﻞ ﺩﻋﻮﻯ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﻣﻘﺒﻮﻟﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻟﺤﺠﺔ .ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺑﺤﻜﻢ ﺇﻗﺮﺍﺭﻛﻢ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻃﻔﻼ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﺤﻘﻴﻘﺔ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ ،ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻊ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻐﻴﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻷﻃﻔﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻧﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺇﺫﺍ ﺃﻃﻠﻘﺘﻢ ﻭﺃﻃﻠﻘﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﺎﻷﺻﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻃﻼﻕ ﺍﻟﺤﻘﻴﻘﺔ .ﻛﻴﻒ ﻭﻗﺪ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ :ﺃﻧﺖ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺁﻣﻦ ﺑﻲ ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺪﻗﻨﻲ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ
ﻟﻔﺎﻃﻤﺔ " :ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻚ ﺃﻗﺪﻣﻬﻢ ﺳﻠﻤﺎ " ﺃﻭ ﻗﺎﻝ " ﺇﺳﻼﻣﺎ ".
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﻬﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺽ
ﻻ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ؟
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﻗﺪ ﻭﺍﻓﻘﺘﻤﻮﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ -ﻭﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ -ﺛﻢ
.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻘﺒﻴﻠﺘﻴﻦ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٢٩٤
ﺍﺩﻋﻴﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺽ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﺒﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺇﻻ ﻟﺤﺠﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻟﻌﻠﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺩﻳﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻌﻠﻴﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺘﻤﺪ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻷﻃﻔﺎﻝ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﻤﻜﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﺄﻫﻠﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺸﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻻﺩﺓ
ﻓﻴﻪ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ﻓﻼ ﻳﻘﻊ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻻ ﺳﻴﻤﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ
ﻭﻻ ﻣﻌﺘﺎﺩ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺩﻋﺎﺀ ﺃﻃﻔﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻔﺮﻳﻖ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺁﺑﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﻠﻢ .ﻭﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻓﻤﻦ ﺷﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻞ
ﺍﺗﺒﺎﻉ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻭﺗﻘﻠﻴﺪ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻀﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻨﺸﺌﻪ ﻭﻣﻮﻟﺪﻩ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺿﻴﻖ ﻭﺷﺪﺓ ﻭﻭﺣﺪﺓ ،ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﻨﺎﺯﻝ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺘﻘﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺛﺒﺖ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ ،ﻭﺩﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻴﻦ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﺑﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ.
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺄﻟﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻓﻮﺍﻓﻘﻪ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﻋﺪﺓ ﻟﻪ.
ﻗﻠﻨﺎ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺄﻟﻔﻪ ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻳﺄﻟﻔﻪ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻮﻳﻪ ،ﻭﺇﺧﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﻋﻤﻮﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ
ﺑﻴﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﻟﻴﺨﺮﺟﻪ ﻋﻤﺎ ﻧﺸﺄ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻏﺬﻯ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻛﺮﺭ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻤﻌﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻫﻮ ﺧﻠﻊ ﺍﻷﻧﺪﺍﺩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺃﺷﺮﻙ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺘﻤﻊ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩ ﻃﻔﻞ.
ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻟﻌﻔﻴﻒ ﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ " :ﻧﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺦ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ " ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻳﻨﺘﻈﺮﺍﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻳﺼﺪﺭﺍﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻒ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻭﻳﺆﺛﺮ
ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ .ﻭﻳﻔﺎﺭﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺒﻮﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻝ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻣﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﺨﻮﻑ ،ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ.
ﻓﺈﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﻠﻞ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺜﺮ ﻳﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ " ﻓﺄﻭﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺧﻤﺴﺔ ﺃﻗﺴﺎﻡ:
)(٢٩٥
ﺍﻟﻘﺴﻢ )ﺍﻷﻭﻝ( ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﺣﺪﺛﻨﺎ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ
ﺃﺣﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺍﻷﺳﺪﻱ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺑﻦ ﺑﺸﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺷﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻷﻭﺯﺍﻋﻲ ،ﻋﻦ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﺑﻦ
ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ،ﻋﻦ ﺷﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻭﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺳﺄﻟﺖ ﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻷﺭﺕ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻪ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺑﺎﻟﻎ ﻣﺴﺘﺤﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﻮﻍ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺯﺍﻕ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻌﻤﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺘﺎﺩﺓ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ
ﺍﻟﻘﺴﻢ )ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ( :ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺘﺎﺩﺓ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺍﻧﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺣﺎﺯﻡ ﺍﻷﻋﺮﺝ ﻋﻦ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﻭﻧﺸﺮﺏ
ﺍﻟﺨﻤﺮ ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻨﺎﺀ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻴﻼ
ﻭﻧﻬﺎﺭﺍ ،ﻭﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ﺗﺴﺎﻓﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺬﺏ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺟﺮﻳﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﻴﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ
ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﺍﻟﻘﺴﻢ )ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻟﺚ( :ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺇﺳﻤﺎﻋﻴﻞ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﻗﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻤﻌﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ :ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ
ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻧﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻗﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ
ﺁﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻭﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﺍﻟﻘﺴﻢ )ﺍﻟﺮﺍﺑﻊ( :ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ .ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻧﻮﺡ ﺑﻦ ﺩﺭﺍﺝ
ﻋﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺁﻣﻦ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺯﻳﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺛﺔ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺖ ﻭﺛﻼﺛﻴﻦ
ﺳﻨﺔ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﻨﺎ.
)(٢٩٦
ﺍﻟﻘﺴﻢ )ﺍﻟﺨﺎﻣﺲ( :ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ .ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻨﺒﺴﺔ
ﺍﻟﻮﺭﺍﻕ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻠﻴﻢ ﻣﻮﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺒﻲ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻗﺒﺾ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﺗﺴﻊ ﻭﻋﺸﺮﻭﻥ ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺷﻴﺨﻨﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ :ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺮﺍﻫﺎ .ﻓﺈﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺟﻬﻠﻬﺎ
ﺃﻭ ﻗﺼﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﻨﺎﺩ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻓﺎﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺄﺧﺬ ﺑﺄﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻻﻣﺮﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺘﻴﻦ ﻓﻨﻘﻮﻝ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ " ﻓﺈﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺗﺤﻜﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻠﺰﻣﻪ ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺟﻞ ﺍﺩﻋﻰ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺭﺟﻞ
ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺩﺭﺍﻫﻢ ﻓﺄﻧﻜﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﻗﺒﻠﻲ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﺩﺭﺍﻫﻢ ،ﻓﻴﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻧﺄﺧﺬ
ﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﺳﻂ ﻭﻳﻠﺰﻣﻪ ﺳﺒﻌﺔ ﺩﺭﺍﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻳﻠﺰﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻣﺎﻣﺎ ﻋﺎﺩﻻ ،ﺃﻥ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻋﺪﻝ ﺍﻷﻗﺎﻭﻳﻞ ﺃﻭﺳﻄﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻨﻘﻮﻝ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﺎﺳﻘﺎ ﻇﺎﻟﻤﺎ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺘﻠﻒ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺣﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺎﻃﻠﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻧﺤﺼﻰ ﺳﻨﻰ ﻭﻻﻳﺔ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺳﻨﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ
ﻫﺎﺟﺮ ".
ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻣﺘﻔﻘﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺭﻳﺨﺎﺕ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺴﺎﻍ،
ﻟﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻗﺪ ﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻓﻘﻴﻞ :ﺇﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﻌﺪ
ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﺧﻤﺲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ،ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ .ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ]ﻋﻦ ) [(١ﺍﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ .ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﺮﺩﻭﻧﻪ .ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻋﺮﻭﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ،
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﻱ ﻭﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻴﺐ.
ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻗﻮﻡ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ
ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻠﻔﻮﺍ ﻓﻲ
ﺳﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﻘﻴﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ،
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
)(٢٩٧
ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﺍﺑﻦ ﺛﻼﺙ ﻭﺳﺘﻴﻦ .ﻭﻗﻴﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﻴﻞ :ﺍﺑﻦ ﺗﺴﻊ ﻭﺧﻤﺴﻴﻦ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ
ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﻣﻊ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻼﻓﺎﺕ ﺗﺤﻘﻴﻖ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ.
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺟﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺮﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺇﻃﻼﻕ ﻗﻮﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﺳﻢ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻣﻄﻠﻘﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻎ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ ﻭﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﺍﻷﻭﻻﺩ.
ﻓﻘﺪ ﺭﻭﺕ ) (١ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﺓ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺹ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺃﺳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺎﺛﻨﺘﻲ
ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﻮﺟﺐ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺍﺣﺘﻠﻢ ﻭﺑﻠﻎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻗﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺣﺪﻯ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻭﺍ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﻐﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ
ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺑﺈﺣﺪﻯ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ.
ﻓﻴﻠﺰﻡ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻣﺎﺕ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻘﻴﻘﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﺜﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻻ ﻣﻄﻴﻊ ﺑﺎﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ .ﺭﻭﺍﻩ ﻫﺸﻴﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺳﻌﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺗﻮﻓﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ.
)(٢
ﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ ٩ - ٦ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﻠﻪ ﻣﺒﻨﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺃﻭ ﺛﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻗﺪ ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻧﺰﻟﻨﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ ﻭﻗﻠﻨﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻷﺷﻬﺮ ﻭﺍﻷﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺸﺮ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻠﺰﻡ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ
ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺸﺮ ﻗﺪ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﻤﻊ ﻋﻘﻠﻪ ﻭﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺒﺎﺩﺉ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﺨﺮﺝ
ﺑﻪ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻘﻮﻟﺔ .ﻭﻣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻰ ﻋﺎﻗﻼ ﻣﻤﻴﺰﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻜﻠﻔﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻘﻠﻴﺎﺕ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﻜﻠﻴﻔﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺮﻋﻴﺎﺕ ﻣﻮﻗﻮﻓﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺪ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻭﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﺑﻤﻨﻜﺮ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺸﺮ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻘﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﺰﺓ ﻓﻠﺰﻣﻪ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ،
ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﺎﺭﻑ ،ﻻ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻘﻠﺪ ﺗﺎﺑﻊ.
.
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺭﺩﺕ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ
)(٢٩٨
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻧﺴﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻭﻋﺪﺩﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺴﺤﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺠﻮﻡ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺼﻞ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ
ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺔ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺪﺛﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﻟﻖ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺪﺭﺓ ،ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻤﻮﻳﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺪﻳﻌﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻠﺒﻴﺲ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻤﺎﻛﺮﺓ ،ﺷﺮﻃﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺻﺤﺔ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺻﺢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻻ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ﻟﻬﺆﻻﺀ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻤﻞ ) (١ﻭﻣﺒﺎﺩﺉ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ،ﻻ ﺑﺪﻗﺎﺋﻘﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺎﻣﺾ
ﻣﻨﻬﺎ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻳﻔﺘﻘﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ ﻗﺪ ﻓﺎﺗﺢ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻭﺟﺮﺏ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻭﻧﺎﺯﻉ
ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻔﺘﻘﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺻﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﻳﺰﺓ ﻭﻛﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ ﻭﺳﻼﻣﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﻄﺮﺓ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﻃﻔﻼ
ﻟﻮ ﻧﺸﺄ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺎﺷﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻓﺎﺗﺢ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺎﺯﻉ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ ﺛﻢ ﻛﻤﻞ ﻋﻘﻠﻪ
ﻭﺣﺼﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﻳﻬﻴﺔ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻜﻠﻔﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﻘﻠﻴﺎﺕ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﺗﻮﻫﻤﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺿﻦ ﻭﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﻢ ﻭﺭﻳﺎﺿﺔ
ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺋﺲ ،ﻓﻠﻌﻤﺮﻱ ﺇﻥ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺎﺿﻨﻪ ﻭﻗﻴﻤﻪ ﻭﺳﺎﺋﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻨﻘﻄﻌﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﻻ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺧﻮﺗﻪ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻋﻘﻴﻞ ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻋﻦ
ﻋﻤﻮﻣﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺯﺍﻝ ﻣﺨﺎﻟﻄﺎ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻣﻤﺘﺰﺟﺎ ﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻊ ﺧﺪﻣﺘﻪ ﻟﻤﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ﻭﻋﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﺍﻷﺻﻨﺎﻡ ﻟﻤﺨﺎﻟﻄﺘﻪ ﺇﺧﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﻭﻋﻤﻮﻣﺘﻪ
ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻪ،
ﻭﻫﻢ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺫﻭﻭ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻭﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻳﺬﻫﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻣﻔﺮﺩ ﻻ ﻳﻮﺍﻓﻘﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻭﻱ
ﺍﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ ﺃﻣﻴﻞ ،ﻭﻋﻦ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﺫ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻔﺮﺩ ﺃﺑﻌﺪ.
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ،ﻭﺭﺑﻰ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻭﺷﺎﻫﺪ ﺍﻷﺻﻨﺎﻡ ،ﻭﻋﺎﻳﻦ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻴﻪ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﻳﻌﺒﺪﻭﻧﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻠﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ
ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺠﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻟﻘﻴﻞ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻭﻟﺪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻓﺈﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻈﺌﺮ،
ﻭﻋﻦ ﺳﻤﺎﻉ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻣﺸﺎﻫﺪﺓ ﺷﻌﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻻ ﺧﻄﺮ ﺑﺒﺎﻟﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﻩ،
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ]ﺛﺒﺖ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻴﺰ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻟﻮﻻ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻬﻞ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٢٩٩
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ ) [(١ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﻣﻪ ) (٢ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺭﺿﻰ
ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﺕ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺰﻭﻳﺠﻪ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻬﺎ " :ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻚ ﺃﻗﺪﻣﻬﻢ ﺳﻠﻤﺎ " .ﻭﻻ ﻗﺮﻥ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻤﺎ ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻤﻬﻢ ﺣﻠﻤﺎ " ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻠﻢ :ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍﻥ ﺍﻷﻣﺮﺍﻥ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ
ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ .ﻓﻠﻮﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﺎﺭﻑ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ﻣﻤﻴﺰ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺿﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﺬﻳﻦ
ﻭﺻﻔﻪ ﺑﻬﻤﺎ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻤﺪﺣﻪ ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﺜﺎﺑﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻌﺎﻗﺒﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺗﺮﻛﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺍﻓﺘﺨﺮ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺅﻭﺱ ﺍﻻﺷﻬﺎﺩ
ﻭﻻ ﺧﻄﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﺪﻭ ﻣﺤﺎﺭﺏ ﻭﺧﺎﺫﻝ ﻣﻨﺎﻓﻖ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﺧﻮ
ﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﻭﻕ ﺍﻷﻋﻈﻢ ،ﺻﻠﻴﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ،
ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻤﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺁﻣﻨﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺇﻳﻤﺎﻧﻪ " .ﻓﻬﻞ ﺑﻠﻐﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺼﺮ ﺃﻧﻜﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻭ ﻋﺎﺑﻪ ﺃﻭ ﺃﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻩ ﺃﻭ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻃﻔﻼ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﺖ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻚ ﻭﺗﻠﻘﻴﻨﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻙ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻴﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﻛﻴﺔ
ﻣﻨﺬ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺭﺿﻴﻌﺎ ،ﻓﻼ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻭﺧﺼﻮﺻﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺼﺮ ﻗﺪ ﺣﺎﺭﺏ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ
ﺍﻟﺒﺼﺮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻬﺮﻭﺍﻥ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﻋﺘﻮﺭﺗﻪ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﻭﻫﺠﺘﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮﺍﺀ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﻨﻌﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺑﺸﻴﺮ:
ﻟﻘﺪ ﻃﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﻴﺪ * ﻭﺳﺎﺭﻉ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻀﻼﻝ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺗﺮﺍﺏ
ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﺔ ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻡ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ * ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺗﺢ ﺑﻤﻨﻘﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﺮﺍﺏ )(٣
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺭﺝ:
ﺩﺳﺴﻨﺎ ﻟﻪ ﺗﺤﺖ ﺍﻟﻈﻼﻡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻠﺠﻢ * ﺟﺰﺍﺀ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻧﻔﺴﺎ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻬﺎ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻤﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺣﻄﺎﻥ ﻳﻤﺪﺡ ﻗﺎﺗﻠﻪ:
ﻳﺎ ﺿﺮﺑﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺃﺭﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺎ * ﺇﻻ ﻟﻴﺒﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺵ ﺭﺿﻮﺍﻧﺎ
ﺇﻧﻲ ﻷﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺣﻴﻨﺎ ﻓﺄﺣﺴﺒﻪ * ﺃﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻴﺰﺍﻧﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻁ (٢) .ﻁ " :ﻣﺪﺣﻪ " (٣) .ﺍﻟﻮﺗﺢ :ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻓﺔ.
)(٣٠٠
ﻓﻠﻮ ﻭﺟﺪ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺳﺒﻴﻼ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺩﺣﺾ ﺣﺠﺔ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻔﺨﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻟﺒﺪﺃﻭﺍ
ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﻣﺎﻻ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﻭﺭﺩﻧﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻣﺪﺣﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮﺍﺀ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺒﻘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﺩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻣﺪﺣﻮﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺒﻖ ﺷﺎﻋﺮ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺣﺮﺑﻪ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﻬﺎﺕ ﺍﻷﻭﻻﺩ ﻗﻮﻻ
ﺧﺎﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﺬﻛﺮﻭﻩ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﻋﺎﺑﻮﻩ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺗﺮﻛﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻴﺒﻮﻩ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻔﺘﺨﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ
ﻻ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻭﻋﺎﺑﻮﻩ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﻬﺎﺕ ﺍﻷﻭﻻﺩ.
ﺛﻢ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ) (١ﺧﺒﺮﻧﺎ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺟﺎﺯﻩ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺰﻩ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ :ﻫﻞ ]ﻛﺎﻥ[ ﻳﻤﻴﺰ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻪ .ﻭﻫﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻓﺮﻕ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ
ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﻳﻔﺼﻞ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﺤﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﺰﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻋﺪﺩﺕ ﻭﻓﺼﻠﺖ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻧﻌﻢ
ﻭﺗﺠﺎﺳﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻪ :ﻓﻌﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺃﺫﻛﻰ ﻭﺃﻓﻄﻦ
ﺑﻼ ﺧﻼﻑ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻼﺀ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻰ ﻳﺸﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻴﺰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻮﺩ
ﺑﻌﺪ ﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺴﻦ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺘﺠﺎﺭﺏ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﻴﺰ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺮﺷﺪ ﻭﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻐﻰ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺍﻣﺘﻨﻊ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻃﺮﻕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﺎﺑﻪ ﻟﻴﻼ ﻟﻴﺒﺎﻳﻊ ﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ،ﻛﻲ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻴﺖ
ﺗﻠﻚ
ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻠﺔ ﺑﻼ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ،ﺯﻋﻢ .ﻷﻧﻪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﻦ ﻣﺎﺕ
ﻭﻻ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﻟﻪ ﻣﺎﺕ ﻣﻴﺘﺔ ﺟﺎﻫﻠﻴﺔ " ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﻘﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺝ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺮﺫﺍﻟﻪ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ
ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﺭﺟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﺻﻔﻖ ﺑﻴﺪﻙ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ .ﻓﺬﻟﻚ ﺗﻤﻴﻴﺰﻩ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻮﺩ،
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺋﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻛﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﻓﻄﻨﺘﻪ ﻭﺗﻮﻗﺪ ﺣﺴﻪ
ﻭﺻﺪﻕ ﺣﺪﺳﻪ ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻣﺔ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﺢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺇﻧﻪ
ﻋﺮﻑ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺳﺮﺩﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻭﻧﺴﻘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻓﺼﺎﺣﺘﻪ ﻭﺗﺸﺎﺩﻗﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ .ﻓﻌﻠﻰ
ﺑﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺣﻖ ،ﻭﺑﺼﺤﺔ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﺃﺑﻄﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﻃﻌﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﺣﻴﺚ ﺣﻜﻢ ﺑﺼﺤﺔ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﺃﺟﺎﺯﻩ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ﺃﺟﻴﺮ ﺇﻻ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻎ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﻞ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺰﻩ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ .ﺛﻢ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ :ﺇﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻧﻘﻮﻟﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻁ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻗﻠﻨﺎ ﻟﻪ ".
)(٣٠١
ﻓﻲ ﺑﻠﻮﻍ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺪ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻳﺤﺴﻦ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻠﻲ ﺑﻞ ﻳﺠﺐ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ
ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺄﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﺪ ﻟﺴﺘﺔ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺻﺤﺢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ
ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻨﺒﻄﻮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺠﺎﺭﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ
ﻣﺠﺊ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﺪ ﻟﺴﻨﺘﻴﻦ ﺧﺎﺭﺝ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺻﺤﺤﻪ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ.
ﻭﻳﺮﻭﻯ
ﺃﻥ ﻣﻌﺎﺫﺍ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻧﻬﻰ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺟﻢ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻣﻞ ﺗﺮﻛﻬﺎ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻭﻟﺪﺕ ﻏﻼﻣﺎ ﻗﺪ ﻧﺒﺘﺖ ﺛﻨﻴﺘﺎﻩ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ
ﺃﺑﻮﻩ :ﺍﺑﻨﻲ ﻭﺭﺏ ﺍﻟﻜﻌﺒﺔ! ﻓﺜﺒﺖ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺳﻨﺔ ﻳﻌﻤﻞ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺩﺓ
ﺗﻘﻀﻰ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺭﻳﺔ ﺗﺤﻴﺾ ﻻﺛﻨﺘﻲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻗﻞ ﺳﻦ ﺗﺤﻴﺾ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ .ﻭﻗﺪ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﻗﻞ ﻧﺴﺎﺀ ﻳﺤﻀﻦ ﻟﻌﺸﺮ ﻭﺗﺴﻊ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻓﻌﻲ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻌﺎﻥ :ﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ﺑﺤﻤﻞ ﻭﺯﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﺻﺒﻲ ﻟﻪ ﺩﻭﻥ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻭﻟﺪﺍ ﻟﻪ،
ﻻﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻴﺎﻥ ﻻ ﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻋﺸﺮ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﺪ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻟﻌﺎﻥ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺮ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻬﺎﺀ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ :ﺇﻥ ﻧﺴﺎﺀ ﺗﻬﺎﻣﺔ
ﻳﺤﻀﻦ ﻟﺘﺴﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺮ ﺑﺒﻼﺩﻫﻦ.
)(٣
ﻟﺼﻔﺤﺔ ١٢ - ٩ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺇﻥ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ .ﻣﻊ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﻋﻠﻤﻪ ،ﻻ ﻳﺨﻔﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻛﺬﺏ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﻯ ﻭﻓﺴﺎﺩﻫﺎ،
ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺗﻌﺼﺒﺎ ﻭﻋﻨﺎﺩﺍ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ ﺍﻓﺘﺨﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﺑﺎﻟﺴﺒﻖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﺍﺳﺘﻨﺒﺊ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺻﻠﻴﺖ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺯﺍﻝ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﻭﻝ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻳﻔﺘﺨﺮ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﻳﻔﺘﺨﺮ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺃﻭﻟﻴﺎﺅﻩ ﻭﻣﺎﺩﺣﻮﻩ ﻭﺷﻴﻌﺘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺼﺮﻩ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻪ.
ﻭﺍﻻﻣﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻛﻞ ﺷﻬﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺪﻣﻨﺎ ﻃﺮﻓﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺧﻼ ﺍﺳﺘﺨﻒ ﺑﺈﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﻬﺎﻭﻥ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ
ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﻏﺮﻳﺮ ،ﻭﻃﻔﻞ ﺻﻐﻴﺮ ﺭ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺠﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﻭﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻳﻨﺘﻈﺮﺍﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ
ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
]ﻭﻓﻌﻠﻪ ) [(١ﻟﻴﺼﺪﺭﺍ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ،ﺛﻢ ﻳﺨﺎﻟﻔﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻟﻐﻴﺮ ﺭﻏﺒﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺭﻫﺒﺔ ،ﻳﺆﺛﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
)(٣٠٢
ﺍﻟﻜﺜﺮﺓ .ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﺓ ،ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻨﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻛﻠﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﺼﺪﻳﻖ .ﻭﺭﻭﻯ
ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﻠﻔﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺒﺪﺃ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻇﻬﻮﺭ ﻛﻠﻤﺔ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻧﺘﺸﺎﺭﻫﺎ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺃﻥ
ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﻟﻪ ﻃﻌﺎﻣﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻋﻮ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﻓﺼﻨﻊ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻫﻢ ﻟﻪ ،ﻓﺨﺮﺟﻮﺍ
ﺫﻟﻚ
ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺬﺭﻫﻢ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻗﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﻋﻤﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻟﻬﺐ ،ﻓﻜﻠﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻲ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺼﻨﻊ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻫﻢ ﺛﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻓﺼﻨﻌﻪ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻫﻢ ﻓﺄﻛﻠﻮﺍ ،ﺛﻢ ﻛﻠﻤﻬﻢ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﺪﻋﺎﻫﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﺐ ،ﺛﻢ ﺿﻤﻦ ﻟﻤﻦ
ﺑﻮﺍﺭﺯﻩ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﻳﻨﺼﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺃﺧﺎﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﻭﺻﻴﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﻮﺗﻪ ،ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺴﻜﻮﺍ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﺟﺎﺑﻪ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﻧﺼﺮﻙ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺟﺌﺖ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺅﺍﺯﺭﻙ
ﻭﺃﺑﺎﻳﻌﻚ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺭﺃﻯ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﺬﻻﻥ ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮ ،ﻭﺷﺎﻫﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ ﻭﻣﻨﻪ
ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻭﻋﺎﻳﻦ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻻﺑﺎﺀ ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻹﺟﺎﺑﺔ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺧﻲ ﻭﻭﺻﻲ ﻭﺧﻠﻴﻔﺘﻲ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ!
ﻓﻘﺎﻣﻮﺍ ﻳﺴﺨﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﻳﻀﺤﻜﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ :ﺃﻃﻊ ﺍﺑﻨﻚ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ! ﻓﻬﻞ
ﻳﻜﻠﻒ ﻋﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺻﻐﻴﺮ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻤﻴﺰ ،ﻭﻏﺮ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﺎﻗﻞ؟! ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﺆﺗﻤﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺮ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ﻃﻔﻞ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺧﻤﺲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺳﺒﻊ؟! ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﺪﻋﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻮﺥ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﻬﻮﻝ
ﺇﻻ ﻋﺎﻗﻞ ﻟﺒﻴﺐ؟! ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﻀﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻳﺪﻩ ﻭﻳﻌﻄﻴﻪ ﺻﻔﻘﺔ
ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ ﺑﺎﻻﺧﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﺻﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻼﻓﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ،ﺑﺎﻟﻎ ﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ،ﻣﺤﺘﻤﻞ
ﻟﻮﻻﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻋﺪﺍﻭﺓ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺋﻪ؟!
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻞ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺄﻧﺲ ﺑﺄﻗﺮﺍﻧﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻠﺼﻖ ﺑﺄﺷﻜﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺮ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻴﺎﻥ
ﻓﻲ ﻣﻼﻋﺒﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻛﺄﺣﺪﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﻘﺘﻪ ﻛﺒﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻉ
ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺎﻋﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺳﺎﻋﺎﺗﻪ ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ :ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﻧﻘﺺ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﺎ ﻭﺧﺎﻃﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻮﺍﻃﺮ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺣﻤﻠﺘﻪ
ﺍﻟﻐﺮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﺍﺛﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﻀﻮﺭ ﻟﻬﻮﻫﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺧﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺎﻟﻬﻢ ،ﺑﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎﻩ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎﺿﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻣﺼﻤﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻣﺤﻘﻘﺎ ﻟﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﺑﻔﻌﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺻﺪﻕ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﺑﻌﻔﺎﻓﻪ ﻭﺯﻫﺪﻩ ،ﻭﻟﺼﻖ
ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺤﻀﺮﺗﻪ ،ﻓﻬﻮ ﺃﻣﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺃﻟﻴﻔﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻧﻴﺎﻩ
)(٣٠٣
ﻭﺁﺧﺮﺗﻪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﻬﺮ ﺷﻬﻮﺗﻪ ،ﻭﺟﺎﺫﺏ ﺧﻮﺍﻃﺮﻩ ،ﺻﺎﺑﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﻳﺮﺟﻮﻩ ﻣﻦ
ﻓﻮﺯ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻭﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﻭﺧﻄﺒﻪ ﺑﺪﺀ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻓﺘﺘﺎﺡ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
ﻟﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺮﺓ ﻓﺄﻗﺒﻠﺖ ﺗﺨﺪ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ:
ﺳﺎﺣﺮ ﺧﻔﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﺴﺤﺮ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺆﻣﻦ ﺑﻚ،
ﺁﻣﻨﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺻﺪﻗﺘﻚ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺟﺌﺖ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﺷﻬﺪ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺮﺓ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻌﻠﺖ
ﺑﺄﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﺼﺪﻳﻘﺎ ﻟﻨﺒﻮﺗﻚ ،ﻭﺑﺮﻫﺎﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺤﺔ ﺩﻋﻮﺗﻚ .ﻓﻬﻞ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺇﻳﻤﺎﻥ ﻗﻂ ﺃﺻﺢ ﻣﻦ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺃﻭﺛﻖ ﻋﻘﺪﺓ ﻭﺃﺣﻜﻢ ﻣﺮﺓ؟! ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﺣﻨﻖ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻭﻏﻴﻈﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﺼﺒﻴﺔ
ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻭﺍﻧﺤﺮﺍﻓﻪ ،ﻣﻤﺎ ﻻ ﺣﻴﻠﺔ ﻓﻴﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻴﻨﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺼﻒ ﻭﻟﻴﺪﻉ ﺍﻟﻬﻮﻯ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﺎ ﻟﻴﻌﻠﻢ ﻧﻌﻤﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﺎﻻﺳﻼﻡ،
ﺣﻴﺚ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻮﻻ ﺍﻷﻟﻄﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺧﺺ ﺑﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺪﺍﻳﺔ
ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻣﻨﺤﻬﺎ ﻟﻪ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺒﻌﺾ ﺃﻗﺎﺭﺏ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻪ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻤﺎﺯﺟﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻛﻤﻤﺎﺯﺟﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺨﺎﻟﻄﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻛﻤﺨﺎﻟﻄﺔ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﻫﻄﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﺐ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺣﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﺐ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺻﻼ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻣﻠﺘﺼﻘﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻟﻬﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻭﺻﻬﺮﻩ ﺯﻭﺝ ﺍﺑﻨﺘﻪ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﺪﻗﻪ ،ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺪﻳﺪﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﺨﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﺑﻨﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ ﻭﻫﻢ
ﺭﺑﺎﺋﺒﻪ ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻘﻴﻘﺔ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻓﻠﻪ ﻭﻧﺎﺻﺮﻩ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺎﻣﻰ
ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻟﻮﻻﻩ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﻢ ﻟﻪ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺔ .ﻭﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻏﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺎﺕ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ
ﻋﻤﻪ ﻭﺻﻨﻮ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻟﻘﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﻻﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻨﺸﺄ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﺐ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﻃﻮﻳﻞ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻟﻬﺐ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻭﻛﺪﻣﻪ ﻭﻟﺤﻤﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺪﻳﺪﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ
ﻳﻨﺴﺐ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺮﺑﻴﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﺤﻤﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻠﻘﻴﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻀﺎﻧﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﻣﻌﺔ ﻭﻃﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮﺓ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻧﺲ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻠﻮﺓ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺎﺻﻼ ﻟﻬﺆﻻﺀ
ﺃﻭ ﻟﻜﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻬﺘﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺇﺫ ﺫﺍﻙ ،ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺟﺤﺪ ﻭﻛﻔﺮ ﻭﻣﺎﺕ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻄﺄ ﻭﺗﺄﺧﺮ ﻭﺳﺒﻖ ﺑﺎﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺟﺎﺀ ﺳﻜﻴﺘﺎ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻓﺎﺯ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ.
)(٣٠٤
ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﺪﻝ ﺗﺄﻣﻞ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺷﺎﻫﺪ
ﺍﻻﻋﻼﻡ ﻭﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﺰﺍﺕ ﻭﺷﻢ ﺭﻳﺢ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ،ﻭﺭﺃﻯ ﻧﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻭﺛﺒﺖ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ
ﺑﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﻭﻧﻈﺮ ﺻﺤﻴﺢ ،ﻻ ﺑﺘﻘﻠﻴﺪ ﻭﻻ ﺣﻤﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﻏﺒﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺭﻫﺒﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻳﺘﻌﻠﻖ
ﺑﺄﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
)(٤
ﺹ ٢٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻳﻨﺒﻐﻲ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﻈﺮ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻔﺼﻞ ﻭﻳﻘﻔﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ) (١ﻭﺍﻷﺻﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﻧﺼﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻬﺎﺩﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺼﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﺗﻬﺠﻴﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻤﺮﺓ
ﻳﺒﻄﻼﻥ ﻣﻌﻨﺎﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺮﺓ ﻳﺘﻮﺻﻼﻥ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺣﻂ ﻗﺪﺭﻫﺎ .ﻓﻠﻴﻨﻈﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻋﺘﺮﺿﺎ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻳﻦ
ﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﺣﻴﻠﺘﻬﻤﺎ؟ ﻭﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻌﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺣﺘﻴﺎﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺼﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﺳﺠﻌﻬﻤﺎ؟ ﺃﻟﻴﺲ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺄﻣﻠﺘﻬﺎ
ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺃﻟﻔﺎﻅ ﻣﻠﻔﻘﺔ ﺑﻼ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﺷﺠﻰ ﻭﺑﻼﺀ ،ﻭﺇﻻ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﺴﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺒﻠﻎ
ﺣﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺳﺪ ﻭﻳﻐﻨﻰ ﻛﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﺎﺋﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﺎﻧﺊ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻗﺪ ﺟﻞ ﻗﺪﺭﻩ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﻘﺺ ،ﻭﺃﺿﺎﺀﺕ
ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻠﻪ ﺇﺿﺎﺀﺓ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ.
ﻭﺃﻳﻦ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻻﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺼﻐﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺒﻴﺮ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺎﻫﻞ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺑﻠﻐﻪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻮﻟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻻ ﻏﺬﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺮ ﺍﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ
ﺍﺳﺘﻀﺎﻓﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺳﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺤﻂ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻋﺔ .ﻭﻋﻤﺮﻩ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ
ﺛﻤﺎﻧﻲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻤﻜﺚ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺗﺎﻩ ﺟﺒﺮﺋﻴﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻓﺪﻋﺎﻩ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺑﺎﻟﻎ
ﻛﺎﻣﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻓﺄﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺸﺎﻫﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﺰﺓ ،ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﻋﻤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﻈﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻜﺮﺓ.
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺳﺒﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻤﺲ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ ﺩﻋﻮﺓ ﻭﻻ ﺭﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺩﻋﺎﺀ ﻧﺒﻮﺓ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﺘﻌﺒﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﻠﺔ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻭﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﻨﻴﻔﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻳﺘﺤﻨﺚ ﻭﻳﺠﺎﻧﺐ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻁ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺍﻷﺧﺮﻯ ".
)(٣٠٥
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻭﻳﻌﺘﺰﻝ ﻭﻳﻄﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻮﺓ ﻭﻳﻨﻘﻄﻊ ﻓﻲ ﺟﺒﻞ ﺣﺮﺍﺀ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﻌﻪ
ﻛﺎﻟﺘﺎﺑﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻠﻤﻴﺬ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺑﻠﻎ ﺍﻟﺤﻠﻢ ﻭﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﻭﺑﺸﺮﺗﻪ
ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ،ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﻓﺄﺟﺎﺑﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻈﺮ ﻭﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺑﺎﻷﻋﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﺰﺓ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﺇﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻘﺘﻀﺒﺎ؟!
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻳﻨﻘﺺ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻤﺮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺒﺪ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ،ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻧﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻜﻠﻔﻴﻦ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺼﻮﻣﻴﻦ ،ﻻﻥ
ﺍﻟﻌﺼﻤﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻝ ﻟﻄﻒ ﻳﻤﻨﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺺ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺭﺗﻜﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﻴﺢ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺺ
ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻄﻒ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺳﻬﻞ ،ﻓﻮﺟﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺛﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﺃﻧﻘﺺ ﻣﻦ ﺛﻮﺍﺏ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﻣﻊ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻷﻟﻄﺎﻑ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺇﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻧﺎﻗﺺ ﻋﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻨﺒﺊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻻﺛﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻤﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻟﻢ
ﺗﻜﺜﺮ ﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻤﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﻮﺍﺗﺮﺕ ﺃﻋﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺸﺎﻫﺪﺗﻪ .ﻭﻻ ﺗﻄﺎﻭﻝ
ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻟﺘﺨﻒ ﻣﺤﻨﺘﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﻘﻂ ﺛﻘﻞ ﺗﻜﻠﻴﻔﻪ ،ﺑﻞ ﺑﺎﻥ ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ﻭﻇﻬﺮ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ
ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺑﻠﻮﻏﻪ ،ﻭﻋﺎﻧﻰ ﻧﻮﺍﺯﻉ ﻃﺒﻌﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﺧﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺳﻤﺎﻋﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻏﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻣﺬﻛﻮﺭﺍ ،ﻭﺭﺋﻴﺴﺎ
ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﺎ ،ﻳﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﻜﺔ ﻓﻴﻨﺸﺪﻭﻥ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻭﻳﺘﺬﺍﻛﺮﻭﻥ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ
ﻭﻳﺸﺮﺑﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺨﻤﺮ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺩﻻﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ .ﻭﺣﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻞ ،ﻭﺳﺎﻓﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﻠﺪﺍﻥ
ﻭﻭﺻﻠﺖ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﺩﻋﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻜﻬﻨﺔ ﻭﺣﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﺤﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻧﻜﺸﺎﻑ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺳﻬﻞ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﻃﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﺃﻗﻞ
ﺍﻋﺘﻼﺟﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻮﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﻣﺴﻬﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ " :ﺃﺗﻴﺖ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺱ " ﺳﺄﻟﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﻭﻣﻮﺍﺿﻌﻪ،
ﻓﺼﺪﻗﻪ ﻭﺑﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺧﻔﺖ ﻣﺆﻧﺘﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﻴﺖ .ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﻀﺐ.
)(٣٠٦
ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺩﻋﻮﺕ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ
ﺇﻻ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺗﺮﺩﺩ ﻭﻧﺒﻮﺓ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻠﻌﺜﻢ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻫﺠﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ .ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻭﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻠﻰ ﻭﻋﻘﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻟﺠﺊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻈﺮﻩ ﻣﻊ ﺻﻐﺮ
ﺳﻨﻪ ﻭﺍﻋﺘﻼﺝ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﻃﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ .ﻭﻧﺸﺄﺗﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺿﺪ ﻣﺎ ﺩﺧﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻐﺎﻟﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻣﺜﺎﻟﻪ
ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺍﻧﻪ ﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻌﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻬﻮ .ﻓﻠﺠﺄ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻻﺋﻞ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﺄﺧﺮ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ
ﻓﻴﻠﺰﻣﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺼﻴﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻌﺼﻴﺔ ،ﻓﻘﻬﺮ ﺷﻬﻮﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻏﺎﻟﺐ ﺧﻮﺍﻃﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺎﺩﺗﻪ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻏﺬﻯ ﺑﻪ ،ﻟﺼﺤﺔ ﻧﻈﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻟﻄﺎﻓﺔ ﻓﻜﺮﻩ .ﻭﻏﺎﻣﺾ ﻓﻬﻤﻪ ،ﻓﻌﻈﻢ ﺍﺳﺘﻨﺒﺎﻃﻪ ،ﻭﺭﺟﺢ
ﻓﻀﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺷﺮﻑ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺄﺧﺬ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﺑﻨﺼﻴﺐ ﻭﻻ ﺗﻨﻌﻢ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺑﻨﻌﻴﻢ ،ﺣﺪﺛﺎ
ﻭﻻ ﻛﺒﻴﺮﺍ] ،ﻭﺣﻤﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻬﻮﻯ ) ،[(١ﻭﻛﺴﺮ ﺷﺮﺓ ﺣﺪﺍﺛﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻘﻮﻯ ،ﻭﺍﺷﺘﻐﻞ
ﺑﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻌﻴﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺷﻐﻞ ) (٢ﻫﻢ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻭﺟﻪ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺭﻏﺒﺘﻪ،
ﻓﺈﺳﻼﻣﻪ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﻻ
ﻛﺴﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ،ﻟﻴﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﻤﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﻫﺎﺭﻭﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻧﺒﻴﺎ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ ﺳﺎﻟﻜﺎ .ﻭﻟﻤﻨﻬﺎﺟﻬﻢ
ﻣﺘﺒﻌﺎ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻛﺤﺎﻝ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺻﻐﻴﺮﺍ ﺟﻌﻠﺘﻪ ﺃﻣﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺮﺏ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻠﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻧﺸﺄ ﻭﺩﺭﺝ ﻭﻋﻘﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻻﻣﻪ :ﻣﻦ
ﺭﺑﻰ؟ ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺃﺑﻮﻙ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻓﻤﻦ ﺭﺏ ﺃﺑﻰ؟ ﻓﺰﺑﺮﺗﻪ ﻭﻧﻬﺮﺗﻪ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻃﻠﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻖ
ﺍﻟﺴﺮﺏ ﻓﺮﺃﻯ ﻛﻮﻛﺒﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺭﺑﻰ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﻓﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻻ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺍﻵﻓﻠﻴﻦ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺃﻯ
ﺍﻟﻘﻤﺮ ﺑﺎﺯﻏﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺭﺑﻰ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﻓﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻟﺌﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻬﺪﻧﻲ ﺭﺑﻰ ﻷﻛﻮﻧﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ
ﺍﻟﻀﺎﻟﻴﻦ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﺸﻤﺲ ﺑﺎﺯﻏﺔ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﺭﺑﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻛﺒﺮ .ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺃﻓﻠﺖ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﻗﻮﻡ
ﺇﻧﻲ ﺑﺮﺉ ﻣﻤﺎ ﺗﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ ،ﺇﻧﻲ ﻭﺟﻬﺖ ﻭﺟﻬﻲ ﻟﻠﺬﻱ ﻓﻄﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﻭﺍﺕ ﻭﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺣﻨﻴﻔﺎ
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺟﻞ ﺛﻨﺎﺅﻩ " :ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻧﺮﻯ ﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻣﻠﻜﻮﺕ
ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﻭﺍﺕ ﻭﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻗﻨﻴﻦ " .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ﺍﻷﻛﺒﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
) (٢ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺨﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ " ﺃﺷﻌﺮ ".
)(٣٠٧
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ .ﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻧﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺴﺎﻭﻳﺎ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﺘﺪﻳﺎ ﺑﻄﺮﻳﻘﻪ،
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺇﻥ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺑﺈﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻟﻠﺬﻳﻦ ﺍﺗﺒﻌﻮﻩ ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ
ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ".
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻋﺘﻼﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ) (١ﺑﺄﻥ ﻟﻪ ﻇﻬﺮﺍ ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻭﺭﺩﺀﺍ ﻛﺒﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ
ﻳﻮﺟﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﺛﻮﺍﺑﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﻓﻀﻞ ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻤﺎ
ﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻇﻬﺮﻩ ،ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺭﺩﺍﺅﻩ .ﻭﺣﺴﺒﻚ
ﺟﻬﻼ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﺪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﻄﻊ ﺣﻂ ﻗﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺤﻄﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻷﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ
ﻓﺎﻷﺩﻧﻰ ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﻟﻬﺐ ﻋﻤﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻟﻬﺐ ،ﻭﻫﻰ ﺃﻡ ﺟﻤﻴﻞ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺣﺮﺏ ﺑﻦ ﺃﻣﻴﺔ ﻭﺇﺣﺪﻯ
ﺃﻭﻻﺩ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ .ﺛﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻣﻌﻴﻂ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻨﻀﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﺑﻦ ﻗﺼﻲ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ،ﻭﻏﻴﺮ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ
ﻣﻦ ﻳﻄﻮﻝ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻩ ،ﻭﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻄﺮﺡ ﺍﻷﺫﻯ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺮﻳﻘﻪ ﻭﻳﻨﻘﻞ ﺃﺧﺒﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻳﺮﻣﻴﻪ
ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ،ﻭﻳﺮﻣﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﺮﺵ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﺙ ) (٢ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﺆﺫﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻛﺄﺫﺍﻩ،
ﻭﻳﺠﺘﻬﺪﻭﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻤﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﺘﻬﺰﺋﻮﻥ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﺗﺆﺫﻳﻪ ﻛﻘﺮﺍﺑﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ .ﻭﻟﻤﺎ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺗﺤﺎﺩ ﻭﺍﻷﻟﻒ ﻭﺍﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ ،ﺃﺣﺠﻢ
ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻓﻘﻮﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺃﺫﻯ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺧﻮﻓﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ
ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﻣﻄﺎﻉ ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻧﺎﻓﺬ ،ﻓﺨﺎﻓﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﻣﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻓﺎﺗﻘﻮﻩ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺴﻜﻮﺍ
ﻋﻦ ﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ ﺑﻐﻀﻪ ﻭﺃﻇﻬﺮﻭﺍ ﺑﻐﺾ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﺷﻨﺂﻧﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻘﻪ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺡ " :ﻻ ﻳﺤﺒﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺆﻣﻦ ،ﻭﻻ
ﻳﺒﻐﻀﻚ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻨﺎﻓﻖ " .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻴﻦ " :ﻣﺎ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﻌﺮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻓﻘﻴﻦ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺒﻐﺾ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ " .ﻭﺃﻳﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻇﻬﺮ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻁ .ﻭﺑﺪﻟﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻓﻘﻂ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٣٠٨
ﺃﺑﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺯﻋﺠﻪ ﺍﻷﺫﻯ ﻋﻦ ﻭﻃﻨﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻼﺩ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ ﻭﺭﻛﺐ
ﺍﻟﺒﺤﺮ .ﺃﻳﺘﻮﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻧﺼﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺧﺬﻝ ﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ؟!
)(٥
ﺹ ٢٧ - ٢٥ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻔﺎﺿﺔ ﺍﻟﺬﻛﺮ ﻭﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺼﻴﺖ ،ﻭﻛﺒﺮ
ﺍﻟﺴﻦ ،ﻓﻜﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻻ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺃﺧﻼﻗﻬﺎ ﺣﻔﻆ
ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻳﻖ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻓﺎﺀ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻣﺎﻡ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻬﻴﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺍﻟﺜﺮﻭﺓ ،ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺮﺍﻡ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻟﻴﺔ،
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻛﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻇﻬﺮ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﻭﺳﻨﺪ ،ﻭﺛﻘﺔ ﻳﻌﺘﻤﺪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻦ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺀ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ
ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﻤﻜﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﻪ ﺃﺑﻘﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺤﻴﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺳﺒﺒﺎ ﻟﻨﺠﺎﺗﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻔﻮ ﻋﻨﻪ.
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺷﻬﺮﻩ ﺳﻨﻪ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺷﻬﺮﻩ ﻧﺴﺒﻪ
ﻭﻣﻮﺿﻌﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺘﻔﺾ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺑﻠﻘﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻭﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻻﺳﻔﺎﺭ ﺍﺳﺘﻔﺎﺽ
ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ .ﻓﺄﻧﺘﻢ ﺗﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﺗﻴﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﺼﻴﺖ ﻛﻬﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ
ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺴﺐ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﻌﻠﻮ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﺴﻦ ،ﻭﻳﺒﻌﺪ ﺻﻴﺖ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﺙ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺦ.
ﻭﻣﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﻨﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﺃﺛﻘﻞ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻴﺎ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ
ﺣﺎﻣﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﻧﻊ ﻟﺤﻮﺯﺗﻪ .ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﺘﺢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ
ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﻑ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻬﺎﻥ ﺑﻬﻢ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﻇﻬﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ،ﻭﺧﺎﻟﻒ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﻭﻋﺸﻴﺮﺗﻪ
ﻭﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻋﻬﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻧﻈﻴﺮ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻟﺘﻨﺬﺭ ﻗﻮﻣﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺬﺭ ﺁﺑﺎﺅﻫﻢ ﻓﻬﻢ ﻏﺎﻓﻠﻮﻥ ".
ﺛﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻣﺸﺘﻜﻰ ﺣﺰﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻴﺴﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺧﻠﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﺟﻠﻴﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻟﻴﻔﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺎﻣﻪ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ .ﻭﻛﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﻮﺟﺐ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﺾ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻣﻌﺎﺩﺍﺓ
ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻟﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻣﻌﺎﺷﺮ ) (١ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﺗﺜﺒﺘﻮﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺑﺼﺤﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﻣﻌﺸﺮ ".
)(٣٠٩
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻳﺜﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺩﺧﻮﻟﻪ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻓﻘﻠﺘﻢ :ﻣﺮﺗﺒﺔ ﺷﺮﻳﻔﺔ .ﻭﺣﺎﻟﺔ ﺟﻠﻴﻠﺔ،
ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﺮﻳﻜﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ .ﻭﺃﻧﻴﺴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﺣﺸﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺤﺒﺔ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻠﻮﺗﻪ .ﻭﺣﻴﺚ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺪ ﺃﻧﻴﺴﺎ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻟﻴﻠﻪ ﻭﻧﻬﺎﺭﻩ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻳﻌﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻪ
ﺳﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻳﺘﻜﻠﻒ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺟﺔ ﺟﻬﺮﺍ ،ﻭﻳﺨﺪﻣﻪ ﻛﺎﻟﻌﺒﺪ ﻳﺨﺪﻡ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ،ﻭﻳﺸﻔﻖ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺤﻮﻃﻪ،
ﻭﻛﺎﻟﻮﻟﺪ ﻳﺒﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻩ ﻭﻳﻌﻄﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﺳﺌﻠﺖ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ :ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ؟
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺴﺎﺀ ﻓﻔﺎﻃﻤﺔ.
)(٦
ﺹ ٣١ - ٢٧ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻤﻤﻜﻦ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﻯ ﺳﻬﻠﺔ ،ﺳﻴﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻟﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ﻭﻋﻘﻠﻪ ﺭﻗﻴﺐ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻋﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺑﻌﻴﺪ ،ﻓﻤﻌﻨﺎﻩ ﻧﺰﺭ ،ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻐﻮ ،ﻭﻣﻄﻠﺒﻪ
ﺳﺠﻊ ،ﻭﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﻟﻌﺐ ﻭﻟﻬﻮ .ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺸﺊ ﻭﺧﻼﻓﻪ ﻭﻳﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻭﺿﺪﻩ ،ﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﺍﻋﻆ ،ﻭﻻ ﻟﺪﻋﻮﺍﻩ ﺣﺪ ﻗﺎﺋﻢ .ﻭﺇﻻ ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺗﺠﺎﺳﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ
ﺣﻴﻨﺌﺬ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻄﻠﻮﺑﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻃﺎﻟﺒﺎ؟! ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﺎﻷﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﻓﻮﻉ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻨﺪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻐﺎ ﻛﺎﻣﻼ ،ﻣﻨﺎﺑﺬﺍ ﺑﻠﺴﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻲ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﺛﻘﻴﻼ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺼﻮﺹ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ .ﻭﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻮﺍﺕ
ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻈﻠﻤﺎﺕ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺘﺠﺮﻉ ﻟﻐﺼﺺ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ
ﻟﻬﺐ
ﻭﺃﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺼﻄﻠﻰ ﻟﻜﻞ ﻣﻜﺮﻭﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺮﻳﻚ ﻟﻨﺒﻴﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﺃﺫﻯ ،ﻗﺪ ﻧﻬﺾ
ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺜﻘﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﻻﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﺠﻠﻴﻞ .ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺨﺮﺝ ﻟﻴﻼ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﻴﺌﺔ
ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺭﻕ ،ﻭﻳﺨﻔﻰ ﻧﻔﺲ ﻭﻳﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﺷﺨﺼﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺄﺗﻲ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺒﻌﺜﻪ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﻣﻦ ﻛﺒﺮﺍﺀ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻛﻤﻄﻌﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺪﻱ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻓﻴﺤﻤﻞ ﻟﺒﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻇﻬﺮﻩ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺪﻗﻴﻖ
ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻤﺢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺧﻮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺋﻬﻢ ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﻟﻮ ﻇﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻷﺭﺍﻗﻮﺍ
ﺩﻣﻪ .ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻔﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ ﺃﻡ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ؟
)(٣١٠
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻫﻮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺧﻄﺒﺔ ﻟﻪ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ " :ﻓﺘﻌﺎﻗﺪﻭﺍ
ﺃﻻ ﻳﻌﺎﻣﻠﻮﻧﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻛﺤﻮﻧﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻭﻗﺪﺕ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻧﻴﺮﺍﻧﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺟﺒﻞ ﻭﻋﺮ،
ﻣﺆﻣﻨﻨﺎ ﻳﺮﺟﻮ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻓﺮﻧﺎ ﻳﺤﺎﻣﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﺎﺋﻞ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ
ﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻗﻄﻌﻮﺍ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻳﺘﻮﻗﻌﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﺟﻮﻋﺎ ﺻﺒﺎﺣﺎ
ﻭﻣﺴﺎﺀ ،ﻻ ﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﺟﻬﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻓﺮﺟﺎ ،ﻗﺪ ﺍﺿﻤﺤﻞ ﻋﺰﻣﻬﻢ ﻭﺍﻧﻘﻄﻊ ﺭﺟﺎﺅﻫﻢ ،ﻓﻤﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﺧﻠﺺ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻣﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﻭﺣﺪﻩ.
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻋﺴﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺻﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻄﻨﺐ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺗﻘﺼﻰ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﻴﻬﺎ ﻭﺑﻠﻮﻍ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ
ﻛﻨﻬﻬﺎ ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺑﺮ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ .ﻭﺩﺍﻣﺖ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ ﺛﻼﺙ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ) (١ﺍﻧﻔﺮﺟﺖ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ
ﺑﻘﺼﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﻔﺔ .ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺼﺔ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺩﻋﺎ ﺭﺍﻓﻬﺎ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻣﻄﻠﻮﺑﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻃﺎﻟﺒﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻓﺪﻯ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻭﻗﺎﻩ ﺑﻤﻬﺠﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺣﺘﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ،ﻭﺭﺿﺦ
ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ .ﻭﻫﻞ ﻳﻨﺘﻬﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺻﻒ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻃﻨﺐ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺎﺩﺡ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﺳﻬﺐ ،ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻹﺑﺎﻧﺔ
ﻋﻦ ﻣﻘﺪﺍﺭ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻳﻀﺎﺡ ﻟﻤﺰﻳﺔ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻴﺼﺔ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﺬﺏ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ " ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﺎ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻌﺒﺪ
ﺃﻭ ﻋﺴﻴﻒ ،ﺃﻭ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻻ ﻋﺸﻴﺮﺓ ﻟﻪ ﺗﻤﻨﻌﻪ .ﻓﺄﻧﺘﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﻣﺮﻳﻦ :ﺗﺎﺭﺓ ﺗﺠﻌﻠﻮﻧﻪ
ﺩﺧﻴﻼ ﺳﺎﻗﻄﺎ ﻭﻫﺠﻴﻨﺎ ،ﺭﺫﻳﻼ ﻣﺴﺘﻀﻌﻔﺎ ]ﺫﻟﻴﻼ[ ،ﻭﺗﺎﺭﺓ ﺗﺠﻌﻠﻮﻧﻪ ﺭﺋﻴﺴﺎ ﻣﺘﺒﻌﺎ ﻭﻛﺒﻴﺮﺍ
ﻣﻄﺎﻋﺎ ،ﻓﺎﻋﺘﻤﺪﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻟﻴﻦ ﻟﻨﻜﻠﻤﻜﻢ ﺑﺤﺴﺐ ﻣﺎ ﺗﺨﺘﺎﺭﻭﻧﻪ ﻷﻧﻔﺴﻜﻢ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻨﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﻭﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﻛﻞ ﻣﻌﺬﺏ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ
ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻛﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻫﺎﺟﺮﻭﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺎ ﻇﻠﻤﻮﺍ "
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﻭﺑﻼﻝ .ﻭﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻛﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﻠﺒﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻮ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٣١١
ﻣﻄﻤﺌﻦ ﺑﺎﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ " .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻤﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻤﺎﺭ ﻭﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻭﺃﻣﻪ
ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﻌﺬﺑﻮﻥ ،ﻳﻌﺬﺑﻬﻢ ﺑﻨﻮ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺣﻠﻔﺎﺀﻫﻢ ،ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺻﺒﺮﺍ ﺁﻝ ﻳﺎﺳﺮ
ﻓﺈﻥ ﻣﻮﻋﺪﻛﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ! " .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻳﻘﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺮﻣﻀﺎﺀ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺃﺣﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ!!
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺳﻤﻌﻨﺎ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺫﻛﺮﺍ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻳﺪ ﻏﺮﺍﺀ -ﺇﻥ ﺻﺢ ﻣﺎ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻤﻮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻌﺬﻳﺒﻪ -
ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻧﻮﻓﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﻠﺪ ،ﻭﻋﻤﻴﺮ ) (١ﺑﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ .ﺿﺮﺏ ﻧﻮﻓﻼ ﻓﻘﻄﻊ ﺳﺎﻗﻪ
ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﺫﻛﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺣﻢ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﻞ ﺭﺣﻢ ﻭﺻﻬﺮ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﺎﺑﻌﺎ
ﻟﻤﺤﻤﺪ!! ﺛﻢ ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ ﻓﻔﺎﺿﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ .ﻭﺻﻤﺪ ﻟﻌﻤﻴﺮ ) (٢ﺑﻦ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺘﻴﻤﻲ ﻓﻮﺟﺪﻩ
ﻳﺮﻭﻡ ﺍﻟﻬﺮﺏ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﺭﺗﺞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻚ ،ﻓﻀﺮﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺮﺍﺳﻴﻒ ) (٣ﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﻓﺼﺎﺭ ﻧﺼﻔﻪ
ﺍﻻﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺭﺟﻠﻴﻪ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻄﻠﺐ ﺑﺜﺄﺭﻩ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﻭﻳﺠﺘﻬﺪ] ،ﻟﻜﻨﻪ[
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻔﻌﻞ ﻓﻌﻞ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻓﺒﺄﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻔﻌﻠﻪ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ.
)(٧
ﺹ ٢٩ - ٢٨ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻨﻮ ﺟﻤﺢ ﺗﺆﺫﻯ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﻌﻮﻥ ﻭﺗﻀﺮﺑﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﺫﻭ ﺳﻄﻮﺓ ﻭﻗﺪﺭ،
ﻭﺗﺘﺮﻙ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻳﺒﻨﻰ ﻣﺴﺠﺪﺍ ﻳﻔﻌﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ .ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺴﻌﻮﺩ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﻣﺎ ﺻﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﻇﺎﻫﺮﻳﻦ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ " ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﺬﻛﺮﻭﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﺎﺀ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺠﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻫﺬﺍ؟
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻗﺔ ﺻﻮﺗﻪ ﻭﻋﺘﺎﻕ ) (٤ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ
ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﺪﻱ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ،ﺃﻥ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺭﺃﺕ ﺭﺟﻼ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺧﻔﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺭﺿﻴﻦ ،ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻕ ﺍﻟﺨﺪﻳﻦ،
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻤﺮ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻁ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .٥٠٨
) (٣ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻁ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺷﺮ ﺳﻮﻑ ".
) (٤ﺍﻟﻌﺘﺎﻕ :ﺍﻟﻌﺘﻖ.
)(٣١٢
ﻏﺎﺋﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻴﻨﻴﻦ ،ﺃﺟﻨﺄ ) (١ﻻ ﻳﻤﺴﻚ ﺇﺯﺍﺭﻩ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻟﺖ :ﻣﺎ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺃﺷﺒﻪ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ.
ﻓﻼ ﺃﻫﺎﺩﻟﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺻﻔﺘﻪ.
)(٨
ﺹ - ٣١ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻜﻼﻡ ﻭﻫﺠﺮ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﺮﺍﻥ ﺳﻮﺍﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻘﺎﺭﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺮﺝ ﻭﺍﺿﻄﺮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻥ
ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺫﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺣﻲ ﻳﻤﻨﻌﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻣﺎﺕ
ﻃﻠﺒﺘﻪ
ﻟﺘﻘﺘﻠﻪ ،ﻓﺨﺮﺝ ﺗﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺎﻣﺮ ،ﻭﺗﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺛﻘﻴﻒ ،ﻭﺗﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺷﻴﺒﺎﻥ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻳﺘﺠﺎﺳﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺴﺘﺘﺮﺍ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺟﺎﺭﻩ ﻣﻄﻌﻢ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺪﻱ ،ﺛﻢ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ
ﻓﺒﺬﻟﺖ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﺣﻨﻘﻬﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻓﺎﺗﻬﺎ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺗﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﺑﺬﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺑﻌﻴﺮ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺭ ﻭﺑﻘﻰ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﺮﺩﺍ ﻻ ﻧﺎﺻﺮ ﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﺩﺍﻓﻊ
ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ،ﻳﺼﻨﻌﻮﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻳﺪﻭﻥ .ﺇﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﺟﻬﻞ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻳﺔ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻛﺬﺏ ﺟﻴﻞ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﻭﺃﻭﻗﺤﻪ ﻭﺟﻬﺎ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻻ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻓﻲ
ﺃﺛﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺑﻪ ﺑﺸﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﺳﺒﻖ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺑﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ.
)(٩
ﺹ - ٣١ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻣﺎ ﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ،ﺇﺫ ﺗﺪﻋﻰ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻓﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﻪ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻓﻤﺎ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻪ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻃﻮﻋﺎ ﺑﺮﻓﻘﻪ
ﻭﻟﻄﻒ
ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻛﺮﻫﺎ ﺑﻘﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻘﺔ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻭﺇﺩﺧﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺪﺭ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻄﻴﻌﻪ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﻳﺄﻣﺮﻩ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻳﺪﻋﻮﻩ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﻥ
ﺃﺑﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺨﺎﻑ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻐﺘﺎﻟﻮﻩ
ﻓﺨﺮﺝ
ﻭﻣﻌﻪ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻳﻄﻠﺒﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻮﺟﺪ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺷﻌﺎﺏ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻷﺟﻨﺄ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺄ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻈﻬﺮ.
)(٣١٣
ﻣﻜﺔ ﻳﺼﻠﻰ ﻭﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻳﻤﻴﻨﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺭﺁﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺠﻌﻔﺮ :ﺗﻘﺪﻡ
ﻭﺻﻞ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻚ! ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻋﻦ ﻳﺴﺎﺭ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺻﺎﺭﻭﺍ
ﺛﻼﺛﺔ
ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺗﺄﺧﺮ ﺍﻻﺧﻮﺍﻥ ،ﻓﺒﻜﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺇﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﺛﻘﺘﻲ * ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﻮﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻮﺏ
ﻻ ﺗﺨﺬﻻ ﻭﺍﻧﺼﺮﺍ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻜﻤﺎ * ﺃﺧﻲ ﻻﻣﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﺑﻰ
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﺃﺧﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﻭﻻ * ﻳﺨﺬﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺫﻭ ﺣﺴﺐ
ﻓﺘﺬﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﺓ ﺃﻥ ﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻨﺬ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻻﻥ ﺃﺑﺎﻩ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻭﺃﻃﺎﻉ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ.
ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﺭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﺩﺧﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ
ﺛﻼﺙ
ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺳﻨﺔ .ﻭﺧﺮﺝ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺴﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻳﻨﺎﺩﻯ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﻴﻖ
ﻫﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯ!! ﺛﻢ ﻣﻜﺚ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻛﻔﺮﻩ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻋﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﺩﺧﻠﺖ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻃﻮﻋﺎ ﻭﻛﺮﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺳﺒﻴﻼ.
ﻭﺃﻳﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺭﻓﻖ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺟﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﺃﺑﻰ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺩﺍﺭ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ؟ ﻫﻼ ﺭﻓﻖ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻓﺄﺳﻠﻢ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺑﻘﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻳﻮﻡ
ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ﻓﺄﺣﻀﺮﻩ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺷﻴﺦ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ ﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﻛﺎﻟﺜﻐﺎﻣﺔ )(١
ﻓﻨﻔﺮ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻏﻴﺮﻭﺍ ﻫﺬﺍ .ﻓﺨﻀﺒﻮﻩ ﺛﻢ ﺟﺎﺀﻭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺮﺓ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ
ﻓﺄﺳﻠﻢ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﻓﻘﻴﺮﺍ ﻣﺪﻗﻌﺎ ﺳﻴﺊ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺜﺮﻳﺎ ﻓﺎﺋﺾ
ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻪ ﺍﺳﺘﻤﺎﻟﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻔﻘﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﺣﺴﺎﻥ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺓ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ -ﻭﺍﺳﻤﻬﺎ ﻧﻤﻠﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻯ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻣﺮﻳﺔ -ﻟﻢ ﺗﺴﻠﻢ
ﻭﺃﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺮﻛﻬﺎ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻫﻰ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺓ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻧﺰﻝ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﻻ
ﺗﻤﺴﻜﻮﺍ ﺑﻌﺼﻢ ﺍﻟﻜﻮﺍﻓﺮ " ﻓﻄﻠﻘﻬﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﻋﺠﺰ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻭﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ ﻓﻬﻮ ﻋﻦ
ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﺑﺎﺀ ﺃﻋﺠﺰ ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ ﻭﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ ﻻ ﺑﺮﻓﻖ ﻭﺍﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ،
ﻭﻻ ﺧﻮﻓﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﻘﺔ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺇﺩﺧﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﻐﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﺃﻗﻞ ﻗﺒﻮﻻ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻗﻞ
ﺧﻼﻓﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺜﻐﺎﻡ ،ﻛﺴﺤﺎﺏ :ﺿﺮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﺎﺕ ﺃﺑﻴﺾ.
)(٣١٤
)(١٠
ﺹ ٣٢ - ٣١ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺖ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺴﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺧﺘﻪ ﺃﻡ ﻓﺮﻭﺓ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺴﻠﻢ،
ﻭﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﻜﻦ ﻗﺪ ﻭﻟﺪﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ،ﻷﻧﻬﺎ ﻭﻟﺪﺕ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺒﻌﺚ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﺑﺨﻤﺲ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻟﺪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﻣﺒﻌﺚ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﺜﻼﺙ
ﻭﻋﺸﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﻨﺔ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻭﻟﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺠﺔ ﺍﻟﻮﺩﺍﻉ .ﻭﺃﺳﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﻌﺚ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺃﺭﺑﻊ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻓﻰ
ﺭﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺑﻨﺖ ﺳﻨﺘﻴﻦ .ﻓﻤﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺘﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ .ﻧﻌﻮﺫ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﺠﻬﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﺑﺮﺓ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﻟﻴﺴﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺗﺮﺍﺑﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻠﺴﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺻﺪﺍﻗﺔ
ﻣﺘﻘﺪﻣﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻧﺲ ﻭﻛﻴﺪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻭﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻬﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺑﺮﻓﻘﻪ ﻭﺣﺴﻦ ﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺎ ﻳﺠﻠﺴﺎﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻤﻪ
ﻭﻃﺮﻳﻒ ﺣﺪﻳﺜﻪ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﺧﻞ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻄﻌﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺩﺑﻪ
ﻭﺧﺮﺟﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻪ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﺄﻧﺴﺎﺏ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﻣﺂﺛﺮﻫﺎ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻋﺠﺰ ﻋﻦ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ
ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎﻫﻢ -ﻭﻫﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻭﺻﻔﻨﺎ -ﻭﺩﻋﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﺃﻧﺲ
ﻭﻻ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﺇﻻ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻋﻴﺎﻥ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺷﻜﻠﻪ ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺏ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺷﺒﻬﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻏﻠﺐ ﺃﺧﻼﻗﻪ .ﻭﻟﺌﻦ ﺭﺟﻌﺘﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺎﻑ ﻟﺘﻌﻠﻤﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﺇﺳﻼﻣﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﻮﺍ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻓﻜﺮﺗﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺗﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻟﻴﺼﺤﻦ ﻷﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ -ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺷﺮﻛﻪ -ﺃﺿﻌﺎﻑ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻤﻮﻩ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻜﻢ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ :ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﻰ ﺃﻟﺰﻣﻪ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻦ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻙ ﺇﻻ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺧﻴﺮ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﺠﻌﻔﺮ :ﺻﻞ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻚ.
ﻓﺄﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻻﺟﻠﻪ ﺃﺻﻔﻖ ﺑﻨﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﺼﺮﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
)(٣١٥
ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﺳﻬﻢ ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﺟﻤﺢ .ﻭﻻﺟﻠﻪ ﺻﺒﺮ ﺑﻨﻮ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﺎﺭ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ ،ﻭﺑﺪﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﻭﺇﻗﺒﺎﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﺳﻠﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﺔ ﺑﻨﺖ
ﺃﺳﺪ .ﻓﻬﻮ ﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﺭﻓﻘﺎ ﻭﺃﻳﻤﻦ ﻧﻘﻴﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﻣﻨﻌﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺇﻥ
ﺛﺒﺖ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﺇﻻ ﺗﻘﻴﺔ .ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ،ﻓﻠﻢ
ﻳﻤﻜﻨﻪ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻣﻜﻨﻪ ﺇﺫ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺒﻞ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﻛﺒﻌﺾ ﻣﺸﺮﻛﻲ
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻠﺔ ﺍﻷﺫﻯ ﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻓﻴﻪ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ " ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻮﺍﻟﺪﻳﻪ
ﺃﻑ ﻟﻜﻤﺎ ﺃﺗﻌﺪﺍﻧﻨﻲ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺧﻠﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻭﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻠﻲ ،ﻭﻫﻤﺎ ﻳﺴﺘﻐﻴﺜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻳﻠﻚ
ﺁﻣﻦ ﺇﻥ ﻭﻋﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺣﻖ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺳﺎﻃﻴﺮ ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻴﻦ ".
ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺭﻓﻖ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﺗﺄﺗﻴﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﺼﻠﺢ ﺃﻭﻻ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﺛﻢ ﻳﺪﻋﻮ
ﺍﻷﻗﺮﺏ ﻓﺎﻷﻗﺮﺏ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻋﺎ
ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻪ ﺧﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﺛﻢ ﻣﻜﻔﻮﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﺛﻢ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﺯﻳﺪﺍ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﻡ ﺃﻳﻤﻦ
ﺧﺎﺩﻣﺘﻪ .ﻓﻬﻞ ﺭﺃﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺄﻭﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﺎﺭﻉ؟
ﻭﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﺎﺙ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ؟ ﻓﻬﻜﺬﺍ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺗﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻓﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ .ﻫﺬﺍ
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻘﻞ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﻋﻴﺎﻝ ﺧﺪﻳﺠﺔ ﺣﻴﻦ ﺑﻌﺜﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻋﻨﺪﻛﻢ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻮﺳﺮﺍ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ ﻣﻘﺘﺮﺍ ) ،(١ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻭﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ ﺃﻡ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻮﺳﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻓﻄﺮﺓ
ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﻝ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﺒﻊ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﺮ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﺣﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺗﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﻓﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻌﻪ ﻣﺼﻌﺐ
ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻴﺮ ﻟﺴﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎﻩ .ﻭﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺫ ﺑﺒﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻷﺷﻬﻞ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎﻫﻢ
ﻭﻣﺎ ﺻﻨﻊ ﺑﺮﻳﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﻴﺐ ﺑﺄﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺩﻋﺎﻫﻢ ،ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﺛﻤﺎﻧﻮﻥ ﺑﻴﺘﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻪ.
ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻢ ﺑﻨﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻷﺷﻬﻞ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺀ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻓﻲ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻠﻢ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺍﻣﺮﺃﺗﻪ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺧﺘﻪ ﺑﺪﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﻓﻬﻴﻬﺎﺕ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻮﺻﻒ ﻭﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﻓﻖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻋﺎﺀ ،ﻭﺣﺴﻦ
ﺍﻟﺘﺄﺗﻲ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺎﺓ.
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺘﺮ :ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ.
)(٣١٦
)(١١
ﺹ ٣٥ - ٣٣ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﻋﺎﻣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻓﻬﻴﺮﺓ ﻓﺈﻧﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﺘﻘﻬﻤﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ.
ﺭﻭﻯ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﺪﻱ ﻭﺍﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻗﻲ ﻣﻮﺍﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻷﺭﺑﻊ ﻓﺈﻥ
ﺳﺎﻣﺤﻨﺎﻛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻋﻮﺍﻛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺛﻤﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﻟﺸﺪﺓ ﺑﻐﺾ ﻣﻮﺍﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ
ﺩﺭﻫﻢ
ﺃﻭ ﻧﺤﻮﻫﺎ ،ﻓﺄﻱ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ؟
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻔﺴﻴﺮﻫﺎ " :ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﻭﺍﺗﻘﻰ ﻭﺻﺪﻕ
ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺴﻨﻰ .ﻓﺴﻨﻴﺴﺮﻩ ﻟﻠﻴﺴﺮﻯ " ﺃﻱ ﻻﻥ ﻳﻌﻮﺩ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ :ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﻌﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻴﺮ.
)(١٢
ﺹ ٣٦ - ٣٥ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﺧﺒﺮﻭﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻱ ﻧﻮﺍﺋﺐ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺃﻱ ﻭﺟﻪ ﻭﺿﻌﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ
ﺑﺠﺎﺋﺰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﻔﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻳﺪﺭﺱ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﻔﻮﺕ ﺣﻔﻈﻪ ،ﻭﻳﻨﺴﻰ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ.
ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺗﻘﻔﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﺊ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺘﻘﻪ ﺑﺰﻋﻤﻜﻢ ﺳﺖ ﺭﻗﺎﺏ ﻟﻌﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺛﻤﻨﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻌﺼﺮ ﻣﺎﺋﺔ ﺩﺭﻫﻢ .ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﺪﻋﻰ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻻﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﺠﻠﻴﻞ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﺎﻉ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﻌﻴﺮﻳﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺧﺮﻭﺟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻳﺜﺮﺏ ﻭﺃﺧﺬ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﺜﻤﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ،ﺭﻭﻯ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺪﺛﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻣﻮﺳﺮﺍ .ﻭﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺎﺋﺸﺔ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ
ﻗﺎﻟﺖ :ﻫﺎﺟﺮ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻋﺸﺮﺓ ﺁﻻﻑ ﺩﺭﻫﻢ .ﻭﻗﻠﺘﻢ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ:
" ﻭﻻ ﻳﺄﺗﻞ ﺃﻭﻟﻮ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻌﺔ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺆﺗﻮﺍ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺑﻰ ".
ﻗﻠﺘﻢ :ﻫﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻣﺴﻄﺢ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺛﺎﺛﺔ .ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺯﻋﻤﺘﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻧﻔﻖ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺗﺨﻠﻞ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺒﺎﺀﺓ ).(١
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺒﺎﺀ " ﻭﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻁ.
)(٣١٧
ﻭﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻓﻲ ﺳﻤﺎﺋﻪ ﻣﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﺗﺨﻠﻠﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻌﺒﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﺭﺁﻫﻢ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻻﺳﺮﺍﺀ ﻓﺴﺄﻝ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﻣﻼﺋﻜﺔ ﺗﺄﺳﻮﺍ ﺑﺄﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻗﺤﺎﻓﺔ ﺻﺪﻳﻘﻚ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﺳﻴﻨﻔﻖ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺨﻞ ﻋﺒﺎﺀﺗﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻨﻘﻪ.
ﻭﺃﻧﺘﻢ ﺭﻭﻳﺘﻢ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺁﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﻮﻯ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﻳﺎ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺇﺫﺍ
ﻧﺎﺟﻴﺘﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻓﻘﺪﻣﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻱ ﻧﺠﻮﺍﻛﻢ ﺻﺪﻗﺔ ﺫﻟﻜﻢ ﺧﻴﺮ ﻟﻜﻢ " ﺍﻵﻳﺔ .ﻟﻢ
ﻳﻌﻤﻞ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﻣﻊ ﺇﻗﺮﺍﺭﻛﻢ ﺑﻔﻘﺮﻩ ﻭﻗﻠﺔ ﺫﺍﺕ ﻳﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻌﺔ ﺃﻣﺴﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻨﺎﺟﺎﺗﻪ ،ﻓﻌﺎﺗﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
" ﺃﺃﺷﻔﻘﺘﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻘﺪﻣﻮﺍ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻱ ﻧﺠﻮﺍﻛﻢ ﺻﺪﻗﺎﺕ ﻓﺈﺫ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻔﻌﻠﻮﺍ ﻭﺗﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ "،
ﻓﺠﻌﻠﻪ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ ﻭﺫﻧﺒﺎ ﻳﺘﻮﺏ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺇﻣﺴﺎﻛﻬﻢ ﻋﻦ ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺍﻟﺼﺪﻗﺔ .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ
ﺳﺨﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺑﺈﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﺃﻟﻔﺎ ﻭﺃﻣﺴﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻨﺎﺟﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺎﺝ ﺇﻟﻰ
ﺇﺧﺮﺍﺝ ﺩﺭﻫﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺗﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻧﻔﻘﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﻓﻠﻴﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻠﻪ ،ﻻﻥ
ﻧﻔﻘﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻴﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﺍﺟﺒﺔ .ﻣﻊ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﺫﻛﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻳﻨﻔﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻴﻪ ﺷﻴﺌﺎ،
ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺟﻴﺮﺍ ﻻﺑﻦ ﺟﺪﻋﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎﺋﺪﺗﻪ ﻳﻄﺮﺩ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﺑﺎﺏ.
)(١٣
ﺹ ٣٩ - ٣٧ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺇﻧﻨﺎ ﻻ ﻧﻨﻜﺮ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻭﺳﻮﺍﺑﻘﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻛﺎﻻﻣﺎﻣﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﺤﻤﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻬﻮﻯ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺟﺤﺪ ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻠﻮﻣﺔ .ﻭﻟﻜﻨﺎ ﻧﻨﻜﺮ ﺗﻔﻀﻴﻞ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺎﺑﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﻭﻟﺴﻨﺎ ﻧﻨﻜﺮ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ -ﻭﻧﻨﻜﺮ ﺗﻌﺼﺐ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻟﻠﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻭﻗﺼﺪﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻭﻣﻨﺎﻗﺒﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺩ ﻭﺍﻻﺑﻄﺎﻝ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻓﻬﻮ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﺫﻭ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺟﻠﻴﻞ،
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺳﻴﺪ ﺍﻟﺸﻬﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺸﻬﺪﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻬﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻋﻤﺮ ﻓﻐﻴﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﺮ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺳﻌﺪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﺘﻀﻰ
ﻛﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﻔﻀﻮﻻ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺃﻭ ﻟﻐﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻭﻛﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ
ﻟﻌﻠﻰ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻧﺎﻗﺔ ﻭﻻ ﺟﻤﻞ " ﻓﺈﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﺼﺐ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺭﺩ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻴﻒ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺎﺣﺶ.
)(٣١٨
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺪﻣﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺁﺛﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻭﻣﺎﻟﻪ ﺇﺫ ﺫﺍﻙ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺼﺎﺋﺺ
ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻭﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻟﻬﺆﻻﺀ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻮﻥ:
ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺔ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺷﺠﻬﺎ ﺳﻌﺪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺳﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺟﻠﺐ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﺎﺭ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺳﻴﺮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮﺍ ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ .ﻭﺳﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﺖ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺆﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺑﺴﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﺟﺎﺋﺰ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺃﻟﻢ ﺗﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻛﻔﻮﺍ ﺃﻳﺪﻳﻜﻢ ﻭﺃﻗﻴﻤﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﺁﺗﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻛﺘﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻓﺮﻳﻖ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻳﺨﺸﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﺨﺸﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﻓﺘﺒﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ
ﻟﻪ ﺃﻭﻗﺎﺕ ،ﻓﻤﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﻗﺖ ﻻ ﻳﺼﻠﺢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﺳﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻭﻗﺖ ﻳﺼﻠﺢ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻳﺠﺐ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻮﻯ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﻖ " ﻓﻘﺪ ﺫﻛﺮﻧﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻋﻮﺍﻫﻢ
ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ .ﻭﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻣﻔﺮﺩﺍ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺮﻥ
ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻗﺘﺎﻝ ﻭﺣﺮﺏ ،ﻓﻼ ﺗﺸﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ .ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻗﺘﺎﻝ ﻭﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ .ﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﺘﺎﻟﻪ ﻓﻤﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﺑﺎﻟﻀﺮﻭﺭﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻗﻪ
ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺴﺐ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻓﻘﺮﻩ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﻃﻌﻢ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺣﺒﻪ ﻣﺴﻜﻴﻨﺎ ﻭﻳﺘﻴﻤﺎ
ﻭﺃﺳﻴﺮﺍ .ﻭﺃﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺯﻭﺟﺘﻪ ﻭﺍﺑﻨﻴﻪ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻛﺎﻣﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ ) ،(١ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻣﻠﻚ
ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ ﺩﺭﺍﻫﻢ ﻓﺄﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺩﺭﻫﻤﺎ ﺳﺮﺍ ﻭﺩﺭﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻼﻧﻴﺔ ﻟﻴﻼ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﻬﺎﺭ
ﺩﺭﻫﻤﺎ
ﺳﺮﺍ ﻭﺩﺭﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻼﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻨﻔﻘﻮﻥ ﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻬﺎﺭ
ﺳﺮﺍ ﻭﻋﻼﻧﻴﺔ ".
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻗﺪﻡ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻱ ﻧﺠﻮﺍﻩ ﺻﺪﻗﺔ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻛﺎﻓﺔ.
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺗﺼﺪﻕ ﺑﺨﺎﺗﻤﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺭﺍﻛﻊ ،ﻓﺄﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻟﻪ
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻘﻴﻤﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻼﺓ ﻭﻳﺆﺗﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺰﻛﺎﺓ ﻭﻫﻢ ﺭﺍﻛﻌﻮﻥ ".
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ﺍﻻﻓﺘﺮﺍﺀ ،ﺯﻋﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻏﻼﺓ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻌﺔ .ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻓﺼﻞ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺎﺏ ،ﻟﺤﺴﻴﻦ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺗﻘﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﻮﺭﻱ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﺳﻲ ﺹ .١٥٦ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﻭﺭﺩ ﺳﻮﺭﺓ ﻣﺨﺘﻠﻘﺔ ﺃﻭﻟﻬﺎ " ﺑﺴﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻴﻢ.
ﻳﺎ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺁﻣﻨﻮﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻮﺭﻳﻦ ﺃﻧﺰﻟﻨﺎﻫﻤﺎ ﻳﺘﻠﻮﺍﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺁﻳﺎﺗﻲ ﻭﻳﺤﺬﺭﺍﻧﻜﻢ ﻋﺬﺍﺏ ﻳﻮﻡ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ "!
)(٣١٩
)(١٤
ﺹ ٤٠ - ٣٩ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻻ ﺃﺷﻚ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻃﻞ ﺧﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ ﺃﻗﻌﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺬﻻﻥ ﺃﺻﺎﺭﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﺮﺓ،
ﻓﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻢ ﻭﻋﺮﻑ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ .ﻓﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻤﺘﺤﻦ
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﺎﺑﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻕ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﺳﻰ ﻣﺸﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻠﻴﻒ ﻭﻣﺤﻦ ﺍﻻﺑﺘﻼﺀ ﻣﻨﺬ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻧﺴﻰ
ﺍﻟﺤﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺐ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺍﺩﻉ ﺭﺍﻓﻪ ﻳﺄﻛﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻳﺪ ﻭﻳﺠﻠﺲ ﻣﻊ ﻣﻦ
ﻳﺤﺐ
ﻣﺨﻠﻰ ﺳﺮﺑﻪ ﻃﻴﺒﺔ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﺳﺎﻛﻨﺎ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﻳﻘﺎﺳﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﻤﺮﺍﺕ ﻭﻳﻜﺎﺑﺪ ﺍﻷﻫﻮﺍﻝ،
ﻭﻳﺠﻮﻉ ﻭﻳﻈﻤﺄ ،ﻭﻳﺘﻮﻗﻊ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﺻﺒﺎﺣﺎ ﻭﻣﺴﺎﺀ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﺻﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺘﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ
ﺇﺣﻀﺎﺭ
ﻗﻮﺕ ﺯﻫﻴﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺷﻴﻮﺥ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﻋﻘﻼﺋﻬﺎ ﺳﺮﺍ ،ﻟﻴﻘﻴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺭﻣﻖ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺑﻨﻰ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺄﻣﻦ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻞ ﻭﻗﺖ ﻣﻔﺎﺟﺄﺓ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺘﻞ ،ﻛﺄﺑﻰ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺑﻦ ﻫﺸﺎﻡ ،ﻭﻋﻘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻣﻌﻴﻂ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ ،ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺮﺍﻋﻨﺔ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺟﺒﺎﺑﺮﺗﻬﺎ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺠﻴﻊ
ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻳﻄﻌﻢ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺯﺍﺩﻩ ،ﻭﻳﻈﻤﺊ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻭﻳﺴﻘﻴﻪ ﻣﺎﺀﻩ ،ﻭﻫﻮ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻠﻞ ﻟﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻣﺮﺽ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺆﻧﺲ ﻟﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺣﺶ ،ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﻨﺠﻮﺓ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻻ ﻳﻤﺴﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻤﺴﻬﻢ ﺃﻟﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻠﺤﻘﻪ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻳﻠﺤﻘﻬﻢ ﻣﺸﻘﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺑﺸﺊ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺧﺒﺎﺭﻫﻢ
ﻭﺃﺣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻻﺟﻤﺎﻝ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺼﻴﻞ ،ﺛﻼﺙ ﺳﻨﻴﻦ ﻣﺤﺮﻣﺔ ﻣﻌﺎﻣﻠﺘﻬﻢ
ﻭﻣﻨﺎﻛﺤﺘﻬﻢ
ﻭﻣﺠﺎﻟﺴﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻣﺤﺒﻮﺳﻴﻦ ﻣﺤﺼﻮﺭﻳﻦ ،ﻣﻤﻨﻮﻋﻴﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ،ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺼﺮﻑ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ.
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﺃﻫﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻧﺴﻰ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻴﺼﺔ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻈﻴﺮ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻜﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺒﺎﻟﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺴﻮﻍ ﻟﻪ ﻟﻔﻈﻪ ﻭﺗﻨﺴﻖ ) (١ﻟﻪ ﺧﻄﺎﺑﺘﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺿﻴﻊ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻭﺭﺟﻊ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﻄﺄ.
ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻠﻤﺘﻘﻴﻦ " ﻓﻔﻴﻪ ﺇﺷﺎﺭﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﻏﺎﻣﺾ ﻗﺼﺪﻩ
ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ،ﻳﻌﻨﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻻ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﻛﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻁ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻭﺗﻨﺸﻖ ".
)(٣٢٠
ﻣﻨﺼﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺳﺎﻭﺱ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻭﻫﻤﺰﺍﺗﻪ ﻭﻟﻤﺰﺍﺗﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺤﻖ
ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﻻ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﻻ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺻﺢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ
ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻘﻄﻊ ﻋﻀﻮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﻀﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻤﺴﻪ ﺃﻟﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﺮﺍﺡ ﻓﻲ ﺟﺴﺪﻩ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﺸﺪﻳﺪ.
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻮﻣﺌﺬ
ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ،ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﻟﻬﻢ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺃﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﺈﻥ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻫﺪﻳﻦ
ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﻻﻋﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻫﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﻓﻼ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﺣﺘﻤﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺎﻕ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻻﻋﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﻳﺎﻫﻢ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ .ﻓﻘﺪ ﺟﺎﺀ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ :ﺃﻧﻪ ﻭﻋﺪ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻗﺒﻞ
ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺼﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺃﺭﺳﻠﺖ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﺑﺢ ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻴﻐﻨﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ
ﻭﻳﻤﻠﻜﻨﺎ ﺩﻳﺎﺭﻫﻢ ،ﻓﺎﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻌﻴﻦ ﻣﺘﺴﺎﻭ ﻭﻣﺘﻔﻖ ).(١
)(١٥
ﺹ ٤٢ - ٤١ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻣﺎ ﻧﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﻟﻜﻮﻥ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻏﻠﻈﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﺇﻻ ﺑﻘﻮﻟﻪ :ﻷﻧﻪ
ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻣﺪﺓ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﻬﺎ .ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺔ ﻻ ﺗﺨﺘﺺ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ،ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﻗﺎﻡ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﺓ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺯﻳﺪ ﻭﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ
ﻭﺑﻼﻝ ﻭﺧﺒﺎﺏ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺟﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺨﺺ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺣﺪﻩ ﺑﺤﺠﺔ ﺗﺪﻝ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻏﻠﻆ ﺍﻟﺠﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ.
ﻓﺎﻻﺣﺘﺠﺎﺝ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻓﺎﺳﺪ.
ﺛﻢ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻣﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻚ ﺃﻫﻤﻠﺖ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻣﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ
ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻫﻞ ﻧﺴﻴﺘﻪ ﺃﻡ ﺗﻨﺎﺳﻴﺘﻪ؟ ﻓﺈﻧﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻳﻔﺔ ،ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻣﺘﻰ
ﺍﻣﺘﺤﻨﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻇﺮ ﻭﺃﺟﺎﻝ ﻓﻜﺮﻩ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ،ﺭﺃﻯ ﺗﺤﺘﻬﺎ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﻣﺘﻔﺮﻗﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺎﻗﺐ ﻣﺘﻐﺎﻳﺮﺓ .ﻭﺫﻟﻚ
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﻁ " :ﻭﻣﺘﺴﻖ ".
)(٣٢١
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﺠﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ﻟﻠﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻗﺼﺪﻭﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻌﺎﺟﻠﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺗﻌﺎﻗﺪﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻴﺘﻮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ
ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻀﺮﺑﻮﻩ ﺑﺄﺳﻴﺎﻑ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ،ﺑﻴﺪ ﻛﻞ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﻗﺒﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺳﻴﻒ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ،ﻟﻴﻀﻴﻊ
ﺩﻣﻪ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﻮﺏ ،ﻭﻳﺘﻔﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺒﺎﺋﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻄﻠﺐ ﺑﻨﻮ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺑﺪﻣﻪ ﻗﺒﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﺑﻌﻴﻨﻬﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﻄﻮﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﺗﺤﺎﻟﻔﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﺍﺟﺘﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮﻫﻢ ﺩﻋﺎ ﺃﻭﺛﻖ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻭﺃﻣﺜﻠﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺑﺬﻟﻬﻢ
ﻓﻲ ﺫﺍﺕ ﺍﻻﻟﻪ ﻟﻤﻬﺠﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺃﺳﺮﻋﻬﻢ ﺇﺟﺎﺑﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻃﺎﻋﺘﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺇﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺤﺎﻟﻔﺖ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺒﻴﺘﻨﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻓﺎﻣﺾ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻲ ﻭﻧﻢ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻀﺠﻌﻲ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺮﺩﻯ
ﺍﻟﺤﻀﺮﻣﻲ ،ﻟﻴﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻟﻢ ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻲ ﺧﺎﺭﺝ ﺇﻥ ﺷﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ .ﻓﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﺃﻭﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﺯ ﻭﺇﻋﻤﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ ،ﻭﺻﺪﻩ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﺘﻈﻬﺎﺭ ﻟﻨﻔﺴﻪ ﺑﻨﻮﻉ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻧﻮﺍﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺎﻳﺪ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ
ﻳﺤﺘﺎﻁ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻟﻨﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻟﺠﺄﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﺮﺽ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻟﻈﺒﺎﺕ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﺸﺤﻴﺬﺓ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﻨﻖ ﻭﺍﻟﻐﻴﻈﺔ ،ﻓﺄﺟﺎﺏ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺳﺎﻣﻌﺎ ﻣﻄﻴﻌﺎ ،ﻃﻴﺒﺔ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻧﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻪ ﺻﺎﺑﺮﺍ ﻣﺤﺘﺴﺒﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻗﻴﺎ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻤﻬﺠﺘﻪ ﻳﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﻓﻮﻕ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺩﺭﺟﺔ
ﻳﻠﺘﻤﺴﻬﺎ ﺻﺎﺑﺮ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻐﻬﺎ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ " ،ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻮﺩ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺃﻗﺼﻰ ﻏﺎﻳﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺩ ) " (١ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻧﻘﺺ
ﻓﻲ ﺻﺒﺮﻩ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﺃﻭ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺎﺻﺤﺘﻪ ﻻﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻪ ﻭﺍﺧﺘﻴﺮ ﻟﺬﻟﻚ ،ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ
ﻣﻨﻘﻮﺿﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺃﻳﻪ ،ﻣﻀﺮﺍ ﻓﻲ ﺍﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ،
ﻭﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻣﺠﻤﻌﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻋﻤﻞ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ،ﻭﺃﺣﺴﻦ ﻓﻲ
ﺍﻻﺧﺘﻴﺎﺭ.
ﺛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺄﻣﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﺄﻣﻞ ﻭﺟﻮﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ :ﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ
ﺍﻟﺜﻘﺔ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻀﺒﻂ ﺍﻟﺴﺮ ﻓﻴﻔﺴﺪ ﺍﻟﺘﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺑﺈﻓﺸﺎﺋﻪ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻠﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ
ﻳﻠﻘﻴﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ .ﻭﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺿﺎﺑﻄﺎ ﻟﻠﺴﺮ ﻭﺛﻘﺔ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺧﺘﺎﺭﻩ ﻓﻐﻴﺮ
ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﻦ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻣﻔﺎﺟﺄﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻭﻣﺒﺎﺷﺮﺓ ﺍﻷﻫﻮﺍﻝ ،ﻓﻴﻔﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ،ﻓﻴﻔﻄﻦ
--------------------
) (١ﻋﺠﺰ ﺑﻴﺖ ﻟﻤﺴﻠﻢ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﻭﺻﺪﺭﻩ:
* ﻳﺠﻮﺩ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﻔﺲ ﺇﻥ ﺿﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺎ *
)(٣٢٢
ﻟﻤﻮﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻳﻄﻠﺐ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻓﻴﻈﻔﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺛﻘﺔ ﺿﺎﺑﻄﺎ ﻟﻠﺴﺮ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎ ﻧﺠﺪﺍ ﻓﻠﻌﻠﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻟﻠﻤﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ،ﻻﻥ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﺧﺎﺭﺝ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺎﻋﺔ ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻣﻪ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺘﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻨﻮﻉ ،ﺑﻞ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺷﺪ ﻣﺸﻘﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺘﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻨﻮﻉ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺘﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻨﻮﻉ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻬﺮﺏ
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﺠﺪ ﺍﻟﺴﺒﻴﻞ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻬﺮﺏ ﻭﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺪﻓﻊ ﻋﻦ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻬﺮﺏ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺪﺍﻓﻊ .ﻭﻣﻨﻬﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺛﻘﺔ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﺿﺎﺑﻄﺎ ﻟﻠﺴﺮ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎ ﻣﺤﺘﻤﻼ ﻟﻠﻤﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺄﻣﻮﻥ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺬﻫﺐ ﺻﺒﺮﻩ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻮﺑﺔ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻗﻌﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺬﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺯﻝ ﺑﺴﺎﺣﺘﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺒﻮﺡ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ
ﻭﻳﺼﻴﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻪ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﻛﺬﺍ ،ﻓﻴﻄﻠﺐ ﻓﻴﺆﺧﺬ .ﻓﻠﻬﺬﺍ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ :ﺇﻥ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻠﺔ ﻻ ﻧﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ ﻧﺎﻝ
ﻣﺜﻠﻬﺎ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻭﺇﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﺳﺘﺴﻼﻣﻪ ﻟﻠﺬﺑﺢ .ﻭﻟﻮﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻷﻧﺒﻴﺎﺀ
ﻻ ﻳﻔﻀﻠﻬﻢ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻟﻘﻠﻨﺎ ﺇﻥ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﺗﻠﻜﺄ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﻀﻄﺠﻊ ،ﻭﺑﻜﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮﻩ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻨﺪﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻗﻔﺔ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ
ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ " :ﻓﺎﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎﺫﺍ ﺗﺮﻯ " ﻭﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﺨﻼﻑ ﺫﻟﻚ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻠﻜﺄ
ﻭﻻ ﺗﻌﺘﻊ ﻭﻻ ﺗﻐﻴﺮ ﻟﻮﻧﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺍﺿﻄﺮﺑﺖ ﺃﻋﻀﺎﺅﻩ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﺸﻴﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺎﻟﻒ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻓﻴﺘﺮﻛﻪ ﻭﻳﻌﻤﻞ
ﺑﻤﺎ ﺃﺷﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﺑﻪ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﺟﺮﻯ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺼﺎﻧﻌﺔ ﺍﻷﺣﺰﺍﺏ ﺑﺜﻠﺚ ﺗﻤﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻬﻢ
ﺃﺷﺎﺭﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﺘﺮﻙ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﺘﺮﻛﻪ .ﻭﻫﺬﻩ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻗﺎﻋﺪﺗﻪ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﺎﺩﺗﻪ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﺑﻌﻠﺔ ﻭﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻒ ﻭﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﺃﻛﻮﻥ ﻣﻌﻚ ﺃﺣﻤﻴﻚ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ،ﻭﺃﺫﺏ ﺑﺴﻴﻔﻲ ﻋﻨﻚ ،ﻓﻠﺴﺖ ﻣﺴﺘﻐﻨﻴﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺧﺮﻭﺟﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺜﻠﻲ ،ﻭﻧﺠﻌﻞ
ﻋﺒﺪﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﻧﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻓﺮﺍﺷﻚ ﻗﺎﺋﻤﺎ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻚ ،ﻳﺘﻮﻫﻢ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺑﺮﺅﻳﺘﻪ ﻧﺎﺋﻤﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺑﺮﺩﻙ ﺃﻧﻚ
ﻟﻢ ﺗﺨﺮﺝ ﻭﻟﻢ ﺗﻔﺎﺭﻕ ﻣﺮﻛﺰﻙ .ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻭﻻ ﺗﺤﺒﺲ ،ﻭﻻ ﺗﻮﻗﻒ ﻭﻻ ﺗﻠﻌﺜﻢ،
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻛﻞ ﻭﺍﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻤﺎ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﺃﺣﺪﺍ ﻻ ﻳﺼﺒﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﻘﻞ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﻨﺔ،
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻮﺭﻁ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻬﻠﻜﺔ ،ﺇﻻ ﻣﻦ ﺧﺼﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺼﺒﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺸﻘﺘﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻔﻮﺯ
ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺘﻬﺎ .ﻭﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺟﻨﺲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻓﻌﺎﻝ ﻛﺜﻴﺮﺓ ،ﻛﻴﻮﻡ ﺩﻋﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ
)(٣٢٣
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ ،ﻓﺄﺣﺠﻢ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺑﺄﺳﻪ ﻭﺷﺪﺗﻪ .ﺛﻢ ﻛﺮﺭ ﺍﻟﻨﺪﺍﺀ
ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﺑﺮﺯ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ:
ﺇﻧﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ .ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻧﻌﻢ ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ .ﻓﺄﻣﺮﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ:
ﺑﺮﺯ ﺍﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ﻛﻠﻪ .ﻭﻛﻴﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺣﻤﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺑﻄﺎﻝ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﻘﺼﺪﻭﻥ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ،ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻬﻢ ﺩﻭﻧﻪ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ:
ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ،ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺳﺎﺓ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ " :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻣﻨﻰ ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻣﻨﻪ " ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺟﺒﺮﻳﻞ :ﻭﺃﻧﺎ
ﻣﻨﻜﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻋﺪﺩﻧﺎ ﺃﻳﺎﻣﻪ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﻣﺎﺗﻪ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺷﺮﻯ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻷﻃﻠﻨﺎ ﻭﺃﺳﻬﺒﻨﺎ.
)(١٦
ﺹ ٤٣ - ٤٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﻛﺜﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺘﺠﻴﺒﻴﻦ ﻓﺎﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺭﺍﺟﻊ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﻴﺐ ﻻ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﺏ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻗﺪ
ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺠﺎﺏ ﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻤﻦ ﺍﺳﺘﺠﺎﺏ ﻟﻨﻮﺡ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ،
ﻭﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﻧﻮﺡ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ،ﻟﺼﺒﺮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﻭﻣﻘﺎﺳﺎﺓ ﺧﻼﻓﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻨﺘﻬﻢ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻝ ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻐﻨﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﻴﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻳﻦ ﻳﻌﺪﻝ ﺇﺳﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺳﻠﻢ
ﻭﻫﻮ ﻏﻨﻰ ﺇﻥ ﺟﺎﻉ ﺃﻛﻞ ﻭﺇﻥ ﺃﻋﻴﺎ ﺭﻛﺐ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻋﺮﻯ ﻟﺒﺲ ،ﻗﺪ ﻭﺛﻖ ﺑﻴﺴﺎﺭﻩ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻐﻨﻰ
ﺑﻤﺎﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻌﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻮﺍﺋﺐ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﺑﺜﺮﻭﺗﻪ -ﺑﻤﻦ ﻻ ﻳﺠﺪ ﻗﻮﺕ ﻳﻮﻣﻪ ،ﻭﺇﻥ ﻭﺟﺪ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺴﺘﺄﺛﺮ ﺑﻪ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﺷﻌﺎﺭﻩ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻗﻴﻞ " :ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻦ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻟﻤﻮﺳﻰ :ﻳﺎ ﻣﻮﺳﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺭﺃﻳﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﻣﻘﺒﻼ ﻓﻘﻞ ﻣﺮﺣﺒﺎ ﺑﺸﻌﺎﺭ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﻟﺤﻴﻦ .ﻭﻓﻰ
ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ
" ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺍﺀ ﻳﺪﺧﻠﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻷﻏﻨﻴﺎﺀ ﺑﺨﻤﺴﻤﺎﺋﺔ ﻋﺎﻡ " ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺳﻠﻢ
ﻳﻘﻮﻝ " :ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﺣﺸﺮﻧﻲ ﻓﻲ ﺯﻣﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮﺍﺀ " .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﺭﺳﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻘﻴﺮﺍ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﺳﻌﻴﺪﺍ ،ﻓﻘﺎﺳﻰ ﻣﺤﻨﺔ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﻭﻣﻜﺎﺑﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﻉ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺷﺪ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺮ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻄﻨﻪ .ﻭﺣﺴﺒﻚ ﺑﺎﻟﻔﻘﺮ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻟﻤﻦ ﺻﺒﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻚ ﻻ ﺗﺠﺪ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ
ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻳﺘﻤﻨﺎﻩ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ ﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺪﻧﻴﺎ ﻭﺃﻫﻠﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ.
)(٣٢٤
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻛﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻻﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺰ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻋﺰﻩ
ﻭﻋﺰ ﺭﻫﻄﻪ ،ﺑﺨﻼﻑ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻬﺬﺍ ﻳﻔﺘﺢ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﻬﺎﺩ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻛﺬﻟﻚ،
ﻭﺟﻬﺎﺩ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ،ﻭﻫﺠﺮﺓ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﺒﺸﺔ ،ﺑﻞ ﻟﻌﻞ ﻣﺤﺎﻣﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ
ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻻﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻭﻟﺘﻪ ﺩﻭﻟﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﻧﺼﺮﺗﻪ
ﺍﺳﺘﺠﺪﺍﺩ ﻣﻠﻚ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﺠﺮ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻟﺤﺎﺩ ﻭﻳﻔﺘﺢ ﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺰﻧﺪﻗﺔ ،ﻭﻳﻔﻀﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ.
)(١٧
ﺹ ٤٤ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﺮﻕ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺆﺛﺮ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻮﺍﺗﺮ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ،ﻓﻼ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻨﻪ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ
ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻧﺺ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﺤﺪﻩ ﺇﻻ ﻣﺠﻨﻮﻥ ﺃﻭ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺨﺎﻟﻂ ﻷﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﺔ .ﺃﺭﺃﻳﺖ
ﻛﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﺼﻠﻮﺍﺕ ﺧﻤﺴﺎ ،ﻭﻛﻮﻥ ﺯﻛﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺬﻫﺐ ﺭﺑﻊ ﺍﻟﻌﺸﺮ ،ﻭﻛﻮﻥ ﺧﺮﻭﺝ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺢ ﻧﺎﻗﻀﺎ
ﻟﻠﻄﻬﺎﺭﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺜﺎﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻌﻠﻮﻡ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻮﺍﺗﺮ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ،ﻫﻞ ﻫﻮ ﻣﺨﺎﻟﻒ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻧﺺ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻻﺣﻜﺎﻡ .ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻳﻘﻮﻟﻪ ﺭﺷﻴﺪ ﻭﻻ ﻋﺎﻗﻞ .ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﺍﺳﻢ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ " :ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ " ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺃﻧﻪ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮﺓ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺃﻫﻞ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺴﻴﺮ ﺇﻥ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﻳﻤﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻛﺮﻳﻦ " ﻛﻨﺎﻳﺔ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻣﻜﺮ ﺑﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﻭﻝ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ
" ﻭﺇﺫ ﻳﻤﻜﺮ ﺑﻚ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻛﻔﺮﻭﺍ ﻟﻴﺜﺒﺘﻮﻙ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻘﺘﻠﻮﻙ ﺃﻭ ﻳﺨﺮﺟﻮﻙ ﻭﻳﻤﻜﺮﻭﻥ ﻭﻳﻤﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺎﻛﺮﻳﻦ " ﺃﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻣﻜﺮﻫﻢ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺗﻮﺯﻳﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺑﻄﻮﻥ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻣﻜﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻨﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ .ﻓﻼ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺿﻌﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻧﻬﻤﺎ ﻣﺬﻛﻮﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﻨﺎﻳﺔ ﻻ ﺗﺼﺮﻳﺤﺎ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻤﻔﺴﺮﻭﻥ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻗﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻳﺸﺮﻯ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﺍﺑﺘﻐﺎﺀ ﻣﺮﺿﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ " ﺃﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻟﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ .ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺇﺫ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ "،
ﻻ ﻓﺮﻕ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻤﺎ.
)(٣٢٥
)(١٨
ﺹ ٤٥ - ٤٤ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻜﺬﺏ ﺍﻟﺼﺮﺍﺡ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺤﺮﻳﻒ ،ﻭﺍﻻﺩﺧﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻭﺍﻳﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻣﻨﻬﺎ.
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﻘﻮﻝ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ " :ﺍﺫﻫﺐ ﻓﺎﺿﻄﺠﻊ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻀﺠﻌﻲ
ﻭﺗﻐﺶ ﺑﺒﺮﺩﻯ ﺍﻟﺤﻀﺮﻣﻲ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺳﻴﻔﻘﺪﻭﻧﻨﻲ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺸﻬﺪﻭﻥ ﻣﻀﺠﻌﻲ ،ﻓﻠﻌﻠﻬﻢ ﺇﺫﺍ
ﺭﺃﻭﻙ ﻳﺴﻜﻨﻬﻢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻳﺼﺒﺤﻮﺍ .ﻓﺈﺫﺍ ﺃﺻﺒﺤﺖ ﻓﺎﻏﺪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻣﺎﻧﺘﻲ " ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻞ
ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ،ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻭﻟﺪﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺍﻷﺻﻢ ﻭﺃﺧﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻭﻻ ﺃﺻﻞ ﻟﻪ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺻﺤﻴﺤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺼﻞ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻣﻜﺮﻭﻩ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻭﻗﻊ ﺍﻻﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺿﺮﺏ ﻭﺭﻣﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﻣﻦ ﻫﻮ ﺣﺘﻰ
ﺗﻀﻮﺭ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ ﻟﻪ :ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﺗﻀﻮﺭﻙ ،ﻓﺈﻧﺎ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﺮﻣﻲ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻭﻻ ﻳﺘﻀﻮﺭ .ﻭﻻﻥ
ﻟﻔﻈﺔ " ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ " ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻳﺮﺍﺩ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ،ﻓﻬﺐ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺃﻣﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﻛﻴﻒ
ﻳﺄﻣﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻀﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﻮﺍﻥ ،ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻨﻘﻄﻊ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺃﻋﻀﺎﺋﻪ ،ﻭﺑﺄﻥ ﺳﻠﻤﺖ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ.
ﺃﻟﻴﺲ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻨﺒﻴﻪ " :ﺑﻠﻎ ﻣﺎ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺇﻟﻴﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺭﺑﻚ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻔﻌﻞ ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﺭﺳﺎﻟﺘﻪ
ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻌﺼﻤﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ " .ﻭﻣﻊ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﺴﺮﺕ ﺭﺑﺎﻋﻴﺘﻪ ﻭﺷﺞ ﻭﺟﻬﻪ ﻭﺃﺩﻣﻴﺖ
ﺳﺎﻗﻪ ،ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﻧﻬﺎ ﻋﺼﻤﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ ﺧﺎﺻﺔ .ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﻭﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﻨﻪ -ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺻﺢ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺚ -ﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ.
ﺛﻢ ﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻻ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻛﻮﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ " :ﻻ ﺗﺤﺰﻥ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ " ،ﻭﻣﻦ ﻳﻜﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻪ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺁﻣﻦ ﻻ ﻣﺤﺎﻟﺔ ﻣﻦ
ﻛﻞ ﺳﻮﺀ ،ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻗﻠﺖ " :ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻘﻞ ﻧﺎﻗﻞ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ "
ﻓﻜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﻴﺐ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻬﻮ ﺟﻮﺍﺏ ﻋﻤﺎ ﺃﻭﺭﺩﻩ .ﻓﻨﻘﻮﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻳﻨﻘﻠﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻚ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻭﻋﺪﻩ ﺑﻈﻬﻮﺭ ﺩﻳﻨﻪ ﻭﻋﺎﻗﺒﺔ ﺃﻣﺮﻩ ،ﻓﻴﺠﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻗﻮﻟﻚ ﺃﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﺜﺎﺑﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻜﺮﻭﻩ ﻭﻻ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺼﻴﺒﻪ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻷﺫﻯ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻘﻦ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺘﺢ ﻓﻲ ﻏﺪﻩ )(١
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﻋﺪﺗﻪ " ﺃﻱ ﻭﻋﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٣٢٦
)(١٩
ﺹ ٤٧ - ٤٥ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﻋﻄﻰ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﻮﻻ ﻭﺣﺮﻡ ﻣﻌﻘﻮﻻ ،ﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻋﺘﻘﺎﺩ ﻭﺟﺪ،
ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻫﺐ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻌﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﻬﺰﻝ ،ﺃﻭ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﺎﺻﺢ ﻭﺍﻟﺘﺸﺎﺩﻕ ،ﻭﺇﻇﻬﺎﺭ
ﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻼﻃﺔ ،ﻭﺫﻻﻗﺔ ﺍﻟﻠﺴﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺣﺪﺓ ﺍﻟﺨﺎﻃﺮ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺟﺪﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺨﺼﻮﻡ.
ﺃﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺃﺑﻮ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺠﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﺧﺎﺽ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭﺏ ﻭﺛﺒﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﻗﻒ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻃﺎﺷﺖ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺍﻷﻟﺒﺎﺏ ﻭﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻮﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﻨﺎﺟﺮ.
ﻓﻤﻨﻬﺎ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻭﻭﻗﻮﻓﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺃﻥ ﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻖ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺇﻻ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﺔ :ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ
ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ ،ﻓﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻭﺭﻣﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺒﻞ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻓﻨﻴﺖ ﻧﺒﻠﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻧﻜﺴﺮﺕ ﺳﻴﺔ ﻗﻮﺳﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻧﻘﻄﻊ ﻭﺗﺮﻩ ،ﻓﺄﻣﺮ ﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﺼﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻮﺗﺮﻫﺎ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻳﺎ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺒﻠﻎ ﺍﻟﻮﺗﺮ.
ﻗﺎﻝ :ﺃﻭﺗﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺑﻠﻎ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﻋﻜﺎﺷﺔ :ﻓﻮﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺑﻌﺜﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻖ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﻭﺗﺮﺕ ﺣﺘﻰ ﺑﻠﻎ ﻭﻃﻮﻳﺖ ﻣﻨﻪ
ﺷﺒﺮﺍ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺳﻴﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﺱ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺬﻫﺎ ﻓﻤﺎ ﺯﺍﻝ ﻳﺮﻣﻴﻬﻢ ﺣﺘﻰ ﻧﻈﺮﺕ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﺳﻪ ﻗﺪ ﺗﺤﻄﻤﺖ.
ﻭﺑﺎﺭﺯ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺧﻠﻒ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ :ﺇﻥ ﺷﺌﺖ ﻋﻄﻒ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺑﻌﻀﻨﺎ! ﻓﺄﺑﻰ ﻭﺗﻨﺎﻭﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺑﺔ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﺭﺙ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﻤﺔ ﺛﻢ ﺍﻧﺘﻔﺾ ﺑﺄﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻨﺘﻔﺾ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺮ .ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻓﺘﻄﺎﻳﺮﻧﺎ ﻋﻨﻪ
ﺗﻄﺎﻳﺮ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺎﺭﻳﺮ ) (١ﻓﻄﻌﻨﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺑﺔ ﻓﺠﻌﻞ ﻳﺨﻮﺭ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﺨﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺭ ،ﻭﻟﻮ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺪﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺛﺒﺎﺗﻪ
ﺣﻴﻦ ﺍﻧﻬﺰﻡ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻮﻩ ﺇﻻ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺇﺫ ﺗﺼﻌﺪﻭﻥ ﻭﻻ ﺗﻠﻮﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺣﺪ
ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻛﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺧﺮﺍﻛﻢ " ﻓﻜﻮﻧﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺧﺮﺍﻫﻢ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻳﺼﻌﺪﻭﻥ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻠﻮﻭﻥ ﻫﺎﺭﺑﻴﻦ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺮ.
ﻭﺛﺒﺖ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺣﻨﻴﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺴﻌﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻫﻠﻪ ﻭﺭﻫﻄﻪ ﺍﻷﺩﻧﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﺘﺴﻌﺔ ﻣﺤﺪﻗﻮﻥ ﺑﻪ :ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﺧﺬ ﺑﺤﻜﻤﺔ ﺑﻐﻠﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻴﻦ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﻣﺼﻠﺖ ﺳﻴﻔﻪ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺎﻗﻮﻥ ﺣﻮﻝ ﺑﻐﻠﺔ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻤﻨﺔ ﻭﻳﺴﺮﺓ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﺍﻧﻬﺰﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻭﻥ
--------------------
) (١ﺟﻤﻊ ﺷﻌﺮﻭﺭ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﺘﻤﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺩﺑﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺒﻌﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﺑﺎﻥ.
)(٣٢٧
ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ،ﻭﻛﻠﻤﺎ ﻓﺮﻭﺍ ﺃﻗﺪﻡ ﻫﻮ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻭﺻﻤﻢ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﺪﻣﺎ ﻳﻠﻘﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ
ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻞ ﺑﻨﺤﺮﻩ ﻭﺻﺪﺭﻩ ،ﺛﻢ ﺃﺧﺬ ﻛﻔﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺒﻄﺤﺎﺀ ﻭﺣﺼﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺷﺎﻫﺖ ﺍﻟﻮﺟﻮﻩ!!
ﻭﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺷﺠﻊ ﺍﻟﺒﺸﺮ " :ﻛﻨﺎ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﺷﺘﺪ ﺍﻟﺒﺄﺱ
ﻭﺣﻤﻰ ﺍﻟﻮﻃﻴﺲ ﺍﺗﻘﻴﻨﺎ ﺑﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻟﺬﻧﺎ ﺑﻪ " .ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺧﺎﺽ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﻻ ﺧﺎﻟﻂ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﻭﺃﻱ ﻓﺮﻳﺔ ﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺮﻳﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺴﺐ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺣﺠﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺰﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ؟! ﺛﻢ ﺃﻱ ﻣﻨﺎﺳﺒﺔ ﺑﻴﻦ
ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ ﻟﻴﻘﻴﺴﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺑﻪ ) (١ﻭﻳﻨﺴﺒﻪ
ﺇﻟﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﺪﻋﻮﺓ ،ﻭﺭﺋﻴﺲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻠﺔ
ﻭﺍﻟﻤﻠﺤﻮﻅ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻭﺃﻋﺪﺍﺋﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﺎﺩﺓ ،ﻭﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﻻﻳﻤﺎﺀ ﻭﺍﻹﺷﺎﺭﺓ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﺣﻨﻖ
ﻗﺮﻳﺸﺎ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻭﺭﻯ ﺃﻛﺒﺎﺩﻫﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺒﺮﺍﺀﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺁﻟﻬﺘﻬﻢ ﻭﻋﻴﺐ ﺩﻳﻨﻬﻢ ﻭﺗﻀﻠﻴﻞ ﺃﺳﻼﻓﻬﻢ،
ﺛﻢ ﻭﺗﺮﻫﻢ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺑﻘﺘﻞ ﺭﺅﺳﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻛﺎﺑﺮﻫﻢ .ﻭﺣﻖ ﻟﻤﺜﻠﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﻨﺤﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺰﻟﻬﺎ
ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻨﺤﻰ ﻭﻳﻌﺘﺰﻝ ،ﻻﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺷﺄﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻮﻙ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺅﺳﺎﺀ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ﻣﻨﻮﻃﺎ ﺑﻬﻢ
ﻭﺑﺒﻘﺎﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻓﻤﺘﻰ ﻫﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﻫﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺠﻴﺶ ،ﻭﻣﺘﻰ ﺳﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ ﺃﻣﻜﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻘﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻠﻜﻪ
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻋﻄﺐ ﺟﻴﺸﻪ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﺠﺪ ﺟﻴﺸﺎ ﺁﺧﺮ ،ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻧﻬﻰ ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺎﺀ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﺎﺷﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻚ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﺧﻄﺆﻭﺍ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﻨﺪﺭ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﺭﺯ ﻓﻮﺭﺍ ) (٢ﻣﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻬﻨﺪ ،ﻭﻧﺴﺒﻮﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺠﺎﻧﺒﻪ
ﺍﻟﺤﻜﻤﺔ .ﻭﻣﻔﺎﺭﻗﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﻮﺍﺏ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺰﻡ .ﻓﻠﻴﻘﻞ ﻟﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﺃﻱ ﻣﺪﺧﻞ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻨﻰ؟ ﻭﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻌﺮﻓﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ) (٣ﻟﻴﻘﺼﺪﻩ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﺘﻞ ،ﻭﻫﻞ ﻫﻮ ﺇﻻ
ﻭﺍﺣﺪ
ﻣﻦ ﻋﺮﺽ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ﺣﻜﻢ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﻑ ﻭﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻔﺎﻥ ﻭﻏﻴﺮﻫﻤﺎ،
ﺑﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ
ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻧﺒﻪ ﺻﻴﺘﺎ ) (٤ﻭﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﺮﻛﺒﺎ .ﻭﺍﻟﻌﻴﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﺃﻃﻤﺢ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺪﻭ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺃﺣﻨﻖ
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻜﻠﻤﺔ ﻭﺳﺎﺑﻘﺘﻬﺎ ﺳﺎﻗﻄﺘﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﺒﻮﻋﺔ.
) (٢ﻁ " :ﻗﻮﺳﺮﺍ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭﻓﻰ ﻣﻌﺠﻢ ﺍﺳﺘﻴﻨﺠﺎﺱ ٩٤١ﺃﻥ " ﻓﻮﺭﺍ " ﺭﺍﺟﺎ ﻗﻨﻮﺝ
ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﻨﺪﺭ.
) (٣ﻁ " :ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ".
) (٤ﻁ " :ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻨﻪ ﺻﻴﺘﺎ ".
)(٣٢٨
ﻭﺃﻛﻠﺐ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻙ ﻫﻞ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺆﺛﺮ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺿﻌﻔﺎ
ﺃﻭ ﻳﺤﺪﺙ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻭﻫﻨﺎ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﺨﺎﻑ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﺔ ﻟﻮ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺗﻠﻚ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭﺏ ﺃﻥ
ﺗﻨﺪﺭﺱ ﻭﺗﻌﻔﻰ ﺁﺛﺎﺭﻫﺎ ﻭﺗﻨﻄﻤﺲ ﻣﻨﺎﺭﻫﺎ ،ﻟﻴﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﻜﻤﻪ ﺣﻜﻢ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﺠﺎﻧﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭﺏ ﻭﺍﻋﺘﺰﺍﻟﻬﺎ .ﻧﻌﻮﺫ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺬﻻﻥ!
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻢ ﺍﻟﻌﻘﻼﺀ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﺮﻓﺔ ،ﻭﺑﺎﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻣﻤﺎﺭﺳﺔ ،ﺣﺎﻝ ﺣﺮﻭﺏ
ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ،ﻭﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻛﻴﻒ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ،
ﻭﻭﻗﻮﻓﻪ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﻗﻒ ،ﻭﺣﺮﺏ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺣﺎﺭﺏ ،ﻭﺟﻠﻮﺳﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﻳﺶ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺟﻠﺲ،
ﻭﺃﻥ ﻭﻗﻮﻓﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻗﻮﻑ ﺭﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻭﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻭﻗﻮﻑ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻭﺳﻨﺪ ،ﻳﺘﻌﺮﻑ
ﺃﻣﻮﺭ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﻭﻳﺤﺮﺱ ﺻﻐﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻭﻛﺒﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﺑﻮﻗﻮﻓﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺭﺍﺋﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺗﺨﻠﻔﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻲ
ﺃﻭﺍﺋﻠﻬﻢ،
ﻭﻷﻧﻬﻢ ﻣﺘﻰ ﻋﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺧﺮﺍﻫﻢ ﺍﻃﻤﺄﻧﺖ ﻗﻠﻮﺑﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﺑﺄﻣﺮﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺳﻬﻢ ﻓﻴﺸﺘﻐﻠﻮﺍ
ﺑﺎﻻﻫﺘﻤﺎﻡ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺪﻭﻫﻢ ،ﻭﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﻓﻴﺌﺔ ﻳﻠﺠﺌﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﺎ ،ﻭﻇﻬﺮ ﻳﺮﺟﻌﻮﻥ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ،
ﻭﻳﻌﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺘﻰ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﻠﻔﻬﻢ ﺗﻔﻘﺪ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﻢ ﻭﻋﻠﻢ ﻣﻮﺍﻗﻔﻬﻢ ،ﻭﺁﻭﻯ ﻛﻞ ﺇﻧﺴﺎﻥ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻤﺎﻳﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﻜﺎﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻟﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺮ ﻭﺍﻟﺤﻤﻠﺔ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻭﻗﻮﻓﻪ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻭﻗﻒ ﺃﺻﻠﺢ
ﻷﻣﺮﻫﻢ ،ﻭﺃﺣﻤﻰ ﻭﺃﺣﺮﺱ ﻟﺒﻴﻀﺘﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻷﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﻄﻠﻮﺏ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻴﻨﻬﻢ ،ﺇﺫ ﻫﻮ ﻣﺪﺑﺮ ﺃﻣﻮﺭﻫﻢ
ﻭﻭﺍﻟﻰ
ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺘﻬﻢ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻭﻥ ﺃﻥ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﺻﺎﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻠﻮﺍﺀ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ ﺷﺮﻳﻒ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺻﻼﺡ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ
ﻓﻲ ﻭﻗﻮﻓﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺗﺮﻙ ﺍﻟﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺣﺎﻻﺗﻪ .ﻓﻠﻠﺮﺋﻴﺲ ﺣﺎﻻﺕ:
ﺍﻷﻭﻟﻰ ﺣﺎﻟﺔ ﻳﺘﺨﻠﻒ ﻭﻳﻘﻒ ﺁﺧﺮﺍ ﻟﻴﻜﻮﻥ ﺳﻨﺪﺍ ﻭﻗﻮﺓ ،ﻭﺭﺩﺀﺍ ﻭﻋﺪﺓ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻮﻟﻰ
ﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ .ﻭﻳﻌﺮﻑ ﻣﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻠﻞ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺤﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﺜﺎﻧﻴﺔ ﻳﺘﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻭﺳﻂ ﺍﻟﺼﻒ ﻟﻴﻘﻮﻯ ﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻒ ﻭﻳﺸﺠﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺺ ).(١
ﻭﺣﺎﻟﺔ ﺛﺎﻟﺜﺔ ﻭﻫﻰ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﺻﻄﺪﻡ ﺍﻟﻔﻴﻠﻘﺎﻥ ،ﻭﺗﻜﺎﻓﺢ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻔﺎﻥ ،ﺍﻋﺘﻤﺪ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻘﺘﻀﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﻗﻮﻑ ﺣﻴﺚ ﻳﺴﺘﺼﻠﺢ ،ﺃﻭ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺒﺎﺷﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺮ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻬﺎ ﺁﺧﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺯﻝ،
ﻭﻓﻴﻬﺎ ﺗﻈﻬﺮ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺎﻉ ﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪ ،ﻭﻓﺸﺎﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﺒﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻤﻮﻩ.
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺲ " ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻦ.
)(٣٢٩
ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻤﻰ ﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺃﻳﻦ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﺔ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻟﻴﺴﻮﻯ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺰﻟﺘﻴﻦ ،ﻭﻳﻨﺎﺳﺐ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻟﺘﻴﻦ؟!
ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺷﺮﻳﻜﺎ ﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﺎﻟﺔ ،ﻭﻣﻤﻨﻮﺣﺎ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻮﺓ ،ﻭﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺗﻄﻠﺒﻪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﻄﻠﺐ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺪﺑﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻭﺗﺴﺮﻳﺐ ﺍﻟﻌﺴﺎﻛﺮ ﻭﺗﺠﻬﻴﺰ ﺍﻟﺴﺮﺍﻳﺎ ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺪﺑﺮﻩ
ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﻟﻠﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻓﺄﻣﺎ ﻭﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺿﻌﻒ
ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺟﻨﺎﻧﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻗﻠﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺗﺮﺓ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺮﻡ ﻗﻂ ﺑﺴﻬﻢ ﻭﻻ ﺳﻞ ﺳﻴﻔﺎ،
ﻭﻻ ﺃﺭﺍﻕ ﺩﻣﺎ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺍﻻﺗﺒﺎﻉ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ،ﻭﻻ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻭﻻ ﻣﻄﻠﻮﺏ،
ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺠﻌﻞ ﻣﻘﺎﻣﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻪ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻣﻨﺰﻟﺘﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺧﺮﺝ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺮﺣﻤﻦ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﺮﺁﻩ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻘﺎﻡ ﻣﻐﻴﻈﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻓﺴﻞ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﻣﻘﺪﺍﺭ ﺇﺻﺒﻊ ﻳﺮﻭﻡ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﻭﺯ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ:
ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﺷﻢ ﺳﻴﻔﻚ ﻭﺃﻣﺘﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻚ! ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﻞ ﻟﻪ " ﻭﺃﻣﺘﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻚ " ﺇﻻ ﻷﻧﻪ
ﻟﻴﺲ ﺃﻫﻼ ﻟﻠﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﻣﻼﻗﺎﺓ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻝ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺑﺎﺭﺯ ﻟﻘﺘﻞ.
ﻭﻛﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻻ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻟﻤﺒﺎﺷﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﻭﻟﻘﺎﺀ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻄﺎﻝ
ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ .ﻭﻫﻞ ﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﻋﻤﺪ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ؟؟ ﻭﻫﻞ ﺛﺒﺖ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻘﺮ ﺇﻻ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ؟!
ﺃﺗﺮﺍﻩ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﺤﺐ ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻠﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻠﻪ ﺻﻔﺎ ﻛﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﺑﻨﻴﺎﻥ
ﻣﺮﺻﻮﺹ " ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺤﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻫﻲ ﺇﺭﺍﺩﺓ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ .ﻓﻜﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺪ ﺛﺒﻮﺗﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ
ﺍﻟﺼﻒ ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻗﺘﺎﻻ ،ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻌﻨﻰ ﺍﻷﻓﻀﻞ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻷﻛﺜﺮ ﺛﻮﺍﺑﺎ .ﻓﻌﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﺇﺫﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺃﺛﺒﺘﻬﻢ ﻗﺪﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺼﻒ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺻﻮﺹ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﻔﺮ ﻗﻂ ﺑﺈﺟﻤﺎﻉ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﺑﺎﺭﺯﻩ ﻗﺮﻥ ﺇﻻ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ.
ﻭﺃﺗﺮﺍﻩ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺴﻤﻊ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﻓﻀﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺠﺎﻫﺪﻳﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻘﺎﻋﺪﻳﻦ ﺃﺟﺮﺍ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺎ "
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﺷﺘﺮﻯ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺃﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ﻭﺃﻣﻮﺍﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﺄﻥ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﻳﻘﺎﺗﻠﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﻴﻘﺘﻠﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻘﺘﻠﻮﻥ ﻭﻋﺪﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺣﻘﺎ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﺭﺍﺓ ﻭﺍﻹﻧﺠﻴﻞ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺮﺁﻥ " ﺛﻢ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺳﺒﺤﺎﻧﻪ
)(٣٣٠
ﻣﺆﻛﺪﺍ ﻟﻬﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﻊ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺮﺍﺀ " ﻭﻣﻦ ﺃﻭﻓﻰ ﺑﻌﻬﺪﻩ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻓﺎﺳﺘﺒﺸﺮﻭﺍ ﺑﺒﻴﻌﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ
ﺑﺎﻳﻌﺘﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻔﻮﺯ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻢ " .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺄﻧﻬﻢ ﻻ ﻳﺼﻴﺒﻬﻢ ﻇﻤﺄ
ﻭﻻ ﻧﺼﺐ ﻭﻻ ﻣﺨﻤﺼﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻄﺆﻭﻥ ﻣﻮﻃﺌﺎ ﻳﻐﻴﻆ ﺍﻟﻜﻔﺎﺭ ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻟﻮﻥ
ﻣﻦ ﻋﺪﻭ ﻧﻴﻼ ﺇﻻ ﻛﺘﺐ ﻟﻬﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻤﻞ ﺻﺎﻟﺢ ".
ﻓﻤﻮﺍﻗﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺣﻮﺍﻝ ،ﻭﺑﻌﻀﻬﻢ ﻓﻲ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺾ .ﻓﻤﻦ
ﺩﻟﻒ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﻘﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ﻭﺍﻷﺳﻨﺔ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺛﻘﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻛﺘﺎﻑ ﺍﻷﻋﺪﺍﺀ ﻟﺸﺪﺓ
ﻧﻜﺎﻳﺘﻪ ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ،ﻣﻤﻦ ﻭﻗﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻛﺔ ﻭﺃﻋﺎﻥ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﻡ ،ﻭﻛﺬﻟﻚ ﻣﻦ ﻭﻗﻒ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻛﺔ
ﻭﺃﻋﺎﻥ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻘﺪﻡ ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﻪ ﺑﺤﻴﺚ ﺗﻨﺎﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻬﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺒﻞ ،ﻭﺃﻋﻈﻢ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ ﻭﺃﻓﻀﻞ ﻣﻤﻦ ﻭﻗﻒ ﺣﻴﺚ
ﻻ ﻳﻨﺎﻟﻪ ﺫﻟﻚ .ﻭﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻒ ﻭﺍﻟﺠﺒﺎﻥ ﻳﺴﺘﺤﻘﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﺑﻘﻠﺔ ﺑﺴﻂ ﺍﻟﻜﻒ ﻭﺗﺮﻙ
ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ،ﻭﺃﻥ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺸﺎﻛﻞ ﻓﻌﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻟﻜﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺣﻈﺎ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻭﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺍﺳﺘﺤﻘﺎﻗﺎ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺑﻄﻞ ﻓﻀﻞ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻗﻠﻬﻢ ﻗﺘﺎﻻ -ﻛﻤﺎ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ -
ﻟﻴﺒﻄﻠﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻴﺎﺱ ﻓﻀﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻻﻧﻔﺎﻕ ،ﻻﻥ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻗﻠﻬﻢ ﻣﺎﻻ.
ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺗﺄﻣﻠﺖ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﻗﺮﻳﺶ ،ﻭﻧﻈﺮﺕ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﻗﺮﺃﺕ ﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ،ﻋﺮﻓﺖ
ﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﺗﻄﻠﺐ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺗﻘﺼﺪ ﻗﺼﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺗﺮﻭﻡ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﺃﻋﺠﺰﻫﺎ
ﻭﻓﺎﺗﻬﺎ ﻃﻠﺒﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﺃﺭﺍﺩﺕ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺷﺒﻬﻬﻢ ﺑﺎﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺣﺎﻻ،
ﻭﺃﻗﺮﺑﻬﻢ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻗﺮﺑﺎ ،ﻭﺃﺷﺪﻫﻢ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺩﻓﻌﺎ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻬﻢ ﻣﺘﻰ ﻗﺼﺪﻭﺍ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻮﻩ ﺃﺿﻌﻔﻮﺍ ﺃﻣﺮ
ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻛﺴﺮﻭﺍ ﺷﻮﻛﺘﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﻠﻰ ) (١ﻣﻦ ﻳﻨﺼﺮﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺄﺱ
ﻭﺍﻟﻘﻮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﺸﺠﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺠﺪﺓ ﻭﺍﻻﻗﺪﺍﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺴﺎﻟﺔ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻴﻌﺔ
ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺃﺧﻮﻩ ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻭﺍﺑﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ،ﻓﺄﺧﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﻧﻔﺮﺍ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻓﺎﺳﺘﻨﺴﺒﻮﻫﻢ ﻓﺎﻧﺘﺴﺒﻮﺍ ﻟﻬﻢ .ﻓﻘﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﺍﺭﺟﻌﻮﺍ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻗﻮﻣﻜﻢ ﺛﻢ ﻧﺎﺩﻭﺍ :ﻳﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ،
--------------------
) (١ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻁ :ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻋﻠﻰ ".
)(٣٣١
ﺃﺧﺮﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻨﺎ ﺃﻛﻔﺎﺀﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻨﺎ .ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻷﻫﻠﻪ ﺍﻷﺩﻧﻴﻦ:
ﻗﻮﻣﻮﺍ ﻳﺎ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻓﺎﻧﺼﺮﻭﺍ ﺣﻘﻜﻢ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺁﺗﺎﻛﻢ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻃﻞ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ .ﻗﻢ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ،
ﻗﻢ ﻳﺎ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ،ﻗﻢ ﻳﺎ ﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ،ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻣﺎ ﺟﻌﻠﺖ ﻫﻨﺪ ﻟﻤﻦ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻷﻧﻪ ﺍﺷﺘﺮﻙ ﻫﻮ
ﻭﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻴﻬﺎ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ؟! ﺃﻟﻢ ﺗﺴﻤﻊ ﻗﻮﻝ ﻫﻨﺪ ﺗﺮﺛﻰ ﺃﻫﻠﻬﺎ:
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻲ ﻋﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺻﺒﺮ * ﺃﺑﻰ ﻭﻋﻤﻰ ﻭﺷﻘﻴﻘﻲ ﺻﺪﺭﻱ
ﺃﺧﻲ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﻀﻮﺀ ﺍﻟﺒﺪﺭ * ﺑﻬﻢ ﻛﺴﺮﺕ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻇﻬﺮﻱ
ﻭﺫﻟﻚ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺧﺎﻫﺎ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ ،ﻭﺷﺮﻙ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺑﻴﻬﺎ ﻋﺘﺒﺔ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻋﻤﻬﺎ
ﺷﻴﺒﺔ ﻓﺈﻥ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﺗﻔﺮﺩ ﺑﻘﺘﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺟﺒﻴﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻄﻌﻢ ﻟﻮﺣﺸﻲ ﻣﻮﻻﻩ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ :ﺇﻥ ﻗﺘﻠﺖ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ ﻓﺄﻧﺖ ﺣﺮ،
ﻭﺇﻥ ﻗﺘﻠﺖ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻓﺄﻧﺖ ﺣﺮ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺃﻣﺎ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﻓﺴﻴﻤﻨﻌﻪ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﺮﺟﻞ ﺣﺬﺭ
ﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﺍﻻﻟﺘﻔﺎﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻲ ﺳﺄﻗﺘﻞ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ،ﻓﻘﻌﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺯﺭﻗﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺑﺔ ﻓﻘﺘﻠﻪ.
ﻭﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﻨﺎﻩ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻘﺎﺭﺑﺔ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﺏ ﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻣﻨﺎﺳﺒﺘﻬﺎ ﺇﻳﺎﻫﺎ ،ﻭﻣﺎ ﻭﺟﺪﻧﺎﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ ﺇﺷﻔﺎﻕ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﺣﺬﺭﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ،ﻭﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻔﻆ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻼﻣﺔ ،ﻗﺎﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﻭﻗﺪ ﺑﺮﺯ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻭﺭﻓﻊ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ﺑﻤﺤﻀﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ" :
ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻢ
ﺇﻧﻚ ﺃﺧﺬﺕ ﻣﻨﻰ ﺣﻤﺰﺓ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﻭﻋﺒﻴﺪﺓ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺑﺪﺭ ،ﻓﺎﺣﻔﻆ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ]ﻋﻠﻰ ) [(١ﻋﻠﻴﺎ،
ﺭﺏ ﻻ ﺗﺬﺭﻧﻲ ﻓﺮﺩﺍ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﺭﺛﻴﻦ " .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﺿﻦ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺣﻴﻦ
ﺩﻋﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻣﺮﺍﺭﺍ ،ﻓﻲ ﻛﻠﻬﺎ ﻳﺤﺠﻤﻮﻥ ﻭﻳﻘﺪﻡ ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻓﻴﺴﺄﻝ ﺍﻻﺫﻥ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺯ
ﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ! ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ! ﻓﺄﺩﻧﺎﻩ ﻭﻗﺒﻠﻪ
ﻭﻋﻤﻤﻪ ﺑﻌﻤﺎﻣﺘﻪ ،ﻭﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺧﻄﻮﺍﺕ ﻛﺎﻟﻤﻮﺩﻉ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﻘﻠﻖ ﻟﺤﺎﻟﻪ ،ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ.
ﺛﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺰﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺭﺍﻓﻌﺎ ﻳﺪﻳﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ ﻣﺴﺘﻘﺒﻼ ﻟﻬﺎ ﺑﻮﺟﻬﻪ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ
ﺻﻤﻮﺕ ﺣﻮﻟﻪ ﻛﺄﻧﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺅﻭﺳﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﻄﻴﺮ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺛﺎﺭﺕ ﺍﻟﻐﺒﺮﺓ ﻭﺳﻤﻌﻮﺍ ﺍﻟﺘﻜﺒﻴﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺤﺘﻬﺎ
--------------------
) (١ﺍﻟﺘﻜﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
)(٣٣٢
ﻓﻌﻠﻤﻮﺍ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ .ﻓﻜﺒﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻭﻛﺒﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ
ﺗﻜﺒﻴﺮﺓ ﺳﻤﻌﻬﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻭﺭﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﻣﻦ ﻋﺴﺎﻛﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ .ﻭﻟﺬﻟﻚ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺬﻳﻔﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﻴﻤﺎﻥ:
" ﻟﻮ ﻗﺴﻤﺖ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺑﻘﺘﻞ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺄﺟﻤﻌﻬﻢ
ﻟﻮﺳﻌﺘﻬﻢ " ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﻛﻔﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ " ﻗﺎﻝ:
ﺑﻌﻠﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ.
)(٢٠
ﺹ ٤٧ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻓﻌﻠﻰ ﺃﻳﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺸﻰ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﻗﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ؟
ﻓﺄﻳﻤﺎ ﻗﻠﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺑﺎﻧﺖ ﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻚ ﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻭﻟﺮﺳﻮﻟﻪ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﺸﻴﻪ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ
ﻣﻤﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﺕ ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﺮﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺼﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﺎﺑﻘﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻵﺧﺮﺓ،
ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ
ﻓﻲ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﺇﻋﺰﺍﺯ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻛﻨﺖ ﺑﺠﻤﻴﻊ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻠﺖ ﻣﻌﺎﻧﺪﺍ ،ﻭﻋﻦ ﺳﺒﻴﻞ ﺍﻻﻧﺼﺎﻑ
ﺧﺎﺭﺟﺎ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺇﻣﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﻃﺎﻋﻨﺎ .ﻭﺇﻥ ﺗﻄﺮﻕ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺑﻮﻫﻢ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻟﻴﺘﻄﺮﻗﻦ
ﻣﺜﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻋﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﺎﺟﺮﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺃﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ ،ﺍﻟﺬﻳﻦ ﻧﺼﺮﻭﺍ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺑﺄﻧﻔﺴﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻭﻗﻮﻩ ﺑﻤﻬﺠﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻓﺪﻭﻩ ﺑﺄﺑﻨﺎﺋﻬﻢ ﻭﺁﺑﺎﺋﻬﻢ .ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻌﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﻛﻮﺭﺓ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻄﻌﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ،ﻭﻓﻰ ﺟﻤﺎﻋﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ.
ﻭﻟﻮ ﺟﺎﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺘﻮﻫﻢ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻓﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻓﻰ ﻏﻴﺮﻩ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺣﻜﺎﻳﺔ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻷﻫﻞ ﺑﺪﺭ " :ﺍﻋﻤﻠﻮﺍ ﻣﺎ ﺷﺌﺘﻢ ﻓﻘﺪ ﻏﻔﺮﺕ ﻟﻜﻢ "،
ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻌﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ " :ﺑﺮﺯ ﺍﻻﻳﻤﺎﻥ ﻛﻠﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﻙ ﻛﻠﻪ " ﻭﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ:
" ﺃﻭﺟﺐ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ )." (١
ﻭﻗﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﻨﺎ ﺿﺮﻭﺭﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﺮﺳﻮﻝ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﻪ ﻟﻌﻠﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ
ﺗﻌﻈﻴﻤﺎ ﺩﻳﻨﻴﺎ ﻷﺟﻞ ﺟﻬﺎﺩﻩ ﻭﻧﺼﺮﺗﻪ ،ﻓﺎﻟﻄﺎﻋﻦ ﻓﻴﻪ ﻃﺎﻋﻦ ﻓﻲ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ
--------------------
) (١ﺃﻱ ﻋﻤﻞ ﻋﻤﻼ ﺃﻭﺟﺐ ﻟﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ.
)(٣٣٣
ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﺇﺫ ﺯﻋﻢ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻳﻤﻜﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﻬﺎﺩﻩ ﻻ ﻟﻮﺟﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ،ﺑﻞ ﻷﻣﺮ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻷﻣﻮﺭ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﻋﺪﺩﻫﺎ ﻭﺑﻌﺜﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻔﻮﻩ ﺑﻬﺎ ﺇﻏﻮﺍﺀ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻄﺎﻥ ﻭﻛﻴﺪﻩ ،ﻭﺍﻻﻓﺮﺍﻁ ﻓﻲ ﻋﺪﺍﻭﺓ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻤﺤﺒﺘﻪ ،ﻭﻧﻬﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻐﻀﻪ ﻭﻋﺪﺍﻭﺗﻪ .ﺃﺗﺮﻯ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ
ﺧﻔﻰ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﺎ ﻻﺡ ﻟﻠﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﻓﻤﺪﺣﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻏﻴﺮ
ﻣﺴﺘﺤﻖ ﻟﻠﻤﺪﺡ.
)(٢١
ﺹ ٤٧ﻭ ٤٨ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻓﻴﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﻓﻠﻌﻞ ﺇﻧﻔﺎﻕ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺰﻋﻢ ﺃﺭﺑﻌﻴﻦ ﺃﻟﻒ ﺩﺭﻫﻢ ﻻ ﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﻟﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ
ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﺘﺪﻟﺔ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻣﻄﺒﻮﻋﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻮﺩ ﻭﺍﻟﺴﺨﺎﺀ ،ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﺧﺮﻭﺟﻪ
ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﻬﺠﺮﺓ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ) (١ﻻ ﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺃﺳﺒﺎﺑﻪ
ﻛﺎﻧﺖ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻬﻴﺠﺔ .ﻭﺩﻭﺍﻋﻴﻪ ﻏﺎﻟﺒﺔ ،ﻟﺤﺒﻪ -ﻛﺎﻥ -ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﻭﺑﻐﻀﻪ -ﻛﺎﻥ
ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ) .(٢ﻭﻟﻌﻞ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻋﺎﺋﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ،ﻭﺇﻛﺒﺎﺑﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﺍﻟﺼﻠﻮﺍﺕ ﺍﻟﺨﻤﺲ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻮﻑ ﺍﻟﻠﻴﻞ ،ﻭﺗﺪﺑﻴﺮﻩ ﺃﻣﺮ ﺍﻷﻣﺔ ،ﻻ ﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ
ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﻌﺘﺪﻟﺔ ،ﺑﻞ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﻪ ﺍﻟﺮﻳﺎﺳﺔ ﻭﺣﺒﻬﺎ ،ﻭﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻻﻟﺘﺬﺍﺫ ﺑﻬﺎ.
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﻌﺠﺐ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺬﻫﺐ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺎﺭﻑ ﺿﺮﻭﺭﺓ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻬﺎ ﺗﻘﻊ ﻃﺒﺎﻋﺎ.
ﻭﻓﻰ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺑﺎﻟﺘﻮﻟﺪ ،ﻭﺣﺮﻛﺔ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺮ ﺑﺎﻟﻄﺒﻊ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺭﺃﻳﻨﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻫﻮ ﺃﻋﺠﺐ ﻣﻨﻪ ،ﻓﺰﻋﻢ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﺭﺑﻤﺎ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺟﻬﺎﺩ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻭﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﻻ ﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻓﻌﻠﻪ ﻃﺒﻌﺎ.
ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﻃﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺮﻓﺔ ﻭﻓﻰ ﺍﻟﺘﻮﻟﺪ ).(٣
--------------------
) (١ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ .ﺳﺎﻗﻄﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
) (٢ﻓﻲ ﻁ " :ﻏﺎﻟﺒﺔ ﻣﺤﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﻭﺑﻐﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ".
) (٣ﺍﻧﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻛﺘﺒﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻮﺍﺷﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﻴﻮﺍﻥ .٢٠٨ :٤
)(٣٣٤
)(٢٢
ﺹ ٥٠ - ٤٩ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺭﺍﺟﻊ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ:
" ﻭﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻳﻌﺼﻤﻚ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ " ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺟﻬﺎﺩﻩ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﻛﺜﻴﺮ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﻛﺜﻴﺮ
ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻳﺮﻭﻯ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ " :ﺍﻗﺘﺪﻭﺍ ﺑﺎﻟﻠﺬﻳﻦ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﻋﻤﺮ ".
ﻓﻮﺟﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺒﻄﻞ ﺟﻬﺎﺩﻫﻤﺎ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻠﺰﺑﻴﺮ " :ﺳﺘﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﻇﺎﻟﻢ ﻟﻪ " ﻓﺄﺷﻌﺮﻩ
ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﻤﻮﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺣﻴﺎﺓ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ .ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺰﻳﺰ
ﻟﻄﻠﺤﺔ " :ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻟﻜﻢ ﺃﻥ ﺗﺆﺫﻭﺍ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻭﻻ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻨﻜﺤﻮﺍ ﺃﺯﻭﺍﺟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ ".
ﻗﺎﻟﻮﺍ :ﻧﺰﻟﺖ ﻓﻲ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ .ﻓﺄﻋﻠﻤﻪ ﺑﺬﻟﻚ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻳﺒﻘﻰ ﺑﻌﺪﻩ .ﻓﻮﺟﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻻ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻟﻬﻤﺎ ﻛﺒﻴﺮ
ﺛﻮﺍﺏ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ.
ﻭﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺻﺢ ﻋﻨﺪﻧﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺨﺒﺮ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺳﺘﻘﺎﺗﻞ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﻛﺜﻴﻦ " ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ
ﻟﻤﺎ ﻭﺿﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﺏ ﺃﻭﺯﺍﺭﻫﺎ ،ﻭﺩﺧﻞ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺃﻓﻮﺍﺟﺎ ،ﻭﻭﺿﻌﺖ ﺍﻟﺠﺰﻳﺔ
ﻭﺩﺍﻥ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻗﺎﻃﺒﺔ.
)(٢٣
ﺹ ٥٩ - ٥٨ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺮ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ﺃﺷﻬﺮ ﻭﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺤﺘﺞ ﻟﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻴﺘﻠﻤﺢ ﻛﺘﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻐﺎﺯﻱ
ﻭﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ،ﻭﻟﻴﻨﻈﺮ ﻣﺎ ﺭﺛﺘﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻌﺮﺍﺀ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺘﻞ.
ﻓﻤﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﺇﺳﺤﺎﻕ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻐﺎﺯﻳﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻣﺴﺎﻓﻊ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﺎﻑ
ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻫﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺬﺍﻓﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺟﻤﺢ ،ﻳﺒﻜﻰ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻭﺩ ،ﺣﻴﻦ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ
ﺃﺑﻲ
ﻃﺎﻟﺐ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ ،ﻟﻤﺎ ﺟﺰﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﺍﺩ ) - (١ﺃﻱ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ.
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﻟﻤﺤﺒﺔ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﻭﺑﻐﺾ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ " ﻭﺻﻮﺍﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ .ﻭ " ﻛﺎﻥ " ﺗﺰﺍﺩ
ﺑﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻼﺯﻣﻴﻦ.
) (١ﺍﻟﻤﺬﺍﺩ ،ﺑﺎﻟﺬﺍﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﺠﻤﺔ :ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺑﺎﻟﻤﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﺣﻴﺚ ﺣﻔﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ .ﻁ " :ﺍﻟﻤﺰﺍﺭ " ﺻﻮﺍﺑﻪ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ.
)(٣٣٥
ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ * ﺟﺰﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﺍﺩ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ﻳﻠﻴﻞ )(١
ﺳﻤﺢ ﺍﻟﺨﻼﺋﻖ ﻣﺎﺟﺪ ﺫﻭ ﻣﺮﺓ * ﻳﺒﻐﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ ﺑﺸﻜﺔ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻜﻞ
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺘﻢ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻭﻟﻮﺍ ﻋﻨﻜﻢ * ﺃﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺠﻞ )(٢
ﺣﺘﻰ ﺗﻜﻨﻔﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﻤﺎﺓ ﻭﻛﻠﻬﻢ * ﻳﺒﻐﻲ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﻤﺆﺗﻞ
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺗﻜﻨﻔﺖ ﺍﻟﻔﻮﺍﺭﺱ ﻓﺎﺭﺳﺎ * ﺑﺠﻨﻮﺏ ﺳﻠﻊ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻧﻜﺲ ﺃﻣﻴﻞ
ﺳﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺰﺍﻝ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ﻏﺎﻟﺐ * ﺑﺠﻨﻮﺏ ﺳﻠﻊ ﻟﻴﺘﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺰﻝ
ﻓﺎﺫﻫﺐ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻇﻔﺮﺕ ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ * ﻓﺨﺮﺍ ﻭﻟﻮ ﻻﻗﻴﺖ ﻣﺜﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﻌﻀﻞ
ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺪﺍﺀ ﻟﻔﺎﺭﺱ ﻣﻦ ﻏﺎﻟﺐ * ﻻﻗﻲ ﺣﻤﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺘﻤﻠﻤﻞ
ﺃﻋﻨﻰ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺟﺰﻉ ﺍﻟﻤﺬﺍﺩ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ * ﻓﺸﻼ ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻟﺪﻯ ﺍﻟﺤﺮﻭﺏ ﺑﺰﻣﻞ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺒﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﺨﺰﻭﻣﻲ ،ﻳﻌﺘﺬﺭ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺮﺍﺭﻩ ﻋﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﻭﺗﺮﻛﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﻭﻳﺒﻜﻴﻪ:
ﻟﻌﻤﺮﻙ ﻣﺎ ﻭﻟﻴﺖ ﻇﻬﺮﻱ ﻣﺤﻤﺪﺍ * ﻭﺃﺻﺤﺎﺑﻪ ﺟﻨﺒﺎ ﻭﻻ ﺧﻴﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻞ
ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻨﻲ ﻗﻠﺒﺖ ﺃﻣﺮﻯ ﻓﻠﻢ ﺃﺟﺪ * ﻟﺴﻴﻔﻲ ﻏﻨﺎﺀ ﺇﻥ ﻭﻗﻔﺖ ﻭﻻ ﻧﺒﻠﻰ
ﻭﻗﻔﺖ ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺃﺟﺪ ﻟﻲ ﻣﻘﺪﻣﺎ * ﺻﺪﺭﺕ ﻛﻀﺮﻏﺎﻡ ﻫﺰﺑﺮ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺷﺒﻞ
ﺛﻨﻰ ﻋﻄﻔﻪ ﻋﻦ ﻗﺮﻧﻪ ﺣﻴﻦ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺠﺪ * ﻣﺠﺎﻻ ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺤﺰﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺃﻱ ﻣﻦ ﻓﻌﻠﻰ
ﻓﻼ ﺗﺒﻌﺪﻥ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺣﻴﺎ ﻭﻫﺎﻟﻜﺎ * ﻓﻘﺪ ﻣﺖ ﻣﺤﻤﻮﺩ ﺍﻟﺜﻨﺎ ﻣﺎﺟﺪ ﺍﻟﻔﻌﻞ
ﻭﻻ ﺗﺒﻌﺪﻥ ﻳﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺣﻴﺎ ﻭﻫﺎﻟﻜﺎ * ﻓﻘﺪ ﻛﻨﺖ ﻓﻲ ﺣﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻌﺪﻯ ﻣﺮﻫﻒ ﺍﻟﻨﺼﻞ
ﻓﻤﻦ ﻟﻄﺮﺍﺩ ﺍﻟﺨﻴﻞ ﺗﻘﺪﻉ ﺑﺎﻟﻘﻨﺎ * ﻭﻟﻠﺒﺬﻝ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻗﺮﻗﺮﺓ ﺍﻟﺒﺰﻝ
ﻫﻨﺎﻟﻚ ﻟﻮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻟﺰﺍﺯﻫﺎ * ﻟﻔﺮﺟﻬﺎ ﻋﻨﻬﻢ ﻓﺘﻰ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻣﺎ ﻭﻏﻞ
ﻛﻔﺘﻚ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻟﻦ ﺗﺮﻯ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻣﻮﻗﻒ * ﻭﻗﻔﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺷﻠﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﻡ ﻛﺎﻟﻔﺤﻞ
ﻓﻤﺎ ﻇﻔﺮﺕ ﻛﻔﺎﻙ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﺑﻤﺜﻠﻬﺎ * ﺃﻣﻨﺖ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻣﺎ ﻋﺸﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺯﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻨﻌﻞ
--------------------
) (١ﻳﻠﻴﻞ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺍﺩﻯ ﺍﻟﺼﻔﺮﺍﺀ ،ﺩﻭﻳﻦ ﺑﺪﺭ.
) (٢ﻁ " :ﻓﻴﻬﻢ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻌﺠﻞ ".
)(٣٣٦
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻫﺒﻴﺮﺓ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ ﻳﺮﺛﻰ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ ﻭﻳﺒﻜﻴﻪ:
ﻟﻘﺪ ﻋﻠﻤﺖ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻟﺆﻱ ﺑﻦ ﻏﺎﻟﺐ * ﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻬﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻧﺎﺏ ﻧﺎﺋﺐ
ﻭﻓﺎﺭﺳﻬﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺴﻮﻗﻪ * ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺃﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺕ ﻻ ﺷﻚ ﻃﺎﻟﺐ
ﻋﺸﻴﺔ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻩ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺇﻧﻪ * ﻟﻔﺎﺭﺳﻬﺎ ﺇﺫ ﺧﺎﻡ ﻋﻨﻪ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺎﺋﺐ
ﻓﻴﺎ ﻟﻬﻒ ﻧﻔﺴﻲ ﺇﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ ﻟﻜﺎﺋﻦ * ﺑﻴﺜﺮﺏ ﻻ ﺯﺍﻟﺖ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ ﺍﻟﻤﺼﺎﺋﺐ
ﻟﻘﺪ ﺃﺣﺮﺯ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺑﻘﺘﻠﻪ * ﻭﻟﻠﺨﻴﺮ ﻳﻮﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻣﺤﺎﻟﺔ ﺟﺎﻟﺐ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺑﻦ ﺛﺎﺑﺖ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭﻱ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ:
ﺃﻣﺴﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻰ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﻧﺎﻇﺮﺍ * ﻛﻴﻒ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﻮﺭ ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻈﺮ
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﺕ ﺳﻴﻮﻓﻨﺎ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ * ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻭﺟﺪﺕ ﺟﻴﺎﺩﻧﺎ ﻟﻢ ﺗﻘﺼﺮ
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﻏﺪﺍﺓ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻋﺼﺒﺔ * ﺿﺮﺑﻮﻙ ﺿﺮﺑﺎ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺿﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﺮ
ﺃﺻﺒﺤﺖ ﻻ ﺗﺪﻋﻰ ﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻋﻈﻴﻤﺔ * ﻳﺎ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺃﻭ ﻟﺠﺴﻴﻢ ﺃﻣﺮ ﻣﻨﻜﺮ
ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ ﺃﻳﻀﺎ:
ﻟﻘﺪ ﺷﻘﻴﺖ ﺑﻨﻮ ﺟﻤﺢ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ * ﻭﻣﺨﺰﻭﻡ ﻭﺗﻴﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻧﻘﻴﻞ )(١
ﻭﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻛﺎﻟﺤﺴﺎﻡ ﻓﺘﻰ ﻗﺮﺵ * ﻛﺄﻥ ﺟﺒﻴﻨﻪ ﺳﻴﻒ ﺻﻘﻴﻞ )(٢
ﻓﺘﻰ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺴﻞ ﻋﺎﺭﻡ ﺃﺭﻳﺤﻰ * ﺗﻄﺎﻭﻟﻪ ﺍﻷﺳﻨﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﻨﺼﻮﻝ
ﺩﻋﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺭﺱ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﻡ ﻟﻤﺎ * ﺗﻜﺸﻔﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻧﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﺨﻴﻮﻝ
ﺃﺑﻮ ﺣﺴﻦ ﻓﻘﻨﻌﻪ ﺣﺴﺎﻣﺎ * ﺟﺮﺍﺯﺍ ﻻ ﺃﻓﻞ ﻭﻻ ﻧﻜﻮﻝ
ﻓﻐﺎﺩﺭﻩ ﻣﻜﺒﺎ ﻣﺴﻠﺤﺒﺎ * ﻋﻠﻰ ﻋﻔﺮﺍﺀ ﻻ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﻟﻘﺘﻴﻞ
ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﺍﻻﺷﻌﺎﺭ ﻓﻴﻪ ،ﺑﻞ ﺑﻌﺾ ﻣﺎ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻓﻴﻪ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻵﺛﺎﺭ ﻭﺍﻻﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻓﻤﻮﺟﻮﺩﺓ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺐ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺳﺎﻥ ﻭﻭﻗﺎﺋﻌﻬﻢ .ﻭﻟﻴﺲ
ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻦ ﺃﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻋﻤﺮﺍ ﺇﻻ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﺎﺭﺱ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺷﺠﺎﻋﻬﺎ .ﻭﺇﻧﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ
ﻟﻪ ﺣﺴﺎﻥ:
--------------------
) (١ﻓﻲ ﺍﻷﺻﻞ " :ﻟﻘﺪ ﺷﻘﻴﺖ " ﻭ " ﻣﺎ ﺗﻘﻴﻞ ".
) (٢ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺒﻴﺖ ﺳﺎﻗﻂ ﻣﻦ ﻁ.
)(٣٣٧
* ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻟﻘﻴﺖ ﻏﺪﺍﺓ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻋﺼﺒﺔ *
ﻷﻧﻪ ﺷﻬﺪ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ ﻭﻗﺘﻞ ﻗﻮﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻴﻦ ﺛﻢ ﻓﺮ ﻣﻊ ﻣﻦ ﻓﺮﻭ ﻭﻟﺤﻖ ﺑﻤﻜﺔ.
ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻭﻋﺎﻫﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻜﻌﺒﺔ ﺃﻻ ﻳﺪﻋﻮﻩ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ ﻣﻦ ﺛﻼﺙ
ﺇﻻ ﺃﺟﺎﺑﻪ .ﻭﺁﺛﺎﺭﻩ ﻓﻲ ﺃﻳﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻔﺠﺎﺭ ﻣﺸﻬﻮﺭﺓ ﺗﻨﻄﻖ ﺑﻬﺎ ﻛﺘﺐ ﺍﻷﻳﺎﻡ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻗﺎﺋﻊ ،ﻭﻟﻜﻨﻪ
ﻟﻢ ﻳﺬﻛﺮ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺳﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺜﻼﺛﺔ ﻭﻫﻢ ﻋﺘﻴﺒﺔ ﻭﺑﺴﻄﺎﻡ ﻭﻋﺎﻣﺮ ،ﻻﻧﻬﻢ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﻏﺎﺭﺍﺕ
ﻭﻧﻬﺐ ﻭﺃﻫﻞ ﺑﺎﺩﻳﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﺃﻫﻞ ﻣﺪﻳﻨﺔ ﻭﺳﺎﻛﻨﻮ ﻣﺪﺭ ﻭﺣﺠﺮ ،ﻻ ﻳﺮﻭﻥ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭﺍﺕ
ﻭﻻ ﻳﻨﻬﺒﻮﻥ ﻏﻴﺮﻫﻢ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻫﻢ ﻣﻘﺘﺼﺮﻭﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ﺑﺒﻠﺪﺗﻬﻢ ﻭﺣﻤﺎﻳﺔ ﺣﺮﻣﻬﻢ،
ﻓﻠﺬﻟﻚ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﺘﻬﺮ ﺍﺳﻤﻪ ﻛﺎﺷﺘﻬﺎﺭ ﻫﺆﻻﺀ.
ﻭﻳﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ :ﺇﺫﺍ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺗﺬﻛﺮ ﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﻨﺎﻙ .ﻓﻤﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺟﺰﻉ ﺍﻟﺨﻨﺪﻕ ﻓﻲ ﺳﺘﺔ
ﻓﺮﺳﺎﻥ ﻫﻮ ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻢ ﻓﺼﺎﺭ ﻣﻊ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺭﺽ ﻭﺍﺣﺪﺓ.
ﻭﻫﻢ ﺛﻼﺛﺔ ﺁﻻﻑ .ﻭﺩﻋﺎﻫﻢ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺒﺮﺍﺯ ﻣﺮﺍﺭﺍ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﺘﺪﺏ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻟﻠﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ،ﻭﻻ
ﺳﻤﺢ
ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﺃﺣﺪ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻪ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﻭﺑﺨﻬﻢ ﻭﻗﺮﻋﻬﻢ ﻭﻧﺎﺩﺍﻫﻢ :ﺃﻟﺴﺘﻢ ﺗﺰﻋﻤﻮﻥ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﻨﺎ ﻓﺈﻟﻰ
ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ ﻭﻣﻦ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﻨﻜﻢ ﻓﺈﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ؟ ﺃﻓﻼ ﻳﺸﺘﺎﻕ ﺃﺣﺪﻛﻢ ﺃﻥ ﻳﺬﻫﺐ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺔ ﺃﻭ ﻳﻘﺪﻡ
ﻋﺪﻭﻩ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺭ؟ ﻓﺠﺒﻨﻮﺍ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﻭﻧﻜﻠﻮﺍ ،ﻭﻣﻠﻜﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺮﻋﺐ ﻭﺍﻟﻮﻫﻞ .ﻓﺈﻣﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ
ﻫﺬﺍ ﺃﺷﺠﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﻴﻞ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﺃﻭ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺃﺟﺒﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﻭﺃﺫﻟﻬﻢ
ﻭﺃﻓﺸﻠﻬﻢ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﻛﻠﻬﻢ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺮ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺃﻧﺸﺪﻩ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻧﻜﻞ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﺑﺠﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﻪ
ﺟﺎﻝ ﺑﻔﺮﺳﻪ ﻭﺍﺳﺘﺪﺍﺭ ،ﻭﺫﻫﺐ ﻳﻤﻨﺔ ﺛﻢ ﺫﻫﺐ ﻳﺴﺮﺓ .ﺛﻢ ﻭﻗﻒ ﺗﺠﺎﻩ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻡ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ:
ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﺑﺤﺤﺖ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻨﺪﺍ * ﺀ ﺑﺠﻤﻌﻬﻢ ﻫﻞ ﻣﻦ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯ
ﻭﻭﻗﻔﺖ ﺇﺫ ﺟﺒﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻴﻊ * ﻭﻗﻔﺔ ﺍﻟﻘﺮﻥ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﺟﺰ
ﻭﻛﺬﺍﻙ ﺃﻧﻰ ﻟﻢ ﺃﺯﻝ * ﻣﺘﺴﺮﻋﺎ ﻧﺤﻮ ﺍﻟﻬﺰﺍﻫﺰ
ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﺠﺎﻋﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻰ * ﻭﺍﻟﺠﻮﺩ ﻣﻦ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻐﺮﺍﺋﺰ
ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺑﺮﺯ ﺇﻟﻴﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺟﺎﺑﻪ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ:
ﻻ ﺗﻌﺠﻠﻦ ﻓﻘﺪ ﺃﺗﺎ * ﻙ ﻣﺠﻴﺐ ﺻﻮﺗﻚ ﻏﻴﺮ ﻋﺎﺟﺰ
)(٣٣٨
ﺩﻭ ﻧﻴﺔ ﻭﺑﺼﻴﺮﺓ * ﻳﺮﺟﻮ ﺍﻟﻐﺪﺍﺓ ﻧﺠﺎﺓ ﻓﺎﺋﺰ
ﺇﻧﻲ ﻷﺭﺟﻮ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﻴﻢ * ﻋﻠﻴﻚ ﻧﺎﺋﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﺠﻨﺎﺋﺰ
ﻣﻦ ﺿﺮﺑﺔ ﺗﻔﻨﻰ ﻭﻳﺒﻘﻲ * ﻓﻲ ﺫﻛﺮﻫﺎ ﻋﻨﺪ ﺍﻟﻬﺰﺍﺋﺰ
ﻭﻟﻌﻤﺮﻯ ﻟﻘﺪ ﺳﺒﻖ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻟﻪ ﺑﻌﺾ ﺟﻬﺎﻝ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﻟﻤﺎ ﺭﺟﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻣﻦ ﺑﺪﺭ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ ﻓﺘﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻷﻧﺼﺎﺭ ﺷﻬﺪ ﻣﻌﻪ ﺑﺪﺭﺍ " ﺇﻥ ﻗﺘﻠﻨﺎ ﺇﻻ ﻋﺠﺎﺋﺰ ﺻﻠﻌﺎ! " ﻓﻘﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ
ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ " ﻻ ﺗﻘﻞ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻳﺎ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺥ ،ﺃﻭﻟﺌﻚ ﺍﻟﻤﻼ! ".
)(٢٤
ﺹ ٥٩ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﺩﻭﻥ ﺃﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻭﺁﺛﺎﺭ ﺭﺟﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﻭﺻﻒ ﺍﻟﻮﻟﻴﺪ ﺑﺎﻟﺸﺠﺎﻋﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺒﺴﺎﻟﺔ،
ﻭﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻊ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺘﻪ ﺃﻳﺪﺍ ﻳﺼﺎﺭﻉ ﺍﻟﻔﺘﻴﺎﻥ ﻓﻴﺼﺮﻋﻬﻢ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﺣﺮﺑﺎ ﻗﺒﻠﻬﺎ
ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﺐ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺑﻄﻼ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎ ،ﻓﺈﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺸﻬﺪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺑﺪﺭ ﺣﺮﺑﺎ،
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ ﺁﺛﺎﺭﻩ ﻓﻴﻬﺎ.
)(٢٥
ﺹ ٦٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﺛﺒﺎﺗﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻓﺄﻛﺜﺮ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﺭﺧﻴﻦ ﻭﺃﺭﺑﺎﺏ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺮ ﻳﻨﻜﺮﻭﻧﻪ ،ﻭﺟﻤﻬﻮﺭﻫﻢ ﻳﺮﻭﻯ
ﺃﻧﻪ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺒﻖ ﻣﻊ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﻭﺍﻟﺰﺑﻴﺮ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ.
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺭﻭﻯ ﻋﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻭﻟﻬﻢ ﺧﺎﻣﺲ ،ﻭﻫﻮ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ،ﻭﻣﻨﻬﻢ
ﻣﻦ ﺃﺛﺒﺖ ﺳﺎﺩﺳﺎ ﻭﻫﻮ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ.
ﻭﺭﻭﻯ ﻳﺤﻴﻰ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻠﻤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﻛﻬﻴﻞ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻗﻠﺖ ﻷﺑﻲ :ﻛﻢ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ؟ ﻓﻘﺎﻝ :ﺍﺛﻨﺎﻥ .ﻗﻠﺖ :ﻣﻦ ﻫﻤﺎ؟ ﻗﺎﻝ :ﻋﻠﻰ ﻭﺃﺑﻮ ﺩﺟﺎﻧﺔ.
ﻭﻫﺐ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺛﺒﺖ ﻳﻮﻡ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻛﻤﺎ ﺑﺪﻋﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ،ﺃﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﻟﻪ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ :ﺛﺒﺖ
ﻋﻠﻰ ،ﻓﻼ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻷﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻵﺧﺮ .ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﺁﺛﺎﺭ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ ﻭﺃﻧﻪ
)(٣٣٩
ﻗﺘﻞ ﺃﺻﺤﺎﺏ ﺍﻷﻟﻮﻳﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻨﻰ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﺪﺍﺭ .ﻣﻨﻬﻢ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﻃﻠﺤﺔ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺭﺃﻯ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻣﻨﺎﻣﻪ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻣﺮﺩﻑ ﻛﺒﺸﺎ ﻓﺄﻭﻟﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻛﺒﺶ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﻴﺒﺔ
ﻧﻘﺘﻠﻪ ) .(١ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻗﺘﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ -ﻭﻫﻮ ﺃﻭﻝ ﻗﺘﻴﻞ ﻗﺘﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ
ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻟﻴﻮﻡ -ﻛﺒﺮ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻗﺎﻝ :ﻫﺬﺍ ﻛﺒﺶ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﻴﺒﺔ!
ﻭﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻣﻨﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺤﺎﻣﺎﺓ ﻋﻦ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻭﻗﺪ ﻓﺮ ﺍﻟﻨﺎﺱ
ﻭﺃﺳﻠﻤﻮﻩ ،ﻓﺘﺼﻤﺪ ﻟﻪ ﻛﺘﻴﺒﺔ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺮﻳﺶ ﻓﻴﻘﻮﻝ " :ﻳﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ،ﺍﻛﻔﻨﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ " .ﻓﻴﺤﻤﻞ
ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻓﻴﻬﺰﻣﻬﺎ ﻭﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﻋﻤﻴﺪﻫﺎ ،ﺣﺘﻰ ﺳﻤﻊ ﺍﻟﻤﺴﻠﻤﻮﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻮﻥ ﺻﻮﺗﺎ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﻤﺎﺀ:
ﻻ ﺳﻴﻒ ﺇﻻ ﺫﻭ ﺍﻟﻔﻘﺎ * ﺭ ﻭﻻ ﻓﺘﻰ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻭﺣﺘﻰ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺟﺒﺮﺋﻴﻞ ﻣﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ.
ﺃﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺁﺛﺎﺭﻩ ﻭﺃﻓﻌﺎﻟﻪ ﺛﻢ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ :ﻻ ﻓﺨﺮ ﻷﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ!
ﺭﺑﻨﺎ ﺍﻓﺘﺢ ﺑﻴﻨﻨﺎ ﻭﺑﻴﻦ ﻗﻮﻣﻨﺎ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﻖ ﻭﺃﻧﺖ ﺧﻴﺮ ﺍﻟﻔﺎﺗﺤﻴﻦ.
)(٢٦
ﺹ ٦٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻣﺎ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻏﻨﺎﻙ ﻳﺎ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﻦ ﺫﻛﺮ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻤﻘﺎﻡ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻬﻮﺭ ﻷﺑﻲ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﺈﻧﻪ ﻟﻮ ﺗﺴﻤﻌﻪ
ﺍﻻﻣﺎﻣﻴﺔ ﻻﺿﺎﻓﺘﻪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻋﻨﺪﻫﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻤﺜﺎﻟﺐ ،ﻻﻥ ﻗﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺁﻟﻪ ﻟﻪ:
ﺍﺭﺟﻊ ،ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻻ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ ﺃﺣﺪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ ﺍﺑﻨﻪ ،ﻭﺃﻧﺖ
ﺗﻌﻠﻢ ﺣﻨﻮ ﺍﻻﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻷﺏ ﻭﺗﺒﺠﻴﻠﻪ ﻟﻪ ﻭﺇﺷﻔﺎﻗﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﻛﻔﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ ،ﻟﻢ ﻳﺤﺘﻤﻞ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﺯﺓ
ﺍﻟﻐﺮﻳﺐ ﺍﻷﺟﻨﺒﻲ .ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﻟﻪ " ﻭﻣﺘﻌﻨﺎ ﺑﻨﻔﺴﻚ " ﺇﻳﺬﺍﻥ ﻟﻪ ﺑﺄﻧﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﻘﺘﻞ ﻟﻮ ﺧﺮﺝ.
ﻭﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻋﺮﻑ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ .ﻓﺄﻳﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ
ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺑﺎﻟﺤﺮﺏ ،ﻭﻣﺸﻰ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻒ ﺑﺎﻟﺴﻴﻒ ،ﻓﻘﺘﻞ ﺍﻟﺴﺎﺩﺓ ﻭﺍﻟﻘﺎﺩﺓ،
ﻭﺍﻟﻔﺮﺳﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﻟﺮﺟﺎﻟﺔ.
--------------------
) (١ﻁ " :ﻓﻘﺘﻠﺘﻪ ".
)(٣٤٠
)(٢٧
ﺹ ٦٢ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺇﻧﻪ ﺑﺬﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺪ " ﻓﻘﺪ ﺻﺪﻕ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﻻ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻟﻪ "
ﻓﺨﻄﺄ ،ﻻﻥ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﺑﻠﻐﺖ ﻗﻮﺗﻪ ﺃﺿﻌﺎﻑ ﻗﻮﺗﻪ ﻓﺄﻋﻤﻠﻬﺎ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﺮﻛﻴﻦ ،ﺃﺷﺮﻑ
ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻘﺼﺖ ﻗﻮﺗﻪ ﻋﻦ ﺑﻠﻮﻍ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﻳﺔ .ﺃﻻ ﺗﺮﻯ ﺃﻥ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﺠﻬﺎﺩ
ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺃﺓ ،ﻭﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺒﺎﻟﻎ ﺍﻷﻳﺪ ﺃﺷﺮﻑ ﻣﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺼﺒﻰ ﺍﻟﻀﻌﻴﻒ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺃﺑﻲ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ:
ﻓﻬﺬﻩ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﻣﺎ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﺦ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﺭﺣﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﻓﻲ ﻧﻘﺾ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ ،ﺍﻗﺘﺼﺮﻧﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻬﺎ ﻫﻨﺎ .ﻭﺳﻨﻌﻮﺩ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺟﻤﻠﺔ ﺃﺧﺮﻯ ﻣﻦ
ﻛﻼﻣﻪ ﺇﺫﺍ ﺍﻗﺘﻀﺖ ﺍﻟﺤﺎﻝ ﺫﻛﺮﻩ.
ﻭﺃﻧﺎ ﺃﻗﻮﻝ :ﻗﺪ ﺗﺘﺒﻌﺖ ﻣﺎ ﺗﻼ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﻘﻮﻝ ﻣﻤﺎ ﻭﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﺃﺛﻨﺎﺀ ﺍﻟﺸﺮﺡ ﻣﻦ ﻧﺼﻮﺹ،
ﻓﻮﺟﺪﺕ ﺃﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ﻗﺪ ﻭﻗﻒ ﻋﻨﺪ ﻫﺬﺍ ﺍﻟﺤﺪ ﻭﻟﻢ ﻳﻮﺭﺩ ﻓﻲ ﻛﺘﺎﺑﻪ ﻧﺼﺎ ﺁﺧﺮ ﻣﻦ
ﻧﺼﻮﺹ ﺭﺩ ﺍﻹﺳﻜﺎﻓﻲ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﻋﻤﺎ ﻧﻘﻠﻪ ﻓﻲ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻟﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺣﺮﺻﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻥ ﺃﻗﺮﻧﻬﺎ ﻫﻨﺎ
ﺑﺎﻟﻤﻮﺍﺿﻊ ﺍﻟﺘﻲ ﺍﺳﺘﺪﻋﺖ ﺍﻟﺮﺩ.
)(٢٨
ﺹ ١٠٨ - ١٠٧ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﺇﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﻋﺜﻤﺎﻥ ﻳﺠﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻣﺎ ﻻ ﻃﺎﻗﺔ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻄﺎﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻌﺔ .ﻭﻟﻘﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻓﻲ ﻏﻨﻴﺔ
ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﺘﻌﻠﻖ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺗﻌﻠﻖ ﺑﻪ ،ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻌﺔ ﺗﺰﻋﻢ ﺇﻥ ﻫﺬﻩ ﺍﻵﻳﺔ ﺑﺄﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻃﻌﻨﺎ ﻭﻋﻴﺒﺎ
ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻭﻟﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺃﻥ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻭﻣﻨﻘﺒﺔ ﻟﻪ ،ﻷﻧﻪ ﻟﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ " ﻻ ﺗﺤﺰﻥ "
ﺩﻝ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﻪ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺣﺰﻥ ﻭﻗﻨﻂ ،ﻭﺃﺷﻔﻖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻭﻟﻴﺲ ﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﻦ ﺻﻔﺎﺕ
ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻣﻨﻴﻦ ﺍﻟﺼﺎﺑﺮﻳﻦ.
)(٣٤١
ﻭﻻ ﻳﺠﻮﺯ ﺃﻥ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﺣﺰﻧﻪ ﻃﺎﻋﺔ .ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻻ ﻳﻨﻬﻰ ﻋﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺎﻋﺔ ،ﻓﻠﻮ ﻟﻢ
ﻳﻜﻦ ﺫﻧﺒﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻳﻨﻪ ﻋﻨﻪ .ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻣﻌﻨﺎ " ﺃﻱ ﺇﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ﺑﺤﺎﻟﻨﺎ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻧﻀﻤﺮﻩ ﻣﻦ
ﺍﻟﻴﻘﻴﻦ ﺃﻭ ﺍﻟﺸﻚ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﺮﺟﻞ ﻟﺼﺎﺣﺒﻪ :ﻻ ﺗﻀﻤﺮﻥ ﺳﻮﺀﺍ ﻭﻻ ﺗﻨﻮﻳﻦ ﻗﺒﻴﺤﺎ
ﻓﺈﻥ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻳﻌﻠﻢ ﻣﺎ ﻧﺴﺮﻩ ﻭﻣﺎ ﻧﻌﻠﻨﻪ ﻭﻫﺬﺍ ﻣﺜﻞ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻭﻻ ﺃﺩﻧﻰ ﻣﻦ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻭﻻ ﺃﻛﺜﺮ ﺇﻻ ﻫﻮ ﻣﻌﻬﻢ ﺃﻳﻨﻤﺎ ﻛﺎﻧﻮﺍ " .ﺃﻱ ﻋﺎﻟﻢ ﺑﻬﻢ .ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺴﻜﻴﻨﺔ ﻓﻜﻴﻒ ﻳﻘﻮﻝ ﺇﻧﻬﺎ
ﻟﻴﺴﺖ ﺭﺍﺟﻌﺔ ﺇﻟﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺑﻌﺪﻫﺎ ﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﻭﺃﻳﺪﻩ ﺑﺠﻨﻮﺩ ﻟﻢ ﺗﺮﻭﻫﺎ ".
ﺃﺗﺮﻯ ﺍﻟﻤﺆﻳﺪ ﺑﺎﻟﺠﻨﻮﺩ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﺃﻡ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ؟
ﻭﻗﻮﻟﻪ " :ﺇﻧﻪ ﻣﺴﺘﻐﻦ ﻋﻨﻬﺎ " ﻟﻴﺲ ﺑﺼﺤﻴﺢ .ﻭﻻ ﻳﺴﺘﻐﻨﻰ ﺃﺣﺪ ﻋﻦ ﺃﻟﻄﺎﻑ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ
ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﺗﻮﻓﻴﻘﻪ ﻭﺗﺄﻳﻴﺪﻩ ﻭﺗﺜﺒﻴﺖ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺼﺔ ﺣﻨﻴﻦ " :ﻭﺿﺎﻗﺖ
ﻋﻠﻴﻜﻢ ﺍﻷﺭﺽ ﺑﻤﺎ ﺭﺣﺒﺖ ﺛﻢ ﻭﻟﻴﺘﻢ ﻣﺪﺑﺮﻳﻦ " .ﺛﻢ ﺃﻧﺰﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﺘﻪ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ
ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ.
ﻭﺃﻣﺎ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ﻓﻼ ﺗﺪﻝ ﺇﻻ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻤﺮﺍﻓﻘﺔ ﻭﺍﻻﺻﻄﺤﺎﺏ .ﻭﻗﺪ ﺗﻜﻮﻥ ﺣﻴﺚ
ﻻ ﺇﻳﻤﺎﻥ ،ﻛﻤﺎ ﻗﺎﻝ ﺗﻌﺎﻟﻰ " :ﻗﺎﻝ ﻟﻪ ﺻﺎﺣﺒﻪ ﻭﻫﻮ ﻳﺤﺎﻭﺭﻩ ﺃﻛﻔﺮﺕ ﺑﺎﻟﺬﻱ ﺧﻠﻘﻚ ".
ﻭﻧﺤﻦ ﻭﺇﻥ ﻛﻨﺎ ﻧﻌﺘﻘﺪ ﺇﺧﻼﺹ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻭﺇﻳﻤﺎﻧﻪ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﻴﺢ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﻴﻢ ،ﻭﻓﻀﻴﻠﺘﻪ
ﺍﻟﺘﺎﻣﺔ .ﺇﻻ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻻ ﻧﺤﺘﺞ ﻟﻪ ﺑﻤﺜﻞ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺣﺘﺞ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺞ ﺍﻟﻮﺍﻫﻴﺔ ،ﻭﻻ ﻧﺘﻌﻠﻖ
ﺑﻤﺎ ﻳﺠﺮ ﻋﻠﻴﻨﺎ ﺩﻭﺍﻫﻲ ﺍﻟﺸﻴﻌﺔ ﻭﻣﻄﺎﻋﻨﻬﺎ.
)(٣٤٢
)(٢٩
ﻭﻫﻰ ﻣﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﻟﻢ ﺃﻋﺜﺮ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻨﺺ ﺍﻟﺬﻱ ﺳﻴﻘﺖ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺜﻤﺎﻧﻴﺔ
ﻭﻗﺪ ﺟﺎﺀﺕ ﻓﻲ ﺷﺮﺡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺪﻳﺪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﻀﺔ ﺭﻗﻢ ١٨
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺍﻟﺠﺎﺣﻆ:
ﻭﻋﻠﻰ ﺃﻧﺎ ﻟﻮ ﻧﺰﻟﻨﺎ ﺇﻟﻰ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺮﻳﺪﻭﻧﻪ ﺟﻌﻠﻨﺎ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻛﺎﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﻭﺧﻠﺼﺖ ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﺃﺑﻰ ﺑﻜﺮ
ﻓﻲ ﻏﻴﺮ ﺫﻟﻚ ﻋﻦ ﻣﻌﺎﺭﺽ.
ﻗﺎﻝ ﺷﻴﺨﻨﺎ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ ﺭﺣﻤﻪ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ:
ﻗﺪ ﺑﻴﻨﺎ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ﻓﻲ ﺍﻟﻐﺎﺭ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻫﻮ ﻭﺍﺿﺢ
ﻟﻤﻦ ﺃﻧﺼﻒ .ﻭﻧﺰﻳﺪ ﻫﻨﺎ ﺗﺄﻛﻴﺪﺍ ﺑﻤﺎ ﻟﻢ ﻧﺬﻛﺮﻩ ﻓﻴﻤﺎ ﺗﻘﺪﻡ ﻓﻨﻘﻮﻝ:
ﺇﻥ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﺍﻟﻤﺒﻴﺖ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﺍﺵ ﻋﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﺤﺒﺔ ﻟﻮﺟﻬﻴﻦ:
ﺃﺣﺪﻫﻤﺎ ﺃﻥ ﻋﻠﻴﺎ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺃﻧﺲ ﺑﺎﻟﻨﺒﻲ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ،ﻭﺣﺼﻞ
ﻟﻪ ﺑﻤﺼﺎﺣﺒﺘﻪ ﻗﺪﻳﻤﺎ ﺃﻧﺲ ﻋﻈﻴﻢ ،ﻭﺃﻟﻒ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﻓﺎﺭﻗﻪ ﻋﺪﻡ ﺫﻟﻚ ﺍﻻﻧﺲ ﻭﺣﺼﻞ
ﺑﻪ ﺃﺑﻮ ﺑﻜﺮ ،ﻓﻜﺎﻥ ﻣﺎ ﻳﺠﺪﻩ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﺍﻟﺴﻼﻡ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻮﺣﺸﺔ ﻭﺃﻟﻢ ﺍﻟﻔﺮﻗﺔ ﻣﻮﺟﺒﺎ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﺓ ﺛﻮﺍﺑﻪ،
ﻻﻥ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ ﻋﻠﻰ ﻗﺪﺭ ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻘﺔ.
ﻭﺛﺎﻧﻴﺎ :ﺃﻥ ﺃﺑﺎ ﺑﻜﺮ ﻛﺎﻥ ﻳﺆﺛﺮ ﺍﻟﺨﺮﻭﺝ ﻣﻦ ﻣﻜﺔ ،ﻭﻗﺪ ﻛﺎﻥ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻦ ﻗﺒﻞ ﻓﺮﺩ،
ﻓﺎﺯﺩﺍﺩ ﻛﺮﺍﻫﻴﺔ ﻟﻠﻤﻘﺎﻡ ،ﻓﻠﻤﺎ ﺧﺮﺝ ﻣﻊ ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﺻﻠﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﻪ ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻭﺳﻠﻢ ﻭﺍﻓﻖ ﺫﻟﻚ
ﻫﻮﻯ ﻗﻠﺒﻪ ﻭﻣﺤﺒﻮﺏ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ،ﻓﻠﻢ ﻳﻜﻦ ﻟﻪ ﻣﻦ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﺎ ﻳﻮﺍﺯﻯ ﻓﻀﻴﻠﺔ ﻣﻦ ﺍﺣﺘﻤﻞ
ﺍﻟﻤﺸﻘﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻤﺔ ،ﻭﻋﺮﺽ ﻧﻔﺴﻪ ﻟﻮﻗﻊ ﺍﻟﺴﻴﻮﻑ ،ﻭﺭﺃﺳﻪ ﻟﺮﺿﺦ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﺎﺭﺓ ،ﻻﻥ ﻋﻠﻰ
ﻗﺪﺭ ﺳﻬﻮﻟﺔ ﺍﻟﻌﺒﺎﺩﺓ ﻳﻜﻮﻥ ﻧﻘﺼﺎﻥ ﺍﻟﺜﻮﺍﺏ.
ﺗﻤﺖ ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﻀﺎﺕ
)(٣٤٣